1Produced by David Widger. The previous edition was updated by Jose
2Menendez.
3
4
5
6
7
8                   THE ADVENTURES OF TOM SAWYER
9                                BY
10                            MARK TWAIN
11                     (Samuel Langhorne Clemens)
12
13
14
15
16                           P R E F A C E
17
18MOST of the adventures recorded in this book really occurred; one or
19two were experiences of my own, the rest those of boys who were
20schoolmates of mine. Huck Finn is drawn from life; Tom Sawyer also, but
21not from an individual--he is a combination of the characteristics of
22three boys whom I knew, and therefore belongs to the composite order of
23architecture.
24
25The odd superstitions touched upon were all prevalent among children
26and slaves in the West at the period of this story--that is to say,
27thirty or forty years ago.
28
29Although my book is intended mainly for the entertainment of boys and
30girls, I hope it will not be shunned by men and women on that account,
31for part of my plan has been to try to pleasantly remind adults of what
32they once were themselves, and of how they felt and thought and talked,
33and what queer enterprises they sometimes engaged in.
34
35                                                            THE AUTHOR.
36
37HARTFORD, 1876.
38
39
40
41                          T O M   S A W Y E R
42
43
44
45CHAPTER I
46
47"TOM!"
48
49No answer.
50
51"TOM!"
52
53No answer.
54
55"What's gone with that boy,  I wonder? You TOM!"
56
57No answer.
58
59The old lady pulled her spectacles down and looked over them about the
60room; then she put them up and looked out under them. She seldom or
61never looked THROUGH them for so small a thing as a boy; they were her
62state pair, the pride of her heart, and were built for "style," not
63service--she could have seen through a pair of stove-lids just as well.
64She looked perplexed for a moment, and then said, not fiercely, but
65still loud enough for the furniture to hear:
66
67"Well, I lay if I get hold of you I'll--"
68
69She did not finish, for by this time she was bending down and punching
70under the bed with the broom, and so she needed breath to punctuate the
71punches with. She resurrected nothing but the cat.
72
73"I never did see the beat of that boy!"
74
75She went to the open door and stood in it and looked out among the
76tomato vines and "jimpson" weeds that constituted the garden. No Tom.
77So she lifted up her voice at an angle calculated for distance and
78shouted:
79
80"Y-o-u-u TOM!"
81
82There was a slight noise behind her and she turned just in time to
83seize a small boy by the slack of his roundabout and arrest his flight.
84
85"There! I might 'a' thought of that closet. What you been doing in
86there?"
87
88"Nothing."
89
90"Nothing! Look at your hands. And look at your mouth. What IS that
91truck?"
92
93"I don't know, aunt."
94
95"Well, I know. It's jam--that's what it is. Forty times I've said if
96you didn't let that jam alone I'd skin you. Hand me that switch."
97
98The switch hovered in the air--the peril was desperate--
99
100"My! Look behind you, aunt!"
101
102The old lady whirled round, and snatched her skirts out of danger. The
103lad fled on the instant, scrambled up the high board-fence, and
104disappeared over it.
105
106His aunt Polly stood surprised a moment, and then broke into a gentle
107laugh.
108
109"Hang the boy, can't I never learn anything? Ain't he played me tricks
110enough like that for me to be looking out for him by this time? But old
111fools is the biggest fools there is. Can't learn an old dog new tricks,
112as the saying is. But my goodness, he never plays them alike, two days,
113and how is a body to know what's coming? He 'pears to know just how
114long he can torment me before I get my dander up, and he knows if he
115can make out to put me off for a minute or make me laugh, it's all down
116again and I can't hit him a lick. I ain't doing my duty by that boy,
117and that's the Lord's truth, goodness knows. Spare the rod and spile
118the child, as the Good Book says. I'm a laying up sin and suffering for
119us both, I know. He's full of the Old Scratch, but laws-a-me! he's my
120own dead sister's boy, poor thing, and I ain't got the heart to lash
121him, somehow. Every time I let him off, my conscience does hurt me so,
122and every time I hit him my old heart most breaks. Well-a-well, man
123that is born of woman is of few days and full of trouble, as the
124Scripture says, and I reckon it's so. He'll play hookey this evening, *
125and [* Southwestern for "afternoon"] I'll just be obleeged to make him
126work, to-morrow, to punish him. It's mighty hard to make him work
127Saturdays, when all the boys is having holiday, but he hates work more
128than he hates anything else, and I've GOT to do some of my duty by him,
129or I'll be the ruination of the child."
130
131Tom did play hookey, and he had a very good time. He got back home
132barely in season to help Jim, the small colored boy, saw next-day's
133wood and split the kindlings before supper--at least he was there in
134time to tell his adventures to Jim while Jim did three-fourths of the
135work. Tom's younger brother (or rather half-brother) Sid was already
136through with his part of the work (picking up chips), for he was a
137quiet boy, and had no adventurous, troublesome ways.
138
139While Tom was eating his supper, and stealing sugar as opportunity
140offered, Aunt Polly asked him questions that were full of guile, and
141very deep--for she wanted to trap him into damaging revealments. Like
142many other simple-hearted souls, it was her pet vanity to believe she
143was endowed with a talent for dark and mysterious diplomacy, and she
144loved to contemplate her most transparent devices as marvels of low
145cunning. Said she:
146
147"Tom, it was middling warm in school, warn't it?"
148
149"Yes'm."
150
151"Powerful warm, warn't it?"
152
153"Yes'm."
154
155"Didn't you want to go in a-swimming, Tom?"
156
157A bit of a scare shot through Tom--a touch of uncomfortable suspicion.
158He searched Aunt Polly's face, but it told him nothing. So he said:
159
160"No'm--well, not very much."
161
162The old lady reached out her hand and felt Tom's shirt, and said:
163
164"But you ain't too warm now, though." And it flattered her to reflect
165that she had discovered that the shirt was dry without anybody knowing
166that that was what she had in her mind. But in spite of her, Tom knew
167where the wind lay, now. So he forestalled what might be the next move:
168
169"Some of us pumped on our heads--mine's damp yet. See?"
170
171Aunt Polly was vexed to think she had overlooked that bit of
172circumstantial evidence, and missed a trick. Then she had a new
173inspiration:
174
175"Tom, you didn't have to undo your shirt collar where I sewed it, to
176pump on your head, did you? Unbutton your jacket!"
177
178The trouble vanished out of Tom's face. He opened his jacket. His
179shirt collar was securely sewed.
180
181"Bother! Well, go 'long with you. I'd made sure you'd played hookey
182and been a-swimming. But I forgive ye, Tom. I reckon you're a kind of a
183singed cat, as the saying is--better'n you look. THIS time."
184
185She was half sorry her sagacity had miscarried, and half glad that Tom
186had stumbled into obedient conduct for once.
187
188But Sidney said:
189
190"Well, now, if I didn't think you sewed his collar with white thread,
191but it's black."
192
193"Why, I did sew it with white! Tom!"
194
195But Tom did not wait for the rest. As he went out at the door he said:
196
197"Siddy, I'll lick you for that."
198
199In a safe place Tom examined two large needles which were thrust into
200the lapels of his jacket, and had thread bound about them--one needle
201carried white thread and the other black. He said:
202
203"She'd never noticed if it hadn't been for Sid. Confound it! sometimes
204she sews it with white, and sometimes she sews it with black. I wish to
205geeminy she'd stick to one or t'other--I can't keep the run of 'em. But
206I bet you I'll lam Sid for that. I'll learn him!"
207
208He was not the Model Boy of the village. He knew the model boy very
209well though--and loathed him.
210
211Within two minutes, or even less, he had forgotten all his troubles.
212Not because his troubles were one whit less heavy and bitter to him
213than a man's are to a man, but because a new and powerful interest bore
214them down and drove them out of his mind for the time--just as men's
215misfortunes are forgotten in the excitement of new enterprises. This
216new interest was a valued novelty in whistling, which he had just
217acquired from a negro, and he was suffering to practise it undisturbed.
218It consisted in a peculiar bird-like turn, a sort of liquid warble,
219produced by touching the tongue to the roof of the mouth at short
220intervals in the midst of the music--the reader probably remembers how
221to do it, if he has ever been a boy. Diligence and attention soon gave
222him the knack of it, and he strode down the street with his mouth full
223of harmony and his soul full of gratitude. He felt much as an
224astronomer feels who has discovered a new planet--no doubt, as far as
225strong, deep, unalloyed pleasure is concerned, the advantage was with
226the boy, not the astronomer.
227
228The summer evenings were long. It was not dark, yet. Presently Tom
229checked his whistle. A stranger was before him--a boy a shade larger
230than himself. A new-comer of any age or either sex was an impressive
231curiosity in the poor little shabby village of St. Petersburg. This boy
232was well dressed, too--well dressed on a week-day. This was simply
233astounding. His cap was a dainty thing, his close-buttoned blue cloth
234roundabout was new and natty, and so were his pantaloons. He had shoes
235on--and it was only Friday. He even wore a necktie, a bright bit of
236ribbon. He had a citified air about him that ate into Tom's vitals. The
237more Tom stared at the splendid marvel, the higher he turned up his
238nose at his finery and the shabbier and shabbier his own outfit seemed
239to him to grow. Neither boy spoke. If one moved, the other moved--but
240only sidewise, in a circle; they kept face to face and eye to eye all
241the time. Finally Tom said:
242
243"I can lick you!"
244
245"I'd like to see you try it."
246
247"Well, I can do it."
248
249"No you can't, either."
250
251"Yes I can."
252
253"No you can't."
254
255"I can."
256
257"You can't."
258
259"Can!"
260
261"Can't!"
262
263An uncomfortable pause. Then Tom said:
264
265"What's your name?"
266
267"'Tisn't any of your business, maybe."
268
269"Well I 'low I'll MAKE it my business."
270
271"Well why don't you?"
272
273"If you say much, I will."
274
275"Much--much--MUCH. There now."
276
277"Oh, you think you're mighty smart, DON'T you? I could lick you with
278one hand tied behind me, if I wanted to."
279
280"Well why don't you DO it? You SAY you can do it."
281
282"Well I WILL, if you fool with me."
283
284"Oh yes--I've seen whole families in the same fix."
285
286"Smarty! You think you're SOME, now, DON'T you? Oh, what a hat!"
287
288"You can lump that hat if you don't like it. I dare you to knock it
289off--and anybody that'll take a dare will suck eggs."
290
291"You're a liar!"
292
293"You're another."
294
295"You're a fighting liar and dasn't take it up."
296
297"Aw--take a walk!"
298
299"Say--if you give me much more of your sass I'll take and bounce a
300rock off'n your head."
301
302"Oh, of COURSE you will."
303
304"Well I WILL."
305
306"Well why don't you DO it then? What do you keep SAYING you will for?
307Why don't you DO it? It's because you're afraid."
308
309"I AIN'T afraid."
310
311"You are."
312
313"I ain't."
314
315"You are."
316
317Another pause, and more eying and sidling around each other. Presently
318they were shoulder to shoulder. Tom said:
319
320"Get away from here!"
321
322"Go away yourself!"
323
324"I won't."
325
326"I won't either."
327
328So they stood, each with a foot placed at an angle as a brace, and
329both shoving with might and main, and glowering at each other with
330hate. But neither could get an advantage. After struggling till both
331were hot and flushed, each relaxed his strain with watchful caution,
332and Tom said:
333
334"You're a coward and a pup. I'll tell my big brother on you, and he
335can thrash you with his little finger, and I'll make him do it, too."
336
337"What do I care for your big brother? I've got a brother that's bigger
338than he is--and what's more, he can throw him over that fence, too."
339[Both brothers were imaginary.]
340
341"That's a lie."
342
343"YOUR saying so don't make it so."
344
345Tom drew a line in the dust with his big toe, and said:
346
347"I dare you to step over that, and I'll lick you till you can't stand
348up. Anybody that'll take a dare will steal sheep."
349
350The new boy stepped over promptly, and said:
351
352"Now you said you'd do it, now let's see you do it."
353
354"Don't you crowd me now; you better look out."
355
356"Well, you SAID you'd do it--why don't you do it?"
357
358"By jingo! for two cents I WILL do it."
359
360The new boy took two broad coppers out of his pocket and held them out
361with derision. Tom struck them to the ground. In an instant both boys
362were rolling and tumbling in the dirt, gripped together like cats; and
363for the space of a minute they tugged and tore at each other's hair and
364clothes, punched and scratched each other's nose, and covered
365themselves with dust and glory. Presently the confusion took form, and
366through the fog of battle Tom appeared, seated astride the new boy, and
367pounding him with his fists. "Holler 'nuff!" said he.
368
369The boy only struggled to free himself. He was crying--mainly from rage.
370
371"Holler 'nuff!"--and the pounding went on.
372
373At last the stranger got out a smothered "'Nuff!" and Tom let him up
374and said:
375
376"Now that'll learn you. Better look out who you're fooling with next
377time."
378
379The new boy went off brushing the dust from his clothes, sobbing,
380snuffling, and occasionally looking back and shaking his head and
381threatening what he would do to Tom the "next time he caught him out."
382To which Tom responded with jeers, and started off in high feather, and
383as soon as his back was turned the new boy snatched up a stone, threw
384it and hit him between the shoulders and then turned tail and ran like
385an antelope. Tom chased the traitor home, and thus found out where he
386lived. He then held a position at the gate for some time, daring the
387enemy to come outside, but the enemy only made faces at him through the
388window and declined. At last the enemy's mother appeared, and called
389Tom a bad, vicious, vulgar child, and ordered him away. So he went
390away; but he said he "'lowed" to "lay" for that boy.
391
392He got home pretty late that night, and when he climbed cautiously in
393at the window, he uncovered an ambuscade, in the person of his aunt;
394and when she saw the state his clothes were in her resolution to turn
395his Saturday holiday into captivity at hard labor became adamantine in
396its firmness.
397
398
399
400CHAPTER II
401
402SATURDAY morning was come, and all the summer world was bright and
403fresh, and brimming with life. There was a song in every heart; and if
404the heart was young the music issued at the lips. There was cheer in
405every face and a spring in every step. The locust-trees were in bloom
406and the fragrance of the blossoms filled the air. Cardiff Hill, beyond
407the village and above it, was green with vegetation and it lay just far
408enough away to seem a Delectable Land, dreamy, reposeful, and inviting.
409
410Tom appeared on the sidewalk with a bucket of whitewash and a
411long-handled brush. He surveyed the fence, and all gladness left him and
412a deep melancholy settled down upon his spirit. Thirty yards of board
413fence nine feet high. Life to him seemed hollow, and existence but a
414burden. Sighing, he dipped his brush and passed it along the topmost
415plank; repeated the operation; did it again; compared the insignificant
416whitewashed streak with the far-reaching continent of unwhitewashed
417fence, and sat down on a tree-box discouraged. Jim came skipping out at
418the gate with a tin pail, and singing Buffalo Gals. Bringing water from
419the town pump had always been hateful work in Tom's eyes, before, but
420now it did not strike him so. He remembered that there was company at
421the pump. White, mulatto, and negro boys and girls were always there
422waiting their turns, resting, trading playthings, quarrelling,
423fighting, skylarking. And he remembered that although the pump was only
424a hundred and fifty yards off, Jim never got back with a bucket of
425water under an hour--and even then somebody generally had to go after
426him. Tom said:
427
428"Say, Jim, I'll fetch the water if you'll whitewash some."
429
430Jim shook his head and said:
431
432"Can't, Mars Tom. Ole missis, she tole me I got to go an' git dis
433water an' not stop foolin' roun' wid anybody. She say she spec' Mars
434Tom gwine to ax me to whitewash, an' so she tole me go 'long an' 'tend
435to my own business--she 'lowed SHE'D 'tend to de whitewashin'."
436
437"Oh, never you mind what she said, Jim. That's the way she always
438talks. Gimme the bucket--I won't be gone only a a minute. SHE won't
439ever know."
440
441"Oh, I dasn't, Mars Tom. Ole missis she'd take an' tar de head off'n
442me. 'Deed she would."
443
444"SHE! She never licks anybody--whacks 'em over the head with her
445thimble--and who cares for that, I'd like to know. She talks awful, but
446talk don't hurt--anyways it don't if she don't cry. Jim, I'll give you
447a marvel. I'll give you a white alley!"
448
449Jim began to waver.
450
451"White alley, Jim! And it's a bully taw."
452
453"My! Dat's a mighty gay marvel, I tell you! But Mars Tom I's powerful
454'fraid ole missis--"
455
456"And besides, if you will I'll show you my sore toe."
457
458Jim was only human--this attraction was too much for him. He put down
459his pail, took the white alley, and bent over the toe with absorbing
460interest while the bandage was being unwound. In another moment he was
461flying down the street with his pail and a tingling rear, Tom was
462whitewashing with vigor, and Aunt Polly was retiring from the field
463with a slipper in her hand and triumph in her eye.
464
465But Tom's energy did not last. He began to think of the fun he had
466planned for this day, and his sorrows multiplied. Soon the free boys
467would come tripping along on all sorts of delicious expeditions, and
468they would make a world of fun of him for having to work--the very
469thought of it burnt him like fire. He got out his worldly wealth and
470examined it--bits of toys, marbles, and trash; enough to buy an
471exchange of WORK, maybe, but not half enough to buy so much as half an
472hour of pure freedom. So he returned his straitened means to his
473pocket, and gave up the idea of trying to buy the boys. At this dark
474and hopeless moment an inspiration burst upon him! Nothing less than a
475great, magnificent inspiration.
476
477He took up his brush and went tranquilly to work. Ben Rogers hove in
478sight presently--the very boy, of all boys, whose ridicule he had been
479dreading. Ben's gait was the hop-skip-and-jump--proof enough that his
480heart was light and his anticipations high. He was eating an apple, and
481giving a long, melodious whoop, at intervals, followed by a deep-toned
482ding-dong-dong, ding-dong-dong, for he was personating a steamboat. As
483he drew near, he slackened speed, took the middle of the street, leaned
484far over to starboard and rounded to ponderously and with laborious
485pomp and circumstance--for he was personating the Big Missouri, and
486considered himself to be drawing nine feet of water. He was boat and
487captain and engine-bells combined, so he had to imagine himself
488standing on his own hurricane-deck giving the orders and executing them:
489
490"Stop her, sir! Ting-a-ling-ling!" The headway ran almost out, and he
491drew up slowly toward the sidewalk.
492
493"Ship up to back! Ting-a-ling-ling!" His arms straightened and
494stiffened down his sides.
495
496"Set her back on the stabboard! Ting-a-ling-ling! Chow! ch-chow-wow!
497Chow!" His right hand, meantime, describing stately circles--for it was
498representing a forty-foot wheel.
499
500"Let her go back on the labboard! Ting-a-lingling! Chow-ch-chow-chow!"
501The left hand began to describe circles.
502
503"Stop the stabboard! Ting-a-ling-ling! Stop the labboard! Come ahead
504on the stabboard! Stop her! Let your outside turn over slow!
505Ting-a-ling-ling! Chow-ow-ow! Get out that head-line! LIVELY now!
506Come--out with your spring-line--what're you about there! Take a turn
507round that stump with the bight of it! Stand by that stage, now--let her
508go! Done with the engines, sir! Ting-a-ling-ling! SH'T! S'H'T! SH'T!"
509(trying the gauge-cocks).
510
511Tom went on whitewashing--paid no attention to the steamboat. Ben
512stared a moment and then said: "Hi-YI! YOU'RE up a stump, ain't you!"
513
514No answer. Tom surveyed his last touch with the eye of an artist, then
515he gave his brush another gentle sweep and surveyed the result, as
516before. Ben ranged up alongside of him. Tom's mouth watered for the
517apple, but he stuck to his work. Ben said:
518
519"Hello, old chap, you got to work, hey?"
520
521Tom wheeled suddenly and said:
522
523"Why, it's you, Ben! I warn't noticing."
524
525"Say--I'm going in a-swimming, I am. Don't you wish you could? But of
526course you'd druther WORK--wouldn't you? Course you would!"
527
528Tom contemplated the boy a bit, and said:
529
530"What do you call work?"
531
532"Why, ain't THAT work?"
533
534Tom resumed his whitewashing, and answered carelessly:
535
536"Well, maybe it is, and maybe it ain't. All I know, is, it suits Tom
537Sawyer."
538
539"Oh come, now, you don't mean to let on that you LIKE it?"
540
541The brush continued to move.
542
543"Like it? Well, I don't see why I oughtn't to like it. Does a boy get
544a chance to whitewash a fence every day?"
545
546That put the thing in a new light. Ben stopped nibbling his apple. Tom
547swept his brush daintily back and forth--stepped back to note the
548effect--added a touch here and there--criticised the effect again--Ben
549watching every move and getting more and more interested, more and more
550absorbed. Presently he said:
551
552"Say, Tom, let ME whitewash a little."
553
554Tom considered, was about to consent; but he altered his mind:
555
556"No--no--I reckon it wouldn't hardly do, Ben. You see, Aunt Polly's
557awful particular about this fence--right here on the street, you know
558--but if it was the back fence I wouldn't mind and SHE wouldn't. Yes,
559she's awful particular about this fence; it's got to be done very
560careful; I reckon there ain't one boy in a thousand, maybe two
561thousand, that can do it the way it's got to be done."
562
563"No--is that so? Oh come, now--lemme just try. Only just a little--I'd
564let YOU, if you was me, Tom."
565
566"Ben, I'd like to, honest injun; but Aunt Polly--well, Jim wanted to
567do it, but she wouldn't let him; Sid wanted to do it, and she wouldn't
568let Sid. Now don't you see how I'm fixed? If you was to tackle this
569fence and anything was to happen to it--"
570
571"Oh, shucks, I'll be just as careful. Now lemme try. Say--I'll give
572you the core of my apple."
573
574"Well, here--No, Ben, now don't. I'm afeard--"
575
576"I'll give you ALL of it!"
577
578Tom gave up the brush with reluctance in his face, but alacrity in his
579heart. And while the late steamer Big Missouri worked and sweated in
580the sun, the retired artist sat on a barrel in the shade close by,
581dangled his legs, munched his apple, and planned the slaughter of more
582innocents. There was no lack of material; boys happened along every
583little while; they came to jeer, but remained to whitewash. By the time
584Ben was fagged out, Tom had traded the next chance to Billy Fisher for
585a kite, in good repair; and when he played out, Johnny Miller bought in
586for a dead rat and a string to swing it with--and so on, and so on,
587hour after hour. And when the middle of the afternoon came, from being
588a poor poverty-stricken boy in the morning, Tom was literally rolling
589in wealth. He had besides the things before mentioned, twelve marbles,
590part of a jews-harp, a piece of blue bottle-glass to look through, a
591spool cannon, a key that wouldn't unlock anything, a fragment of chalk,
592a glass stopper of a decanter, a tin soldier, a couple of tadpoles, six
593fire-crackers, a kitten with only one eye, a brass doorknob, a
594dog-collar--but no dog--the handle of a knife, four pieces of
595orange-peel, and a dilapidated old window sash.
596
597He had had a nice, good, idle time all the while--plenty of company
598--and the fence had three coats of whitewash on it! If he hadn't run out
599of whitewash he would have bankrupted every boy in the village.
600
601Tom said to himself that it was not such a hollow world, after all. He
602had discovered a great law of human action, without knowing it--namely,
603that in order to make a man or a boy covet a thing, it is only
604necessary to make the thing difficult to attain. If he had been a great
605and wise philosopher, like the writer of this book, he would now have
606comprehended that Work consists of whatever a body is OBLIGED to do,
607and that Play consists of whatever a body is not obliged to do. And
608this would help him to understand why constructing artificial flowers
609or performing on a tread-mill is work, while rolling ten-pins or
610climbing Mont Blanc is only amusement. There are wealthy gentlemen in
611England who drive four-horse passenger-coaches twenty or thirty miles
612on a daily line, in the summer, because the privilege costs them
613considerable money; but if they were offered wages for the service,
614that would turn it into work and then they would resign.
615
616The boy mused awhile over the substantial change which had taken place
617in his worldly circumstances, and then wended toward headquarters to
618report.
619
620
621
622CHAPTER III
623
624TOM presented himself before Aunt Polly, who was sitting by an open
625window in a pleasant rearward apartment, which was bedroom,
626breakfast-room, dining-room, and library, combined. The balmy summer
627air, the restful quiet, the odor of the flowers, and the drowsing murmur
628of the bees had had their effect, and she was nodding over her knitting
629--for she had no company but the cat, and it was asleep in her lap. Her
630spectacles were propped up on her gray head for safety. She had thought
631that of course Tom had deserted long ago, and she wondered at seeing him
632place himself in her power again in this intrepid way. He said: "Mayn't
633I go and play now, aunt?"
634
635"What, a'ready? How much have you done?"
636
637"It's all done, aunt."
638
639"Tom, don't lie to me--I can't bear it."
640
641"I ain't, aunt; it IS all done."
642
643Aunt Polly placed small trust in such evidence. She went out to see
644for herself; and she would have been content to find twenty per cent.
645of Tom's statement true. When she found the entire fence whitewashed,
646and not only whitewashed but elaborately coated and recoated, and even
647a streak added to the ground, her astonishment was almost unspeakable.
648She said:
649
650"Well, I never! There's no getting round it, you can work when you're
651a mind to, Tom." And then she diluted the compliment by adding, "But
652it's powerful seldom you're a mind to, I'm bound to say. Well, go 'long
653and play; but mind you get back some time in a week, or I'll tan you."
654
655She was so overcome by the splendor of his achievement that she took
656him into the closet and selected a choice apple and delivered it to
657him, along with an improving lecture upon the added value and flavor a
658treat took to itself when it came without sin through virtuous effort.
659And while she closed with a happy Scriptural flourish, he "hooked" a
660doughnut.
661
662Then he skipped out, and saw Sid just starting up the outside stairway
663that led to the back rooms on the second floor. Clods were handy and
664the air was full of them in a twinkling. They raged around Sid like a
665hail-storm; and before Aunt Polly could collect her surprised faculties
666and sally to the rescue, six or seven clods had taken personal effect,
667and Tom was over the fence and gone. There was a gate, but as a general
668thing he was too crowded for time to make use of it. His soul was at
669peace, now that he had settled with Sid for calling attention to his
670black thread and getting him into trouble.
671
672Tom skirted the block, and came round into a muddy alley that led by
673the back of his aunt's cow-stable. He presently got safely beyond the
674reach of capture and punishment, and hastened toward the public square
675of the village, where two "military" companies of boys had met for
676conflict, according to previous appointment. Tom was General of one of
677these armies, Joe Harper (a bosom friend) General of the other. These
678two great commanders did not condescend to fight in person--that being
679better suited to the still smaller fry--but sat together on an eminence
680and conducted the field operations by orders delivered through
681aides-de-camp. Tom's army won a great victory, after a long and
682hard-fought battle. Then the dead were counted, prisoners exchanged,
683the terms of the next disagreement agreed upon, and the day for the
684necessary battle appointed; after which the armies fell into line and
685marched away, and Tom turned homeward alone.
686
687As he was passing by the house where Jeff Thatcher lived, he saw a new
688girl in the garden--a lovely little blue-eyed creature with yellow hair
689plaited into two long-tails, white summer frock and embroidered
690pantalettes. The fresh-crowned hero fell without firing a shot. A
691certain Amy Lawrence vanished out of his heart and left not even a
692memory of herself behind. He had thought he loved her to distraction;
693he had regarded his passion as adoration; and behold it was only a poor
694little evanescent partiality. He had been months winning her; she had
695confessed hardly a week ago; he had been the happiest and the proudest
696boy in the world only seven short days, and here in one instant of time
697she had gone out of his heart like a casual stranger whose visit is
698done.
699
700He worshipped this new angel with furtive eye, till he saw that she
701had discovered him; then he pretended he did not know she was present,
702and began to "show off" in all sorts of absurd boyish ways, in order to
703win her admiration. He kept up this grotesque foolishness for some
704time; but by-and-by, while he was in the midst of some dangerous
705gymnastic performances, he glanced aside and saw that the little girl
706was wending her way toward the house. Tom came up to the fence and
707leaned on it, grieving, and hoping she would tarry yet awhile longer.
708She halted a moment on the steps and then moved toward the door. Tom
709heaved a great sigh as she put her foot on the threshold. But his face
710lit up, right away, for she tossed a pansy over the fence a moment
711before she disappeared.
712
713The boy ran around and stopped within a foot or two of the flower, and
714then shaded his eyes with his hand and began to look down street as if
715he had discovered something of interest going on in that direction.
716Presently he picked up a straw and began trying to balance it on his
717nose, with his head tilted far back; and as he moved from side to side,
718in his efforts, he edged nearer and nearer toward the pansy; finally
719his bare foot rested upon it, his pliant toes closed upon it, and he
720hopped away with the treasure and disappeared round the corner. But
721only for a minute--only while he could button the flower inside his
722jacket, next his heart--or next his stomach, possibly, for he was not
723much posted in anatomy, and not hypercritical, anyway.
724
725He returned, now, and hung about the fence till nightfall, "showing
726off," as before; but the girl never exhibited herself again, though Tom
727comforted himself a little with the hope that she had been near some
728window, meantime, and been aware of his attentions. Finally he strode
729home reluctantly, with his poor head full of visions.
730
731All through supper his spirits were so high that his aunt wondered
732"what had got into the child." He took a good scolding about clodding
733Sid, and did not seem to mind it in the least. He tried to steal sugar
734under his aunt's very nose, and got his knuckles rapped for it. He said:
735
736"Aunt, you don't whack Sid when he takes it."
737
738"Well, Sid don't torment a body the way you do. You'd be always into
739that sugar if I warn't watching you."
740
741Presently she stepped into the kitchen, and Sid, happy in his
742immunity, reached for the sugar-bowl--a sort of glorying over Tom which
743was wellnigh unbearable. But Sid's fingers slipped and the bowl dropped
744and broke. Tom was in ecstasies. In such ecstasies that he even
745controlled his tongue and was silent. He said to himself that he would
746not speak a word, even when his aunt came in, but would sit perfectly
747still till she asked who did the mischief; and then he would tell, and
748there would be nothing so good in the world as to see that pet model
749"catch it." He was so brimful of exultation that he could hardly hold
750himself when the old lady came back and stood above the wreck
751discharging lightnings of wrath from over her spectacles. He said to
752himself, "Now it's coming!" And the next instant he was sprawling on
753the floor! The potent palm was uplifted to strike again when Tom cried
754out:
755
756"Hold on, now, what 'er you belting ME for?--Sid broke it!"
757
758Aunt Polly paused, perplexed, and Tom looked for healing pity. But
759when she got her tongue again, she only said:
760
761"Umf! Well, you didn't get a lick amiss, I reckon. You been into some
762other audacious mischief when I wasn't around, like enough."
763
764Then her conscience reproached her, and she yearned to say something
765kind and loving; but she judged that this would be construed into a
766confession that she had been in the wrong, and discipline forbade that.
767So she kept silence, and went about her affairs with a troubled heart.
768Tom sulked in a corner and exalted his woes. He knew that in her heart
769his aunt was on her knees to him, and he was morosely gratified by the
770consciousness of it. He would hang out no signals, he would take notice
771of none. He knew that a yearning glance fell upon him, now and then,
772through a film of tears, but he refused recognition of it. He pictured
773himself lying sick unto death and his aunt bending over him beseeching
774one little forgiving word, but he would turn his face to the wall, and
775die with that word unsaid. Ah, how would she feel then? And he pictured
776himself brought home from the river, dead, with his curls all wet, and
777his sore heart at rest. How she would throw herself upon him, and how
778her tears would fall like rain, and her lips pray God to give her back
779her boy and she would never, never abuse him any more! But he would lie
780there cold and white and make no sign--a poor little sufferer, whose
781griefs were at an end. He so worked upon his feelings with the pathos
782of these dreams, that he had to keep swallowing, he was so like to
783choke; and his eyes swam in a blur of water, which overflowed when he
784winked, and ran down and trickled from the end of his nose. And such a
785luxury to him was this petting of his sorrows, that he could not bear
786to have any worldly cheeriness or any grating delight intrude upon it;
787it was too sacred for such contact; and so, presently, when his cousin
788Mary danced in, all alive with the joy of seeing home again after an
789age-long visit of one week to the country, he got up and moved in
790clouds and darkness out at one door as she brought song and sunshine in
791at the other.
792
793He wandered far from the accustomed haunts of boys, and sought
794desolate places that were in harmony with his spirit. A log raft in the
795river invited him, and he seated himself on its outer edge and
796contemplated the dreary vastness of the stream, wishing, the while,
797that he could only be drowned, all at once and unconsciously, without
798undergoing the uncomfortable routine devised by nature. Then he thought
799of his flower. He got it out, rumpled and wilted, and it mightily
800increased his dismal felicity. He wondered if she would pity him if she
801knew? Would she cry, and wish that she had a right to put her arms
802around his neck and comfort him? Or would she turn coldly away like all
803the hollow world? This picture brought such an agony of pleasurable
804suffering that he worked it over and over again in his mind and set it
805up in new and varied lights, till he wore it threadbare. At last he
806rose up sighing and departed in the darkness.
807
808About half-past nine or ten o'clock he came along the deserted street
809to where the Adored Unknown lived; he paused a moment; no sound fell
810upon his listening ear; a candle was casting a dull glow upon the
811curtain of a second-story window. Was the sacred presence there? He
812climbed the fence, threaded his stealthy way through the plants, till
813he stood under that window; he looked up at it long, and with emotion;
814then he laid him down on the ground under it, disposing himself upon
815his back, with his hands clasped upon his breast and holding his poor
816wilted flower. And thus he would die--out in the cold world, with no
817shelter over his homeless head, no friendly hand to wipe the
818death-damps from his brow, no loving face to bend pityingly over him
819when the great agony came. And thus SHE would see him when she looked
820out upon the glad morning, and oh! would she drop one little tear upon
821his poor, lifeless form, would she heave one little sigh to see a bright
822young life so rudely blighted, so untimely cut down?
823
824The window went up, a maid-servant's discordant voice profaned the
825holy calm, and a deluge of water drenched the prone martyr's remains!
826
827The strangling hero sprang up with a relieving snort. There was a whiz
828as of a missile in the air, mingled with the murmur of a curse, a sound
829as of shivering glass followed, and a small, vague form went over the
830fence and shot away in the gloom.
831
832Not long after, as Tom, all undressed for bed, was surveying his
833drenched garments by the light of a tallow dip, Sid woke up; but if he
834had any dim idea of making any "references to allusions," he thought
835better of it and held his peace, for there was danger in Tom's eye.
836
837Tom turned in without the added vexation of prayers, and Sid made
838mental note of the omission.
839
840
841
842CHAPTER IV
843
844THE sun rose upon a tranquil world, and beamed down upon the peaceful
845village like a benediction. Breakfast over, Aunt Polly had family
846worship: it began with a prayer built from the ground up of solid
847courses of Scriptural quotations, welded together with a thin mortar of
848originality; and from the summit of this she delivered a grim chapter
849of the Mosaic Law, as from Sinai.
850
851Then Tom girded up his loins, so to speak, and went to work to "get
852his verses." Sid had learned his lesson days before. Tom bent all his
853energies to the memorizing of five verses, and he chose part of the
854Sermon on the Mount, because he could find no verses that were shorter.
855At the end of half an hour Tom had a vague general idea of his lesson,
856but no more, for his mind was traversing the whole field of human
857thought, and his hands were busy with distracting recreations. Mary
858took his book to hear him recite, and he tried to find his way through
859the fog:
860
861"Blessed are the--a--a--"
862
863"Poor"--
864
865"Yes--poor; blessed are the poor--a--a--"
866
867"In spirit--"
868
869"In spirit; blessed are the poor in spirit, for they--they--"
870
871"THEIRS--"
872
873"For THEIRS. Blessed are the poor in spirit, for theirs is the kingdom
874of heaven. Blessed are they that mourn, for they--they--"
875
876"Sh--"
877
878"For they--a--"
879
880"S, H, A--"
881
882"For they S, H--Oh, I don't know what it is!"
883
884"SHALL!"
885
886"Oh, SHALL! for they shall--for they shall--a--a--shall mourn--a--a--
887blessed are they that shall--they that--a--they that shall mourn, for
888they shall--a--shall WHAT? Why don't you tell me, Mary?--what do you
889want to be so mean for?"
890
891"Oh, Tom, you poor thick-headed thing, I'm not teasing you. I wouldn't
892do that. You must go and learn it again. Don't you be discouraged, Tom,
893you'll manage it--and if you do, I'll give you something ever so nice.
894There, now, that's a good boy."
895
896"All right! What is it, Mary, tell me what it is."
897
898"Never you mind, Tom. You know if I say it's nice, it is nice."
899
900"You bet you that's so, Mary. All right, I'll tackle it again."
901
902And he did "tackle it again"--and under the double pressure of
903curiosity and prospective gain he did it with such spirit that he
904accomplished a shining success. Mary gave him a brand-new "Barlow"
905knife worth twelve and a half cents; and the convulsion of delight that
906swept his system shook him to his foundations. True, the knife would
907not cut anything, but it was a "sure-enough" Barlow, and there was
908inconceivable grandeur in that--though where the Western boys ever got
909the idea that such a weapon could possibly be counterfeited to its
910injury is an imposing mystery and will always remain so, perhaps. Tom
911contrived to scarify the cupboard with it, and was arranging to begin
912on the bureau, when he was called off to dress for Sunday-school.
913
914Mary gave him a tin basin of water and a piece of soap, and he went
915outside the door and set the basin on a little bench there; then he
916dipped the soap in the water and laid it down; turned up his sleeves;
917poured out the water on the ground, gently, and then entered the
918kitchen and began to wipe his face diligently on the towel behind the
919door. But Mary removed the towel and said:
920
921"Now ain't you ashamed, Tom. You mustn't be so bad. Water won't hurt
922you."
923
924Tom was a trifle disconcerted. The basin was refilled, and this time
925he stood over it a little while, gathering resolution; took in a big
926breath and began. When he entered the kitchen presently, with both eyes
927shut and groping for the towel with his hands, an honorable testimony
928of suds and water was dripping from his face. But when he emerged from
929the towel, he was not yet satisfactory, for the clean territory stopped
930short at his chin and his jaws, like a mask; below and beyond this line
931there was a dark expanse of unirrigated soil that spread downward in
932front and backward around his neck. Mary took him in hand, and when she
933was done with him he was a man and a brother, without distinction of
934color, and his saturated hair was neatly brushed, and its short curls
935wrought into a dainty and symmetrical general effect. [He privately
936smoothed out the curls, with labor and difficulty, and plastered his
937hair close down to his head; for he held curls to be effeminate, and
938his own filled his life with bitterness.] Then Mary got out a suit of
939his clothing that had been used only on Sundays during two years--they
940were simply called his "other clothes"--and so by that we know the
941size of his wardrobe. The girl "put him to rights" after he had dressed
942himself; she buttoned his neat roundabout up to his chin, turned his
943vast shirt collar down over his shoulders, brushed him off and crowned
944him with his speckled straw hat. He now looked exceedingly improved and
945uncomfortable. He was fully as uncomfortable as he looked; for there
946was a restraint about whole clothes and cleanliness that galled him. He
947hoped that Mary would forget his shoes, but the hope was blighted; she
948coated them thoroughly with tallow, as was the custom, and brought them
949out. He lost his temper and said he was always being made to do
950everything he didn't want to do. But Mary said, persuasively:
951
952"Please, Tom--that's a good boy."
953
954So he got into the shoes snarling. Mary was soon ready, and the three
955children set out for Sunday-school--a place that Tom hated with his
956whole heart; but Sid and Mary were fond of it.
957
958Sabbath-school hours were from nine to half-past ten; and then church
959service. Two of the children always remained for the sermon
960voluntarily, and the other always remained too--for stronger reasons.
961The church's high-backed, uncushioned pews would seat about three
962hundred persons; the edifice was but a small, plain affair, with a sort
963of pine board tree-box on top of it for a steeple. At the door Tom
964dropped back a step and accosted a Sunday-dressed comrade:
965
966"Say, Billy, got a yaller ticket?"
967
968"Yes."
969
970"What'll you take for her?"
971
972"What'll you give?"
973
974"Piece of lickrish and a fish-hook."
975
976"Less see 'em."
977
978Tom exhibited. They were satisfactory, and the property changed hands.
979Then Tom traded a couple of white alleys for three red tickets, and
980some small trifle or other for a couple of blue ones. He waylaid other
981boys as they came, and went on buying tickets of various colors ten or
982fifteen minutes longer. He entered the church, now, with a swarm of
983clean and noisy boys and girls, proceeded to his seat and started a
984quarrel with the first boy that came handy. The teacher, a grave,
985elderly man, interfered; then turned his back a moment and Tom pulled a
986boy's hair in the next bench, and was absorbed in his book when the boy
987turned around; stuck a pin in another boy, presently, in order to hear
988him say "Ouch!" and got a new reprimand from his teacher. Tom's whole
989class were of a pattern--restless, noisy, and troublesome. When they
990came to recite their lessons, not one of them knew his verses
991perfectly, but had to be prompted all along. However, they worried
992through, and each got his reward--in small blue tickets, each with a
993passage of Scripture on it; each blue ticket was pay for two verses of
994the recitation. Ten blue tickets equalled a red one, and could be
995exchanged for it; ten red tickets equalled a yellow one; for ten yellow
996tickets the superintendent gave a very plainly bound Bible (worth forty
997cents in those easy times) to the pupil. How many of my readers would
998have the industry and application to memorize two thousand verses, even
999for a Dore Bible? And yet Mary had acquired two Bibles in this way--it
1000was the patient work of two years--and a boy of German parentage had
1001won four or five. He once recited three thousand verses without
1002stopping; but the strain upon his mental faculties was too great, and
1003he was little better than an idiot from that day forth--a grievous
1004misfortune for the school, for on great occasions, before company, the
1005superintendent (as Tom expressed it) had always made this boy come out
1006and "spread himself." Only the older pupils managed to keep their
1007tickets and stick to their tedious work long enough to get a Bible, and
1008so the delivery of one of these prizes was a rare and noteworthy
1009circumstance; the successful pupil was so great and conspicuous for
1010that day that on the spot every scholar's heart was fired with a fresh
1011ambition that often lasted a couple of weeks. It is possible that Tom's
1012mental stomach had never really hungered for one of those prizes, but
1013unquestionably his entire being had for many a day longed for the glory
1014and the eclat that came with it.
1015
1016In due course the superintendent stood up in front of the pulpit, with
1017a closed hymn-book in his hand and his forefinger inserted between its
1018leaves, and commanded attention. When a Sunday-school superintendent
1019makes his customary little speech, a hymn-book in the hand is as
1020necessary as is the inevitable sheet of music in the hand of a singer
1021who stands forward on the platform and sings a solo at a concert
1022--though why, is a mystery: for neither the hymn-book nor the sheet of
1023music is ever referred to by the sufferer. This superintendent was a
1024slim creature of thirty-five, with a sandy goatee and short sandy hair;
1025he wore a stiff standing-collar whose upper edge almost reached his
1026ears and whose sharp points curved forward abreast the corners of his
1027mouth--a fence that compelled a straight lookout ahead, and a turning
1028of the whole body when a side view was required; his chin was propped
1029on a spreading cravat which was as broad and as long as a bank-note,
1030and had fringed ends; his boot toes were turned sharply up, in the
1031fashion of the day, like sleigh-runners--an effect patiently and
1032laboriously produced by the young men by sitting with their toes
1033pressed against a wall for hours together. Mr. Walters was very earnest
1034of mien, and very sincere and honest at heart; and he held sacred
1035things and places in such reverence, and so separated them from worldly
1036matters, that unconsciously to himself his Sunday-school voice had
1037acquired a peculiar intonation which was wholly absent on week-days. He
1038began after this fashion:
1039
1040"Now, children, I want you all to sit up just as straight and pretty
1041as you can and give me all your attention for a minute or two. There
1042--that is it. That is the way good little boys and girls should do. I see
1043one little girl who is looking out of the window--I am afraid she
1044thinks I am out there somewhere--perhaps up in one of the trees making
1045a speech to the little birds. [Applausive titter.] I want to tell you
1046how good it makes me feel to see so many bright, clean little faces
1047assembled in a place like this, learning to do right and be good." And
1048so forth and so on. It is not necessary to set down the rest of the
1049oration. It was of a pattern which does not vary, and so it is familiar
1050to us all.
1051
1052The latter third of the speech was marred by the resumption of fights
1053and other recreations among certain of the bad boys, and by fidgetings
1054and whisperings that extended far and wide, washing even to the bases
1055of isolated and incorruptible rocks like Sid and Mary. But now every
1056sound ceased suddenly, with the subsidence of Mr. Walters' voice, and
1057the conclusion of the speech was received with a burst of silent
1058gratitude.
1059
1060A good part of the whispering had been occasioned by an event which
1061was more or less rare--the entrance of visitors: lawyer Thatcher,
1062accompanied by a very feeble and aged man; a fine, portly, middle-aged
1063gentleman with iron-gray hair; and a dignified lady who was doubtless
1064the latter's wife. The lady was leading a child. Tom had been restless
1065and full of chafings and repinings; conscience-smitten, too--he could
1066not meet Amy Lawrence's eye, he could not brook her loving gaze. But
1067when he saw this small new-comer his soul was all ablaze with bliss in
1068a moment. The next moment he was "showing off" with all his might
1069--cuffing boys, pulling hair, making faces--in a word, using every art
1070that seemed likely to fascinate a girl and win her applause. His
1071exaltation had but one alloy--the memory of his humiliation in this
1072angel's garden--and that record in sand was fast washing out, under
1073the waves of happiness that were sweeping over it now.
1074
1075The visitors were given the highest seat of honor, and as soon as Mr.
1076Walters' speech was finished, he introduced them to the school. The
1077middle-aged man turned out to be a prodigious personage--no less a one
1078than the county judge--altogether the most august creation these
1079children had ever looked upon--and they wondered what kind of material
1080he was made of--and they half wanted to hear him roar, and were half
1081afraid he might, too. He was from Constantinople, twelve miles away--so
1082he had travelled, and seen the world--these very eyes had looked upon
1083the county court-house--which was said to have a tin roof. The awe
1084which these reflections inspired was attested by the impressive silence
1085and the ranks of staring eyes. This was the great Judge Thatcher,
1086brother of their own lawyer. Jeff Thatcher immediately went forward, to
1087be familiar with the great man and be envied by the school. It would
1088have been music to his soul to hear the whisperings:
1089
1090"Look at him, Jim! He's a going up there. Say--look! he's a going to
1091shake hands with him--he IS shaking hands with him! By jings, don't you
1092wish you was Jeff?"
1093
1094Mr. Walters fell to "showing off," with all sorts of official
1095bustlings and activities, giving orders, delivering judgments,
1096discharging directions here, there, everywhere that he could find a
1097target. The librarian "showed off"--running hither and thither with his
1098arms full of books and making a deal of the splutter and fuss that
1099insect authority delights in. The young lady teachers "showed off"
1100--bending sweetly over pupils that were lately being boxed, lifting
1101pretty warning fingers at bad little boys and patting good ones
1102lovingly. The young gentlemen teachers "showed off" with small
1103scoldings and other little displays of authority and fine attention to
1104discipline--and most of the teachers, of both sexes, found business up
1105at the library, by the pulpit; and it was business that frequently had
1106to be done over again two or three times (with much seeming vexation).
1107The little girls "showed off" in various ways, and the little boys
1108"showed off" with such diligence that the air was thick with paper wads
1109and the murmur of scufflings. And above it all the great man sat and
1110beamed a majestic judicial smile upon all the house, and warmed himself
1111in the sun of his own grandeur--for he was "showing off," too.
1112
1113There was only one thing wanting to make Mr. Walters' ecstasy
1114complete, and that was a chance to deliver a Bible-prize and exhibit a
1115prodigy. Several pupils had a few yellow tickets, but none had enough
1116--he had been around among the star pupils inquiring. He would have given
1117worlds, now, to have that German lad back again with a sound mind.
1118
1119And now at this moment, when hope was dead, Tom Sawyer came forward
1120with nine yellow tickets, nine red tickets, and ten blue ones, and
1121demanded a Bible. This was a thunderbolt out of a clear sky. Walters
1122was not expecting an application from this source for the next ten
1123years. But there was no getting around it--here were the certified
1124checks, and they were good for their face. Tom was therefore elevated
1125to a place with the Judge and the other elect, and the great news was
1126announced from headquarters. It was the most stunning surprise of the
1127decade, and so profound was the sensation that it lifted the new hero
1128up to the judicial one's altitude, and the school had two marvels to
1129gaze upon in place of one. The boys were all eaten up with envy--but
1130those that suffered the bitterest pangs were those who perceived too
1131late that they themselves had contributed to this hated splendor by
1132trading tickets to Tom for the wealth he had amassed in selling
1133whitewashing privileges. These despised themselves, as being the dupes
1134of a wily fraud, a guileful snake in the grass.
1135
1136The prize was delivered to Tom with as much effusion as the
1137superintendent could pump up under the circumstances; but it lacked
1138somewhat of the true gush, for the poor fellow's instinct taught him
1139that there was a mystery here that could not well bear the light,
1140perhaps; it was simply preposterous that this boy had warehoused two
1141thousand sheaves of Scriptural wisdom on his premises--a dozen would
1142strain his capacity, without a doubt.
1143
1144Amy Lawrence was proud and glad, and she tried to make Tom see it in
1145her face--but he wouldn't look. She wondered; then she was just a grain
1146troubled; next a dim suspicion came and went--came again; she watched;
1147a furtive glance told her worlds--and then her heart broke, and she was
1148jealous, and angry, and the tears came and she hated everybody. Tom
1149most of all (she thought).
1150
1151Tom was introduced to the Judge; but his tongue was tied, his breath
1152would hardly come, his heart quaked--partly because of the awful
1153greatness of the man, but mainly because he was her parent. He would
1154have liked to fall down and worship him, if it were in the dark. The
1155Judge put his hand on Tom's head and called him a fine little man, and
1156asked him what his name was. The boy stammered, gasped, and got it out:
1157
1158"Tom."
1159
1160"Oh, no, not Tom--it is--"
1161
1162"Thomas."
1163
1164"Ah, that's it. I thought there was more to it, maybe. That's very
1165well. But you've another one I daresay, and you'll tell it to me, won't
1166you?"
1167
1168"Tell the gentleman your other name, Thomas," said Walters, "and say
1169sir. You mustn't forget your manners."
1170
1171"Thomas Sawyer--sir."
1172
1173"That's it! That's a good boy. Fine boy. Fine, manly little fellow.
1174Two thousand verses is a great many--very, very great many. And you
1175never can be sorry for the trouble you took to learn them; for
1176knowledge is worth more than anything there is in the world; it's what
1177makes great men and good men; you'll be a great man and a good man
1178yourself, some day, Thomas, and then you'll look back and say, It's all
1179owing to the precious Sunday-school privileges of my boyhood--it's all
1180owing to my dear teachers that taught me to learn--it's all owing to
1181the good superintendent, who encouraged me, and watched over me, and
1182gave me a beautiful Bible--a splendid elegant Bible--to keep and have
1183it all for my own, always--it's all owing to right bringing up! That is
1184what you will say, Thomas--and you wouldn't take any money for those
1185two thousand verses--no indeed you wouldn't. And now you wouldn't mind
1186telling me and this lady some of the things you've learned--no, I know
1187you wouldn't--for we are proud of little boys that learn. Now, no
1188doubt you know the names of all the twelve disciples. Won't you tell us
1189the names of the first two that were appointed?"
1190
1191Tom was tugging at a button-hole and looking sheepish. He blushed,
1192now, and his eyes fell. Mr. Walters' heart sank within him. He said to
1193himself, it is not possible that the boy can answer the simplest
1194question--why DID the Judge ask him? Yet he felt obliged to speak up
1195and say:
1196
1197"Answer the gentleman, Thomas--don't be afraid."
1198
1199Tom still hung fire.
1200
1201"Now I know you'll tell me," said the lady. "The names of the first
1202two disciples were--"
1203
1204"DAVID AND GOLIAH!"
1205
1206Let us draw the curtain of charity over the rest of the scene.
1207
1208
1209
1210CHAPTER V
1211
1212ABOUT half-past ten the cracked bell of the small church began to
1213ring, and presently the people began to gather for the morning sermon.
1214The Sunday-school children distributed themselves about the house and
1215occupied pews with their parents, so as to be under supervision. Aunt
1216Polly came, and Tom and Sid and Mary sat with her--Tom being placed
1217next the aisle, in order that he might be as far away from the open
1218window and the seductive outside summer scenes as possible. The crowd
1219filed up the aisles: the aged and needy postmaster, who had seen better
1220days; the mayor and his wife--for they had a mayor there, among other
1221unnecessaries; the justice of the peace; the widow Douglass, fair,
1222smart, and forty, a generous, good-hearted soul and well-to-do, her
1223hill mansion the only palace in the town, and the most hospitable and
1224much the most lavish in the matter of festivities that St. Petersburg
1225could boast; the bent and venerable Major and Mrs. Ward; lawyer
1226Riverson, the new notable from a distance; next the belle of the
1227village, followed by a troop of lawn-clad and ribbon-decked young
1228heart-breakers; then all the young clerks in town in a body--for they
1229had stood in the vestibule sucking their cane-heads, a circling wall of
1230oiled and simpering admirers, till the last girl had run their gantlet;
1231and last of all came the Model Boy, Willie Mufferson, taking as heedful
1232care of his mother as if she were cut glass. He always brought his
1233mother to church, and was the pride of all the matrons. The boys all
1234hated him, he was so good. And besides, he had been "thrown up to them"
1235so much. His white handkerchief was hanging out of his pocket behind, as
1236usual on Sundays--accidentally. Tom had no handkerchief, and he looked
1237upon boys who had as snobs.
1238
1239The congregation being fully assembled, now, the bell rang once more,
1240to warn laggards and stragglers, and then a solemn hush fell upon the
1241church which was only broken by the tittering and whispering of the
1242choir in the gallery. The choir always tittered and whispered all
1243through service. There was once a church choir that was not ill-bred,
1244but I have forgotten where it was, now. It was a great many years ago,
1245and I can scarcely remember anything about it, but I think it was in
1246some foreign country.
1247
1248The minister gave out the hymn, and read it through with a relish, in
1249a peculiar style which was much admired in that part of the country.
1250His voice began on a medium key and climbed steadily up till it reached
1251a certain point, where it bore with strong emphasis upon the topmost
1252word and then plunged down as if from a spring-board:
1253
1254  Shall I be car-ri-ed toe the skies, on flow'ry BEDS of ease,
1255
1256  Whilst others fight to win the prize, and sail thro' BLOODY seas?
1257
1258He was regarded as a wonderful reader. At church "sociables" he was
1259always called upon to read poetry; and when he was through, the ladies
1260would lift up their hands and let them fall helplessly in their laps,
1261and "wall" their eyes, and shake their heads, as much as to say, "Words
1262cannot express it; it is too beautiful, TOO beautiful for this mortal
1263earth."
1264
1265After the hymn had been sung, the Rev. Mr. Sprague turned himself into
1266a bulletin-board, and read off "notices" of meetings and societies and
1267things till it seemed that the list would stretch out to the crack of
1268doom--a queer custom which is still kept up in America, even in cities,
1269away here in this age of abundant newspapers. Often, the less there is
1270to justify a traditional custom, the harder it is to get rid of it.
1271
1272And now the minister prayed. A good, generous prayer it was, and went
1273into details: it pleaded for the church, and the little children of the
1274church; for the other churches of the village; for the village itself;
1275for the county; for the State; for the State officers; for the United
1276States; for the churches of the United States; for Congress; for the
1277President; for the officers of the Government; for poor sailors, tossed
1278by stormy seas; for the oppressed millions groaning under the heel of
1279European monarchies and Oriental despotisms; for such as have the light
1280and the good tidings, and yet have not eyes to see nor ears to hear
1281withal; for the heathen in the far islands of the sea; and closed with
1282a supplication that the words he was about to speak might find grace
1283and favor, and be as seed sown in fertile ground, yielding in time a
1284grateful harvest of good. Amen.
1285
1286There was a rustling of dresses, and the standing congregation sat
1287down. The boy whose history this book relates did not enjoy the prayer,
1288he only endured it--if he even did that much. He was restive all
1289through it; he kept tally of the details of the prayer, unconsciously
1290--for he was not listening, but he knew the ground of old, and the
1291clergyman's regular route over it--and when a little trifle of new
1292matter was interlarded, his ear detected it and his whole nature
1293resented it; he considered additions unfair, and scoundrelly. In the
1294midst of the prayer a fly had lit on the back of the pew in front of
1295him and tortured his spirit by calmly rubbing its hands together,
1296embracing its head with its arms, and polishing it so vigorously that
1297it seemed to almost part company with the body, and the slender thread
1298of a neck was exposed to view; scraping its wings with its hind legs
1299and smoothing them to its body as if they had been coat-tails; going
1300through its whole toilet as tranquilly as if it knew it was perfectly
1301safe. As indeed it was; for as sorely as Tom's hands itched to grab for
1302it they did not dare--he believed his soul would be instantly destroyed
1303if he did such a thing while the prayer was going on. But with the
1304closing sentence his hand began to curve and steal forward; and the
1305instant the "Amen" was out the fly was a prisoner of war. His aunt
1306detected the act and made him let it go.
1307
1308The minister gave out his text and droned along monotonously through
1309an argument that was so prosy that many a head by and by began to nod
1310--and yet it was an argument that dealt in limitless fire and brimstone
1311and thinned the predestined elect down to a company so small as to be
1312hardly worth the saving. Tom counted the pages of the sermon; after
1313church he always knew how many pages there had been, but he seldom knew
1314anything else about the discourse. However, this time he was really
1315interested for a little while. The minister made a grand and moving
1316picture of the assembling together of the world's hosts at the
1317millennium when the lion and the lamb should lie down together and a
1318little child should lead them. But the pathos, the lesson, the moral of
1319the great spectacle were lost upon the boy; he only thought of the
1320conspicuousness of the principal character before the on-looking
1321nations; his face lit with the thought, and he said to himself that he
1322wished he could be that child, if it was a tame lion.
1323
1324Now he lapsed into suffering again, as the dry argument was resumed.
1325Presently he bethought him of a treasure he had and got it out. It was
1326a large black beetle with formidable jaws--a "pinchbug," he called it.
1327It was in a percussion-cap box. The first thing the beetle did was to
1328take him by the finger. A natural fillip followed, the beetle went
1329floundering into the aisle and lit on its back, and the hurt finger
1330went into the boy's mouth. The beetle lay there working its helpless
1331legs, unable to turn over. Tom eyed it, and longed for it; but it was
1332safe out of his reach. Other people uninterested in the sermon found
1333relief in the beetle, and they eyed it too. Presently a vagrant poodle
1334dog came idling along, sad at heart, lazy with the summer softness and
1335the quiet, weary of captivity, sighing for change. He spied the beetle;
1336the drooping tail lifted and wagged. He surveyed the prize; walked
1337around it; smelt at it from a safe distance; walked around it again;
1338grew bolder, and took a closer smell; then lifted his lip and made a
1339gingerly snatch at it, just missing it; made another, and another;
1340began to enjoy the diversion; subsided to his stomach with the beetle
1341between his paws, and continued his experiments; grew weary at last,
1342and then indifferent and absent-minded. His head nodded, and little by
1343little his chin descended and touched the enemy, who seized it. There
1344was a sharp yelp, a flirt of the poodle's head, and the beetle fell a
1345couple of yards away, and lit on its back once more. The neighboring
1346spectators shook with a gentle inward joy, several faces went behind
1347fans and handkerchiefs, and Tom was entirely happy. The dog looked
1348foolish, and probably felt so; but there was resentment in his heart,
1349too, and a craving for revenge. So he went to the beetle and began a
1350wary attack on it again; jumping at it from every point of a circle,
1351lighting with his fore-paws within an inch of the creature, making even
1352closer snatches at it with his teeth, and jerking his head till his
1353ears flapped again. But he grew tired once more, after a while; tried
1354to amuse himself with a fly but found no relief; followed an ant
1355around, with his nose close to the floor, and quickly wearied of that;
1356yawned, sighed, forgot the beetle entirely, and sat down on it. Then
1357there was a wild yelp of agony and the poodle went sailing up the
1358aisle; the yelps continued, and so did the dog; he crossed the house in
1359front of the altar; he flew down the other aisle; he crossed before the
1360doors; he clamored up the home-stretch; his anguish grew with his
1361progress, till presently he was but a woolly comet moving in its orbit
1362with the gleam and the speed of light. At last the frantic sufferer
1363sheered from its course, and sprang into its master's lap; he flung it
1364out of the window, and the voice of distress quickly thinned away and
1365died in the distance.
1366
1367By this time the whole church was red-faced and suffocating with
1368suppressed laughter, and the sermon had come to a dead standstill. The
1369discourse was resumed presently, but it went lame and halting, all
1370possibility of impressiveness being at an end; for even the gravest
1371sentiments were constantly being received with a smothered burst of
1372unholy mirth, under cover of some remote pew-back, as if the poor
1373parson had said a rarely facetious thing. It was a genuine relief to
1374the whole congregation when the ordeal was over and the benediction
1375pronounced.
1376
1377Tom Sawyer went home quite cheerful, thinking to himself that there
1378was some satisfaction about divine service when there was a bit of
1379variety in it. He had but one marring thought; he was willing that the
1380dog should play with his pinchbug, but he did not think it was upright
1381in him to carry it off.
1382
1383
1384
1385CHAPTER VI
1386
1387MONDAY morning found Tom Sawyer miserable. Monday morning always found
1388him so--because it began another week's slow suffering in school. He
1389generally began that day with wishing he had had no intervening
1390holiday, it made the going into captivity and fetters again so much
1391more odious.
1392
1393Tom lay thinking. Presently it occurred to him that he wished he was
1394sick; then he could stay home from school. Here was a vague
1395possibility. He canvassed his system. No ailment was found, and he
1396investigated again. This time he thought he could detect colicky
1397symptoms, and he began to encourage them with considerable hope. But
1398they soon grew feeble, and presently died wholly away. He reflected
1399further. Suddenly he discovered something. One of his upper front teeth
1400was loose. This was lucky; he was about to begin to groan, as a
1401"starter," as he called it, when it occurred to him that if he came
1402into court with that argument, his aunt would pull it out, and that
1403would hurt. So he thought he would hold the tooth in reserve for the
1404present, and seek further. Nothing offered for some little time, and
1405then he remembered hearing the doctor tell about a certain thing that
1406laid up a patient for two or three weeks and threatened to make him
1407lose a finger. So the boy eagerly drew his sore toe from under the
1408sheet and held it up for inspection. But now he did not know the
1409necessary symptoms. However, it seemed well worth while to chance it,
1410so he fell to groaning with considerable spirit.
1411
1412But Sid slept on unconscious.
1413
1414Tom groaned louder, and fancied that he began to feel pain in the toe.
1415
1416No result from Sid.
1417
1418Tom was panting with his exertions by this time. He took a rest and
1419then swelled himself up and fetched a succession of admirable groans.
1420
1421Sid snored on.
1422
1423Tom was aggravated. He said, "Sid, Sid!" and shook him. This course
1424worked well, and Tom began to groan again. Sid yawned, stretched, then
1425brought himself up on his elbow with a snort, and began to stare at
1426Tom. Tom went on groaning. Sid said:
1427
1428"Tom! Say, Tom!" [No response.] "Here, Tom! TOM! What is the matter,
1429Tom?" And he shook him and looked in his face anxiously.
1430
1431Tom moaned out:
1432
1433"Oh, don't, Sid. Don't joggle me."
1434
1435"Why, what's the matter, Tom? I must call auntie."
1436
1437"No--never mind. It'll be over by and by, maybe. Don't call anybody."
1438
1439"But I must! DON'T groan so, Tom, it's awful. How long you been this
1440way?"
1441
1442"Hours. Ouch! Oh, don't stir so, Sid, you'll kill me."
1443
1444"Tom, why didn't you wake me sooner? Oh, Tom, DON'T! It makes my
1445flesh crawl to hear you. Tom, what is the matter?"
1446
1447"I forgive you everything, Sid. [Groan.] Everything you've ever done
1448to me. When I'm gone--"
1449
1450"Oh, Tom, you ain't dying, are you? Don't, Tom--oh, don't. Maybe--"
1451
1452"I forgive everybody, Sid. [Groan.] Tell 'em so, Sid. And Sid, you
1453give my window-sash and my cat with one eye to that new girl that's
1454come to town, and tell her--"
1455
1456But Sid had snatched his clothes and gone. Tom was suffering in
1457reality, now, so handsomely was his imagination working, and so his
1458groans had gathered quite a genuine tone.
1459
1460Sid flew down-stairs and said:
1461
1462"Oh, Aunt Polly, come! Tom's dying!"
1463
1464"Dying!"
1465
1466"Yes'm. Don't wait--come quick!"
1467
1468"Rubbage! I don't believe it!"
1469
1470But she fled up-stairs, nevertheless, with Sid and Mary at her heels.
1471And her face grew white, too, and her lip trembled. When she reached
1472the bedside she gasped out:
1473
1474"You, Tom! Tom, what's the matter with you?"
1475
1476"Oh, auntie, I'm--"
1477
1478"What's the matter with you--what is the matter with you, child?"
1479
1480"Oh, auntie, my sore toe's mortified!"
1481
1482The old lady sank down into a chair and laughed a little, then cried a
1483little, then did both together. This restored her and she said:
1484
1485"Tom, what a turn you did give me. Now you shut up that nonsense and
1486climb out of this."
1487
1488The groans ceased and the pain vanished from the toe. The boy felt a
1489little foolish, and he said:
1490
1491"Aunt Polly, it SEEMED mortified, and it hurt so I never minded my
1492tooth at all."
1493
1494"Your tooth, indeed! What's the matter with your tooth?"
1495
1496"One of them's loose, and it aches perfectly awful."
1497
1498"There, there, now, don't begin that groaning again. Open your mouth.
1499Well--your tooth IS loose, but you're not going to die about that.
1500Mary, get me a silk thread, and a chunk of fire out of the kitchen."
1501
1502Tom said:
1503
1504"Oh, please, auntie, don't pull it out. It don't hurt any more. I wish
1505I may never stir if it does. Please don't, auntie. I don't want to stay
1506home from school."
1507
1508"Oh, you don't, don't you? So all this row was because you thought
1509you'd get to stay home from school and go a-fishing? Tom, Tom, I love
1510you so, and you seem to try every way you can to break my old heart
1511with your outrageousness." By this time the dental instruments were
1512ready. The old lady made one end of the silk thread fast to Tom's tooth
1513with a loop and tied the other to the bedpost. Then she seized the
1514chunk of fire and suddenly thrust it almost into the boy's face. The
1515tooth hung dangling by the bedpost, now.
1516
1517But all trials bring their compensations. As Tom wended to school
1518after breakfast, he was the envy of every boy he met because the gap in
1519his upper row of teeth enabled him to expectorate in a new and
1520admirable way. He gathered quite a following of lads interested in the
1521exhibition; and one that had cut his finger and had been a centre of
1522fascination and homage up to this time, now found himself suddenly
1523without an adherent, and shorn of his glory. His heart was heavy, and
1524he said with a disdain which he did not feel that it wasn't anything to
1525spit like Tom Sawyer; but another boy said, "Sour grapes!" and he
1526wandered away a dismantled hero.
1527
1528Shortly Tom came upon the juvenile pariah of the village, Huckleberry
1529Finn, son of the town drunkard. Huckleberry was cordially hated and
1530dreaded by all the mothers of the town, because he was idle and lawless
1531and vulgar and bad--and because all their children admired him so, and
1532delighted in his forbidden society, and wished they dared to be like
1533him. Tom was like the rest of the respectable boys, in that he envied
1534Huckleberry his gaudy outcast condition, and was under strict orders
1535not to play with him. So he played with him every time he got a chance.
1536Huckleberry was always dressed in the cast-off clothes of full-grown
1537men, and they were in perennial bloom and fluttering with rags. His hat
1538was a vast ruin with a wide crescent lopped out of its brim; his coat,
1539when he wore one, hung nearly to his heels and had the rearward buttons
1540far down the back; but one suspender supported his trousers; the seat
1541of the trousers bagged low and contained nothing, the fringed legs
1542dragged in the dirt when not rolled up.
1543
1544Huckleberry came and went, at his own free will. He slept on doorsteps
1545in fine weather and in empty hogsheads in wet; he did not have to go to
1546school or to church, or call any being master or obey anybody; he could
1547go fishing or swimming when and where he chose, and stay as long as it
1548suited him; nobody forbade him to fight; he could sit up as late as he
1549pleased; he was always the first boy that went barefoot in the spring
1550and the last to resume leather in the fall; he never had to wash, nor
1551put on clean clothes; he could swear wonderfully. In a word, everything
1552that goes to make life precious that boy had. So thought every
1553harassed, hampered, respectable boy in St. Petersburg.
1554
1555Tom hailed the romantic outcast:
1556
1557"Hello, Huckleberry!"
1558
1559"Hello yourself, and see how you like it."
1560
1561"What's that you got?"
1562
1563"Dead cat."
1564
1565"Lemme see him, Huck. My, he's pretty stiff. Where'd you get him?"
1566
1567"Bought him off'n a boy."
1568
1569"What did you give?"
1570
1571"I give a blue ticket and a bladder that I got at the slaughter-house."
1572
1573"Where'd you get the blue ticket?"
1574
1575"Bought it off'n Ben Rogers two weeks ago for a hoop-stick."
1576
1577"Say--what is dead cats good for, Huck?"
1578
1579"Good for? Cure warts with."
1580
1581"No! Is that so? I know something that's better."
1582
1583"I bet you don't. What is it?"
1584
1585"Why, spunk-water."
1586
1587"Spunk-water! I wouldn't give a dern for spunk-water."
1588
1589"You wouldn't, wouldn't you? D'you ever try it?"
1590
1591"No, I hain't. But Bob Tanner did."
1592
1593"Who told you so!"
1594
1595"Why, he told Jeff Thatcher, and Jeff told Johnny Baker, and Johnny
1596told Jim Hollis, and Jim told Ben Rogers, and Ben told a nigger, and
1597the nigger told me. There now!"
1598
1599"Well, what of it? They'll all lie. Leastways all but the nigger. I
1600don't know HIM. But I never see a nigger that WOULDN'T lie. Shucks! Now
1601you tell me how Bob Tanner done it, Huck."
1602
1603"Why, he took and dipped his hand in a rotten stump where the
1604rain-water was."
1605
1606"In the daytime?"
1607
1608"Certainly."
1609
1610"With his face to the stump?"
1611
1612"Yes. Least I reckon so."
1613
1614"Did he say anything?"
1615
1616"I don't reckon he did. I don't know."
1617
1618"Aha! Talk about trying to cure warts with spunk-water such a blame
1619fool way as that! Why, that ain't a-going to do any good. You got to go
1620all by yourself, to the middle of the woods, where you know there's a
1621spunk-water stump, and just as it's midnight you back up against the
1622stump and jam your hand in and say:
1623
1624  'Barley-corn, barley-corn, injun-meal shorts,
1625   Spunk-water, spunk-water, swaller these warts,'
1626
1627and then walk away quick, eleven steps, with your eyes shut, and then
1628turn around three times and walk home without speaking to anybody.
1629Because if you speak the charm's busted."
1630
1631"Well, that sounds like a good way; but that ain't the way Bob Tanner
1632done."
1633
1634"No, sir, you can bet he didn't, becuz he's the wartiest boy in this
1635town; and he wouldn't have a wart on him if he'd knowed how to work
1636spunk-water. I've took off thousands of warts off of my hands that way,
1637Huck. I play with frogs so much that I've always got considerable many
1638warts. Sometimes I take 'em off with a bean."
1639
1640"Yes, bean's good. I've done that."
1641
1642"Have you? What's your way?"
1643
1644"You take and split the bean, and cut the wart so as to get some
1645blood, and then you put the blood on one piece of the bean and take and
1646dig a hole and bury it 'bout midnight at the crossroads in the dark of
1647the moon, and then you burn up the rest of the bean. You see that piece
1648that's got the blood on it will keep drawing and drawing, trying to
1649fetch the other piece to it, and so that helps the blood to draw the
1650wart, and pretty soon off she comes."
1651
1652"Yes, that's it, Huck--that's it; though when you're burying it if you
1653say 'Down bean; off wart; come no more to bother me!' it's better.
1654That's the way Joe Harper does, and he's been nearly to Coonville and
1655most everywheres. But say--how do you cure 'em with dead cats?"
1656
1657"Why, you take your cat and go and get in the graveyard 'long about
1658midnight when somebody that was wicked has been buried; and when it's
1659midnight a devil will come, or maybe two or three, but you can't see
1660'em, you can only hear something like the wind, or maybe hear 'em talk;
1661and when they're taking that feller away, you heave your cat after 'em
1662and say, 'Devil follow corpse, cat follow devil, warts follow cat, I'm
1663done with ye!' That'll fetch ANY wart."
1664
1665"Sounds right. D'you ever try it, Huck?"
1666
1667"No, but old Mother Hopkins told me."
1668
1669"Well, I reckon it's so, then. Becuz they say she's a witch."
1670
1671"Say! Why, Tom, I KNOW she is. She witched pap. Pap says so his own
1672self. He come along one day, and he see she was a-witching him, so he
1673took up a rock, and if she hadn't dodged, he'd a got her. Well, that
1674very night he rolled off'n a shed wher' he was a layin drunk, and broke
1675his arm."
1676
1677"Why, that's awful. How did he know she was a-witching him?"
1678
1679"Lord, pap can tell, easy. Pap says when they keep looking at you
1680right stiddy, they're a-witching you. Specially if they mumble. Becuz
1681when they mumble they're saying the Lord's Prayer backards."
1682
1683"Say, Hucky, when you going to try the cat?"
1684
1685"To-night. I reckon they'll come after old Hoss Williams to-night."
1686
1687"But they buried him Saturday. Didn't they get him Saturday night?"
1688
1689"Why, how you talk! How could their charms work till midnight?--and
1690THEN it's Sunday. Devils don't slosh around much of a Sunday, I don't
1691reckon."
1692
1693"I never thought of that. That's so. Lemme go with you?"
1694
1695"Of course--if you ain't afeard."
1696
1697"Afeard! 'Tain't likely. Will you meow?"
1698
1699"Yes--and you meow back, if you get a chance. Last time, you kep' me
1700a-meowing around till old Hays went to throwing rocks at me and says
1701'Dern that cat!' and so I hove a brick through his window--but don't
1702you tell."
1703
1704"I won't. I couldn't meow that night, becuz auntie was watching me,
1705but I'll meow this time. Say--what's that?"
1706
1707"Nothing but a tick."
1708
1709"Where'd you get him?"
1710
1711"Out in the woods."
1712
1713"What'll you take for him?"
1714
1715"I don't know. I don't want to sell him."
1716
1717"All right. It's a mighty small tick, anyway."
1718
1719"Oh, anybody can run a tick down that don't belong to them. I'm
1720satisfied with it. It's a good enough tick for me."
1721
1722"Sho, there's ticks a plenty. I could have a thousand of 'em if I
1723wanted to."
1724
1725"Well, why don't you? Becuz you know mighty well you can't. This is a
1726pretty early tick, I reckon. It's the first one I've seen this year."
1727
1728"Say, Huck--I'll give you my tooth for him."
1729
1730"Less see it."
1731
1732Tom got out a bit of paper and carefully unrolled it. Huckleberry
1733viewed it wistfully. The temptation was very strong. At last he said:
1734
1735"Is it genuwyne?"
1736
1737Tom lifted his lip and showed the vacancy.
1738
1739"Well, all right," said Huckleberry, "it's a trade."
1740
1741Tom enclosed the tick in the percussion-cap box that had lately been
1742the pinchbug's prison, and the boys separated, each feeling wealthier
1743than before.
1744
1745When Tom reached the little isolated frame schoolhouse, he strode in
1746briskly, with the manner of one who had come with all honest speed.
1747He hung his hat on a peg and flung himself into his seat with
1748business-like alacrity. The master, throned on high in his great
1749splint-bottom arm-chair, was dozing, lulled by the drowsy hum of study.
1750The interruption roused him.
1751
1752"Thomas Sawyer!"
1753
1754Tom knew that when his name was pronounced in full, it meant trouble.
1755
1756"Sir!"
1757
1758"Come up here. Now, sir, why are you late again, as usual?"
1759
1760Tom was about to take refuge in a lie, when he saw two long tails of
1761yellow hair hanging down a back that he recognized by the electric
1762sympathy of love; and by that form was THE ONLY VACANT PLACE on the
1763girls' side of the schoolhouse. He instantly said:
1764
1765"I STOPPED TO TALK WITH HUCKLEBERRY FINN!"
1766
1767The master's pulse stood still, and he stared helplessly. The buzz of
1768study ceased. The pupils wondered if this foolhardy boy had lost his
1769mind. The master said:
1770
1771"You--you did what?"
1772
1773"Stopped to talk with Huckleberry Finn."
1774
1775There was no mistaking the words.
1776
1777"Thomas Sawyer, this is the most astounding confession I have ever
1778listened to. No mere ferule will answer for this offence. Take off your
1779jacket."
1780
1781The master's arm performed until it was tired and the stock of
1782switches notably diminished. Then the order followed:
1783
1784"Now, sir, go and sit with the girls! And let this be a warning to you."
1785
1786The titter that rippled around the room appeared to abash the boy, but
1787in reality that result was caused rather more by his worshipful awe of
1788his unknown idol and the dread pleasure that lay in his high good
1789fortune. He sat down upon the end of the pine bench and the girl
1790hitched herself away from him with a toss of her head. Nudges and winks
1791and whispers traversed the room, but Tom sat still, with his arms upon
1792the long, low desk before him, and seemed to study his book.
1793
1794By and by attention ceased from him, and the accustomed school murmur
1795rose upon the dull air once more. Presently the boy began to steal
1796furtive glances at the girl. She observed it, "made a mouth" at him and
1797gave him the back of her head for the space of a minute. When she
1798cautiously faced around again, a peach lay before her. She thrust it
1799away. Tom gently put it back. She thrust it away again, but with less
1800animosity. Tom patiently returned it to its place. Then she let it
1801remain. Tom scrawled on his slate, "Please take it--I got more." The
1802girl glanced at the words, but made no sign. Now the boy began to draw
1803something on the slate, hiding his work with his left hand. For a time
1804the girl refused to notice; but her human curiosity presently began to
1805manifest itself by hardly perceptible signs. The boy worked on,
1806apparently unconscious. The girl made a sort of noncommittal attempt to
1807see, but the boy did not betray that he was aware of it. At last she
1808gave in and hesitatingly whispered:
1809
1810"Let me see it."
1811
1812Tom partly uncovered a dismal caricature of a house with two gable
1813ends to it and a corkscrew of smoke issuing from the chimney. Then the
1814girl's interest began to fasten itself upon the work and she forgot
1815everything else. When it was finished, she gazed a moment, then
1816whispered:
1817
1818"It's nice--make a man."
1819
1820The artist erected a man in the front yard, that resembled a derrick.
1821He could have stepped over the house; but the girl was not
1822hypercritical; she was satisfied with the monster, and whispered:
1823
1824"It's a beautiful man--now make me coming along."
1825
1826Tom drew an hour-glass with a full moon and straw limbs to it and
1827armed the spreading fingers with a portentous fan. The girl said:
1828
1829"It's ever so nice--I wish I could draw."
1830
1831"It's easy," whispered Tom, "I'll learn you."
1832
1833"Oh, will you? When?"
1834
1835"At noon. Do you go home to dinner?"
1836
1837"I'll stay if you will."
1838
1839"Good--that's a whack. What's your name?"
1840
1841"Becky Thatcher. What's yours? Oh, I know. It's Thomas Sawyer."
1842
1843"That's the name they lick me by. I'm Tom when I'm good. You call me
1844Tom, will you?"
1845
1846"Yes."
1847
1848Now Tom began to scrawl something on the slate, hiding the words from
1849the girl. But she was not backward this time. She begged to see. Tom
1850said:
1851
1852"Oh, it ain't anything."
1853
1854"Yes it is."
1855
1856"No it ain't. You don't want to see."
1857
1858"Yes I do, indeed I do. Please let me."
1859
1860"You'll tell."
1861
1862"No I won't--deed and deed and double deed won't."
1863
1864"You won't tell anybody at all? Ever, as long as you live?"
1865
1866"No, I won't ever tell ANYbody. Now let me."
1867
1868"Oh, YOU don't want to see!"
1869
1870"Now that you treat me so, I WILL see." And she put her small hand
1871upon his and a little scuffle ensued, Tom pretending to resist in
1872earnest but letting his hand slip by degrees till these words were
1873revealed: "I LOVE YOU."
1874
1875"Oh, you bad thing!" And she hit his hand a smart rap, but reddened
1876and looked pleased, nevertheless.
1877
1878Just at this juncture the boy felt a slow, fateful grip closing on his
1879ear, and a steady lifting impulse. In that wise he was borne across the
1880house and deposited in his own seat, under a peppering fire of giggles
1881from the whole school. Then the master stood over him during a few
1882awful moments, and finally moved away to his throne without saying a
1883word. But although Tom's ear tingled, his heart was jubilant.
1884
1885As the school quieted down Tom made an honest effort to study, but the
1886turmoil within him was too great. In turn he took his place in the
1887reading class and made a botch of it; then in the geography class and
1888turned lakes into mountains, mountains into rivers, and rivers into
1889continents, till chaos was come again; then in the spelling class, and
1890got "turned down," by a succession of mere baby words, till he brought
1891up at the foot and yielded up the pewter medal which he had worn with
1892ostentation for months.
1893
1894
1895
1896CHAPTER VII
1897
1898THE harder Tom tried to fasten his mind on his book, the more his
1899ideas wandered. So at last, with a sigh and a yawn, he gave it up. It
1900seemed to him that the noon recess would never come. The air was
1901utterly dead. There was not a breath stirring. It was the sleepiest of
1902sleepy days. The drowsing murmur of the five and twenty studying
1903scholars soothed the soul like the spell that is in the murmur of bees.
1904Away off in the flaming sunshine, Cardiff Hill lifted its soft green
1905sides through a shimmering veil of heat, tinted with the purple of
1906distance; a few birds floated on lazy wing high in the air; no other
1907living thing was visible but some cows, and they were asleep. Tom's
1908heart ached to be free, or else to have something of interest to do to
1909pass the dreary time. His hand wandered into his pocket and his face
1910lit up with a glow of gratitude that was prayer, though he did not know
1911it. Then furtively the percussion-cap box came out. He released the
1912tick and put him on the long flat desk. The creature probably glowed
1913with a gratitude that amounted to prayer, too, at this moment, but it
1914was premature: for when he started thankfully to travel off, Tom turned
1915him aside with a pin and made him take a new direction.
1916
1917Tom's bosom friend sat next him, suffering just as Tom had been, and
1918now he was deeply and gratefully interested in this entertainment in an
1919instant. This bosom friend was Joe Harper. The two boys were sworn
1920friends all the week, and embattled enemies on Saturdays. Joe took a
1921pin out of his lapel and began to assist in exercising the prisoner.
1922The sport grew in interest momently. Soon Tom said that they were
1923interfering with each other, and neither getting the fullest benefit of
1924the tick. So he put Joe's slate on the desk and drew a line down the
1925middle of it from top to bottom.
1926
1927"Now," said he, "as long as he is on your side you can stir him up and
1928I'll let him alone; but if you let him get away and get on my side,
1929you're to leave him alone as long as I can keep him from crossing over."
1930
1931"All right, go ahead; start him up."
1932
1933The tick escaped from Tom, presently, and crossed the equator. Joe
1934harassed him awhile, and then he got away and crossed back again. This
1935change of base occurred often. While one boy was worrying the tick with
1936absorbing interest, the other would look on with interest as strong,
1937the two heads bowed together over the slate, and the two souls dead to
1938all things else. At last luck seemed to settle and abide with Joe. The
1939tick tried this, that, and the other course, and got as excited and as
1940anxious as the boys themselves, but time and again just as he would
1941have victory in his very grasp, so to speak, and Tom's fingers would be
1942twitching to begin, Joe's pin would deftly head him off, and keep
1943possession. At last Tom could stand it no longer. The temptation was
1944too strong. So he reached out and lent a hand with his pin. Joe was
1945angry in a moment. Said he:
1946
1947"Tom, you let him alone."
1948
1949"I only just want to stir him up a little, Joe."
1950
1951"No, sir, it ain't fair; you just let him alone."
1952
1953"Blame it, I ain't going to stir him much."
1954
1955"Let him alone, I tell you."
1956
1957"I won't!"
1958
1959"You shall--he's on my side of the line."
1960
1961"Look here, Joe Harper, whose is that tick?"
1962
1963"I don't care whose tick he is--he's on my side of the line, and you
1964sha'n't touch him."
1965
1966"Well, I'll just bet I will, though. He's my tick and I'll do what I
1967blame please with him, or die!"
1968
1969A tremendous whack came down on Tom's shoulders, and its duplicate on
1970Joe's; and for the space of two minutes the dust continued to fly from
1971the two jackets and the whole school to enjoy it. The boys had been too
1972absorbed to notice the hush that had stolen upon the school awhile
1973before when the master came tiptoeing down the room and stood over
1974them. He had contemplated a good part of the performance before he
1975contributed his bit of variety to it.
1976
1977When school broke up at noon, Tom flew to Becky Thatcher, and
1978whispered in her ear:
1979
1980"Put on your bonnet and let on you're going home; and when you get to
1981the corner, give the rest of 'em the slip, and turn down through the
1982lane and come back. I'll go the other way and come it over 'em the same
1983way."
1984
1985So the one went off with one group of scholars, and the other with
1986another. In a little while the two met at the bottom of the lane, and
1987when they reached the school they had it all to themselves. Then they
1988sat together, with a slate before them, and Tom gave Becky the pencil
1989and held her hand in his, guiding it, and so created another surprising
1990house. When the interest in art began to wane, the two fell to talking.
1991Tom was swimming in bliss. He said:
1992
1993"Do you love rats?"
1994
1995"No! I hate them!"
1996
1997"Well, I do, too--LIVE ones. But I mean dead ones, to swing round your
1998head with a string."
1999
2000"No, I don't care for rats much, anyway. What I like is chewing-gum."
2001
2002"Oh, I should say so! I wish I had some now."
2003
2004"Do you? I've got some. I'll let you chew it awhile, but you must give
2005it back to me."
2006
2007That was agreeable, so they chewed it turn about, and dangled their
2008legs against the bench in excess of contentment.
2009
2010"Was you ever at a circus?" said Tom.
2011
2012"Yes, and my pa's going to take me again some time, if I'm good."
2013
2014"I been to the circus three or four times--lots of times. Church ain't
2015shucks to a circus. There's things going on at a circus all the time.
2016I'm going to be a clown in a circus when I grow up."
2017
2018"Oh, are you! That will be nice. They're so lovely, all spotted up."
2019
2020"Yes, that's so. And they get slathers of money--most a dollar a day,
2021Ben Rogers says. Say, Becky, was you ever engaged?"
2022
2023"What's that?"
2024
2025"Why, engaged to be married."
2026
2027"No."
2028
2029"Would you like to?"
2030
2031"I reckon so. I don't know. What is it like?"
2032
2033"Like? Why it ain't like anything. You only just tell a boy you won't
2034ever have anybody but him, ever ever ever, and then you kiss and that's
2035all. Anybody can do it."
2036
2037"Kiss? What do you kiss for?"
2038
2039"Why, that, you know, is to--well, they always do that."
2040
2041"Everybody?"
2042
2043"Why, yes, everybody that's in love with each other. Do you remember
2044what I wrote on the slate?"
2045
2046"Ye--yes."
2047
2048"What was it?"
2049
2050"I sha'n't tell you."
2051
2052"Shall I tell YOU?"
2053
2054"Ye--yes--but some other time."
2055
2056"No, now."
2057
2058"No, not now--to-morrow."
2059
2060"Oh, no, NOW. Please, Becky--I'll whisper it, I'll whisper it ever so
2061easy."
2062
2063Becky hesitating, Tom took silence for consent, and passed his arm
2064about her waist and whispered the tale ever so softly, with his mouth
2065close to her ear. And then he added:
2066
2067"Now you whisper it to me--just the same."
2068
2069She resisted, for a while, and then said:
2070
2071"You turn your face away so you can't see, and then I will. But you
2072mustn't ever tell anybody--WILL you, Tom? Now you won't, WILL you?"
2073
2074"No, indeed, indeed I won't. Now, Becky."
2075
2076He turned his face away. She bent timidly around till her breath
2077stirred his curls and whispered, "I--love--you!"
2078
2079Then she sprang away and ran around and around the desks and benches,
2080with Tom after her, and took refuge in a corner at last, with her
2081little white apron to her face. Tom clasped her about her neck and
2082pleaded:
2083
2084"Now, Becky, it's all done--all over but the kiss. Don't you be afraid
2085of that--it ain't anything at all. Please, Becky." And he tugged at her
2086apron and the hands.
2087
2088By and by she gave up, and let her hands drop; her face, all glowing
2089with the struggle, came up and submitted. Tom kissed the red lips and
2090said:
2091
2092"Now it's all done, Becky. And always after this, you know, you ain't
2093ever to love anybody but me, and you ain't ever to marry anybody but
2094me, ever never and forever. Will you?"
2095
2096"No, I'll never love anybody but you, Tom, and I'll never marry
2097anybody but you--and you ain't to ever marry anybody but me, either."
2098
2099"Certainly. Of course. That's PART of it. And always coming to school
2100or when we're going home, you're to walk with me, when there ain't
2101anybody looking--and you choose me and I choose you at parties, because
2102that's the way you do when you're engaged."
2103
2104"It's so nice. I never heard of it before."
2105
2106"Oh, it's ever so gay! Why, me and Amy Lawrence--"
2107
2108The big eyes told Tom his blunder and he stopped, confused.
2109
2110"Oh, Tom! Then I ain't the first you've ever been engaged to!"
2111
2112The child began to cry. Tom said:
2113
2114"Oh, don't cry, Becky, I don't care for her any more."
2115
2116"Yes, you do, Tom--you know you do."
2117
2118Tom tried to put his arm about her neck, but she pushed him away and
2119turned her face to the wall, and went on crying. Tom tried again, with
2120soothing words in his mouth, and was repulsed again. Then his pride was
2121up, and he strode away and went outside. He stood about, restless and
2122uneasy, for a while, glancing at the door, every now and then, hoping
2123she would repent and come to find him. But she did not. Then he began
2124to feel badly and fear that he was in the wrong. It was a hard struggle
2125with him to make new advances, now, but he nerved himself to it and
2126entered. She was still standing back there in the corner, sobbing, with
2127her face to the wall. Tom's heart smote him. He went to her and stood a
2128moment, not knowing exactly how to proceed. Then he said hesitatingly:
2129
2130"Becky, I--I don't care for anybody but you."
2131
2132No reply--but sobs.
2133
2134"Becky"--pleadingly. "Becky, won't you say something?"
2135
2136More sobs.
2137
2138Tom got out his chiefest jewel, a brass knob from the top of an
2139andiron, and passed it around her so that she could see it, and said:
2140
2141"Please, Becky, won't you take it?"
2142
2143She struck it to the floor. Then Tom marched out of the house and over
2144the hills and far away, to return to school no more that day. Presently
2145Becky began to suspect. She ran to the door; he was not in sight; she
2146flew around to the play-yard; he was not there. Then she called:
2147
2148"Tom! Come back, Tom!"
2149
2150She listened intently, but there was no answer. She had no companions
2151but silence and loneliness. So she sat down to cry again and upbraid
2152herself; and by this time the scholars began to gather again, and she
2153had to hide her griefs and still her broken heart and take up the cross
2154of a long, dreary, aching afternoon, with none among the strangers
2155about her to exchange sorrows with.
2156
2157
2158
2159CHAPTER VIII
2160
2161TOM dodged hither and thither through lanes until he was well out of
2162the track of returning scholars, and then fell into a moody jog. He
2163crossed a small "branch" two or three times, because of a prevailing
2164juvenile superstition that to cross water baffled pursuit. Half an hour
2165later he was disappearing behind the Douglas mansion on the summit of
2166Cardiff Hill, and the schoolhouse was hardly distinguishable away off
2167in the valley behind him. He entered a dense wood, picked his pathless
2168way to the centre of it, and sat down on a mossy spot under a spreading
2169oak. There was not even a zephyr stirring; the dead noonday heat had
2170even stilled the songs of the birds; nature lay in a trance that was
2171broken by no sound but the occasional far-off hammering of a
2172woodpecker, and this seemed to render the pervading silence and sense
2173of loneliness the more profound. The boy's soul was steeped in
2174melancholy; his feelings were in happy accord with his surroundings. He
2175sat long with his elbows on his knees and his chin in his hands,
2176meditating. It seemed to him that life was but a trouble, at best, and
2177he more than half envied Jimmy Hodges, so lately released; it must be
2178very peaceful, he thought, to lie and slumber and dream forever and
2179ever, with the wind whispering through the trees and caressing the
2180grass and the flowers over the grave, and nothing to bother and grieve
2181about, ever any more. If he only had a clean Sunday-school record he
2182could be willing to go, and be done with it all. Now as to this girl.
2183What had he done? Nothing. He had meant the best in the world, and been
2184treated like a dog--like a very dog. She would be sorry some day--maybe
2185when it was too late. Ah, if he could only die TEMPORARILY!
2186
2187But the elastic heart of youth cannot be compressed into one
2188constrained shape long at a time. Tom presently began to drift
2189insensibly back into the concerns of this life again. What if he turned
2190his back, now, and disappeared mysteriously? What if he went away--ever
2191so far away, into unknown countries beyond the seas--and never came
2192back any more! How would she feel then! The idea of being a clown
2193recurred to him now, only to fill him with disgust. For frivolity and
2194jokes and spotted tights were an offense, when they intruded themselves
2195upon a spirit that was exalted into the vague august realm of the
2196romantic. No, he would be a soldier, and return after long years, all
2197war-worn and illustrious. No--better still, he would join the Indians,
2198and hunt buffaloes and go on the warpath in the mountain ranges and the
2199trackless great plains of the Far West, and away in the future come
2200back a great chief, bristling with feathers, hideous with paint, and
2201prance into Sunday-school, some drowsy summer morning, with a
2202bloodcurdling war-whoop, and sear the eyeballs of all his companions
2203with unappeasable envy. But no, there was something gaudier even than
2204this. He would be a pirate! That was it! NOW his future lay plain
2205before him, and glowing with unimaginable splendor. How his name would
2206fill the world, and make people shudder! How gloriously he would go
2207plowing the dancing seas, in his long, low, black-hulled racer, the
2208Spirit of the Storm, with his grisly flag flying at the fore! And at
2209the zenith of his fame, how he would suddenly appear at the old village
2210and stalk into church, brown and weather-beaten, in his black velvet
2211doublet and trunks, his great jack-boots, his crimson sash, his belt
2212bristling with horse-pistols, his crime-rusted cutlass at his side, his
2213slouch hat with waving plumes, his black flag unfurled, with the skull
2214and crossbones on it, and hear with swelling ecstasy the whisperings,
2215"It's Tom Sawyer the Pirate!--the Black Avenger of the Spanish Main!"
2216
2217Yes, it was settled; his career was determined. He would run away from
2218home and enter upon it. He would start the very next morning. Therefore
2219he must now begin to get ready. He would collect his resources
2220together. He went to a rotten log near at hand and began to dig under
2221one end of it with his Barlow knife. He soon struck wood that sounded
2222hollow. He put his hand there and uttered this incantation impressively:
2223
2224"What hasn't come here, come! What's here, stay here!"
2225
2226Then he scraped away the dirt, and exposed a pine shingle. He took it
2227up and disclosed a shapely little treasure-house whose bottom and sides
2228were of shingles. In it lay a marble. Tom's astonishment was boundless!
2229He scratched his head with a perplexed air, and said:
2230
2231"Well, that beats anything!"
2232
2233Then he tossed the marble away pettishly, and stood cogitating. The
2234truth was, that a superstition of his had failed, here, which he and
2235all his comrades had always looked upon as infallible. If you buried a
2236marble with certain necessary incantations, and left it alone a
2237fortnight, and then opened the place with the incantation he had just
2238used, you would find that all the marbles you had ever lost had
2239gathered themselves together there, meantime, no matter how widely they
2240had been separated. But now, this thing had actually and unquestionably
2241failed. Tom's whole structure of faith was shaken to its foundations.
2242He had many a time heard of this thing succeeding but never of its
2243failing before. It did not occur to him that he had tried it several
2244times before, himself, but could never find the hiding-places
2245afterward. He puzzled over the matter some time, and finally decided
2246that some witch had interfered and broken the charm. He thought he
2247would satisfy himself on that point; so he searched around till he
2248found a small sandy spot with a little funnel-shaped depression in it.
2249He laid himself down and put his mouth close to this depression and
2250called--
2251
2252"Doodle-bug, doodle-bug, tell me what I want to know! Doodle-bug,
2253doodle-bug, tell me what I want to know!"
2254
2255The sand began to work, and presently a small black bug appeared for a
2256second and then darted under again in a fright.
2257
2258"He dasn't tell! So it WAS a witch that done it. I just knowed it."
2259
2260He well knew the futility of trying to contend against witches, so he
2261gave up discouraged. But it occurred to him that he might as well have
2262the marble he had just thrown away, and therefore he went and made a
2263patient search for it. But he could not find it. Now he went back to
2264his treasure-house and carefully placed himself just as he had been
2265standing when he tossed the marble away; then he took another marble
2266from his pocket and tossed it in the same way, saying:
2267
2268"Brother, go find your brother!"
2269
2270He watched where it stopped, and went there and looked. But it must
2271have fallen short or gone too far; so he tried twice more. The last
2272repetition was successful. The two marbles lay within a foot of each
2273other.
2274
2275Just here the blast of a toy tin trumpet came faintly down the green
2276aisles of the forest. Tom flung off his jacket and trousers, turned a
2277suspender into a belt, raked away some brush behind the rotten log,
2278disclosing a rude bow and arrow, a lath sword and a tin trumpet, and in
2279a moment had seized these things and bounded away, barelegged, with
2280fluttering shirt. He presently halted under a great elm, blew an
2281answering blast, and then began to tiptoe and look warily out, this way
2282and that. He said cautiously--to an imaginary company:
2283
2284"Hold, my merry men! Keep hid till I blow."
2285
2286Now appeared Joe Harper, as airily clad and elaborately armed as Tom.
2287Tom called:
2288
2289"Hold! Who comes here into Sherwood Forest without my pass?"
2290
2291"Guy of Guisborne wants no man's pass. Who art thou that--that--"
2292
2293"Dares to hold such language," said Tom, prompting--for they talked
2294"by the book," from memory.
2295
2296"Who art thou that dares to hold such language?"
2297
2298"I, indeed! I am Robin Hood, as thy caitiff carcase soon shall know."
2299
2300"Then art thou indeed that famous outlaw? Right gladly will I dispute
2301with thee the passes of the merry wood. Have at thee!"
2302
2303They took their lath swords, dumped their other traps on the ground,
2304struck a fencing attitude, foot to foot, and began a grave, careful
2305combat, "two up and two down." Presently Tom said:
2306
2307"Now, if you've got the hang, go it lively!"
2308
2309So they "went it lively," panting and perspiring with the work. By and
2310by Tom shouted:
2311
2312"Fall! fall! Why don't you fall?"
2313
2314"I sha'n't! Why don't you fall yourself? You're getting the worst of
2315it."
2316
2317"Why, that ain't anything. I can't fall; that ain't the way it is in
2318the book. The book says, 'Then with one back-handed stroke he slew poor
2319Guy of Guisborne.' You're to turn around and let me hit you in the
2320back."
2321
2322There was no getting around the authorities, so Joe turned, received
2323the whack and fell.
2324
2325"Now," said Joe, getting up, "you got to let me kill YOU. That's fair."
2326
2327"Why, I can't do that, it ain't in the book."
2328
2329"Well, it's blamed mean--that's all."
2330
2331"Well, say, Joe, you can be Friar Tuck or Much the miller's son, and
2332lam me with a quarter-staff; or I'll be the Sheriff of Nottingham and
2333you be Robin Hood a little while and kill me."
2334
2335This was satisfactory, and so these adventures were carried out. Then
2336Tom became Robin Hood again, and was allowed by the treacherous nun to
2337bleed his strength away through his neglected wound. And at last Joe,
2338representing a whole tribe of weeping outlaws, dragged him sadly forth,
2339gave his bow into his feeble hands, and Tom said, "Where this arrow
2340falls, there bury poor Robin Hood under the greenwood tree." Then he
2341shot the arrow and fell back and would have died, but he lit on a
2342nettle and sprang up too gaily for a corpse.
2343
2344The boys dressed themselves, hid their accoutrements, and went off
2345grieving that there were no outlaws any more, and wondering what modern
2346civilization could claim to have done to compensate for their loss.
2347They said they would rather be outlaws a year in Sherwood Forest than
2348President of the United States forever.
2349
2350
2351
2352CHAPTER IX
2353
2354AT half-past nine, that night, Tom and Sid were sent to bed, as usual.
2355They said their prayers, and Sid was soon asleep. Tom lay awake and
2356waited, in restless impatience. When it seemed to him that it must be
2357nearly daylight, he heard the clock strike ten! This was despair. He
2358would have tossed and fidgeted, as his nerves demanded, but he was
2359afraid he might wake Sid. So he lay still, and stared up into the dark.
2360Everything was dismally still. By and by, out of the stillness, little,
2361scarcely perceptible noises began to emphasize themselves. The ticking
2362of the clock began to bring itself into notice. Old beams began to
2363crack mysteriously. The stairs creaked faintly. Evidently spirits were
2364abroad. A measured, muffled snore issued from Aunt Polly's chamber. And
2365now the tiresome chirping of a cricket that no human ingenuity could
2366locate, began. Next the ghastly ticking of a deathwatch in the wall at
2367the bed's head made Tom shudder--it meant that somebody's days were
2368numbered. Then the howl of a far-off dog rose on the night air, and was
2369answered by a fainter howl from a remoter distance. Tom was in an
2370agony. At last he was satisfied that time had ceased and eternity
2371begun; he began to doze, in spite of himself; the clock chimed eleven,
2372but he did not hear it. And then there came, mingling with his
2373half-formed dreams, a most melancholy caterwauling. The raising of a
2374neighboring window disturbed him. A cry of "Scat! you devil!" and the
2375crash of an empty bottle against the back of his aunt's woodshed
2376brought him wide awake, and a single minute later he was dressed and
2377out of the window and creeping along the roof of the "ell" on all
2378fours. He "meow'd" with caution once or twice, as he went; then jumped
2379to the roof of the woodshed and thence to the ground. Huckleberry Finn
2380was there, with his dead cat. The boys moved off and disappeared in the
2381gloom. At the end of half an hour they were wading through the tall
2382grass of the graveyard.
2383
2384It was a graveyard of the old-fashioned Western kind. It was on a
2385hill, about a mile and a half from the village. It had a crazy board
2386fence around it, which leaned inward in places, and outward the rest of
2387the time, but stood upright nowhere. Grass and weeds grew rank over the
2388whole cemetery. All the old graves were sunken in, there was not a
2389tombstone on the place; round-topped, worm-eaten boards staggered over
2390the graves, leaning for support and finding none. "Sacred to the memory
2391of" So-and-So had been painted on them once, but it could no longer
2392have been read, on the most of them, now, even if there had been light.
2393
2394A faint wind moaned through the trees, and Tom feared it might be the
2395spirits of the dead, complaining at being disturbed. The boys talked
2396little, and only under their breath, for the time and the place and the
2397pervading solemnity and silence oppressed their spirits. They found the
2398sharp new heap they were seeking, and ensconced themselves within the
2399protection of three great elms that grew in a bunch within a few feet
2400of the grave.
2401
2402Then they waited in silence for what seemed a long time. The hooting
2403of a distant owl was all the sound that troubled the dead stillness.
2404Tom's reflections grew oppressive. He must force some talk. So he said
2405in a whisper:
2406
2407"Hucky, do you believe the dead people like it for us to be here?"
2408
2409Huckleberry whispered:
2410
2411"I wisht I knowed. It's awful solemn like, AIN'T it?"
2412
2413"I bet it is."
2414
2415There was a considerable pause, while the boys canvassed this matter
2416inwardly. Then Tom whispered:
2417
2418"Say, Hucky--do you reckon Hoss Williams hears us talking?"
2419
2420"O' course he does. Least his sperrit does."
2421
2422Tom, after a pause:
2423
2424"I wish I'd said Mister Williams. But I never meant any harm.
2425Everybody calls him Hoss."
2426
2427"A body can't be too partic'lar how they talk 'bout these-yer dead
2428people, Tom."
2429
2430This was a damper, and conversation died again.
2431
2432Presently Tom seized his comrade's arm and said:
2433
2434"Sh!"
2435
2436"What is it, Tom?" And the two clung together with beating hearts.
2437
2438"Sh! There 'tis again! Didn't you hear it?"
2439
2440"I--"
2441
2442"There! Now you hear it."
2443
2444"Lord, Tom, they're coming! They're coming, sure. What'll we do?"
2445
2446"I dono. Think they'll see us?"
2447
2448"Oh, Tom, they can see in the dark, same as cats. I wisht I hadn't
2449come."
2450
2451"Oh, don't be afeard. I don't believe they'll bother us. We ain't
2452doing any harm. If we keep perfectly still, maybe they won't notice us
2453at all."
2454
2455"I'll try to, Tom, but, Lord, I'm all of a shiver."
2456
2457"Listen!"
2458
2459The boys bent their heads together and scarcely breathed. A muffled
2460sound of voices floated up from the far end of the graveyard.
2461
2462"Look! See there!" whispered Tom. "What is it?"
2463
2464"It's devil-fire. Oh, Tom, this is awful."
2465
2466Some vague figures approached through the gloom, swinging an
2467old-fashioned tin lantern that freckled the ground with innumerable
2468little spangles of light. Presently Huckleberry whispered with a
2469shudder:
2470
2471"It's the devils sure enough. Three of 'em! Lordy, Tom, we're goners!
2472Can you pray?"
2473
2474"I'll try, but don't you be afeard. They ain't going to hurt us. 'Now
2475I lay me down to sleep, I--'"
2476
2477"Sh!"
2478
2479"What is it, Huck?"
2480
2481"They're HUMANS! One of 'em is, anyway. One of 'em's old Muff Potter's
2482voice."
2483
2484"No--'tain't so, is it?"
2485
2486"I bet I know it. Don't you stir nor budge. He ain't sharp enough to
2487notice us. Drunk, the same as usual, likely--blamed old rip!"
2488
2489"All right, I'll keep still. Now they're stuck. Can't find it. Here
2490they come again. Now they're hot. Cold again. Hot again. Red hot!
2491They're p'inted right, this time. Say, Huck, I know another o' them
2492voices; it's Injun Joe."
2493
2494"That's so--that murderin' half-breed! I'd druther they was devils a
2495dern sight. What kin they be up to?"
2496
2497The whisper died wholly out, now, for the three men had reached the
2498grave and stood within a few feet of the boys' hiding-place.
2499
2500"Here it is," said the third voice; and the owner of it held the
2501lantern up and revealed the face of young Doctor Robinson.
2502
2503Potter and Injun Joe were carrying a handbarrow with a rope and a
2504couple of shovels on it. They cast down their load and began to open
2505the grave. The doctor put the lantern at the head of the grave and came
2506and sat down with his back against one of the elm trees. He was so
2507close the boys could have touched him.
2508
2509"Hurry, men!" he said, in a low voice; "the moon might come out at any
2510moment."
2511
2512They growled a response and went on digging. For some time there was
2513no noise but the grating sound of the spades discharging their freight
2514of mould and gravel. It was very monotonous. Finally a spade struck
2515upon the coffin with a dull woody accent, and within another minute or
2516two the men had hoisted it out on the ground. They pried off the lid
2517with their shovels, got out the body and dumped it rudely on the
2518ground. The moon drifted from behind the clouds and exposed the pallid
2519face. The barrow was got ready and the corpse placed on it, covered
2520with a blanket, and bound to its place with the rope. Potter took out a
2521large spring-knife and cut off the dangling end of the rope and then
2522said:
2523
2524"Now the cussed thing's ready, Sawbones, and you'll just out with
2525another five, or here she stays."
2526
2527"That's the talk!" said Injun Joe.
2528
2529"Look here, what does this mean?" said the doctor. "You required your
2530pay in advance, and I've paid you."
2531
2532"Yes, and you done more than that," said Injun Joe, approaching the
2533doctor, who was now standing. "Five years ago you drove me away from
2534your father's kitchen one night, when I come to ask for something to
2535eat, and you said I warn't there for any good; and when I swore I'd get
2536even with you if it took a hundred years, your father had me jailed for
2537a vagrant. Did you think I'd forget? The Injun blood ain't in me for
2538nothing. And now I've GOT you, and you got to SETTLE, you know!"
2539
2540He was threatening the doctor, with his fist in his face, by this
2541time. The doctor struck out suddenly and stretched the ruffian on the
2542ground. Potter dropped his knife, and exclaimed:
2543
2544"Here, now, don't you hit my pard!" and the next moment he had
2545grappled with the doctor and the two were struggling with might and
2546main, trampling the grass and tearing the ground with their heels.
2547Injun Joe sprang to his feet, his eyes flaming with passion, snatched
2548up Potter's knife, and went creeping, catlike and stooping, round and
2549round about the combatants, seeking an opportunity. All at once the
2550doctor flung himself free, seized the heavy headboard of Williams'
2551grave and felled Potter to the earth with it--and in the same instant
2552the half-breed saw his chance and drove the knife to the hilt in the
2553young man's breast. He reeled and fell partly upon Potter, flooding him
2554with his blood, and in the same moment the clouds blotted out the
2555dreadful spectacle and the two frightened boys went speeding away in
2556the dark.
2557
2558Presently, when the moon emerged again, Injun Joe was standing over
2559the two forms, contemplating them. The doctor murmured inarticulately,
2560gave a long gasp or two and was still. The half-breed muttered:
2561
2562"THAT score is settled--damn you."
2563
2564Then he robbed the body. After which he put the fatal knife in
2565Potter's open right hand, and sat down on the dismantled coffin. Three
2566--four--five minutes passed, and then Potter began to stir and moan. His
2567hand closed upon the knife; he raised it, glanced at it, and let it
2568fall, with a shudder. Then he sat up, pushing the body from him, and
2569gazed at it, and then around him, confusedly. His eyes met Joe's.
2570
2571"Lord, how is this, Joe?" he said.
2572
2573"It's a dirty business," said Joe, without moving.
2574
2575"What did you do it for?"
2576
2577"I! I never done it!"
2578
2579"Look here! That kind of talk won't wash."
2580
2581Potter trembled and grew white.
2582
2583"I thought I'd got sober. I'd no business to drink to-night. But it's
2584in my head yet--worse'n when we started here. I'm all in a muddle;
2585can't recollect anything of it, hardly. Tell me, Joe--HONEST, now, old
2586feller--did I do it? Joe, I never meant to--'pon my soul and honor, I
2587never meant to, Joe. Tell me how it was, Joe. Oh, it's awful--and him
2588so young and promising."
2589
2590"Why, you two was scuffling, and he fetched you one with the headboard
2591and you fell flat; and then up you come, all reeling and staggering
2592like, and snatched the knife and jammed it into him, just as he fetched
2593you another awful clip--and here you've laid, as dead as a wedge til
2594now."
2595
2596"Oh, I didn't know what I was a-doing. I wish I may die this minute if
2597I did. It was all on account of the whiskey and the excitement, I
2598reckon. I never used a weepon in my life before, Joe. I've fought, but
2599never with weepons. They'll all say that. Joe, don't tell! Say you
2600won't tell, Joe--that's a good feller. I always liked you, Joe, and
2601stood up for you, too. Don't you remember? You WON'T tell, WILL you,
2602Joe?" And the poor creature dropped on his knees before the stolid
2603murderer, and clasped his appealing hands.
2604
2605"No, you've always been fair and square with me, Muff Potter, and I
2606won't go back on you. There, now, that's as fair as a man can say."
2607
2608"Oh, Joe, you're an angel. I'll bless you for this the longest day I
2609live." And Potter began to cry.
2610
2611"Come, now, that's enough of that. This ain't any time for blubbering.
2612You be off yonder way and I'll go this. Move, now, and don't leave any
2613tracks behind you."
2614
2615Potter started on a trot that quickly increased to a run. The
2616half-breed stood looking after him. He muttered:
2617
2618"If he's as much stunned with the lick and fuddled with the rum as he
2619had the look of being, he won't think of the knife till he's gone so
2620far he'll be afraid to come back after it to such a place by himself
2621--chicken-heart!"
2622
2623Two or three minutes later the murdered man, the blanketed corpse, the
2624lidless coffin, and the open grave were under no inspection but the
2625moon's. The stillness was complete again, too.
2626
2627
2628
2629CHAPTER X
2630
2631THE two boys flew on and on, toward the village, speechless with
2632horror. They glanced backward over their shoulders from time to time,
2633apprehensively, as if they feared they might be followed. Every stump
2634that started up in their path seemed a man and an enemy, and made them
2635catch their breath; and as they sped by some outlying cottages that lay
2636near the village, the barking of the aroused watch-dogs seemed to give
2637wings to their feet.
2638
2639"If we can only get to the old tannery before we break down!"
2640whispered Tom, in short catches between breaths. "I can't stand it much
2641longer."
2642
2643Huckleberry's hard pantings were his only reply, and the boys fixed
2644their eyes on the goal of their hopes and bent to their work to win it.
2645They gained steadily on it, and at last, breast to breast, they burst
2646through the open door and fell grateful and exhausted in the sheltering
2647shadows beyond. By and by their pulses slowed down, and Tom whispered:
2648
2649"Huckleberry, what do you reckon'll come of this?"
2650
2651"If Doctor Robinson dies, I reckon hanging'll come of it."
2652
2653"Do you though?"
2654
2655"Why, I KNOW it, Tom."
2656
2657Tom thought a while, then he said:
2658
2659"Who'll tell? We?"
2660
2661"What are you talking about? S'pose something happened and Injun Joe
2662DIDN'T hang? Why, he'd kill us some time or other, just as dead sure as
2663we're a laying here."
2664
2665"That's just what I was thinking to myself, Huck."
2666
2667"If anybody tells, let Muff Potter do it, if he's fool enough. He's
2668generally drunk enough."
2669
2670Tom said nothing--went on thinking. Presently he whispered:
2671
2672"Huck, Muff Potter don't know it. How can he tell?"
2673
2674"What's the reason he don't know it?"
2675
2676"Because he'd just got that whack when Injun Joe done it. D'you reckon
2677he could see anything? D'you reckon he knowed anything?"
2678
2679"By hokey, that's so, Tom!"
2680
2681"And besides, look-a-here--maybe that whack done for HIM!"
2682
2683"No, 'taint likely, Tom. He had liquor in him; I could see that; and
2684besides, he always has. Well, when pap's full, you might take and belt
2685him over the head with a church and you couldn't phase him. He says so,
2686his own self. So it's the same with Muff Potter, of course. But if a
2687man was dead sober, I reckon maybe that whack might fetch him; I dono."
2688
2689After another reflective silence, Tom said:
2690
2691"Hucky, you sure you can keep mum?"
2692
2693"Tom, we GOT to keep mum. You know that. That Injun devil wouldn't
2694make any more of drownding us than a couple of cats, if we was to
2695squeak 'bout this and they didn't hang him. Now, look-a-here, Tom, less
2696take and swear to one another--that's what we got to do--swear to keep
2697mum."
2698
2699"I'm agreed. It's the best thing. Would you just hold hands and swear
2700that we--"
2701
2702"Oh no, that wouldn't do for this. That's good enough for little
2703rubbishy common things--specially with gals, cuz THEY go back on you
2704anyway, and blab if they get in a huff--but there orter be writing
2705'bout a big thing like this. And blood."
2706
2707Tom's whole being applauded this idea. It was deep, and dark, and
2708awful; the hour, the circumstances, the surroundings, were in keeping
2709with it. He picked up a clean pine shingle that lay in the moonlight,
2710took a little fragment of "red keel" out of his pocket, got the moon on
2711his work, and painfully scrawled these lines, emphasizing each slow
2712down-stroke by clamping his tongue between his teeth, and letting up
2713the pressure on the up-strokes. [See next page.]
2714
2715   "Huck Finn and
2716    Tom Sawyer swears
2717    they will keep mum
2718    about This and They
2719    wish They may Drop
2720    down dead in Their
2721    Tracks if They ever
2722    Tell and Rot."
2723
2724Huckleberry was filled with admiration of Tom's facility in writing,
2725and the sublimity of his language. He at once took a pin from his lapel
2726and was going to prick his flesh, but Tom said:
2727
2728"Hold on! Don't do that. A pin's brass. It might have verdigrease on
2729it."
2730
2731"What's verdigrease?"
2732
2733"It's p'ison. That's what it is. You just swaller some of it once
2734--you'll see."
2735
2736So Tom unwound the thread from one of his needles, and each boy
2737pricked the ball of his thumb and squeezed out a drop of blood. In
2738time, after many squeezes, Tom managed to sign his initials, using the
2739ball of his little finger for a pen. Then he showed Huckleberry how to
2740make an H and an F, and the oath was complete. They buried the shingle
2741close to the wall, with some dismal ceremonies and incantations, and
2742the fetters that bound their tongues were considered to be locked and
2743the key thrown away.
2744
2745A figure crept stealthily through a break in the other end of the
2746ruined building, now, but they did not notice it.
2747
2748"Tom," whispered Huckleberry, "does this keep us from EVER telling
2749--ALWAYS?"
2750
2751"Of course it does. It don't make any difference WHAT happens, we got
2752to keep mum. We'd drop down dead--don't YOU know that?"
2753
2754"Yes, I reckon that's so."
2755
2756They continued to whisper for some little time. Presently a dog set up
2757a long, lugubrious howl just outside--within ten feet of them. The boys
2758clasped each other suddenly, in an agony of fright.
2759
2760"Which of us does he mean?" gasped Huckleberry.
2761
2762"I dono--peep through the crack. Quick!"
2763
2764"No, YOU, Tom!"
2765
2766"I can't--I can't DO it, Huck!"
2767
2768"Please, Tom. There 'tis again!"
2769
2770"Oh, lordy, I'm thankful!" whispered Tom. "I know his voice. It's Bull
2771Harbison." *
2772
2773[* If Mr. Harbison owned a slave named Bull, Tom would have spoken of
2774him as "Harbison's Bull," but a son or a dog of that name was "Bull
2775Harbison."]
2776
2777"Oh, that's good--I tell you, Tom, I was most scared to death; I'd a
2778bet anything it was a STRAY dog."
2779
2780The dog howled again. The boys' hearts sank once more.
2781
2782"Oh, my! that ain't no Bull Harbison!" whispered Huckleberry. "DO, Tom!"
2783
2784Tom, quaking with fear, yielded, and put his eye to the crack. His
2785whisper was hardly audible when he said:
2786
2787"Oh, Huck, IT S A STRAY DOG!"
2788
2789"Quick, Tom, quick! Who does he mean?"
2790
2791"Huck, he must mean us both--we're right together."
2792
2793"Oh, Tom, I reckon we're goners. I reckon there ain't no mistake 'bout
2794where I'LL go to. I been so wicked."
2795
2796"Dad fetch it! This comes of playing hookey and doing everything a
2797feller's told NOT to do. I might a been good, like Sid, if I'd a tried
2798--but no, I wouldn't, of course. But if ever I get off this time, I lay
2799I'll just WALLER in Sunday-schools!" And Tom began to snuffle a little.
2800
2801"YOU bad!" and Huckleberry began to snuffle too. "Consound it, Tom
2802Sawyer, you're just old pie, 'longside o' what I am. Oh, LORDY, lordy,
2803lordy, I wisht I only had half your chance."
2804
2805Tom choked off and whispered:
2806
2807"Look, Hucky, look! He's got his BACK to us!"
2808
2809Hucky looked, with joy in his heart.
2810
2811"Well, he has, by jingoes! Did he before?"
2812
2813"Yes, he did. But I, like a fool, never thought. Oh, this is bully,
2814you know. NOW who can he mean?"
2815
2816The howling stopped. Tom pricked up his ears.
2817
2818"Sh! What's that?" he whispered.
2819
2820"Sounds like--like hogs grunting. No--it's somebody snoring, Tom."
2821
2822"That IS it! Where 'bouts is it, Huck?"
2823
2824"I bleeve it's down at 'tother end. Sounds so, anyway. Pap used to
2825sleep there, sometimes, 'long with the hogs, but laws bless you, he
2826just lifts things when HE snores. Besides, I reckon he ain't ever
2827coming back to this town any more."
2828
2829The spirit of adventure rose in the boys' souls once more.
2830
2831"Hucky, do you das't to go if I lead?"
2832
2833"I don't like to, much. Tom, s'pose it's Injun Joe!"
2834
2835Tom quailed. But presently the temptation rose up strong again and the
2836boys agreed to try, with the understanding that they would take to
2837their heels if the snoring stopped. So they went tiptoeing stealthily
2838down, the one behind the other. When they had got to within five steps
2839of the snorer, Tom stepped on a stick, and it broke with a sharp snap.
2840The man moaned, writhed a little, and his face came into the moonlight.
2841It was Muff Potter. The boys' hearts had stood still, and their hopes
2842too, when the man moved, but their fears passed away now. They tiptoed
2843out, through the broken weather-boarding, and stopped at a little
2844distance to exchange a parting word. That long, lugubrious howl rose on
2845the night air again! They turned and saw the strange dog standing
2846within a few feet of where Potter was lying, and FACING Potter, with
2847his nose pointing heavenward.
2848
2849"Oh, geeminy, it's HIM!" exclaimed both boys, in a breath.
2850
2851"Say, Tom--they say a stray dog come howling around Johnny Miller's
2852house, 'bout midnight, as much as two weeks ago; and a whippoorwill
2853come in and lit on the banisters and sung, the very same evening; and
2854there ain't anybody dead there yet."
2855
2856"Well, I know that. And suppose there ain't. Didn't Gracie Miller fall
2857in the kitchen fire and burn herself terrible the very next Saturday?"
2858
2859"Yes, but she ain't DEAD. And what's more, she's getting better, too."
2860
2861"All right, you wait and see. She's a goner, just as dead sure as Muff
2862Potter's a goner. That's what the niggers say, and they know all about
2863these kind of things, Huck."
2864
2865Then they separated, cogitating. When Tom crept in at his bedroom
2866window the night was almost spent. He undressed with excessive caution,
2867and fell asleep congratulating himself that nobody knew of his
2868escapade. He was not aware that the gently-snoring Sid was awake, and
2869had been so for an hour.
2870
2871When Tom awoke, Sid was dressed and gone. There was a late look in the
2872light, a late sense in the atmosphere. He was startled. Why had he not
2873been called--persecuted till he was up, as usual? The thought filled
2874him with bodings. Within five minutes he was dressed and down-stairs,
2875feeling sore and drowsy. The family were still at table, but they had
2876finished breakfast. There was no voice of rebuke; but there were
2877averted eyes; there was a silence and an air of solemnity that struck a
2878chill to the culprit's heart. He sat down and tried to seem gay, but it
2879was up-hill work; it roused no smile, no response, and he lapsed into
2880silence and let his heart sink down to the depths.
2881
2882After breakfast his aunt took him aside, and Tom almost brightened in
2883the hope that he was going to be flogged; but it was not so. His aunt
2884wept over him and asked him how he could go and break her old heart so;
2885and finally told him to go on, and ruin himself and bring her gray
2886hairs with sorrow to the grave, for it was no use for her to try any
2887more. This was worse than a thousand whippings, and Tom's heart was
2888sorer now than his body. He cried, he pleaded for forgiveness, promised
2889to reform over and over again, and then received his dismissal, feeling
2890that he had won but an imperfect forgiveness and established but a
2891feeble confidence.
2892
2893He left the presence too miserable to even feel revengeful toward Sid;
2894and so the latter's prompt retreat through the back gate was
2895unnecessary. He moped to school gloomy and sad, and took his flogging,
2896along with Joe Harper, for playing hookey the day before, with the air
2897of one whose heart was busy with heavier woes and wholly dead to
2898trifles. Then he betook himself to his seat, rested his elbows on his
2899desk and his jaws in his hands, and stared at the wall with the stony
2900stare of suffering that has reached the limit and can no further go.
2901His elbow was pressing against some hard substance. After a long time
2902he slowly and sadly changed his position, and took up this object with
2903a sigh. It was in a paper. He unrolled it. A long, lingering, colossal
2904sigh followed, and his heart broke. It was his brass andiron knob!
2905
2906This final feather broke the camel's back.
2907
2908
2909
2910CHAPTER XI
2911
2912CLOSE upon the hour of noon the whole village was suddenly electrified
2913with the ghastly news. No need of the as yet undreamed-of telegraph;
2914the tale flew from man to man, from group to group, from house to
2915house, with little less than telegraphic speed. Of course the
2916schoolmaster gave holiday for that afternoon; the town would have
2917thought strangely of him if he had not.
2918
2919A gory knife had been found close to the murdered man, and it had been
2920recognized by somebody as belonging to Muff Potter--so the story ran.
2921And it was said that a belated citizen had come upon Potter washing
2922himself in the "branch" about one or two o'clock in the morning, and
2923that Potter had at once sneaked off--suspicious circumstances,
2924especially the washing which was not a habit with Potter. It was also
2925said that the town had been ransacked for this "murderer" (the public
2926are not slow in the matter of sifting evidence and arriving at a
2927verdict), but that he could not be found. Horsemen had departed down
2928all the roads in every direction, and the Sheriff "was confident" that
2929he would be captured before night.
2930
2931All the town was drifting toward the graveyard. Tom's heartbreak
2932vanished and he joined the procession, not because he would not a
2933thousand times rather go anywhere else, but because an awful,
2934unaccountable fascination drew him on. Arrived at the dreadful place,
2935he wormed his small body through the crowd and saw the dismal
2936spectacle. It seemed to him an age since he was there before. Somebody
2937pinched his arm. He turned, and his eyes met Huckleberry's. Then both
2938looked elsewhere at once, and wondered if anybody had noticed anything
2939in their mutual glance. But everybody was talking, and intent upon the
2940grisly spectacle before them.
2941
2942"Poor fellow!" "Poor young fellow!" "This ought to be a lesson to
2943grave robbers!" "Muff Potter'll hang for this if they catch him!" This
2944was the drift of remark; and the minister said, "It was a judgment; His
2945hand is here."
2946
2947Now Tom shivered from head to heel; for his eye fell upon the stolid
2948face of Injun Joe. At this moment the crowd began to sway and struggle,
2949and voices shouted, "It's him! it's him! he's coming himself!"
2950
2951"Who? Who?" from twenty voices.
2952
2953"Muff Potter!"
2954
2955"Hallo, he's stopped!--Look out, he's turning! Don't let him get away!"
2956
2957People in the branches of the trees over Tom's head said he wasn't
2958trying to get away--he only looked doubtful and perplexed.
2959
2960"Infernal impudence!" said a bystander; "wanted to come and take a
2961quiet look at his work, I reckon--didn't expect any company."
2962
2963The crowd fell apart, now, and the Sheriff came through,
2964ostentatiously leading Potter by the arm. The poor fellow's face was
2965haggard, and his eyes showed the fear that was upon him. When he stood
2966before the murdered man, he shook as with a palsy, and he put his face
2967in his hands and burst into tears.
2968
2969"I didn't do it, friends," he sobbed; "'pon my word and honor I never
2970done it."
2971
2972"Who's accused you?" shouted a voice.
2973
2974This shot seemed to carry home. Potter lifted his face and looked
2975around him with a pathetic hopelessness in his eyes. He saw Injun Joe,
2976and exclaimed:
2977
2978"Oh, Injun Joe, you promised me you'd never--"
2979
2980"Is that your knife?" and it was thrust before him by the Sheriff.
2981
2982Potter would have fallen if they had not caught him and eased him to
2983the ground. Then he said:
2984
2985"Something told me 't if I didn't come back and get--" He shuddered;
2986then waved his nerveless hand with a vanquished gesture and said, "Tell
2987'em, Joe, tell 'em--it ain't any use any more."
2988
2989Then Huckleberry and Tom stood dumb and staring, and heard the
2990stony-hearted liar reel off his serene statement, they expecting every
2991moment that the clear sky would deliver God's lightnings upon his head,
2992and wondering to see how long the stroke was delayed. And when he had
2993finished and still stood alive and whole, their wavering impulse to
2994break their oath and save the poor betrayed prisoner's life faded and
2995vanished away, for plainly this miscreant had sold himself to Satan and
2996it would be fatal to meddle with the property of such a power as that.
2997
2998"Why didn't you leave? What did you want to come here for?" somebody
2999said.
3000
3001"I couldn't help it--I couldn't help it," Potter moaned. "I wanted to
3002run away, but I couldn't seem to come anywhere but here." And he fell
3003to sobbing again.
3004
3005Injun Joe repeated his statement, just as calmly, a few minutes
3006afterward on the inquest, under oath; and the boys, seeing that the
3007lightnings were still withheld, were confirmed in their belief that Joe
3008had sold himself to the devil. He was now become, to them, the most
3009balefully interesting object they had ever looked upon, and they could
3010not take their fascinated eyes from his face.
3011
3012They inwardly resolved to watch him nights, when opportunity should
3013offer, in the hope of getting a glimpse of his dread master.
3014
3015Injun Joe helped to raise the body of the murdered man and put it in a
3016wagon for removal; and it was whispered through the shuddering crowd
3017that the wound bled a little! The boys thought that this happy
3018circumstance would turn suspicion in the right direction; but they were
3019disappointed, for more than one villager remarked:
3020
3021"It was within three feet of Muff Potter when it done it."
3022
3023Tom's fearful secret and gnawing conscience disturbed his sleep for as
3024much as a week after this; and at breakfast one morning Sid said:
3025
3026"Tom, you pitch around and talk in your sleep so much that you keep me
3027awake half the time."
3028
3029Tom blanched and dropped his eyes.
3030
3031"It's a bad sign," said Aunt Polly, gravely. "What you got on your
3032mind, Tom?"
3033
3034"Nothing. Nothing 't I know of." But the boy's hand shook so that he
3035spilled his coffee.
3036
3037"And you do talk such stuff," Sid said. "Last night you said, 'It's
3038blood, it's blood, that's what it is!' You said that over and over. And
3039you said, 'Don't torment me so--I'll tell!' Tell WHAT? What is it
3040you'll tell?"
3041
3042Everything was swimming before Tom. There is no telling what might
3043have happened, now, but luckily the concern passed out of Aunt Polly's
3044face and she came to Tom's relief without knowing it. She said:
3045
3046"Sho! It's that dreadful murder. I dream about it most every night
3047myself. Sometimes I dream it's me that done it."
3048
3049Mary said she had been affected much the same way. Sid seemed
3050satisfied. Tom got out of the presence as quick as he plausibly could,
3051and after that he complained of toothache for a week, and tied up his
3052jaws every night. He never knew that Sid lay nightly watching, and
3053frequently slipped the bandage free and then leaned on his elbow
3054listening a good while at a time, and afterward slipped the bandage
3055back to its place again. Tom's distress of mind wore off gradually and
3056the toothache grew irksome and was discarded. If Sid really managed to
3057make anything out of Tom's disjointed mutterings, he kept it to himself.
3058
3059It seemed to Tom that his schoolmates never would get done holding
3060inquests on dead cats, and thus keeping his trouble present to his
3061mind. Sid noticed that Tom never was coroner at one of these inquiries,
3062though it had been his habit to take the lead in all new enterprises;
3063he noticed, too, that Tom never acted as a witness--and that was
3064strange; and Sid did not overlook the fact that Tom even showed a
3065marked aversion to these inquests, and always avoided them when he
3066could. Sid marvelled, but said nothing. However, even inquests went out
3067of vogue at last, and ceased to torture Tom's conscience.
3068
3069Every day or two, during this time of sorrow, Tom watched his
3070opportunity and went to the little grated jail-window and smuggled such
3071small comforts through to the "murderer" as he could get hold of. The
3072jail was a trifling little brick den that stood in a marsh at the edge
3073of the village, and no guards were afforded for it; indeed, it was
3074seldom occupied. These offerings greatly helped to ease Tom's
3075conscience.
3076
3077The villagers had a strong desire to tar-and-feather Injun Joe and
3078ride him on a rail, for body-snatching, but so formidable was his
3079character that nobody could be found who was willing to take the lead
3080in the matter, so it was dropped. He had been careful to begin both of
3081his inquest-statements with the fight, without confessing the
3082grave-robbery that preceded it; therefore it was deemed wisest not
3083to try the case in the courts at present.
3084
3085
3086
3087CHAPTER XII
3088
3089ONE of the reasons why Tom's mind had drifted away from its secret
3090troubles was, that it had found a new and weighty matter to interest
3091itself about. Becky Thatcher had stopped coming to school. Tom had
3092struggled with his pride a few days, and tried to "whistle her down the
3093wind," but failed. He began to find himself hanging around her father's
3094house, nights, and feeling very miserable. She was ill. What if she
3095should die! There was distraction in the thought. He no longer took an
3096interest in war, nor even in piracy. The charm of life was gone; there
3097was nothing but dreariness left. He put his hoop away, and his bat;
3098there was no joy in them any more. His aunt was concerned. She began to
3099try all manner of remedies on him. She was one of those people who are
3100infatuated with patent medicines and all new-fangled methods of
3101producing health or mending it. She was an inveterate experimenter in
3102these things. When something fresh in this line came out she was in a
3103fever, right away, to try it; not on herself, for she was never ailing,
3104but on anybody else that came handy. She was a subscriber for all the
3105"Health" periodicals and phrenological frauds; and the solemn ignorance
3106they were inflated with was breath to her nostrils. All the "rot" they
3107contained about ventilation, and how to go to bed, and how to get up,
3108and what to eat, and what to drink, and how much exercise to take, and
3109what frame of mind to keep one's self in, and what sort of clothing to
3110wear, was all gospel to her, and she never observed that her
3111health-journals of the current month customarily upset everything they
3112had recommended the month before. She was as simple-hearted and honest
3113as the day was long, and so she was an easy victim. She gathered
3114together her quack periodicals and her quack medicines, and thus armed
3115with death, went about on her pale horse, metaphorically speaking, with
3116"hell following after." But she never suspected that she was not an
3117angel of healing and the balm of Gilead in disguise, to the suffering
3118neighbors.
3119
3120The water treatment was new, now, and Tom's low condition was a
3121windfall to her. She had him out at daylight every morning, stood him
3122up in the woodshed and drowned him with a deluge of cold water; then
3123she scrubbed him down with a towel like a file, and so brought him to;
3124then she rolled him up in a wet sheet and put him away under blankets
3125till she sweated his soul clean and "the yellow stains of it came
3126through his pores"--as Tom said.
3127
3128Yet notwithstanding all this, the boy grew more and more melancholy
3129and pale and dejected. She added hot baths, sitz baths, shower baths,
3130and plunges. The boy remained as dismal as a hearse. She began to
3131assist the water with a slim oatmeal diet and blister-plasters. She
3132calculated his capacity as she would a jug's, and filled him up every
3133day with quack cure-alls.
3134
3135Tom had become indifferent to persecution by this time. This phase
3136filled the old lady's heart with consternation. This indifference must
3137be broken up at any cost. Now she heard of Pain-killer for the first
3138time. She ordered a lot at once. She tasted it and was filled with
3139gratitude. It was simply fire in a liquid form. She dropped the water
3140treatment and everything else, and pinned her faith to Pain-killer. She
3141gave Tom a teaspoonful and watched with the deepest anxiety for the
3142result. Her troubles were instantly at rest, her soul at peace again;
3143for the "indifference" was broken up. The boy could not have shown a
3144wilder, heartier interest, if she had built a fire under him.
3145
3146Tom felt that it was time to wake up; this sort of life might be
3147romantic enough, in his blighted condition, but it was getting to have
3148too little sentiment and too much distracting variety about it. So he
3149thought over various plans for relief, and finally hit pon that of
3150professing to be fond of Pain-killer. He asked for it so often that he
3151became a nuisance, and his aunt ended by telling him to help himself
3152and quit bothering her. If it had been Sid, she would have had no
3153misgivings to alloy her delight; but since it was Tom, she watched the
3154bottle clandestinely. She found that the medicine did really diminish,
3155but it did not occur to her that the boy was mending the health of a
3156crack in the sitting-room floor with it.
3157
3158One day Tom was in the act of dosing the crack when his aunt's yellow
3159cat came along, purring, eying the teaspoon avariciously, and begging
3160for a taste. Tom said:
3161
3162"Don't ask for it unless you want it, Peter."
3163
3164But Peter signified that he did want it.
3165
3166"You better make sure."
3167
3168Peter was sure.
3169
3170"Now you've asked for it, and I'll give it to you, because there ain't
3171anything mean about me; but if you find you don't like it, you mustn't
3172blame anybody but your own self."
3173
3174Peter was agreeable. So Tom pried his mouth open and poured down the
3175Pain-killer. Peter sprang a couple of yards in the air, and then
3176delivered a war-whoop and set off round and round the room, banging
3177against furniture, upsetting flower-pots, and making general havoc.
3178Next he rose on his hind feet and pranced around, in a frenzy of
3179enjoyment, with his head over his shoulder and his voice proclaiming
3180his unappeasable happiness. Then he went tearing around the house again
3181spreading chaos and destruction in his path. Aunt Polly entered in time
3182to see him throw a few double summersets, deliver a final mighty
3183hurrah, and sail through the open window, carrying the rest of the
3184flower-pots with him. The old lady stood petrified with astonishment,
3185peering over her glasses; Tom lay on the floor expiring with laughter.
3186
3187"Tom, what on earth ails that cat?"
3188
3189"I don't know, aunt," gasped the boy.
3190
3191"Why, I never see anything like it. What did make him act so?"
3192
3193"Deed I don't know, Aunt Polly; cats always act so when they're having
3194a good time."
3195
3196"They do, do they?" There was something in the tone that made Tom
3197apprehensive.
3198
3199"Yes'm. That is, I believe they do."
3200
3201"You DO?"
3202
3203"Yes'm."
3204
3205The old lady was bending down, Tom watching, with interest emphasized
3206by anxiety. Too late he divined her "drift." The handle of the telltale
3207teaspoon was visible under the bed-valance. Aunt Polly took it, held it
3208up. Tom winced, and dropped his eyes. Aunt Polly raised him by the
3209usual handle--his ear--and cracked his head soundly with her thimble.
3210
3211"Now, sir, what did you want to treat that poor dumb beast so, for?"
3212
3213"I done it out of pity for him--because he hadn't any aunt."
3214
3215"Hadn't any aunt!--you numskull. What has that got to do with it?"
3216
3217"Heaps. Because if he'd had one she'd a burnt him out herself! She'd a
3218roasted his bowels out of him 'thout any more feeling than if he was a
3219human!"
3220
3221Aunt Polly felt a sudden pang of remorse. This was putting the thing
3222in a new light; what was cruelty to a cat MIGHT be cruelty to a boy,
3223too. She began to soften; she felt sorry. Her eyes watered a little,
3224and she put her hand on Tom's head and said gently:
3225
3226"I was meaning for the best, Tom. And, Tom, it DID do you good."
3227
3228Tom looked up in her face with just a perceptible twinkle peeping
3229through his gravity.
3230
3231"I know you was meaning for the best, aunty, and so was I with Peter.
3232It done HIM good, too. I never see him get around so since--"
3233
3234"Oh, go 'long with you, Tom, before you aggravate me again. And you
3235try and see if you can't be a good boy, for once, and you needn't take
3236any more medicine."
3237
3238Tom reached school ahead of time. It was noticed that this strange
3239thing had been occurring every day latterly. And now, as usual of late,
3240he hung about the gate of the schoolyard instead of playing with his
3241comrades. He was sick, he said, and he looked it. He tried to seem to
3242be looking everywhere but whither he really was looking--down the road.
3243Presently Jeff Thatcher hove in sight, and Tom's face lighted; he gazed
3244a moment, and then turned sorrowfully away. When Jeff arrived, Tom
3245accosted him; and "led up" warily to opportunities for remark about
3246Becky, but the giddy lad never could see the bait. Tom watched and
3247watched, hoping whenever a frisking frock came in sight, and hating the
3248owner of it as soon as he saw she was not the right one. At last frocks
3249ceased to appear, and he dropped hopelessly into the dumps; he entered
3250the empty schoolhouse and sat down to suffer. Then one more frock
3251passed in at the gate, and Tom's heart gave a great bound. The next
3252instant he was out, and "going on" like an Indian; yelling, laughing,
3253chasing boys, jumping over the fence at risk of life and limb, throwing
3254handsprings, standing on his head--doing all the heroic things he could
3255conceive of, and keeping a furtive eye out, all the while, to see if
3256Becky Thatcher was noticing. But she seemed to be unconscious of it
3257all; she never looked. Could it be possible that she was not aware that
3258he was there? He carried his exploits to her immediate vicinity; came
3259war-whooping around, snatched a boy's cap, hurled it to the roof of the
3260schoolhouse, broke through a group of boys, tumbling them in every
3261direction, and fell sprawling, himself, under Becky's nose, almost
3262upsetting her--and she turned, with her nose in the air, and he heard
3263her say: "Mf! some people think they're mighty smart--always showing
3264off!"
3265
3266Tom's cheeks burned. He gathered himself up and sneaked off, crushed
3267and crestfallen.
3268
3269
3270
3271CHAPTER XIII
3272
3273TOM'S mind was made up now. He was gloomy and desperate. He was a
3274forsaken, friendless boy, he said; nobody loved him; when they found
3275out what they had driven him to, perhaps they would be sorry; he had
3276tried to do right and get along, but they would not let him; since
3277nothing would do them but to be rid of him, let it be so; and let them
3278blame HIM for the consequences--why shouldn't they? What right had the
3279friendless to complain? Yes, they had forced him to it at last: he
3280would lead a life of crime. There was no choice.
3281
3282By this time he was far down Meadow Lane, and the bell for school to
3283"take up" tinkled faintly upon his ear. He sobbed, now, to think he
3284should never, never hear that old familiar sound any more--it was very
3285hard, but it was forced on him; since he was driven out into the cold
3286world, he must submit--but he forgave them. Then the sobs came thick
3287and fast.
3288
3289Just at this point he met his soul's sworn comrade, Joe Harper
3290--hard-eyed, and with evidently a great and dismal purpose in his heart.
3291Plainly here were "two souls with but a single thought." Tom, wiping
3292his eyes with his sleeve, began to blubber out something about a
3293resolution to escape from hard usage and lack of sympathy at home by
3294roaming abroad into the great world never to return; and ended by
3295hoping that Joe would not forget him.
3296
3297But it transpired that this was a request which Joe had just been
3298going to make of Tom, and had come to hunt him up for that purpose. His
3299mother had whipped him for drinking some cream which he had never
3300tasted and knew nothing about; it was plain that she was tired of him
3301and wished him to go; if she felt that way, there was nothing for him
3302to do but succumb; he hoped she would be happy, and never regret having
3303driven her poor boy out into the unfeeling world to suffer and die.
3304
3305As the two boys walked sorrowing along, they made a new compact to
3306stand by each other and be brothers and never separate till death
3307relieved them of their troubles. Then they began to lay their plans.
3308Joe was for being a hermit, and living on crusts in a remote cave, and
3309dying, some time, of cold and want and grief; but after listening to
3310Tom, he conceded that there were some conspicuous advantages about a
3311life of crime, and so he consented to be a pirate.
3312
3313Three miles below St. Petersburg, at a point where the Mississippi
3314River was a trifle over a mile wide, there was a long, narrow, wooded
3315island, with a shallow bar at the head of it, and this offered well as
3316a rendezvous. It was not inhabited; it lay far over toward the further
3317shore, abreast a dense and almost wholly unpeopled forest. So Jackson's
3318Island was chosen. Who were to be the subjects of their piracies was a
3319matter that did not occur to them. Then they hunted up Huckleberry
3320Finn, and he joined them promptly, for all careers were one to him; he
3321was indifferent. They presently separated to meet at a lonely spot on
3322the river-bank two miles above the village at the favorite hour--which
3323was midnight. There was a small log raft there which they meant to
3324capture. Each would bring hooks and lines, and such provision as he
3325could steal in the most dark and mysterious way--as became outlaws. And
3326before the afternoon was done, they had all managed to enjoy the sweet
3327glory of spreading the fact that pretty soon the town would "hear
3328something." All who got this vague hint were cautioned to "be mum and
3329wait."
3330
3331About midnight Tom arrived with a boiled ham and a few trifles,
3332and stopped in a dense undergrowth on a small bluff overlooking the
3333meeting-place. It was starlight, and very still. The mighty river lay
3334like an ocean at rest. Tom listened a moment, but no sound disturbed the
3335quiet. Then he gave a low, distinct whistle. It was answered from under
3336the bluff. Tom whistled twice more; these signals were answered in the
3337same way. Then a guarded voice said:
3338
3339"Who goes there?"
3340
3341"Tom Sawyer, the Black Avenger of the Spanish Main. Name your names."
3342
3343"Huck Finn the Red-Handed, and Joe Harper the Terror of the Seas." Tom
3344had furnished these titles, from his favorite literature.
3345
3346"'Tis well. Give the countersign."
3347
3348Two hoarse whispers delivered the same awful word simultaneously to
3349the brooding night:
3350
3351"BLOOD!"
3352
3353Then Tom tumbled his ham over the bluff and let himself down after it,
3354tearing both skin and clothes to some extent in the effort. There was
3355an easy, comfortable path along the shore under the bluff, but it
3356lacked the advantages of difficulty and danger so valued by a pirate.
3357
3358The Terror of the Seas had brought a side of bacon, and had about worn
3359himself out with getting it there. Finn the Red-Handed had stolen a
3360skillet and a quantity of half-cured leaf tobacco, and had also brought
3361a few corn-cobs to make pipes with. But none of the pirates smoked or
3362"chewed" but himself. The Black Avenger of the Spanish Main said it
3363would never do to start without some fire. That was a wise thought;
3364matches were hardly known there in that day. They saw a fire
3365smouldering upon a great raft a hundred yards above, and they went
3366stealthily thither and helped themselves to a chunk. They made an
3367imposing adventure of it, saying, "Hist!" every now and then, and
3368suddenly halting with finger on lip; moving with hands on imaginary
3369dagger-hilts; and giving orders in dismal whispers that if "the foe"
3370stirred, to "let him have it to the hilt," because "dead men tell no
3371tales." They knew well enough that the raftsmen were all down at the
3372village laying in stores or having a spree, but still that was no
3373excuse for their conducting this thing in an unpiratical way.
3374
3375They shoved off, presently, Tom in command, Huck at the after oar and
3376Joe at the forward. Tom stood amidships, gloomy-browed, and with folded
3377arms, and gave his orders in a low, stern whisper:
3378
3379"Luff, and bring her to the wind!"
3380
3381"Aye-aye, sir!"
3382
3383"Steady, steady-y-y-y!"
3384
3385"Steady it is, sir!"
3386
3387"Let her go off a point!"
3388
3389"Point it is, sir!"
3390
3391As the boys steadily and monotonously drove the raft toward mid-stream
3392it was no doubt understood that these orders were given only for
3393"style," and were not intended to mean anything in particular.
3394
3395"What sail's she carrying?"
3396
3397"Courses, tops'ls, and flying-jib, sir."
3398
3399"Send the r'yals up! Lay out aloft, there, half a dozen of ye
3400--foretopmaststuns'l! Lively, now!"
3401
3402"Aye-aye, sir!"
3403
3404"Shake out that maintogalans'l! Sheets and braces! NOW my hearties!"
3405
3406"Aye-aye, sir!"
3407
3408"Hellum-a-lee--hard a port! Stand by to meet her when she comes! Port,
3409port! NOW, men! With a will! Stead-y-y-y!"
3410
3411"Steady it is, sir!"
3412
3413The raft drew beyond the middle of the river; the boys pointed her
3414head right, and then lay on their oars. The river was not high, so
3415there was not more than a two or three mile current. Hardly a word was
3416said during the next three-quarters of an hour. Now the raft was
3417passing before the distant town. Two or three glimmering lights showed
3418where it lay, peacefully sleeping, beyond the vague vast sweep of
3419star-gemmed water, unconscious of the tremendous event that was happening.
3420The Black Avenger stood still with folded arms, "looking his last" upon
3421the scene of his former joys and his later sufferings, and wishing
3422"she" could see him now, abroad on the wild sea, facing peril and death
3423with dauntless heart, going to his doom with a grim smile on his lips.
3424It was but a small strain on his imagination to remove Jackson's Island
3425beyond eyeshot of the village, and so he "looked his last" with a
3426broken and satisfied heart. The other pirates were looking their last,
3427too; and they all looked so long that they came near letting the
3428current drift them out of the range of the island. But they discovered
3429the danger in time, and made shift to avert it. About two o'clock in
3430the morning the raft grounded on the bar two hundred yards above the
3431head of the island, and they waded back and forth until they had landed
3432their freight. Part of the little raft's belongings consisted of an old
3433sail, and this they spread over a nook in the bushes for a tent to
3434shelter their provisions; but they themselves would sleep in the open
3435air in good weather, as became outlaws.
3436
3437They built a fire against the side of a great log twenty or thirty
3438steps within the sombre depths of the forest, and then cooked some
3439bacon in the frying-pan for supper, and used up half of the corn "pone"
3440stock they had brought. It seemed glorious sport to be feasting in that
3441wild, free way in the virgin forest of an unexplored and uninhabited
3442island, far from the haunts of men, and they said they never would
3443return to civilization. The climbing fire lit up their faces and threw
3444its ruddy glare upon the pillared tree-trunks of their forest temple,
3445and upon the varnished foliage and festooning vines.
3446
3447When the last crisp slice of bacon was gone, and the last allowance of
3448corn pone devoured, the boys stretched themselves out on the grass,
3449filled with contentment. They could have found a cooler place, but they
3450would not deny themselves such a romantic feature as the roasting
3451camp-fire.
3452
3453"AIN'T it gay?" said Joe.
3454
3455"It's NUTS!" said Tom. "What would the boys say if they could see us?"
3456
3457"Say? Well, they'd just die to be here--hey, Hucky!"
3458
3459"I reckon so," said Huckleberry; "anyways, I'm suited. I don't want
3460nothing better'n this. I don't ever get enough to eat, gen'ally--and
3461here they can't come and pick at a feller and bullyrag him so."
3462
3463"It's just the life for me," said Tom. "You don't have to get up,
3464mornings, and you don't have to go to school, and wash, and all that
3465blame foolishness. You see a pirate don't have to do ANYTHING, Joe,
3466when he's ashore, but a hermit HE has to be praying considerable, and
3467then he don't have any fun, anyway, all by himself that way."
3468
3469"Oh yes, that's so," said Joe, "but I hadn't thought much about it,
3470you know. I'd a good deal rather be a pirate, now that I've tried it."
3471
3472"You see," said Tom, "people don't go much on hermits, nowadays, like
3473they used to in old times, but a pirate's always respected. And a
3474hermit's got to sleep on the hardest place he can find, and put
3475sackcloth and ashes on his head, and stand out in the rain, and--"
3476
3477"What does he put sackcloth and ashes on his head for?" inquired Huck.
3478
3479"I dono. But they've GOT to do it. Hermits always do. You'd have to do
3480that if you was a hermit."
3481
3482"Dern'd if I would," said Huck.
3483
3484"Well, what would you do?"
3485
3486"I dono. But I wouldn't do that."
3487
3488"Why, Huck, you'd HAVE to. How'd you get around it?"
3489
3490"Why, I just wouldn't stand it. I'd run away."
3491
3492"Run away! Well, you WOULD be a nice old slouch of a hermit. You'd be
3493a disgrace."
3494
3495The Red-Handed made no response, being better employed. He had
3496finished gouging out a cob, and now he fitted a weed stem to it, loaded
3497it with tobacco, and was pressing a coal to the charge and blowing a
3498cloud of fragrant smoke--he was in the full bloom of luxurious
3499contentment. The other pirates envied him this majestic vice, and
3500secretly resolved to acquire it shortly. Presently Huck said:
3501
3502"What does pirates have to do?"
3503
3504Tom said:
3505
3506"Oh, they have just a bully time--take ships and burn them, and get
3507the money and bury it in awful places in their island where there's
3508ghosts and things to watch it, and kill everybody in the ships--make
3509'em walk a plank."
3510
3511"And they carry the women to the island," said Joe; "they don't kill
3512the women."
3513
3514"No," assented Tom, "they don't kill the women--they're too noble. And
3515the women's always beautiful, too.
3516
3517"And don't they wear the bulliest clothes! Oh no! All gold and silver
3518and di'monds," said Joe, with enthusiasm.
3519
3520"Who?" said Huck.
3521
3522"Why, the pirates."
3523
3524Huck scanned his own clothing forlornly.
3525
3526"I reckon I ain't dressed fitten for a pirate," said he, with a
3527regretful pathos in his voice; "but I ain't got none but these."
3528
3529But the other boys told him the fine clothes would come fast enough,
3530after they should have begun their adventures. They made him understand
3531that his poor rags would do to begin with, though it was customary for
3532wealthy pirates to start with a proper wardrobe.
3533
3534Gradually their talk died out and drowsiness began to steal upon the
3535eyelids of the little waifs. The pipe dropped from the fingers of the
3536Red-Handed, and he slept the sleep of the conscience-free and the
3537weary. The Terror of the Seas and the Black Avenger of the Spanish Main
3538had more difficulty in getting to sleep. They said their prayers
3539inwardly, and lying down, since there was nobody there with authority
3540to make them kneel and recite aloud; in truth, they had a mind not to
3541say them at all, but they were afraid to proceed to such lengths as
3542that, lest they might call down a sudden and special thunderbolt from
3543heaven. Then at once they reached and hovered upon the imminent verge
3544of sleep--but an intruder came, now, that would not "down." It was
3545conscience. They began to feel a vague fear that they had been doing
3546wrong to run away; and next they thought of the stolen meat, and then
3547the real torture came. They tried to argue it away by reminding
3548conscience that they had purloined sweetmeats and apples scores of
3549times; but conscience was not to be appeased by such thin
3550plausibilities; it seemed to them, in the end, that there was no
3551getting around the stubborn fact that taking sweetmeats was only
3552"hooking," while taking bacon and hams and such valuables was plain
3553simple stealing--and there was a command against that in the Bible. So
3554they inwardly resolved that so long as they remained in the business,
3555their piracies should not again be sullied with the crime of stealing.
3556Then conscience granted a truce, and these curiously inconsistent
3557pirates fell peacefully to sleep.
3558
3559
3560
3561CHAPTER XIV
3562
3563WHEN Tom awoke in the morning, he wondered where he was. He sat up and
3564rubbed his eyes and looked around. Then he comprehended. It was the
3565cool gray dawn, and there was a delicious sense of repose and peace in
3566the deep pervading calm and silence of the woods. Not a leaf stirred;
3567not a sound obtruded upon great Nature's meditation. Beaded dewdrops
3568stood upon the leaves and grasses. A white layer of ashes covered the
3569fire, and a thin blue breath of smoke rose straight into the air. Joe
3570and Huck still slept.
3571
3572Now, far away in the woods a bird called; another answered; presently
3573the hammering of a woodpecker was heard. Gradually the cool dim gray of
3574the morning whitened, and as gradually sounds multiplied and life
3575manifested itself. The marvel of Nature shaking off sleep and going to
3576work unfolded itself to the musing boy. A little green worm came
3577crawling over a dewy leaf, lifting two-thirds of his body into the air
3578from time to time and "sniffing around," then proceeding again--for he
3579was measuring, Tom said; and when the worm approached him, of its own
3580accord, he sat as still as a stone, with his hopes rising and falling,
3581by turns, as the creature still came toward him or seemed inclined to
3582go elsewhere; and when at last it considered a painful moment with its
3583curved body in the air and then came decisively down upon Tom's leg and
3584began a journey over him, his whole heart was glad--for that meant that
3585he was going to have a new suit of clothes--without the shadow of a
3586doubt a gaudy piratical uniform. Now a procession of ants appeared,
3587from nowhere in particular, and went about their labors; one struggled
3588manfully by with a dead spider five times as big as itself in its arms,
3589and lugged it straight up a tree-trunk. A brown spotted lady-bug
3590climbed the dizzy height of a grass blade, and Tom bent down close to
3591it and said, "Lady-bug, lady-bug, fly away home, your house is on fire,
3592your children's alone," and she took wing and went off to see about it
3593--which did not surprise the boy, for he knew of old that this insect was
3594credulous about conflagrations, and he had practised upon its
3595simplicity more than once. A tumblebug came next, heaving sturdily at
3596its ball, and Tom touched the creature, to see it shut its legs against
3597its body and pretend to be dead. The birds were fairly rioting by this
3598time. A catbird, the Northern mocker, lit in a tree over Tom's head,
3599and trilled out her imitations of her neighbors in a rapture of
3600enjoyment; then a shrill jay swept down, a flash of blue flame, and
3601stopped on a twig almost within the boy's reach, cocked his head to one
3602side and eyed the strangers with a consuming curiosity; a gray squirrel
3603and a big fellow of the "fox" kind came skurrying along, sitting up at
3604intervals to inspect and chatter at the boys, for the wild things had
3605probably never seen a human being before and scarcely knew whether to
3606be afraid or not. All Nature was wide awake and stirring, now; long
3607lances of sunlight pierced down through the dense foliage far and near,
3608and a few butterflies came fluttering upon the scene.
3609
3610Tom stirred up the other pirates and they all clattered away with a
3611shout, and in a minute or two were stripped and chasing after and
3612tumbling over each other in the shallow limpid water of the white
3613sandbar. They felt no longing for the little village sleeping in the
3614distance beyond the majestic waste of water. A vagrant current or a
3615slight rise in the river had carried off their raft, but this only
3616gratified them, since its going was something like burning the bridge
3617between them and civilization.
3618
3619They came back to camp wonderfully refreshed, glad-hearted, and
3620ravenous; and they soon had the camp-fire blazing up again. Huck found
3621a spring of clear cold water close by, and the boys made cups of broad
3622oak or hickory leaves, and felt that water, sweetened with such a
3623wildwood charm as that, would be a good enough substitute for coffee.
3624While Joe was slicing bacon for breakfast, Tom and Huck asked him to
3625hold on a minute; they stepped to a promising nook in the river-bank
3626and threw in their lines; almost immediately they had reward. Joe had
3627not had time to get impatient before they were back again with some
3628handsome bass, a couple of sun-perch and a small catfish--provisions
3629enough for quite a family. They fried the fish with the bacon, and were
3630astonished; for no fish had ever seemed so delicious before. They did
3631not know that the quicker a fresh-water fish is on the fire after he is
3632caught the better he is; and they reflected little upon what a sauce
3633open-air sleeping, open-air exercise, bathing, and a large ingredient
3634of hunger make, too.
3635
3636They lay around in the shade, after breakfast, while Huck had a smoke,
3637and then went off through the woods on an exploring expedition. They
3638tramped gayly along, over decaying logs, through tangled underbrush,
3639among solemn monarchs of the forest, hung from their crowns to the
3640ground with a drooping regalia of grape-vines. Now and then they came
3641upon snug nooks carpeted with grass and jeweled with flowers.
3642
3643They found plenty of things to be delighted with, but nothing to be
3644astonished at. They discovered that the island was about three miles
3645long and a quarter of a mile wide, and that the shore it lay closest to
3646was only separated from it by a narrow channel hardly two hundred yards
3647wide. They took a swim about every hour, so it was close upon the
3648middle of the afternoon when they got back to camp. They were too
3649hungry to stop to fish, but they fared sumptuously upon cold ham, and
3650then threw themselves down in the shade to talk. But the talk soon
3651began to drag, and then died. The stillness, the solemnity that brooded
3652in the woods, and the sense of loneliness, began to tell upon the
3653spirits of the boys. They fell to thinking. A sort of undefined longing
3654crept upon them. This took dim shape, presently--it was budding
3655homesickness. Even Finn the Red-Handed was dreaming of his doorsteps
3656and empty hogsheads. But they were all ashamed of their weakness, and
3657none was brave enough to speak his thought.
3658
3659For some time, now, the boys had been dully conscious of a peculiar
3660sound in the distance, just as one sometimes is of the ticking of a
3661clock which he takes no distinct note of. But now this mysterious sound
3662became more pronounced, and forced a recognition. The boys started,
3663glanced at each other, and then each assumed a listening attitude.
3664There was a long silence, profound and unbroken; then a deep, sullen
3665boom came floating down out of the distance.
3666
3667"What is it!" exclaimed Joe, under his breath.
3668
3669"I wonder," said Tom in a whisper.
3670
3671"'Tain't thunder," said Huckleberry, in an awed tone, "becuz thunder--"
3672
3673"Hark!" said Tom. "Listen--don't talk."
3674
3675They waited a time that seemed an age, and then the same muffled boom
3676troubled the solemn hush.
3677
3678"Let's go and see."
3679
3680They sprang to their feet and hurried to the shore toward the town.
3681They parted the bushes on the bank and peered out over the water. The
3682little steam ferryboat was about a mile below the village, drifting
3683with the current. Her broad deck seemed crowded with people. There were
3684a great many skiffs rowing about or floating with the stream in the
3685neighborhood of the ferryboat, but the boys could not determine what
3686the men in them were doing. Presently a great jet of white smoke burst
3687from the ferryboat's side, and as it expanded and rose in a lazy cloud,
3688that same dull throb of sound was borne to the listeners again.
3689
3690"I know now!" exclaimed Tom; "somebody's drownded!"
3691
3692"That's it!" said Huck; "they done that last summer, when Bill Turner
3693got drownded; they shoot a cannon over the water, and that makes him
3694come up to the top. Yes, and they take loaves of bread and put
3695quicksilver in 'em and set 'em afloat, and wherever there's anybody
3696that's drownded, they'll float right there and stop."
3697
3698"Yes, I've heard about that," said Joe. "I wonder what makes the bread
3699do that."
3700
3701"Oh, it ain't the bread, so much," said Tom; "I reckon it's mostly
3702what they SAY over it before they start it out."
3703
3704"But they don't say anything over it," said Huck. "I've seen 'em and
3705they don't."
3706
3707"Well, that's funny," said Tom. "But maybe they say it to themselves.
3708Of COURSE they do. Anybody might know that."
3709
3710The other boys agreed that there was reason in what Tom said, because
3711an ignorant lump of bread, uninstructed by an incantation, could not be
3712expected to act very intelligently when set upon an errand of such
3713gravity.
3714
3715"By jings, I wish I was over there, now," said Joe.
3716
3717"I do too" said Huck "I'd give heaps to know who it is."
3718
3719The boys still listened and watched. Presently a revealing thought
3720flashed through Tom's mind, and he exclaimed:
3721
3722"Boys, I know who's drownded--it's us!"
3723
3724They felt like heroes in an instant. Here was a gorgeous triumph; they
3725were missed; they were mourned; hearts were breaking on their account;
3726tears were being shed; accusing memories of unkindness to these poor
3727lost lads were rising up, and unavailing regrets and remorse were being
3728indulged; and best of all, the departed were the talk of the whole
3729town, and the envy of all the boys, as far as this dazzling notoriety
3730was concerned. This was fine. It was worth while to be a pirate, after
3731all.
3732
3733As twilight drew on, the ferryboat went back to her accustomed
3734business and the skiffs disappeared. The pirates returned to camp. They
3735were jubilant with vanity over their new grandeur and the illustrious
3736trouble they were making. They caught fish, cooked supper and ate it,
3737and then fell to guessing at what the village was thinking and saying
3738about them; and the pictures they drew of the public distress on their
3739account were gratifying to look upon--from their point of view. But
3740when the shadows of night closed them in, they gradually ceased to
3741talk, and sat gazing into the fire, with their minds evidently
3742wandering elsewhere. The excitement was gone, now, and Tom and Joe
3743could not keep back thoughts of certain persons at home who were not
3744enjoying this fine frolic as much as they were. Misgivings came; they
3745grew troubled and unhappy; a sigh or two escaped, unawares. By and by
3746Joe timidly ventured upon a roundabout "feeler" as to how the others
3747might look upon a return to civilization--not right now, but--
3748
3749Tom withered him with derision! Huck, being uncommitted as yet, joined
3750in with Tom, and the waverer quickly "explained," and was glad to get
3751out of the scrape with as little taint of chicken-hearted homesickness
3752clinging to his garments as he could. Mutiny was effectually laid to
3753rest for the moment.
3754
3755As the night deepened, Huck began to nod, and presently to snore. Joe
3756followed next. Tom lay upon his elbow motionless, for some time,
3757watching the two intently. At last he got up cautiously, on his knees,
3758and went searching among the grass and the flickering reflections flung
3759by the camp-fire. He picked up and inspected several large
3760semi-cylinders of the thin white bark of a sycamore, and finally chose
3761two which seemed to suit him. Then he knelt by the fire and painfully
3762wrote something upon each of these with his "red keel"; one he rolled up
3763and put in his jacket pocket, and the other he put in Joe's hat and
3764removed it to a little distance from the owner. And he also put into the
3765hat certain schoolboy treasures of almost inestimable value--among them
3766a lump of chalk, an India-rubber ball, three fishhooks, and one of that
3767kind of marbles known as a "sure 'nough crystal." Then he tiptoed his
3768way cautiously among the trees till he felt that he was out of hearing,
3769and straightway broke into a keen run in the direction of the sandbar.
3770
3771
3772
3773CHAPTER XV
3774
3775A FEW minutes later Tom was in the shoal water of the bar, wading
3776toward the Illinois shore. Before the depth reached his middle he was
3777half-way over; the current would permit no more wading, now, so he
3778struck out confidently to swim the remaining hundred yards. He swam
3779quartering upstream, but still was swept downward rather faster than he
3780had expected. However, he reached the shore finally, and drifted along
3781till he found a low place and drew himself out. He put his hand on his
3782jacket pocket, found his piece of bark safe, and then struck through
3783the woods, following the shore, with streaming garments. Shortly before
3784ten o'clock he came out into an open place opposite the village, and
3785saw the ferryboat lying in the shadow of the trees and the high bank.
3786Everything was quiet under the blinking stars. He crept down the bank,
3787watching with all his eyes, slipped into the water, swam three or four
3788strokes and climbed into the skiff that did "yawl" duty at the boat's
3789stern. He laid himself down under the thwarts and waited, panting.
3790
3791Presently the cracked bell tapped and a voice gave the order to "cast
3792off." A minute or two later the skiff's head was standing high up,
3793against the boat's swell, and the voyage was begun. Tom felt happy in
3794his success, for he knew it was the boat's last trip for the night. At
3795the end of a long twelve or fifteen minutes the wheels stopped, and Tom
3796slipped overboard and swam ashore in the dusk, landing fifty yards
3797downstream, out of danger of possible stragglers.
3798
3799He flew along unfrequented alleys, and shortly found himself at his
3800aunt's back fence. He climbed over, approached the "ell," and looked in
3801at the sitting-room window, for a light was burning there. There sat
3802Aunt Polly, Sid, Mary, and Joe Harper's mother, grouped together,
3803talking. They were by the bed, and the bed was between them and the
3804door. Tom went to the door and began to softly lift the latch; then he
3805pressed gently and the door yielded a crack; he continued pushing
3806cautiously, and quaking every time it creaked, till he judged he might
3807squeeze through on his knees; so he put his head through and began,
3808warily.
3809
3810"What makes the candle blow so?" said Aunt Polly. Tom hurried up.
3811"Why, that door's open, I believe. Why, of course it is. No end of
3812strange things now. Go 'long and shut it, Sid."
3813
3814Tom disappeared under the bed just in time. He lay and "breathed"
3815himself for a time, and then crept to where he could almost touch his
3816aunt's foot.
3817
3818"But as I was saying," said Aunt Polly, "he warn't BAD, so to say
3819--only mischEEvous. Only just giddy, and harum-scarum, you know. He
3820warn't any more responsible than a colt. HE never meant any harm, and
3821he was the best-hearted boy that ever was"--and she began to cry.
3822
3823"It was just so with my Joe--always full of his devilment, and up to
3824every kind of mischief, but he was just as unselfish and kind as he
3825could be--and laws bless me, to think I went and whipped him for taking
3826that cream, never once recollecting that I throwed it out myself
3827because it was sour, and I never to see him again in this world, never,
3828never, never, poor abused boy!" And Mrs. Harper sobbed as if her heart
3829would break.
3830
3831"I hope Tom's better off where he is," said Sid, "but if he'd been
3832better in some ways--"
3833
3834"SID!" Tom felt the glare of the old lady's eye, though he could not
3835see it. "Not a word against my Tom, now that he's gone! God'll take
3836care of HIM--never you trouble YOURself, sir! Oh, Mrs. Harper, I don't
3837know how to give him up! I don't know how to give him up! He was such a
3838comfort to me, although he tormented my old heart out of me, 'most."
3839
3840"The Lord giveth and the Lord hath taken away--Blessed be the name of
3841the Lord! But it's so hard--Oh, it's so hard! Only last Saturday my
3842Joe busted a firecracker right under my nose and I knocked him
3843sprawling. Little did I know then, how soon--Oh, if it was to do over
3844again I'd hug him and bless him for it."
3845
3846"Yes, yes, yes, I know just how you feel, Mrs. Harper, I know just
3847exactly how you feel. No longer ago than yesterday noon, my Tom took
3848and filled the cat full of Pain-killer, and I did think the cretur
3849would tear the house down. And God forgive me, I cracked Tom's head
3850with my thimble, poor boy, poor dead boy. But he's out of all his
3851troubles now. And the last words I ever heard him say was to reproach--"
3852
3853But this memory was too much for the old lady, and she broke entirely
3854down. Tom was snuffling, now, himself--and more in pity of himself than
3855anybody else. He could hear Mary crying, and putting in a kindly word
3856for him from time to time. He began to have a nobler opinion of himself
3857than ever before. Still, he was sufficiently touched by his aunt's
3858grief to long to rush out from under the bed and overwhelm her with
3859joy--and the theatrical gorgeousness of the thing appealed strongly to
3860his nature, too, but he resisted and lay still.
3861
3862He went on listening, and gathered by odds and ends that it was
3863conjectured at first that the boys had got drowned while taking a swim;
3864then the small raft had been missed; next, certain boys said the
3865missing lads had promised that the village should "hear something"
3866soon; the wise-heads had "put this and that together" and decided that
3867the lads had gone off on that raft and would turn up at the next town
3868below, presently; but toward noon the raft had been found, lodged
3869against the Missouri shore some five or six miles below the village
3870--and then hope perished; they must be drowned, else hunger would have
3871driven them home by nightfall if not sooner. It was believed that the
3872search for the bodies had been a fruitless effort merely because the
3873drowning must have occurred in mid-channel, since the boys, being good
3874swimmers, would otherwise have escaped to shore. This was Wednesday
3875night. If the bodies continued missing until Sunday, all hope would be
3876given over, and the funerals would be preached on that morning. Tom
3877shuddered.
3878
3879Mrs. Harper gave a sobbing good-night and turned to go. Then with a
3880mutual impulse the two bereaved women flung themselves into each
3881other's arms and had a good, consoling cry, and then parted. Aunt Polly
3882was tender far beyond her wont, in her good-night to Sid and Mary. Sid
3883snuffled a bit and Mary went off crying with all her heart.
3884
3885Aunt Polly knelt down and prayed for Tom so touchingly, so
3886appealingly, and with such measureless love in her words and her old
3887trembling voice, that he was weltering in tears again, long before she
3888was through.
3889
3890He had to keep still long after she went to bed, for she kept making
3891broken-hearted ejaculations from time to time, tossing unrestfully, and
3892turning over. But at last she was still, only moaning a little in her
3893sleep. Now the boy stole out, rose gradually by the bedside, shaded the
3894candle-light with his hand, and stood regarding her. His heart was full
3895of pity for her. He took out his sycamore scroll and placed it by the
3896candle. But something occurred to him, and he lingered considering. His
3897face lighted with a happy solution of his thought; he put the bark
3898hastily in his pocket. Then he bent over and kissed the faded lips, and
3899straightway made his stealthy exit, latching the door behind him.
3900
3901He threaded his way back to the ferry landing, found nobody at large
3902there, and walked boldly on board the boat, for he knew she was
3903tenantless except that there was a watchman, who always turned in and
3904slept like a graven image. He untied the skiff at the stern, slipped
3905into it, and was soon rowing cautiously upstream. When he had pulled a
3906mile above the village, he started quartering across and bent himself
3907stoutly to his work. He hit the landing on the other side neatly, for
3908this was a familiar bit of work to him. He was moved to capture the
3909skiff, arguing that it might be considered a ship and therefore
3910legitimate prey for a pirate, but he knew a thorough search would be
3911made for it and that might end in revelations. So he stepped ashore and
3912entered the woods.
3913
3914He sat down and took a long rest, torturing himself meanwhile to keep
3915awake, and then started warily down the home-stretch. The night was far
3916spent. It was broad daylight before he found himself fairly abreast the
3917island bar. He rested again until the sun was well up and gilding the
3918great river with its splendor, and then he plunged into the stream. A
3919little later he paused, dripping, upon the threshold of the camp, and
3920heard Joe say:
3921
3922"No, Tom's true-blue, Huck, and he'll come back. He won't desert. He
3923knows that would be a disgrace to a pirate, and Tom's too proud for
3924that sort of thing. He's up to something or other. Now I wonder what?"
3925
3926"Well, the things is ours, anyway, ain't they?"
3927
3928"Pretty near, but not yet, Huck. The writing says they are if he ain't
3929back here to breakfast."
3930
3931"Which he is!" exclaimed Tom, with fine dramatic effect, stepping
3932grandly into camp.
3933
3934A sumptuous breakfast of bacon and fish was shortly provided, and as
3935the boys set to work upon it, Tom recounted (and adorned) his
3936adventures. They were a vain and boastful company of heroes when the
3937tale was done. Then Tom hid himself away in a shady nook to sleep till
3938noon, and the other pirates got ready to fish and explore.
3939
3940
3941
3942CHAPTER XVI
3943
3944AFTER dinner all the gang turned out to hunt for turtle eggs on the
3945bar. They went about poking sticks into the sand, and when they found a
3946soft place they went down on their knees and dug with their hands.
3947Sometimes they would take fifty or sixty eggs out of one hole. They
3948were perfectly round white things a trifle smaller than an English
3949walnut. They had a famous fried-egg feast that night, and another on
3950Friday morning.
3951
3952After breakfast they went whooping and prancing out on the bar, and
3953chased each other round and round, shedding clothes as they went, until
3954they were naked, and then continued the frolic far away up the shoal
3955water of the bar, against the stiff current, which latter tripped their
3956legs from under them from time to time and greatly increased the fun.
3957And now and then they stooped in a group and splashed water in each
3958other's faces with their palms, gradually approaching each other, with
3959averted faces to avoid the strangling sprays, and finally gripping and
3960struggling till the best man ducked his neighbor, and then they all
3961went under in a tangle of white legs and arms and came up blowing,
3962sputtering, laughing, and gasping for breath at one and the same time.
3963
3964When they were well exhausted, they would run out and sprawl on the
3965dry, hot sand, and lie there and cover themselves up with it, and by
3966and by break for the water again and go through the original
3967performance once more. Finally it occurred to them that their naked
3968skin represented flesh-colored "tights" very fairly; so they drew a
3969ring in the sand and had a circus--with three clowns in it, for none
3970would yield this proudest post to his neighbor.
3971
3972Next they got their marbles and played "knucks" and "ring-taw" and
3973"keeps" till that amusement grew stale. Then Joe and Huck had another
3974swim, but Tom would not venture, because he found that in kicking off
3975his trousers he had kicked his string of rattlesnake rattles off his
3976ankle, and he wondered how he had escaped cramp so long without the
3977protection of this mysterious charm. He did not venture again until he
3978had found it, and by that time the other boys were tired and ready to
3979rest. They gradually wandered apart, dropped into the "dumps," and fell
3980to gazing longingly across the wide river to where the village lay
3981drowsing in the sun. Tom found himself writing "BECKY" in the sand with
3982his big toe; he scratched it out, and was angry with himself for his
3983weakness. But he wrote it again, nevertheless; he could not help it. He
3984erased it once more and then took himself out of temptation by driving
3985the other boys together and joining them.
3986
3987But Joe's spirits had gone down almost beyond resurrection. He was so
3988homesick that he could hardly endure the misery of it. The tears lay
3989very near the surface. Huck was melancholy, too. Tom was downhearted,
3990but tried hard not to show it. He had a secret which he was not ready
3991to tell, yet, but if this mutinous depression was not broken up soon,
3992he would have to bring it out. He said, with a great show of
3993cheerfulness:
3994
3995"I bet there's been pirates on this island before, boys. We'll explore
3996it again. They've hid treasures here somewhere. How'd you feel to light
3997on a rotten chest full of gold and silver--hey?"
3998
3999But it roused only faint enthusiasm, which faded out, with no reply.
4000Tom tried one or two other seductions; but they failed, too. It was
4001discouraging work. Joe sat poking up the sand with a stick and looking
4002very gloomy. Finally he said:
4003
4004"Oh, boys, let's give it up. I want to go home. It's so lonesome."
4005
4006"Oh no, Joe, you'll feel better by and by," said Tom. "Just think of
4007the fishing that's here."
4008
4009"I don't care for fishing. I want to go home."
4010
4011"But, Joe, there ain't such another swimming-place anywhere."
4012
4013"Swimming's no good. I don't seem to care for it, somehow, when there
4014ain't anybody to say I sha'n't go in. I mean to go home."
4015
4016"Oh, shucks! Baby! You want to see your mother, I reckon."
4017
4018"Yes, I DO want to see my mother--and you would, too, if you had one.
4019I ain't any more baby than you are." And Joe snuffled a little.
4020
4021"Well, we'll let the cry-baby go home to his mother, won't we, Huck?
4022Poor thing--does it want to see its mother? And so it shall. You like
4023it here, don't you, Huck? We'll stay, won't we?"
4024
4025Huck said, "Y-e-s"--without any heart in it.
4026
4027"I'll never speak to you again as long as I live," said Joe, rising.
4028"There now!" And he moved moodily away and began to dress himself.
4029
4030"Who cares!" said Tom. "Nobody wants you to. Go 'long home and get
4031laughed at. Oh, you're a nice pirate. Huck and me ain't cry-babies.
4032We'll stay, won't we, Huck? Let him go if he wants to. I reckon we can
4033get along without him, per'aps."
4034
4035But Tom was uneasy, nevertheless, and was alarmed to see Joe go
4036sullenly on with his dressing. And then it was discomforting to see
4037Huck eying Joe's preparations so wistfully, and keeping up such an
4038ominous silence. Presently, without a parting word, Joe began to wade
4039off toward the Illinois shore. Tom's heart began to sink. He glanced at
4040Huck. Huck could not bear the look, and dropped his eyes. Then he said:
4041
4042"I want to go, too, Tom. It was getting so lonesome anyway, and now
4043it'll be worse. Let's us go, too, Tom."
4044
4045"I won't! You can all go, if you want to. I mean to stay."
4046
4047"Tom, I better go."
4048
4049"Well, go 'long--who's hendering you."
4050
4051Huck began to pick up his scattered clothes. He said:
4052
4053"Tom, I wisht you'd come, too. Now you think it over. We'll wait for
4054you when we get to shore."
4055
4056"Well, you'll wait a blame long time, that's all."
4057
4058Huck started sorrowfully away, and Tom stood looking after him, with a
4059strong desire tugging at his heart to yield his pride and go along too.
4060He hoped the boys would stop, but they still waded slowly on. It
4061suddenly dawned on Tom that it was become very lonely and still. He
4062made one final struggle with his pride, and then darted after his
4063comrades, yelling:
4064
4065"Wait! Wait! I want to tell you something!"
4066
4067They presently stopped and turned around. When he got to where they
4068were, he began unfolding his secret, and they listened moodily till at
4069last they saw the "point" he was driving at, and then they set up a
4070war-whoop of applause and said it was "splendid!" and said if he had
4071told them at first, they wouldn't have started away. He made a plausible
4072excuse; but his real reason had been the fear that not even the secret
4073would keep them with him any very great length of time, and so he had
4074meant to hold it in reserve as a last seduction.
4075
4076The lads came gayly back and went at their sports again with a will,
4077chattering all the time about Tom's stupendous plan and admiring the
4078genius of it. After a dainty egg and fish dinner, Tom said he wanted to
4079learn to smoke, now. Joe caught at the idea and said he would like to
4080try, too. So Huck made pipes and filled them. These novices had never
4081smoked anything before but cigars made of grape-vine, and they "bit"
4082the tongue, and were not considered manly anyway.
4083
4084Now they stretched themselves out on their elbows and began to puff,
4085charily, and with slender confidence. The smoke had an unpleasant
4086taste, and they gagged a little, but Tom said:
4087
4088"Why, it's just as easy! If I'd a knowed this was all, I'd a learnt
4089long ago."
4090
4091"So would I," said Joe. "It's just nothing."
4092
4093"Why, many a time I've looked at people smoking, and thought well I
4094wish I could do that; but I never thought I could," said Tom.
4095
4096"That's just the way with me, hain't it, Huck? You've heard me talk
4097just that way--haven't you, Huck? I'll leave it to Huck if I haven't."
4098
4099"Yes--heaps of times," said Huck.
4100
4101"Well, I have too," said Tom; "oh, hundreds of times. Once down by the
4102slaughter-house. Don't you remember, Huck? Bob Tanner was there, and
4103Johnny Miller, and Jeff Thatcher, when I said it. Don't you remember,
4104Huck, 'bout me saying that?"
4105
4106"Yes, that's so," said Huck. "That was the day after I lost a white
4107alley. No, 'twas the day before."
4108
4109"There--I told you so," said Tom. "Huck recollects it."
4110
4111"I bleeve I could smoke this pipe all day," said Joe. "I don't feel
4112sick."
4113
4114"Neither do I," said Tom. "I could smoke it all day. But I bet you
4115Jeff Thatcher couldn't."
4116
4117"Jeff Thatcher! Why, he'd keel over just with two draws. Just let him
4118try it once. HE'D see!"
4119
4120"I bet he would. And Johnny Miller--I wish could see Johnny Miller
4121tackle it once."
4122
4123"Oh, don't I!" said Joe. "Why, I bet you Johnny Miller couldn't any
4124more do this than nothing. Just one little snifter would fetch HIM."
4125
4126"'Deed it would, Joe. Say--I wish the boys could see us now."
4127
4128"So do I."
4129
4130"Say--boys, don't say anything about it, and some time when they're
4131around, I'll come up to you and say, 'Joe, got a pipe? I want a smoke.'
4132And you'll say, kind of careless like, as if it warn't anything, you'll
4133say, 'Yes, I got my OLD pipe, and another one, but my tobacker ain't
4134very good.' And I'll say, 'Oh, that's all right, if it's STRONG
4135enough.' And then you'll out with the pipes, and we'll light up just as
4136ca'm, and then just see 'em look!"
4137
4138"By jings, that'll be gay, Tom! I wish it was NOW!"
4139
4140"So do I! And when we tell 'em we learned when we was off pirating,
4141won't they wish they'd been along?"
4142
4143"Oh, I reckon not! I'll just BET they will!"
4144
4145So the talk ran on. But presently it began to flag a trifle, and grow
4146disjointed. The silences widened; the expectoration marvellously
4147increased. Every pore inside the boys' cheeks became a spouting
4148fountain; they could scarcely bail out the cellars under their tongues
4149fast enough to prevent an inundation; little overflowings down their
4150throats occurred in spite of all they could do, and sudden retchings
4151followed every time. Both boys were looking very pale and miserable,
4152now. Joe's pipe dropped from his nerveless fingers. Tom's followed.
4153Both fountains were going furiously and both pumps bailing with might
4154and main. Joe said feebly:
4155
4156"I've lost my knife. I reckon I better go and find it."
4157
4158Tom said, with quivering lips and halting utterance:
4159
4160"I'll help you. You go over that way and I'll hunt around by the
4161spring. No, you needn't come, Huck--we can find it."
4162
4163So Huck sat down again, and waited an hour. Then he found it lonesome,
4164and went to find his comrades. They were wide apart in the woods, both
4165very pale, both fast asleep. But something informed him that if they
4166had had any trouble they had got rid of it.
4167
4168They were not talkative at supper that night. They had a humble look,
4169and when Huck prepared his pipe after the meal and was going to prepare
4170theirs, they said no, they were not feeling very well--something they
4171ate at dinner had disagreed with them.
4172
4173About midnight Joe awoke, and called the boys. There was a brooding
4174oppressiveness in the air that seemed to bode something. The boys
4175huddled themselves together and sought the friendly companionship of
4176the fire, though the dull dead heat of the breathless atmosphere was
4177stifling. They sat still, intent and waiting. The solemn hush
4178continued. Beyond the light of the fire everything was swallowed up in
4179the blackness of darkness. Presently there came a quivering glow that
4180vaguely revealed the foliage for a moment and then vanished. By and by
4181another came, a little stronger. Then another. Then a faint moan came
4182sighing through the branches of the forest and the boys felt a fleeting
4183breath upon their cheeks, and shuddered with the fancy that the Spirit
4184of the Night had gone by. There was a pause. Now a weird flash turned
4185night into day and showed every little grass-blade, separate and
4186distinct, that grew about their feet. And it showed three white,
4187startled faces, too. A deep peal of thunder went rolling and tumbling
4188down the heavens and lost itself in sullen rumblings in the distance. A
4189sweep of chilly air passed by, rustling all the leaves and snowing the
4190flaky ashes broadcast about the fire. Another fierce glare lit up the
4191forest and an instant crash followed that seemed to rend the tree-tops
4192right over the boys' heads. They clung together in terror, in the thick
4193gloom that followed. A few big rain-drops fell pattering upon the
4194leaves.
4195
4196"Quick! boys, go for the tent!" exclaimed Tom.
4197
4198They sprang away, stumbling over roots and among vines in the dark, no
4199two plunging in the same direction. A furious blast roared through the
4200trees, making everything sing as it went. One blinding flash after
4201another came, and peal on peal of deafening thunder. And now a
4202drenching rain poured down and the rising hurricane drove it in sheets
4203along the ground. The boys cried out to each other, but the roaring
4204wind and the booming thunder-blasts drowned their voices utterly.
4205However, one by one they straggled in at last and took shelter under
4206the tent, cold, scared, and streaming with water; but to have company
4207in misery seemed something to be grateful for. They could not talk, the
4208old sail flapped so furiously, even if the other noises would have
4209allowed them. The tempest rose higher and higher, and presently the
4210sail tore loose from its fastenings and went winging away on the blast.
4211The boys seized each others' hands and fled, with many tumblings and
4212bruises, to the shelter of a great oak that stood upon the river-bank.
4213Now the battle was at its highest. Under the ceaseless conflagration of
4214lightning that flamed in the skies, everything below stood out in
4215clean-cut and shadowless distinctness: the bending trees, the billowy
4216river, white with foam, the driving spray of spume-flakes, the dim
4217outlines of the high bluffs on the other side, glimpsed through the
4218drifting cloud-rack and the slanting veil of rain. Every little while
4219some giant tree yielded the fight and fell crashing through the younger
4220growth; and the unflagging thunder-peals came now in ear-splitting
4221explosive bursts, keen and sharp, and unspeakably appalling. The storm
4222culminated in one matchless effort that seemed likely to tear the island
4223to pieces, burn it up, drown it to the tree-tops, blow it away, and
4224deafen every creature in it, all at one and the same moment. It was a
4225wild night for homeless young heads to be out in.
4226
4227But at last the battle was done, and the forces retired with weaker
4228and weaker threatenings and grumblings, and peace resumed her sway. The
4229boys went back to camp, a good deal awed; but they found there was
4230still something to be thankful for, because the great sycamore, the
4231shelter of their beds, was a ruin, now, blasted by the lightnings, and
4232they were not under it when the catastrophe happened.
4233
4234Everything in camp was drenched, the camp-fire as well; for they were
4235but heedless lads, like their generation, and had made no provision
4236against rain. Here was matter for dismay, for they were soaked through
4237and chilled. They were eloquent in their distress; but they presently
4238discovered that the fire had eaten so far up under the great log it had
4239been built against (where it curved upward and separated itself from
4240the ground), that a handbreadth or so of it had escaped wetting; so
4241they patiently wrought until, with shreds and bark gathered from the
4242under sides of sheltered logs, they coaxed the fire to burn again. Then
4243they piled on great dead boughs till they had a roaring furnace, and
4244were glad-hearted once more. They dried their boiled ham and had a
4245feast, and after that they sat by the fire and expanded and glorified
4246their midnight adventure until morning, for there was not a dry spot to
4247sleep on, anywhere around.
4248
4249As the sun began to steal in upon the boys, drowsiness came over them,
4250and they went out on the sandbar and lay down to sleep. They got
4251scorched out by and by, and drearily set about getting breakfast. After
4252the meal they felt rusty, and stiff-jointed, and a little homesick once
4253more. Tom saw the signs, and fell to cheering up the pirates as well as
4254he could. But they cared nothing for marbles, or circus, or swimming,
4255or anything. He reminded them of the imposing secret, and raised a ray
4256of cheer. While it lasted, he got them interested in a new device. This
4257was to knock off being pirates, for a while, and be Indians for a
4258change. They were attracted by this idea; so it was not long before
4259they were stripped, and striped from head to heel with black mud, like
4260so many zebras--all of them chiefs, of course--and then they went
4261tearing through the woods to attack an English settlement.
4262
4263By and by they separated into three hostile tribes, and darted upon
4264each other from ambush with dreadful war-whoops, and killed and scalped
4265each other by thousands. It was a gory day. Consequently it was an
4266extremely satisfactory one.
4267
4268They assembled in camp toward supper-time, hungry and happy; but now a
4269difficulty arose--hostile Indians could not break the bread of
4270hospitality together without first making peace, and this was a simple
4271impossibility without smoking a pipe of peace. There was no other
4272process that ever they had heard of. Two of the savages almost wished
4273they had remained pirates. However, there was no other way; so with
4274such show of cheerfulness as they could muster they called for the pipe
4275and took their whiff as it passed, in due form.
4276
4277And behold, they were glad they had gone into savagery, for they had
4278gained something; they found that they could now smoke a little without
4279having to go and hunt for a lost knife; they did not get sick enough to
4280be seriously uncomfortable. They were not likely to fool away this high
4281promise for lack of effort. No, they practised cautiously, after
4282supper, with right fair success, and so they spent a jubilant evening.
4283They were prouder and happier in their new acquirement than they would
4284have been in the scalping and skinning of the Six Nations. We will
4285leave them to smoke and chatter and brag, since we have no further use
4286for them at present.
4287
4288
4289
4290CHAPTER XVII
4291
4292BUT there was no hilarity in the little town that same tranquil
4293Saturday afternoon. The Harpers, and Aunt Polly's family, were being
4294put into mourning, with great grief and many tears. An unusual quiet
4295possessed the village, although it was ordinarily quiet enough, in all
4296conscience. The villagers conducted their concerns with an absent air,
4297and talked little; but they sighed often. The Saturday holiday seemed a
4298burden to the children. They had no heart in their sports, and
4299gradually gave them up.
4300
4301In the afternoon Becky Thatcher found herself moping about the
4302deserted schoolhouse yard, and feeling very melancholy. But she found
4303nothing there to comfort her. She soliloquized:
4304
4305"Oh, if I only had a brass andiron-knob again! But I haven't got
4306anything now to remember him by." And she choked back a little sob.
4307
4308Presently she stopped, and said to herself:
4309
4310"It was right here. Oh, if it was to do over again, I wouldn't say
4311that--I wouldn't say it for the whole world. But he's gone now; I'll
4312never, never, never see him any more."
4313
4314This thought broke her down, and she wandered away, with tears rolling
4315down her cheeks. Then quite a group of boys and girls--playmates of
4316Tom's and Joe's--came by, and stood looking over the paling fence and
4317talking in reverent tones of how Tom did so-and-so the last time they
4318saw him, and how Joe said this and that small trifle (pregnant with
4319awful prophecy, as they could easily see now!)--and each speaker
4320pointed out the exact spot where the lost lads stood at the time, and
4321then added something like "and I was a-standing just so--just as I am
4322now, and as if you was him--I was as close as that--and he smiled, just
4323this way--and then something seemed to go all over me, like--awful, you
4324know--and I never thought what it meant, of course, but I can see now!"
4325
4326Then there was a dispute about who saw the dead boys last in life, and
4327many claimed that dismal distinction, and offered evidences, more or
4328less tampered with by the witness; and when it was ultimately decided
4329who DID see the departed last, and exchanged the last words with them,
4330the lucky parties took upon themselves a sort of sacred importance, and
4331were gaped at and envied by all the rest. One poor chap, who had no
4332other grandeur to offer, said with tolerably manifest pride in the
4333remembrance:
4334
4335"Well, Tom Sawyer he licked me once."
4336
4337But that bid for glory was a failure. Most of the boys could say that,
4338and so that cheapened the distinction too much. The group loitered
4339away, still recalling memories of the lost heroes, in awed voices.
4340
4341When the Sunday-school hour was finished, the next morning, the bell
4342began to toll, instead of ringing in the usual way. It was a very still
4343Sabbath, and the mournful sound seemed in keeping with the musing hush
4344that lay upon nature. The villagers began to gather, loitering a moment
4345in the vestibule to converse in whispers about the sad event. But there
4346was no whispering in the house; only the funereal rustling of dresses
4347as the women gathered to their seats disturbed the silence there. None
4348could remember when the little church had been so full before. There
4349was finally a waiting pause, an expectant dumbness, and then Aunt Polly
4350entered, followed by Sid and Mary, and they by the Harper family, all
4351in deep black, and the whole congregation, the old minister as well,
4352rose reverently and stood until the mourners were seated in the front
4353pew. There was another communing silence, broken at intervals by
4354muffled sobs, and then the minister spread his hands abroad and prayed.
4355A moving hymn was sung, and the text followed: "I am the Resurrection
4356and the Life."
4357
4358As the service proceeded, the clergyman drew such pictures of the
4359graces, the winning ways, and the rare promise of the lost lads that
4360every soul there, thinking he recognized these pictures, felt a pang in
4361remembering that he had persistently blinded himself to them always
4362before, and had as persistently seen only faults and flaws in the poor
4363boys. The minister related many a touching incident in the lives of the
4364departed, too, which illustrated their sweet, generous natures, and the
4365people could easily see, now, how noble and beautiful those episodes
4366were, and remembered with grief that at the time they occurred they had
4367seemed rank rascalities, well deserving of the cowhide. The
4368congregation became more and more moved, as the pathetic tale went on,
4369till at last the whole company broke down and joined the weeping
4370mourners in a chorus of anguished sobs, the preacher himself giving way
4371to his feelings, and crying in the pulpit.
4372
4373There was a rustle in the gallery, which nobody noticed; a moment
4374later the church door creaked; the minister raised his streaming eyes
4375above his handkerchief, and stood transfixed! First one and then
4376another pair of eyes followed the minister's, and then almost with one
4377impulse the congregation rose and stared while the three dead boys came
4378marching up the aisle, Tom in the lead, Joe next, and Huck, a ruin of
4379drooping rags, sneaking sheepishly in the rear! They had been hid in
4380the unused gallery listening to their own funeral sermon!
4381
4382Aunt Polly, Mary, and the Harpers threw themselves upon their restored
4383ones, smothered them with kisses and poured out thanksgivings, while
4384poor Huck stood abashed and uncomfortable, not knowing exactly what to
4385do or where to hide from so many unwelcoming eyes. He wavered, and
4386started to slink away, but Tom seized him and said:
4387
4388"Aunt Polly, it ain't fair. Somebody's got to be glad to see Huck."
4389
4390"And so they shall. I'm glad to see him, poor motherless thing!" And
4391the loving attentions Aunt Polly lavished upon him were the one thing
4392capable of making him more uncomfortable than he was before.
4393
4394Suddenly the minister shouted at the top of his voice: "Praise God
4395from whom all blessings flow--SING!--and put your hearts in it!"
4396
4397And they did. Old Hundred swelled up with a triumphant burst, and
4398while it shook the rafters Tom Sawyer the Pirate looked around upon the
4399envying juveniles about him and confessed in his heart that this was
4400the proudest moment of his life.
4401
4402As the "sold" congregation trooped out they said they would almost be
4403willing to be made ridiculous again to hear Old Hundred sung like that
4404once more.
4405
4406Tom got more cuffs and kisses that day--according to Aunt Polly's
4407varying moods--than he had earned before in a year; and he hardly knew
4408which expressed the most gratefulness to God and affection for himself.
4409
4410
4411
4412CHAPTER XVIII
4413
4414THAT was Tom's great secret--the scheme to return home with his
4415brother pirates and attend their own funerals. They had paddled over to
4416the Missouri shore on a log, at dusk on Saturday, landing five or six
4417miles below the village; they had slept in the woods at the edge of the
4418town till nearly daylight, and had then crept through back lanes and
4419alleys and finished their sleep in the gallery of the church among a
4420chaos of invalided benches.
4421
4422At breakfast, Monday morning, Aunt Polly and Mary were very loving to
4423Tom, and very attentive to his wants. There was an unusual amount of
4424talk. In the course of it Aunt Polly said:
4425
4426"Well, I don't say it wasn't a fine joke, Tom, to keep everybody
4427suffering 'most a week so you boys had a good time, but it is a pity
4428you could be so hard-hearted as to let me suffer so. If you could come
4429over on a log to go to your funeral, you could have come over and give
4430me a hint some way that you warn't dead, but only run off."
4431
4432"Yes, you could have done that, Tom," said Mary; "and I believe you
4433would if you had thought of it."
4434
4435"Would you, Tom?" said Aunt Polly, her face lighting wistfully. "Say,
4436now, would you, if you'd thought of it?"
4437
4438"I--well, I don't know. 'Twould 'a' spoiled everything."
4439
4440"Tom, I hoped you loved me that much," said Aunt Polly, with a grieved
4441tone that discomforted the boy. "It would have been something if you'd
4442cared enough to THINK of it, even if you didn't DO it."
4443
4444"Now, auntie, that ain't any harm," pleaded Mary; "it's only Tom's
4445giddy way--he is always in such a rush that he never thinks of
4446anything."
4447
4448"More's the pity. Sid would have thought. And Sid would have come and
4449DONE it, too. Tom, you'll look back, some day, when it's too late, and
4450wish you'd cared a little more for me when it would have cost you so
4451little."
4452
4453"Now, auntie, you know I do care for you," said Tom.
4454
4455"I'd know it better if you acted more like it."
4456
4457"I wish now I'd thought," said Tom, with a repentant tone; "but I
4458dreamt about you, anyway. That's something, ain't it?"
4459
4460"It ain't much--a cat does that much--but it's better than nothing.
4461What did you dream?"
4462
4463"Why, Wednesday night I dreamt that you was sitting over there by the
4464bed, and Sid was sitting by the woodbox, and Mary next to him."
4465
4466"Well, so we did. So we always do. I'm glad your dreams could take
4467even that much trouble about us."
4468
4469"And I dreamt that Joe Harper's mother was here."
4470
4471"Why, she was here! Did you dream any more?"
4472
4473"Oh, lots. But it's so dim, now."
4474
4475"Well, try to recollect--can't you?"
4476
4477"Somehow it seems to me that the wind--the wind blowed the--the--"
4478
4479"Try harder, Tom! The wind did blow something. Come!"
4480
4481Tom pressed his fingers on his forehead an anxious minute, and then
4482said:
4483
4484"I've got it now! I've got it now! It blowed the candle!"
4485
4486"Mercy on us! Go on, Tom--go on!"
4487
4488"And it seems to me that you said, 'Why, I believe that that door--'"
4489
4490"Go ON, Tom!"
4491
4492"Just let me study a moment--just a moment. Oh, yes--you said you
4493believed the door was open."
4494
4495"As I'm sitting here, I did! Didn't I, Mary! Go on!"
4496
4497"And then--and then--well I won't be certain, but it seems like as if
4498you made Sid go and--and--"
4499
4500"Well? Well? What did I make him do, Tom? What did I make him do?"
4501
4502"You made him--you--Oh, you made him shut it."
4503
4504"Well, for the land's sake! I never heard the beat of that in all my
4505days! Don't tell ME there ain't anything in dreams, any more. Sereny
4506Harper shall know of this before I'm an hour older. I'd like to see her
4507get around THIS with her rubbage 'bout superstition. Go on, Tom!"
4508
4509"Oh, it's all getting just as bright as day, now. Next you said I
4510warn't BAD, only mischeevous and harum-scarum, and not any more
4511responsible than--than--I think it was a colt, or something."
4512
4513"And so it was! Well, goodness gracious! Go on, Tom!"
4514
4515"And then you began to cry."
4516
4517"So I did. So I did. Not the first time, neither. And then--"
4518
4519"Then Mrs. Harper she began to cry, and said Joe was just the same,
4520and she wished she hadn't whipped him for taking cream when she'd
4521throwed it out her own self--"
4522
4523"Tom! The sperrit was upon you! You was a prophesying--that's what you
4524was doing! Land alive, go on, Tom!"
4525
4526"Then Sid he said--he said--"
4527
4528"I don't think I said anything," said Sid.
4529
4530"Yes you did, Sid," said Mary.
4531
4532"Shut your heads and let Tom go on! What did he say, Tom?"
4533
4534"He said--I THINK he said he hoped I was better off where I was gone
4535to, but if I'd been better sometimes--"
4536
4537"THERE, d'you hear that! It was his very words!"
4538
4539"And you shut him up sharp."
4540
4541"I lay I did! There must 'a' been an angel there. There WAS an angel
4542there, somewheres!"
4543
4544"And Mrs. Harper told about Joe scaring her with a firecracker, and
4545you told about Peter and the Painkiller--"
4546
4547"Just as true as I live!"
4548
4549"And then there was a whole lot of talk 'bout dragging the river for
4550us, and 'bout having the funeral Sunday, and then you and old Miss
4551Harper hugged and cried, and she went."
4552
4553"It happened just so! It happened just so, as sure as I'm a-sitting in
4554these very tracks. Tom, you couldn't told it more like if you'd 'a'
4555seen it! And then what? Go on, Tom!"
4556
4557"Then I thought you prayed for me--and I could see you and hear every
4558word you said. And you went to bed, and I was so sorry that I took and
4559wrote on a piece of sycamore bark, 'We ain't dead--we are only off
4560being pirates,' and put it on the table by the candle; and then you
4561looked so good, laying there asleep, that I thought I went and leaned
4562over and kissed you on the lips."
4563
4564"Did you, Tom, DID you! I just forgive you everything for that!" And
4565she seized the boy in a crushing embrace that made him feel like the
4566guiltiest of villains.
4567
4568"It was very kind, even though it was only a--dream," Sid soliloquized
4569just audibly.
4570
4571"Shut up, Sid! A body does just the same in a dream as he'd do if he
4572was awake. Here's a big Milum apple I've been saving for you, Tom, if
4573you was ever found again--now go 'long to school. I'm thankful to the
4574good God and Father of us all I've got you back, that's long-suffering
4575and merciful to them that believe on Him and keep His word, though
4576goodness knows I'm unworthy of it, but if only the worthy ones got His
4577blessings and had His hand to help them over the rough places, there's
4578few enough would smile here or ever enter into His rest when the long
4579night comes. Go 'long Sid, Mary, Tom--take yourselves off--you've
4580hendered me long enough."
4581
4582The children left for school, and the old lady to call on Mrs. Harper
4583and vanquish her realism with Tom's marvellous dream. Sid had better
4584judgment than to utter the thought that was in his mind as he left the
4585house. It was this: "Pretty thin--as long a dream as that, without any
4586mistakes in it!"
4587
4588What a hero Tom was become, now! He did not go skipping and prancing,
4589but moved with a dignified swagger as became a pirate who felt that the
4590public eye was on him. And indeed it was; he tried not to seem to see
4591the looks or hear the remarks as he passed along, but they were food
4592and drink to him. Smaller boys than himself flocked at his heels, as
4593proud to be seen with him, and tolerated by him, as if he had been the
4594drummer at the head of a procession or the elephant leading a menagerie
4595into town. Boys of his own size pretended not to know he had been away
4596at all; but they were consuming with envy, nevertheless. They would
4597have given anything to have that swarthy suntanned skin of his, and his
4598glittering notoriety; and Tom would not have parted with either for a
4599circus.
4600
4601At school the children made so much of him and of Joe, and delivered
4602such eloquent admiration from their eyes, that the two heroes were not
4603long in becoming insufferably "stuck-up." They began to tell their
4604adventures to hungry listeners--but they only began; it was not a thing
4605likely to have an end, with imaginations like theirs to furnish
4606material. And finally, when they got out their pipes and went serenely
4607puffing around, the very summit of glory was reached.
4608
4609Tom decided that he could be independent of Becky Thatcher now. Glory
4610was sufficient. He would live for glory. Now that he was distinguished,
4611maybe she would be wanting to "make up." Well, let her--she should see
4612that he could be as indifferent as some other people. Presently she
4613arrived. Tom pretended not to see her. He moved away and joined a group
4614of boys and girls and began to talk. Soon he observed that she was
4615tripping gayly back and forth with flushed face and dancing eyes,
4616pretending to be busy chasing schoolmates, and screaming with laughter
4617when she made a capture; but he noticed that she always made her
4618captures in his vicinity, and that she seemed to cast a conscious eye
4619in his direction at such times, too. It gratified all the vicious
4620vanity that was in him; and so, instead of winning him, it only "set
4621him up" the more and made him the more diligent to avoid betraying that
4622he knew she was about. Presently she gave over skylarking, and moved
4623irresolutely about, sighing once or twice and glancing furtively and
4624wistfully toward Tom. Then she observed that now Tom was talking more
4625particularly to Amy Lawrence than to any one else. She felt a sharp
4626pang and grew disturbed and uneasy at once. She tried to go away, but
4627her feet were treacherous, and carried her to the group instead. She
4628said to a girl almost at Tom's elbow--with sham vivacity:
4629
4630"Why, Mary Austin! you bad girl, why didn't you come to Sunday-school?"
4631
4632"I did come--didn't you see me?"
4633
4634"Why, no! Did you? Where did you sit?"
4635
4636"I was in Miss Peters' class, where I always go. I saw YOU."
4637
4638"Did you? Why, it's funny I didn't see you. I wanted to tell you about
4639the picnic."
4640
4641"Oh, that's jolly. Who's going to give it?"
4642
4643"My ma's going to let me have one."
4644
4645"Oh, goody; I hope she'll let ME come."
4646
4647"Well, she will. The picnic's for me. She'll let anybody come that I
4648want, and I want you."
4649
4650"That's ever so nice. When is it going to be?"
4651
4652"By and by. Maybe about vacation."
4653
4654"Oh, won't it be fun! You going to have all the girls and boys?"
4655
4656"Yes, every one that's friends to me--or wants to be"; and she glanced
4657ever so furtively at Tom, but he talked right along to Amy Lawrence
4658about the terrible storm on the island, and how the lightning tore the
4659great sycamore tree "all to flinders" while he was "standing within
4660three feet of it."
4661
4662"Oh, may I come?" said Grace Miller.
4663
4664"Yes."
4665
4666"And me?" said Sally Rogers.
4667
4668"Yes."
4669
4670"And me, too?" said Susy Harper. "And Joe?"
4671
4672"Yes."
4673
4674And so on, with clapping of joyful hands till all the group had begged
4675for invitations but Tom and Amy. Then Tom turned coolly away, still
4676talking, and took Amy with him. Becky's lips trembled and the tears
4677came to her eyes; she hid these signs with a forced gayety and went on
4678chattering, but the life had gone out of the picnic, now, and out of
4679everything else; she got away as soon as she could and hid herself and
4680had what her sex call "a good cry." Then she sat moody, with wounded
4681pride, till the bell rang. She roused up, now, with a vindictive cast
4682in her eye, and gave her plaited tails a shake and said she knew what
4683SHE'D do.
4684
4685At recess Tom continued his flirtation with Amy with jubilant
4686self-satisfaction. And he kept drifting about to find Becky and lacerate
4687her with the performance. At last he spied her, but there was a sudden
4688falling of his mercury. She was sitting cosily on a little bench behind
4689the schoolhouse looking at a picture-book with Alfred Temple--and so
4690absorbed were they, and their heads so close together over the book,
4691that they did not seem to be conscious of anything in the world besides.
4692Jealousy ran red-hot through Tom's veins. He began to hate himself for
4693throwing away the chance Becky had offered for a reconciliation. He
4694called himself a fool, and all the hard names he could think of. He
4695wanted to cry with vexation. Amy chatted happily along, as they walked,
4696for her heart was singing, but Tom's tongue had lost its function. He
4697did not hear what Amy was saying, and whenever she paused expectantly he
4698could only stammer an awkward assent, which was as often misplaced as
4699otherwise. He kept drifting to the rear of the schoolhouse, again and
4700again, to sear his eyeballs with the hateful spectacle there. He could
4701not help it. And it maddened him to see, as he thought he saw, that
4702Becky Thatcher never once suspected that he was even in the land of the
4703living. But she did see, nevertheless; and she knew she was winning her
4704fight, too, and was glad to see him suffer as she had suffered.
4705
4706Amy's happy prattle became intolerable. Tom hinted at things he had to
4707attend to; things that must be done; and time was fleeting. But in
4708vain--the girl chirped on. Tom thought, "Oh, hang her, ain't I ever
4709going to get rid of her?" At last he must be attending to those
4710things--and she said artlessly that she would be "around" when school
4711let out. And he hastened away, hating her for it.
4712
4713"Any other boy!" Tom thought, grating his teeth. "Any boy in the whole
4714town but that Saint Louis smarty that thinks he dresses so fine and is
4715aristocracy! Oh, all right, I licked you the first day you ever saw
4716this town, mister, and I'll lick you again! You just wait till I catch
4717you out! I'll just take and--"
4718
4719And he went through the motions of thrashing an imaginary boy
4720--pummelling the air, and kicking and gouging. "Oh, you do, do you? You
4721holler 'nough, do you? Now, then, let that learn you!" And so the
4722imaginary flogging was finished to his satisfaction.
4723
4724Tom fled home at noon. His conscience could not endure any more of
4725Amy's grateful happiness, and his jealousy could bear no more of the
4726other distress. Becky resumed her picture inspections with Alfred, but
4727as the minutes dragged along and no Tom came to suffer, her triumph
4728began to cloud and she lost interest; gravity and absent-mindedness
4729followed, and then melancholy; two or three times she pricked up her
4730ear at a footstep, but it was a false hope; no Tom came. At last she
4731grew entirely miserable and wished she hadn't carried it so far. When
4732poor Alfred, seeing that he was losing her, he did not know how, kept
4733exclaiming: "Oh, here's a jolly one! look at this!" she lost patience
4734at last, and said, "Oh, don't bother me! I don't care for them!" and
4735burst into tears, and got up and walked away.
4736
4737Alfred dropped alongside and was going to try to comfort her, but she
4738said:
4739
4740"Go away and leave me alone, can't you! I hate you!"
4741
4742So the boy halted, wondering what he could have done--for she had said
4743she would look at pictures all through the nooning--and she walked on,
4744crying. Then Alfred went musing into the deserted schoolhouse. He was
4745humiliated and angry. He easily guessed his way to the truth--the girl
4746had simply made a convenience of him to vent her spite upon Tom Sawyer.
4747He was far from hating Tom the less when this thought occurred to him.
4748He wished there was some way to get that boy into trouble without much
4749risk to himself. Tom's spelling-book fell under his eye. Here was his
4750opportunity. He gratefully opened to the lesson for the afternoon and
4751poured ink upon the page.
4752
4753Becky, glancing in at a window behind him at the moment, saw the act,
4754and moved on, without discovering herself. She started homeward, now,
4755intending to find Tom and tell him; Tom would be thankful and their
4756troubles would be healed. Before she was half way home, however, she
4757had changed her mind. The thought of Tom's treatment of her when she
4758was talking about her picnic came scorching back and filled her with
4759shame. She resolved to let him get whipped on the damaged
4760spelling-book's account, and to hate him forever, into the bargain.
4761
4762
4763
4764CHAPTER XIX
4765
4766TOM arrived at home in a dreary mood, and the first thing his aunt
4767said to him showed him that he had brought his sorrows to an
4768unpromising market:
4769
4770"Tom, I've a notion to skin you alive!"
4771
4772"Auntie, what have I done?"
4773
4774"Well, you've done enough. Here I go over to Sereny Harper, like an
4775old softy, expecting I'm going to make her believe all that rubbage
4776about that dream, when lo and behold you she'd found out from Joe that
4777you was over here and heard all the talk we had that night. Tom, I
4778don't know what is to become of a boy that will act like that. It makes
4779me feel so bad to think you could let me go to Sereny Harper and make
4780such a fool of myself and never say a word."
4781
4782This was a new aspect of the thing. His smartness of the morning had
4783seemed to Tom a good joke before, and very ingenious. It merely looked
4784mean and shabby now. He hung his head and could not think of anything
4785to say for a moment. Then he said:
4786
4787"Auntie, I wish I hadn't done it--but I didn't think."
4788
4789"Oh, child, you never think. You never think of anything but your own
4790selfishness. You could think to come all the way over here from
4791Jackson's Island in the night to laugh at our troubles, and you could
4792think to fool me with a lie about a dream; but you couldn't ever think
4793to pity us and save us from sorrow."
4794
4795"Auntie, I know now it was mean, but I didn't mean to be mean. I
4796didn't, honest. And besides, I didn't come over here to laugh at you
4797that night."
4798
4799"What did you come for, then?"
4800
4801"It was to tell you not to be uneasy about us, because we hadn't got
4802drownded."
4803
4804"Tom, Tom, I would be the thankfullest soul in this world if I could
4805believe you ever had as good a thought as that, but you know you never
4806did--and I know it, Tom."
4807
4808"Indeed and 'deed I did, auntie--I wish I may never stir if I didn't."
4809
4810"Oh, Tom, don't lie--don't do it. It only makes things a hundred times
4811worse."
4812
4813"It ain't a lie, auntie; it's the truth. I wanted to keep you from
4814grieving--that was all that made me come."
4815
4816"I'd give the whole world to believe that--it would cover up a power
4817of sins, Tom. I'd 'most be glad you'd run off and acted so bad. But it
4818ain't reasonable; because, why didn't you tell me, child?"
4819
4820"Why, you see, when you got to talking about the funeral, I just got
4821all full of the idea of our coming and hiding in the church, and I
4822couldn't somehow bear to spoil it. So I just put the bark back in my
4823pocket and kept mum."
4824
4825"What bark?"
4826
4827"The bark I had wrote on to tell you we'd gone pirating. I wish, now,
4828you'd waked up when I kissed you--I do, honest."
4829
4830The hard lines in his aunt's face relaxed and a sudden tenderness
4831dawned in her eyes.
4832
4833"DID you kiss me, Tom?"
4834
4835"Why, yes, I did."
4836
4837"Are you sure you did, Tom?"
4838
4839"Why, yes, I did, auntie--certain sure."
4840
4841"What did you kiss me for, Tom?"
4842
4843"Because I loved you so, and you laid there moaning and I was so sorry."
4844
4845The words sounded like truth. The old lady could not hide a tremor in
4846her voice when she said:
4847
4848"Kiss me again, Tom!--and be off with you to school, now, and don't
4849bother me any more."
4850
4851The moment he was gone, she ran to a closet and got out the ruin of a
4852jacket which Tom had gone pirating in. Then she stopped, with it in her
4853hand, and said to herself:
4854
4855"No, I don't dare. Poor boy, I reckon he's lied about it--but it's a
4856blessed, blessed lie, there's such a comfort come from it. I hope the
4857Lord--I KNOW the Lord will forgive him, because it was such
4858goodheartedness in him to tell it. But I don't want to find out it's a
4859lie. I won't look."
4860
4861She put the jacket away, and stood by musing a minute. Twice she put
4862out her hand to take the garment again, and twice she refrained. Once
4863more she ventured, and this time she fortified herself with the
4864thought: "It's a good lie--it's a good lie--I won't let it grieve me."
4865So she sought the jacket pocket. A moment later she was reading Tom's
4866piece of bark through flowing tears and saying: "I could forgive the
4867boy, now, if he'd committed a million sins!"
4868
4869
4870
4871CHAPTER XX
4872
4873THERE was something about Aunt Polly's manner, when she kissed Tom,
4874that swept away his low spirits and made him lighthearted and happy
4875again. He started to school and had the luck of coming upon Becky
4876Thatcher at the head of Meadow Lane. His mood always determined his
4877manner. Without a moment's hesitation he ran to her and said:
4878
4879"I acted mighty mean to-day, Becky, and I'm so sorry. I won't ever,
4880ever do that way again, as long as ever I live--please make up, won't
4881you?"
4882
4883The girl stopped and looked him scornfully in the face:
4884
4885"I'll thank you to keep yourself TO yourself, Mr. Thomas Sawyer. I'll
4886never speak to you again."
4887
4888She tossed her head and passed on. Tom was so stunned that he had not
4889even presence of mind enough to say "Who cares, Miss Smarty?" until the
4890right time to say it had gone by. So he said nothing. But he was in a
4891fine rage, nevertheless. He moped into the schoolyard wishing she were
4892a boy, and imagining how he would trounce her if she were. He presently
4893encountered her and delivered a stinging remark as he passed. She
4894hurled one in return, and the angry breach was complete. It seemed to
4895Becky, in her hot resentment, that she could hardly wait for school to
4896"take in," she was so impatient to see Tom flogged for the injured
4897spelling-book. If she had had any lingering notion of exposing Alfred
4898Temple, Tom's offensive fling had driven it entirely away.
4899
4900Poor girl, she did not know how fast she was nearing trouble herself.
4901The master, Mr. Dobbins, had reached middle age with an unsatisfied
4902ambition. The darling of his desires was, to be a doctor, but poverty
4903had decreed that he should be nothing higher than a village
4904schoolmaster. Every day he took a mysterious book out of his desk and
4905absorbed himself in it at times when no classes were reciting. He kept
4906that book under lock and key. There was not an urchin in school but was
4907perishing to have a glimpse of it, but the chance never came. Every boy
4908and girl had a theory about the nature of that book; but no two
4909theories were alike, and there was no way of getting at the facts in
4910the case. Now, as Becky was passing by the desk, which stood near the
4911door, she noticed that the key was in the lock! It was a precious
4912moment. She glanced around; found herself alone, and the next instant
4913she had the book in her hands. The title-page--Professor Somebody's
4914ANATOMY--carried no information to her mind; so she began to turn the
4915leaves. She came at once upon a handsomely engraved and colored
4916frontispiece--a human figure, stark naked. At that moment a shadow fell
4917on the page and Tom Sawyer stepped in at the door and caught a glimpse
4918of the picture. Becky snatched at the book to close it, and had the
4919hard luck to tear the pictured page half down the middle. She thrust
4920the volume into the desk, turned the key, and burst out crying with
4921shame and vexation.
4922
4923"Tom Sawyer, you are just as mean as you can be, to sneak up on a
4924person and look at what they're looking at."
4925
4926"How could I know you was looking at anything?"
4927
4928"You ought to be ashamed of yourself, Tom Sawyer; you know you're
4929going to tell on me, and oh, what shall I do, what shall I do! I'll be
4930whipped, and I never was whipped in school."
4931
4932Then she stamped her little foot and said:
4933
4934"BE so mean if you want to! I know something that's going to happen.
4935You just wait and you'll see! Hateful, hateful, hateful!"--and she
4936flung out of the house with a new explosion of crying.
4937
4938Tom stood still, rather flustered by this onslaught. Presently he said
4939to himself:
4940
4941"What a curious kind of a fool a girl is! Never been licked in school!
4942Shucks! What's a licking! That's just like a girl--they're so
4943thin-skinned and chicken-hearted. Well, of course I ain't going to tell
4944old Dobbins on this little fool, because there's other ways of getting
4945even on her, that ain't so mean; but what of it? Old Dobbins will ask
4946who it was tore his book. Nobody'll answer. Then he'll do just the way
4947he always does--ask first one and then t'other, and when he comes to the
4948right girl he'll know it, without any telling. Girls' faces always tell
4949on them. They ain't got any backbone. She'll get licked. Well, it's a
4950kind of a tight place for Becky Thatcher, because there ain't any way
4951out of it." Tom conned the thing a moment longer, and then added: "All
4952right, though; she'd like to see me in just such a fix--let her sweat it
4953out!"
4954
4955Tom joined the mob of skylarking scholars outside. In a few moments
4956the master arrived and school "took in." Tom did not feel a strong
4957interest in his studies. Every time he stole a glance at the girls'
4958side of the room Becky's face troubled him. Considering all things, he
4959did not want to pity her, and yet it was all he could do to help it. He
4960could get up no exultation that was really worthy the name. Presently
4961the spelling-book discovery was made, and Tom's mind was entirely full
4962of his own matters for a while after that. Becky roused up from her
4963lethargy of distress and showed good interest in the proceedings. She
4964did not expect that Tom could get out of his trouble by denying that he
4965spilt the ink on the book himself; and she was right. The denial only
4966seemed to make the thing worse for Tom. Becky supposed she would be
4967glad of that, and she tried to believe she was glad of it, but she
4968found she was not certain. When the worst came to the worst, she had an
4969impulse to get up and tell on Alfred Temple, but she made an effort and
4970forced herself to keep still--because, said she to herself, "he'll tell
4971about me tearing the picture sure. I wouldn't say a word, not to save
4972his life!"
4973
4974Tom took his whipping and went back to his seat not at all
4975broken-hearted, for he thought it was possible that he had unknowingly
4976upset the ink on the spelling-book himself, in some skylarking bout--he
4977had denied it for form's sake and because it was custom, and had stuck
4978to the denial from principle.
4979
4980A whole hour drifted by, the master sat nodding in his throne, the air
4981was drowsy with the hum of study. By and by, Mr. Dobbins straightened
4982himself up, yawned, then unlocked his desk, and reached for his book,
4983but seemed undecided whether to take it out or leave it. Most of the
4984pupils glanced up languidly, but there were two among them that watched
4985his movements with intent eyes. Mr. Dobbins fingered his book absently
4986for a while, then took it out and settled himself in his chair to read!
4987Tom shot a glance at Becky. He had seen a hunted and helpless rabbit
4988look as she did, with a gun levelled at its head. Instantly he forgot
4989his quarrel with her. Quick--something must be done! done in a flash,
4990too! But the very imminence of the emergency paralyzed his invention.
4991Good!--he had an inspiration! He would run and snatch the book, spring
4992through the door and fly. But his resolution shook for one little
4993instant, and the chance was lost--the master opened the volume. If Tom
4994only had the wasted opportunity back again! Too late. There was no help
4995for Becky now, he said. The next moment the master faced the school.
4996Every eye sank under his gaze. There was that in it which smote even
4997the innocent with fear. There was silence while one might count ten
4998--the master was gathering his wrath. Then he spoke: "Who tore this book?"
4999
5000There was not a sound. One could have heard a pin drop. The stillness
5001continued; the master searched face after face for signs of guilt.
5002
5003"Benjamin Rogers, did you tear this book?"
5004
5005A denial. Another pause.
5006
5007"Joseph Harper, did you?"
5008
5009Another denial. Tom's uneasiness grew more and more intense under the
5010slow torture of these proceedings. The master scanned the ranks of
5011boys--considered a while, then turned to the girls:
5012
5013"Amy Lawrence?"
5014
5015A shake of the head.
5016
5017"Gracie Miller?"
5018
5019The same sign.
5020
5021"Susan Harper, did you do this?"
5022
5023Another negative. The next girl was Becky Thatcher. Tom was trembling
5024from head to foot with excitement and a sense of the hopelessness of
5025the situation.
5026
5027"Rebecca Thatcher" [Tom glanced at her face--it was white with terror]
5028--"did you tear--no, look me in the face" [her hands rose in appeal]
5029--"did you tear this book?"
5030
5031A thought shot like lightning through Tom's brain. He sprang to his
5032feet and shouted--"I done it!"
5033
5034The school stared in perplexity at this incredible folly. Tom stood a
5035moment, to gather his dismembered faculties; and when he stepped
5036forward to go to his punishment the surprise, the gratitude, the
5037adoration that shone upon him out of poor Becky's eyes seemed pay
5038enough for a hundred floggings. Inspired by the splendor of his own
5039act, he took without an outcry the most merciless flaying that even Mr.
5040Dobbins had ever administered; and also received with indifference the
5041added cruelty of a command to remain two hours after school should be
5042dismissed--for he knew who would wait for him outside till his
5043captivity was done, and not count the tedious time as loss, either.
5044
5045Tom went to bed that night planning vengeance against Alfred Temple;
5046for with shame and repentance Becky had told him all, not forgetting
5047her own treachery; but even the longing for vengeance had to give way,
5048soon, to pleasanter musings, and he fell asleep at last with Becky's
5049latest words lingering dreamily in his ear--
5050
5051"Tom, how COULD you be so noble!"
5052
5053
5054
5055CHAPTER XXI
5056
5057VACATION was approaching. The schoolmaster, always severe, grew
5058severer and more exacting than ever, for he wanted the school to make a
5059good showing on "Examination" day. His rod and his ferule were seldom
5060idle now--at least among the smaller pupils. Only the biggest boys, and
5061young ladies of eighteen and twenty, escaped lashing. Mr. Dobbins'
5062lashings were very vigorous ones, too; for although he carried, under
5063his wig, a perfectly bald and shiny head, he had only reached middle
5064age, and there was no sign of feebleness in his muscle. As the great
5065day approached, all the tyranny that was in him came to the surface; he
5066seemed to take a vindictive pleasure in punishing the least
5067shortcomings. The consequence was, that the smaller boys spent their
5068days in terror and suffering and their nights in plotting revenge. They
5069threw away no opportunity to do the master a mischief. But he kept
5070ahead all the time. The retribution that followed every vengeful
5071success was so sweeping and majestic that the boys always retired from
5072the field badly worsted. At last they conspired together and hit upon a
5073plan that promised a dazzling victory. They swore in the sign-painter's
5074boy, told him the scheme, and asked his help. He had his own reasons
5075for being delighted, for the master boarded in his father's family and
5076had given the boy ample cause to hate him. The master's wife would go
5077on a visit to the country in a few days, and there would be nothing to
5078interfere with the plan; the master always prepared himself for great
5079occasions by getting pretty well fuddled, and the sign-painter's boy
5080said that when the dominie had reached the proper condition on
5081Examination Evening he would "manage the thing" while he napped in his
5082chair; then he would have him awakened at the right time and hurried
5083away to school.
5084
5085In the fulness of time the interesting occasion arrived. At eight in
5086the evening the schoolhouse was brilliantly lighted, and adorned with
5087wreaths and festoons of foliage and flowers. The master sat throned in
5088his great chair upon a raised platform, with his blackboard behind him.
5089He was looking tolerably mellow. Three rows of benches on each side and
5090six rows in front of him were occupied by the dignitaries of the town
5091and by the parents of the pupils. To his left, back of the rows of
5092citizens, was a spacious temporary platform upon which were seated the
5093scholars who were to take part in the exercises of the evening; rows of
5094small boys, washed and dressed to an intolerable state of discomfort;
5095rows of gawky big boys; snowbanks of girls and young ladies clad in
5096lawn and muslin and conspicuously conscious of their bare arms, their
5097grandmothers' ancient trinkets, their bits of pink and blue ribbon and
5098the flowers in their hair. All the rest of the house was filled with
5099non-participating scholars.
5100
5101The exercises began. A very little boy stood up and sheepishly
5102recited, "You'd scarce expect one of my age to speak in public on the
5103stage," etc.--accompanying himself with the painfully exact and
5104spasmodic gestures which a machine might have used--supposing the
5105machine to be a trifle out of order. But he got through safely, though
5106cruelly scared, and got a fine round of applause when he made his
5107manufactured bow and retired.
5108
5109A little shamefaced girl lisped, "Mary had a little lamb," etc.,
5110performed a compassion-inspiring curtsy, got her meed of applause, and
5111sat down flushed and happy.
5112
5113Tom Sawyer stepped forward with conceited confidence and soared into
5114the unquenchable and indestructible "Give me liberty or give me death"
5115speech, with fine fury and frantic gesticulation, and broke down in the
5116middle of it. A ghastly stage-fright seized him, his legs quaked under
5117him and he was like to choke. True, he had the manifest sympathy of the
5118house but he had the house's silence, too, which was even worse than
5119its sympathy. The master frowned, and this completed the disaster. Tom
5120struggled awhile and then retired, utterly defeated. There was a weak
5121attempt at applause, but it died early.
5122
5123"The Boy Stood on the Burning Deck" followed; also "The Assyrian Came
5124Down," and other declamatory gems. Then there were reading exercises,
5125and a spelling fight. The meagre Latin class recited with honor. The
5126prime feature of the evening was in order, now--original "compositions"
5127by the young ladies. Each in her turn stepped forward to the edge of
5128the platform, cleared her throat, held up her manuscript (tied with
5129dainty ribbon), and proceeded to read, with labored attention to
5130"expression" and punctuation. The themes were the same that had been
5131illuminated upon similar occasions by their mothers before them, their
5132grandmothers, and doubtless all their ancestors in the female line
5133clear back to the Crusades. "Friendship" was one; "Memories of Other
5134Days"; "Religion in History"; "Dream Land"; "The Advantages of
5135Culture"; "Forms of Political Government Compared and Contrasted";
5136"Melancholy"; "Filial Love"; "Heart Longings," etc., etc.
5137
5138A prevalent feature in these compositions was a nursed and petted
5139melancholy; another was a wasteful and opulent gush of "fine language";
5140another was a tendency to lug in by the ears particularly prized words
5141and phrases until they were worn entirely out; and a peculiarity that
5142conspicuously marked and marred them was the inveterate and intolerable
5143sermon that wagged its crippled tail at the end of each and every one
5144of them. No matter what the subject might be, a brain-racking effort
5145was made to squirm it into some aspect or other that the moral and
5146religious mind could contemplate with edification. The glaring
5147insincerity of these sermons was not sufficient to compass the
5148banishment of the fashion from the schools, and it is not sufficient
5149to-day; it never will be sufficient while the world stands, perhaps.
5150There is no school in all our land where the young ladies do not feel
5151obliged to close their compositions with a sermon; and you will find
5152that the sermon of the most frivolous and the least religious girl in
5153the school is always the longest and the most relentlessly pious. But
5154enough of this. Homely truth is unpalatable.
5155
5156Let us return to the "Examination." The first composition that was
5157read was one entitled "Is this, then, Life?" Perhaps the reader can
5158endure an extract from it:
5159
5160  "In the common walks of life, with what delightful
5161   emotions does the youthful mind look forward to some
5162   anticipated scene of festivity! Imagination is busy
5163   sketching rose-tinted pictures of joy. In fancy, the
5164   voluptuous votary of fashion sees herself amid the
5165   festive throng, 'the observed of all observers.' Her
5166   graceful form, arrayed in snowy robes, is whirling
5167   through the mazes of the joyous dance; her eye is
5168   brightest, her step is lightest in the gay assembly.
5169
5170  "In such delicious fancies time quickly glides by,
5171   and the welcome hour arrives for her entrance into
5172   the Elysian world, of which she has had such bright
5173   dreams. How fairy-like does everything appear to
5174   her enchanted vision! Each new scene is more charming
5175   than the last. But after a while she finds that
5176   beneath this goodly exterior, all is vanity, the
5177   flattery which once charmed her soul, now grates
5178   harshly upon her ear; the ball-room has lost its
5179   charms; and with wasted health and imbittered heart,
5180   she turns away with the conviction that earthly
5181   pleasures cannot satisfy the longings of the soul!"
5182
5183And so forth and so on. There was a buzz of gratification from time to
5184time during the reading, accompanied by whispered ejaculations of "How
5185sweet!" "How eloquent!" "So true!" etc., and after the thing had closed
5186with a peculiarly afflicting sermon the applause was enthusiastic.
5187
5188Then arose a slim, melancholy girl, whose face had the "interesting"
5189paleness that comes of pills and indigestion, and read a "poem." Two
5190stanzas of it will do:
5191
5192   "A MISSOURI MAIDEN'S FAREWELL TO ALABAMA
5193
5194   "Alabama, good-bye! I love thee well!
5195      But yet for a while do I leave thee now!
5196    Sad, yes, sad thoughts of thee my heart doth swell,
5197      And burning recollections throng my brow!
5198    For I have wandered through thy flowery woods;
5199      Have roamed and read near Tallapoosa's stream;
5200    Have listened to Tallassee's warring floods,
5201      And wooed on Coosa's side Aurora's beam.
5202
5203   "Yet shame I not to bear an o'er-full heart,
5204      Nor blush to turn behind my tearful eyes;
5205    'Tis from no stranger land I now must part,
5206      'Tis to no strangers left I yield these sighs.
5207    Welcome and home were mine within this State,
5208      Whose vales I leave--whose spires fade fast from me
5209    And cold must be mine eyes, and heart, and tete,
5210      When, dear Alabama! they turn cold on thee!"
5211
5212There were very few there who knew what "tete" meant, but the poem was
5213very satisfactory, nevertheless.
5214
5215Next appeared a dark-complexioned, black-eyed, black-haired young
5216lady, who paused an impressive moment, assumed a tragic expression, and
5217began to read in a measured, solemn tone:
5218
5219  "A VISION
5220
5221   "Dark and tempestuous was night. Around the
5222   throne on high not a single star quivered; but
5223   the deep intonations of the heavy thunder
5224   constantly vibrated upon the ear; whilst the
5225   terrific lightning revelled in angry mood
5226   through the cloudy chambers of heaven, seeming
5227   to scorn the power exerted over its terror by
5228   the illustrious Franklin! Even the boisterous
5229   winds unanimously came forth from their mystic
5230   homes, and blustered about as if to enhance by
5231   their aid the wildness of the scene.
5232
5233   "At such a time, so dark, so dreary, for human
5234   sympathy my very spirit sighed; but instead thereof,
5235
5236   "'My dearest friend, my counsellor, my comforter
5237   and guide--My joy in grief, my second bliss
5238   in joy,' came to my side. She moved like one of
5239   those bright beings pictured in the sunny walks
5240   of fancy's Eden by the romantic and young, a
5241   queen of beauty unadorned save by her own
5242   transcendent loveliness. So soft was her step, it
5243   failed to make even a sound, and but for the
5244   magical thrill imparted by her genial touch, as
5245   other unobtrusive beauties, she would have glided
5246   away un-perceived--unsought. A strange sadness
5247   rested upon her features, like icy tears upon
5248   the robe of December, as she pointed to the
5249   contending elements without, and bade me contemplate
5250   the two beings presented."
5251
5252This nightmare occupied some ten pages of manuscript and wound up with
5253a sermon so destructive of all hope to non-Presbyterians that it took
5254the first prize. This composition was considered to be the very finest
5255effort of the evening. The mayor of the village, in delivering the
5256prize to the author of it, made a warm speech in which he said that it
5257was by far the most "eloquent" thing he had ever listened to, and that
5258Daniel Webster himself might well be proud of it.
5259
5260It may be remarked, in passing, that the number of compositions in
5261which the word "beauteous" was over-fondled, and human experience
5262referred to as "life's page," was up to the usual average.
5263
5264Now the master, mellow almost to the verge of geniality, put his chair
5265aside, turned his back to the audience, and began to draw a map of
5266America on the blackboard, to exercise the geography class upon. But he
5267made a sad business of it with his unsteady hand, and a smothered
5268titter rippled over the house. He knew what the matter was, and set
5269himself to right it. He sponged out lines and remade them; but he only
5270distorted them more than ever, and the tittering was more pronounced.
5271He threw his entire attention upon his work, now, as if determined not
5272to be put down by the mirth. He felt that all eyes were fastened upon
5273him; he imagined he was succeeding, and yet the tittering continued; it
5274even manifestly increased. And well it might. There was a garret above,
5275pierced with a scuttle over his head; and down through this scuttle
5276came a cat, suspended around the haunches by a string; she had a rag
5277tied about her head and jaws to keep her from mewing; as she slowly
5278descended she curved upward and clawed at the string, she swung
5279downward and clawed at the intangible air. The tittering rose higher
5280and higher--the cat was within six inches of the absorbed teacher's
5281head--down, down, a little lower, and she grabbed his wig with her
5282desperate claws, clung to it, and was snatched up into the garret in an
5283instant with her trophy still in her possession! And how the light did
5284blaze abroad from the master's bald pate--for the sign-painter's boy
5285had GILDED it!
5286
5287That broke up the meeting. The boys were avenged. Vacation had come.
5288
5289   NOTE:--The pretended "compositions" quoted in
5290   this chapter are taken without alteration from a
5291   volume entitled "Prose and Poetry, by a Western
5292   Lady"--but they are exactly and precisely after
5293   the schoolgirl pattern, and hence are much
5294   happier than any mere imitations could be.
5295
5296
5297
5298CHAPTER XXII
5299
5300TOM joined the new order of Cadets of Temperance, being attracted by
5301the showy character of their "regalia." He promised to abstain from
5302smoking, chewing, and profanity as long as he remained a member. Now he
5303found out a new thing--namely, that to promise not to do a thing is the
5304surest way in the world to make a body want to go and do that very
5305thing. Tom soon found himself tormented with a desire to drink and
5306swear; the desire grew to be so intense that nothing but the hope of a
5307chance to display himself in his red sash kept him from withdrawing
5308from the order. Fourth of July was coming; but he soon gave that up
5309--gave it up before he had worn his shackles over forty-eight hours--and
5310fixed his hopes upon old Judge Frazer, justice of the peace, who was
5311apparently on his deathbed and would have a big public funeral, since
5312he was so high an official. During three days Tom was deeply concerned
5313about the Judge's condition and hungry for news of it. Sometimes his
5314hopes ran high--so high that he would venture to get out his regalia
5315and practise before the looking-glass. But the Judge had a most
5316discouraging way of fluctuating. At last he was pronounced upon the
5317mend--and then convalescent. Tom was disgusted; and felt a sense of
5318injury, too. He handed in his resignation at once--and that night the
5319Judge suffered a relapse and died. Tom resolved that he would never
5320trust a man like that again.
5321
5322The funeral was a fine thing. The Cadets paraded in a style calculated
5323to kill the late member with envy. Tom was a free boy again, however
5324--there was something in that. He could drink and swear, now--but found
5325to his surprise that he did not want to. The simple fact that he could,
5326took the desire away, and the charm of it.
5327
5328Tom presently wondered to find that his coveted vacation was beginning
5329to hang a little heavily on his hands.
5330
5331He attempted a diary--but nothing happened during three days, and so
5332he abandoned it.
5333
5334The first of all the negro minstrel shows came to town, and made a
5335sensation. Tom and Joe Harper got up a band of performers and were
5336happy for two days.
5337
5338Even the Glorious Fourth was in some sense a failure, for it rained
5339hard, there was no procession in consequence, and the greatest man in
5340the world (as Tom supposed), Mr. Benton, an actual United States
5341Senator, proved an overwhelming disappointment--for he was not
5342twenty-five feet high, nor even anywhere in the neighborhood of it.
5343
5344A circus came. The boys played circus for three days afterward in
5345tents made of rag carpeting--admission, three pins for boys, two for
5346girls--and then circusing was abandoned.
5347
5348A phrenologist and a mesmerizer came--and went again and left the
5349village duller and drearier than ever.
5350
5351There were some boys-and-girls' parties, but they were so few and so
5352delightful that they only made the aching voids between ache the harder.
5353
5354Becky Thatcher was gone to her Constantinople home to stay with her
5355parents during vacation--so there was no bright side to life anywhere.
5356
5357The dreadful secret of the murder was a chronic misery. It was a very
5358cancer for permanency and pain.
5359
5360Then came the measles.
5361
5362During two long weeks Tom lay a prisoner, dead to the world and its
5363happenings. He was very ill, he was interested in nothing. When he got
5364upon his feet at last and moved feebly down-town, a melancholy change
5365had come over everything and every creature. There had been a
5366"revival," and everybody had "got religion," not only the adults, but
5367even the boys and girls. Tom went about, hoping against hope for the
5368sight of one blessed sinful face, but disappointment crossed him
5369everywhere. He found Joe Harper studying a Testament, and turned sadly
5370away from the depressing spectacle. He sought Ben Rogers, and found him
5371visiting the poor with a basket of tracts. He hunted up Jim Hollis, who
5372called his attention to the precious blessing of his late measles as a
5373warning. Every boy he encountered added another ton to his depression;
5374and when, in desperation, he flew for refuge at last to the bosom of
5375Huckleberry Finn and was received with a Scriptural quotation, his
5376heart broke and he crept home and to bed realizing that he alone of all
5377the town was lost, forever and forever.
5378
5379And that night there came on a terrific storm, with driving rain,
5380awful claps of thunder and blinding sheets of lightning. He covered his
5381head with the bedclothes and waited in a horror of suspense for his
5382doom; for he had not the shadow of a doubt that all this hubbub was
5383about him. He believed he had taxed the forbearance of the powers above
5384to the extremity of endurance and that this was the result. It might
5385have seemed to him a waste of pomp and ammunition to kill a bug with a
5386battery of artillery, but there seemed nothing incongruous about the
5387getting up such an expensive thunderstorm as this to knock the turf
5388from under an insect like himself.
5389
5390By and by the tempest spent itself and died without accomplishing its
5391object. The boy's first impulse was to be grateful, and reform. His
5392second was to wait--for there might not be any more storms.
5393
5394The next day the doctors were back; Tom had relapsed. The three weeks
5395he spent on his back this time seemed an entire age. When he got abroad
5396at last he was hardly grateful that he had been spared, remembering how
5397lonely was his estate, how companionless and forlorn he was. He drifted
5398listlessly down the street and found Jim Hollis acting as judge in a
5399juvenile court that was trying a cat for murder, in the presence of her
5400victim, a bird. He found Joe Harper and Huck Finn up an alley eating a
5401stolen melon. Poor lads! they--like Tom--had suffered a relapse.
5402
5403
5404
5405CHAPTER XXIII
5406
5407AT last the sleepy atmosphere was stirred--and vigorously: the murder
5408trial came on in the court. It became the absorbing topic of village
5409talk immediately. Tom could not get away from it. Every reference to
5410the murder sent a shudder to his heart, for his troubled conscience and
5411fears almost persuaded him that these remarks were put forth in his
5412hearing as "feelers"; he did not see how he could be suspected of
5413knowing anything about the murder, but still he could not be
5414comfortable in the midst of this gossip. It kept him in a cold shiver
5415all the time. He took Huck to a lonely place to have a talk with him.
5416It would be some relief to unseal his tongue for a little while; to
5417divide his burden of distress with another sufferer. Moreover, he
5418wanted to assure himself that Huck had remained discreet.
5419
5420"Huck, have you ever told anybody about--that?"
5421
5422"'Bout what?"
5423
5424"You know what."
5425
5426"Oh--'course I haven't."
5427
5428"Never a word?"
5429
5430"Never a solitary word, so help me. What makes you ask?"
5431
5432"Well, I was afeard."
5433
5434"Why, Tom Sawyer, we wouldn't be alive two days if that got found out.
5435YOU know that."
5436
5437Tom felt more comfortable. After a pause:
5438
5439"Huck, they couldn't anybody get you to tell, could they?"
5440
5441"Get me to tell? Why, if I wanted that half-breed devil to drownd me
5442they could get me to tell. They ain't no different way."
5443
5444"Well, that's all right, then. I reckon we're safe as long as we keep
5445mum. But let's swear again, anyway. It's more surer."
5446
5447"I'm agreed."
5448
5449So they swore again with dread solemnities.
5450
5451"What is the talk around, Huck? I've heard a power of it."
5452
5453"Talk? Well, it's just Muff Potter, Muff Potter, Muff Potter all the
5454time. It keeps me in a sweat, constant, so's I want to hide som'ers."
5455
5456"That's just the same way they go on round me. I reckon he's a goner.
5457Don't you feel sorry for him, sometimes?"
5458
5459"Most always--most always. He ain't no account; but then he hain't
5460ever done anything to hurt anybody. Just fishes a little, to get money
5461to get drunk on--and loafs around considerable; but lord, we all do
5462that--leastways most of us--preachers and such like. But he's kind of
5463good--he give me half a fish, once, when there warn't enough for two;
5464and lots of times he's kind of stood by me when I was out of luck."
5465
5466"Well, he's mended kites for me, Huck, and knitted hooks on to my
5467line. I wish we could get him out of there."
5468
5469"My! we couldn't get him out, Tom. And besides, 'twouldn't do any
5470good; they'd ketch him again."
5471
5472"Yes--so they would. But I hate to hear 'em abuse him so like the
5473dickens when he never done--that."
5474
5475"I do too, Tom. Lord, I hear 'em say he's the bloodiest looking
5476villain in this country, and they wonder he wasn't ever hung before."
5477
5478"Yes, they talk like that, all the time. I've heard 'em say that if he
5479was to get free they'd lynch him."
5480
5481"And they'd do it, too."
5482
5483The boys had a long talk, but it brought them little comfort. As the
5484twilight drew on, they found themselves hanging about the neighborhood
5485of the little isolated jail, perhaps with an undefined hope that
5486something would happen that might clear away their difficulties. But
5487nothing happened; there seemed to be no angels or fairies interested in
5488this luckless captive.
5489
5490The boys did as they had often done before--went to the cell grating
5491and gave Potter some tobacco and matches. He was on the ground floor
5492and there were no guards.
5493
5494His gratitude for their gifts had always smote their consciences
5495before--it cut deeper than ever, this time. They felt cowardly and
5496treacherous to the last degree when Potter said:
5497
5498"You've been mighty good to me, boys--better'n anybody else in this
5499town. And I don't forget it, I don't. Often I says to myself, says I,
5500'I used to mend all the boys' kites and things, and show 'em where the
5501good fishin' places was, and befriend 'em what I could, and now they've
5502all forgot old Muff when he's in trouble; but Tom don't, and Huck
5503don't--THEY don't forget him, says I, 'and I don't forget them.' Well,
5504boys, I done an awful thing--drunk and crazy at the time--that's the
5505only way I account for it--and now I got to swing for it, and it's
5506right. Right, and BEST, too, I reckon--hope so, anyway. Well, we won't
5507talk about that. I don't want to make YOU feel bad; you've befriended
5508me. But what I want to say, is, don't YOU ever get drunk--then you won't
5509ever get here. Stand a litter furder west--so--that's it; it's a prime
5510comfort to see faces that's friendly when a body's in such a muck of
5511trouble, and there don't none come here but yourn. Good friendly
5512faces--good friendly faces. Git up on one another's backs and let me
5513touch 'em. That's it. Shake hands--yourn'll come through the bars, but
5514mine's too big. Little hands, and weak--but they've helped Muff Potter
5515a power, and they'd help him more if they could."
5516
5517Tom went home miserable, and his dreams that night were full of
5518horrors. The next day and the day after, he hung about the court-room,
5519drawn by an almost irresistible impulse to go in, but forcing himself
5520to stay out. Huck was having the same experience. They studiously
5521avoided each other. Each wandered away, from time to time, but the same
5522dismal fascination always brought them back presently. Tom kept his
5523ears open when idlers sauntered out of the court-room, but invariably
5524heard distressing news--the toils were closing more and more
5525relentlessly around poor Potter. At the end of the second day the
5526village talk was to the effect that Injun Joe's evidence stood firm and
5527unshaken, and that there was not the slightest question as to what the
5528jury's verdict would be.
5529
5530Tom was out late, that night, and came to bed through the window. He
5531was in a tremendous state of excitement. It was hours before he got to
5532sleep. All the village flocked to the court-house the next morning, for
5533this was to be the great day. Both sexes were about equally represented
5534in the packed audience. After a long wait the jury filed in and took
5535their places; shortly afterward, Potter, pale and haggard, timid and
5536hopeless, was brought in, with chains upon him, and seated where all
5537the curious eyes could stare at him; no less conspicuous was Injun Joe,
5538stolid as ever. There was another pause, and then the judge arrived and
5539the sheriff proclaimed the opening of the court. The usual whisperings
5540among the lawyers and gathering together of papers followed. These
5541details and accompanying delays worked up an atmosphere of preparation
5542that was as impressive as it was fascinating.
5543
5544Now a witness was called who testified that he found Muff Potter
5545washing in the brook, at an early hour of the morning that the murder
5546was discovered, and that he immediately sneaked away. After some
5547further questioning, counsel for the prosecution said:
5548
5549"Take the witness."
5550
5551The prisoner raised his eyes for a moment, but dropped them again when
5552his own counsel said:
5553
5554"I have no questions to ask him."
5555
5556The next witness proved the finding of the knife near the corpse.
5557Counsel for the prosecution said:
5558
5559"Take the witness."
5560
5561"I have no questions to ask him," Potter's lawyer replied.
5562
5563A third witness swore he had often seen the knife in Potter's
5564possession.
5565
5566"Take the witness."
5567
5568Counsel for Potter declined to question him. The faces of the audience
5569began to betray annoyance. Did this attorney mean to throw away his
5570client's life without an effort?
5571
5572Several witnesses deposed concerning Potter's guilty behavior when
5573brought to the scene of the murder. They were allowed to leave the
5574stand without being cross-questioned.
5575
5576Every detail of the damaging circumstances that occurred in the
5577graveyard upon that morning which all present remembered so well was
5578brought out by credible witnesses, but none of them were cross-examined
5579by Potter's lawyer. The perplexity and dissatisfaction of the house
5580expressed itself in murmurs and provoked a reproof from the bench.
5581Counsel for the prosecution now said:
5582
5583"By the oaths of citizens whose simple word is above suspicion, we
5584have fastened this awful crime, beyond all possibility of question,
5585upon the unhappy prisoner at the bar. We rest our case here."
5586
5587A groan escaped from poor Potter, and he put his face in his hands and
5588rocked his body softly to and fro, while a painful silence reigned in
5589the court-room. Many men were moved, and many women's compassion
5590testified itself in tears. Counsel for the defence rose and said:
5591
5592"Your honor, in our remarks at the opening of this trial, we
5593foreshadowed our purpose to prove that our client did this fearful deed
5594while under the influence of a blind and irresponsible delirium
5595produced by drink. We have changed our mind. We shall not offer that
5596plea." [Then to the clerk:] "Call Thomas Sawyer!"
5597
5598A puzzled amazement awoke in every face in the house, not even
5599excepting Potter's. Every eye fastened itself with wondering interest
5600upon Tom as he rose and took his place upon the stand. The boy looked
5601wild enough, for he was badly scared. The oath was administered.
5602
5603"Thomas Sawyer, where were you on the seventeenth of June, about the
5604hour of midnight?"
5605
5606Tom glanced at Injun Joe's iron face and his tongue failed him. The
5607audience listened breathless, but the words refused to come. After a
5608few moments, however, the boy got a little of his strength back, and
5609managed to put enough of it into his voice to make part of the house
5610hear:
5611
5612"In the graveyard!"
5613
5614"A little bit louder, please. Don't be afraid. You were--"
5615
5616"In the graveyard."
5617
5618A contemptuous smile flitted across Injun Joe's face.
5619
5620"Were you anywhere near Horse Williams' grave?"
5621
5622"Yes, sir."
5623
5624"Speak up--just a trifle louder. How near were you?"
5625
5626"Near as I am to you."
5627
5628"Were you hidden, or not?"
5629
5630"I was hid."
5631
5632"Where?"
5633
5634"Behind the elms that's on the edge of the grave."
5635
5636Injun Joe gave a barely perceptible start.
5637
5638"Any one with you?"
5639
5640"Yes, sir. I went there with--"
5641
5642"Wait--wait a moment. Never mind mentioning your companion's name. We
5643will produce him at the proper time. Did you carry anything there with
5644you."
5645
5646Tom hesitated and looked confused.
5647
5648"Speak out, my boy--don't be diffident. The truth is always
5649respectable. What did you take there?"
5650
5651"Only a--a--dead cat."
5652
5653There was a ripple of mirth, which the court checked.
5654
5655"We will produce the skeleton of that cat. Now, my boy, tell us
5656everything that occurred--tell it in your own way--don't skip anything,
5657and don't be afraid."
5658
5659Tom began--hesitatingly at first, but as he warmed to his subject his
5660words flowed more and more easily; in a little while every sound ceased
5661but his own voice; every eye fixed itself upon him; with parted lips
5662and bated breath the audience hung upon his words, taking no note of
5663time, rapt in the ghastly fascinations of the tale. The strain upon
5664pent emotion reached its climax when the boy said:
5665
5666"--and as the doctor fetched the board around and Muff Potter fell,
5667Injun Joe jumped with the knife and--"
5668
5669Crash! Quick as lightning the half-breed sprang for a window, tore his
5670way through all opposers, and was gone!
5671
5672
5673
5674CHAPTER XXIV
5675
5676TOM was a glittering hero once more--the pet of the old, the envy of
5677the young. His name even went into immortal print, for the village
5678paper magnified him. There were some that believed he would be
5679President, yet, if he escaped hanging.
5680
5681As usual, the fickle, unreasoning world took Muff Potter to its bosom
5682and fondled him as lavishly as it had abused him before. But that sort
5683of conduct is to the world's credit; therefore it is not well to find
5684fault with it.
5685
5686Tom's days were days of splendor and exultation to him, but his nights
5687were seasons of horror. Injun Joe infested all his dreams, and always
5688with doom in his eye. Hardly any temptation could persuade the boy to
5689stir abroad after nightfall. Poor Huck was in the same state of
5690wretchedness and terror, for Tom had told the whole story to the lawyer
5691the night before the great day of the trial, and Huck was sore afraid
5692that his share in the business might leak out, yet, notwithstanding
5693Injun Joe's flight had saved him the suffering of testifying in court.
5694The poor fellow had got the attorney to promise secrecy, but what of
5695that? Since Tom's harassed conscience had managed to drive him to the
5696lawyer's house by night and wring a dread tale from lips that had been
5697sealed with the dismalest and most formidable of oaths, Huck's
5698confidence in the human race was well-nigh obliterated.
5699
5700Daily Muff Potter's gratitude made Tom glad he had spoken; but nightly
5701he wished he had sealed up his tongue.
5702
5703Half the time Tom was afraid Injun Joe would never be captured; the
5704other half he was afraid he would be. He felt sure he never could draw
5705a safe breath again until that man was dead and he had seen the corpse.
5706
5707Rewards had been offered, the country had been scoured, but no Injun
5708Joe was found. One of those omniscient and awe-inspiring marvels, a
5709detective, came up from St. Louis, moused around, shook his head,
5710looked wise, and made that sort of astounding success which members of
5711that craft usually achieve. That is to say, he "found a clew." But you
5712can't hang a "clew" for murder, and so after that detective had got
5713through and gone home, Tom felt just as insecure as he was before.
5714
5715The slow days drifted on, and each left behind it a slightly lightened
5716weight of apprehension.
5717
5718
5719
5720CHAPTER XXV
5721
5722THERE comes a time in every rightly-constructed boy's life when he has
5723a raging desire to go somewhere and dig for hidden treasure. This
5724desire suddenly came upon Tom one day. He sallied out to find Joe
5725Harper, but failed of success. Next he sought Ben Rogers; he had gone
5726fishing. Presently he stumbled upon Huck Finn the Red-Handed. Huck
5727would answer. Tom took him to a private place and opened the matter to
5728him confidentially. Huck was willing. Huck was always willing to take a
5729hand in any enterprise that offered entertainment and required no
5730capital, for he had a troublesome superabundance of that sort of time
5731which is not money. "Where'll we dig?" said Huck.
5732
5733"Oh, most anywhere."
5734
5735"Why, is it hid all around?"
5736
5737"No, indeed it ain't. It's hid in mighty particular places, Huck
5738--sometimes on islands, sometimes in rotten chests under the end of a
5739limb of an old dead tree, just where the shadow falls at midnight; but
5740mostly under the floor in ha'nted houses."
5741
5742"Who hides it?"
5743
5744"Why, robbers, of course--who'd you reckon? Sunday-school
5745sup'rintendents?"
5746
5747"I don't know. If 'twas mine I wouldn't hide it; I'd spend it and have
5748a good time."
5749
5750"So would I. But robbers don't do that way. They always hide it and
5751leave it there."
5752
5753"Don't they come after it any more?"
5754
5755"No, they think they will, but they generally forget the marks, or
5756else they die. Anyway, it lays there a long time and gets rusty; and by
5757and by somebody finds an old yellow paper that tells how to find the
5758marks--a paper that's got to be ciphered over about a week because it's
5759mostly signs and hy'roglyphics."
5760
5761"Hyro--which?"
5762
5763"Hy'roglyphics--pictures and things, you know, that don't seem to mean
5764anything."
5765
5766"Have you got one of them papers, Tom?"
5767
5768"No."
5769
5770"Well then, how you going to find the marks?"
5771
5772"I don't want any marks. They always bury it under a ha'nted house or
5773on an island, or under a dead tree that's got one limb sticking out.
5774Well, we've tried Jackson's Island a little, and we can try it again
5775some time; and there's the old ha'nted house up the Still-House branch,
5776and there's lots of dead-limb trees--dead loads of 'em."
5777
5778"Is it under all of them?"
5779
5780"How you talk! No!"
5781
5782"Then how you going to know which one to go for?"
5783
5784"Go for all of 'em!"
5785
5786"Why, Tom, it'll take all summer."
5787
5788"Well, what of that? Suppose you find a brass pot with a hundred
5789dollars in it, all rusty and gray, or rotten chest full of di'monds.
5790How's that?"
5791
5792Huck's eyes glowed.
5793
5794"That's bully. Plenty bully enough for me. Just you gimme the hundred
5795dollars and I don't want no di'monds."
5796
5797"All right. But I bet you I ain't going to throw off on di'monds. Some
5798of 'em's worth twenty dollars apiece--there ain't any, hardly, but's
5799worth six bits or a dollar."
5800
5801"No! Is that so?"
5802
5803"Cert'nly--anybody'll tell you so. Hain't you ever seen one, Huck?"
5804
5805"Not as I remember."
5806
5807"Oh, kings have slathers of them."
5808
5809"Well, I don' know no kings, Tom."
5810
5811"I reckon you don't. But if you was to go to Europe you'd see a raft
5812of 'em hopping around."
5813
5814"Do they hop?"
5815
5816"Hop?--your granny! No!"
5817
5818"Well, what did you say they did, for?"
5819
5820"Shucks, I only meant you'd SEE 'em--not hopping, of course--what do
5821they want to hop for?--but I mean you'd just see 'em--scattered around,
5822you know, in a kind of a general way. Like that old humpbacked Richard."
5823
5824"Richard? What's his other name?"
5825
5826"He didn't have any other name. Kings don't have any but a given name."
5827
5828"No?"
5829
5830"But they don't."
5831
5832"Well, if they like it, Tom, all right; but I don't want to be a king
5833and have only just a given name, like a nigger. But say--where you
5834going to dig first?"
5835
5836"Well, I don't know. S'pose we tackle that old dead-limb tree on the
5837hill t'other side of Still-House branch?"
5838
5839"I'm agreed."
5840
5841So they got a crippled pick and a shovel, and set out on their
5842three-mile tramp. They arrived hot and panting, and threw themselves
5843down in the shade of a neighboring elm to rest and have a smoke.
5844
5845"I like this," said Tom.
5846
5847"So do I."
5848
5849"Say, Huck, if we find a treasure here, what you going to do with your
5850share?"
5851
5852"Well, I'll have pie and a glass of soda every day, and I'll go to
5853every circus that comes along. I bet I'll have a gay time."
5854
5855"Well, ain't you going to save any of it?"
5856
5857"Save it? What for?"
5858
5859"Why, so as to have something to live on, by and by."
5860
5861"Oh, that ain't any use. Pap would come back to thish-yer town some
5862day and get his claws on it if I didn't hurry up, and I tell you he'd
5863clean it out pretty quick. What you going to do with yourn, Tom?"
5864
5865"I'm going to buy a new drum, and a sure-'nough sword, and a red
5866necktie and a bull pup, and get married."
5867
5868"Married!"
5869
5870"That's it."
5871
5872"Tom, you--why, you ain't in your right mind."
5873
5874"Wait--you'll see."
5875
5876"Well, that's the foolishest thing you could do. Look at pap and my
5877mother. Fight! Why, they used to fight all the time. I remember, mighty
5878well."
5879
5880"That ain't anything. The girl I'm going to marry won't fight."
5881
5882"Tom, I reckon they're all alike. They'll all comb a body. Now you
5883better think 'bout this awhile. I tell you you better. What's the name
5884of the gal?"
5885
5886"It ain't a gal at all--it's a girl."
5887
5888"It's all the same, I reckon; some says gal, some says girl--both's
5889right, like enough. Anyway, what's her name, Tom?"
5890
5891"I'll tell you some time--not now."
5892
5893"All right--that'll do. Only if you get married I'll be more lonesomer
5894than ever."
5895
5896"No you won't. You'll come and live with me. Now stir out of this and
5897we'll go to digging."
5898
5899They worked and sweated for half an hour. No result. They toiled
5900another half-hour. Still no result. Huck said:
5901
5902"Do they always bury it as deep as this?"
5903
5904"Sometimes--not always. Not generally. I reckon we haven't got the
5905right place."
5906
5907So they chose a new spot and began again. The labor dragged a little,
5908but still they made progress. They pegged away in silence for some
5909time. Finally Huck leaned on his shovel, swabbed the beaded drops from
5910his brow with his sleeve, and said:
5911
5912"Where you going to dig next, after we get this one?"
5913
5914"I reckon maybe we'll tackle the old tree that's over yonder on
5915Cardiff Hill back of the widow's."
5916
5917"I reckon that'll be a good one. But won't the widow take it away from
5918us, Tom? It's on her land."
5919
5920"SHE take it away! Maybe she'd like to try it once. Whoever finds one
5921of these hid treasures, it belongs to him. It don't make any difference
5922whose land it's on."
5923
5924That was satisfactory. The work went on. By and by Huck said:
5925
5926"Blame it, we must be in the wrong place again. What do you think?"
5927
5928"It is mighty curious, Huck. I don't understand it. Sometimes witches
5929interfere. I reckon maybe that's what's the trouble now."
5930
5931"Shucks! Witches ain't got no power in the daytime."
5932
5933"Well, that's so. I didn't think of that. Oh, I know what the matter
5934is! What a blamed lot of fools we are! You got to find out where the
5935shadow of the limb falls at midnight, and that's where you dig!"
5936
5937"Then consound it, we've fooled away all this work for nothing. Now
5938hang it all, we got to come back in the night. It's an awful long way.
5939Can you get out?"
5940
5941"I bet I will. We've got to do it to-night, too, because if somebody
5942sees these holes they'll know in a minute what's here and they'll go
5943for it."
5944
5945"Well, I'll come around and maow to-night."
5946
5947"All right. Let's hide the tools in the bushes."
5948
5949The boys were there that night, about the appointed time. They sat in
5950the shadow waiting. It was a lonely place, and an hour made solemn by
5951old traditions. Spirits whispered in the rustling leaves, ghosts lurked
5952in the murky nooks, the deep baying of a hound floated up out of the
5953distance, an owl answered with his sepulchral note. The boys were
5954subdued by these solemnities, and talked little. By and by they judged
5955that twelve had come; they marked where the shadow fell, and began to
5956dig. Their hopes commenced to rise. Their interest grew stronger, and
5957their industry kept pace with it. The hole deepened and still deepened,
5958but every time their hearts jumped to hear the pick strike upon
5959something, they only suffered a new disappointment. It was only a stone
5960or a chunk. At last Tom said:
5961
5962"It ain't any use, Huck, we're wrong again."
5963
5964"Well, but we CAN'T be wrong. We spotted the shadder to a dot."
5965
5966"I know it, but then there's another thing."
5967
5968"What's that?".
5969
5970"Why, we only guessed at the time. Like enough it was too late or too
5971early."
5972
5973Huck dropped his shovel.
5974
5975"That's it," said he. "That's the very trouble. We got to give this
5976one up. We can't ever tell the right time, and besides this kind of
5977thing's too awful, here this time of night with witches and ghosts
5978a-fluttering around so. I feel as if something's behind me all the time;
5979and I'm afeard to turn around, becuz maybe there's others in front
5980a-waiting for a chance. I been creeping all over, ever since I got here."
5981
5982"Well, I've been pretty much so, too, Huck. They most always put in a
5983dead man when they bury a treasure under a tree, to look out for it."
5984
5985"Lordy!"
5986
5987"Yes, they do. I've always heard that."
5988
5989"Tom, I don't like to fool around much where there's dead people. A
5990body's bound to get into trouble with 'em, sure."
5991
5992"I don't like to stir 'em up, either. S'pose this one here was to
5993stick his skull out and say something!"
5994
5995"Don't Tom! It's awful."
5996
5997"Well, it just is. Huck, I don't feel comfortable a bit."
5998
5999"Say, Tom, let's give this place up, and try somewheres else."
6000
6001"All right, I reckon we better."
6002
6003"What'll it be?"
6004
6005Tom considered awhile; and then said:
6006
6007"The ha'nted house. That's it!"
6008
6009"Blame it, I don't like ha'nted houses, Tom. Why, they're a dern sight
6010worse'n dead people. Dead people might talk, maybe, but they don't come
6011sliding around in a shroud, when you ain't noticing, and peep over your
6012shoulder all of a sudden and grit their teeth, the way a ghost does. I
6013couldn't stand such a thing as that, Tom--nobody could."
6014
6015"Yes, but, Huck, ghosts don't travel around only at night. They won't
6016hender us from digging there in the daytime."
6017
6018"Well, that's so. But you know mighty well people don't go about that
6019ha'nted house in the day nor the night."
6020
6021"Well, that's mostly because they don't like to go where a man's been
6022murdered, anyway--but nothing's ever been seen around that house except
6023in the night--just some blue lights slipping by the windows--no regular
6024ghosts."
6025
6026"Well, where you see one of them blue lights flickering around, Tom,
6027you can bet there's a ghost mighty close behind it. It stands to
6028reason. Becuz you know that they don't anybody but ghosts use 'em."
6029
6030"Yes, that's so. But anyway they don't come around in the daytime, so
6031what's the use of our being afeard?"
6032
6033"Well, all right. We'll tackle the ha'nted house if you say so--but I
6034reckon it's taking chances."
6035
6036They had started down the hill by this time. There in the middle of
6037the moonlit valley below them stood the "ha'nted" house, utterly
6038isolated, its fences gone long ago, rank weeds smothering the very
6039doorsteps, the chimney crumbled to ruin, the window-sashes vacant, a
6040corner of the roof caved in. The boys gazed awhile, half expecting to
6041see a blue light flit past a window; then talking in a low tone, as
6042befitted the time and the circumstances, they struck far off to the
6043right, to give the haunted house a wide berth, and took their way
6044homeward through the woods that adorned the rearward side of Cardiff
6045Hill.
6046
6047
6048
6049CHAPTER XXVI
6050
6051ABOUT noon the next day the boys arrived at the dead tree; they had
6052come for their tools. Tom was impatient to go to the haunted house;
6053Huck was measurably so, also--but suddenly said:
6054
6055"Lookyhere, Tom, do you know what day it is?"
6056
6057Tom mentally ran over the days of the week, and then quickly lifted
6058his eyes with a startled look in them--
6059
6060"My! I never once thought of it, Huck!"
6061
6062"Well, I didn't neither, but all at once it popped onto me that it was
6063Friday."
6064
6065"Blame it, a body can't be too careful, Huck. We might 'a' got into an
6066awful scrape, tackling such a thing on a Friday."
6067
6068"MIGHT! Better say we WOULD! There's some lucky days, maybe, but
6069Friday ain't."
6070
6071"Any fool knows that. I don't reckon YOU was the first that found it
6072out, Huck."
6073
6074"Well, I never said I was, did I? And Friday ain't all, neither. I had
6075a rotten bad dream last night--dreampt about rats."
6076
6077"No! Sure sign of trouble. Did they fight?"
6078
6079"No."
6080
6081"Well, that's good, Huck. When they don't fight it's only a sign that
6082there's trouble around, you know. All we got to do is to look mighty
6083sharp and keep out of it. We'll drop this thing for to-day, and play.
6084Do you know Robin Hood, Huck?"
6085
6086"No. Who's Robin Hood?"
6087
6088"Why, he was one of the greatest men that was ever in England--and the
6089best. He was a robber."
6090
6091"Cracky, I wisht I was. Who did he rob?"
6092
6093"Only sheriffs and bishops and rich people and kings, and such like.
6094But he never bothered the poor. He loved 'em. He always divided up with
6095'em perfectly square."
6096
6097"Well, he must 'a' been a brick."
6098
6099"I bet you he was, Huck. Oh, he was the noblest man that ever was.
6100They ain't any such men now, I can tell you. He could lick any man in
6101England, with one hand tied behind him; and he could take his yew bow
6102and plug a ten-cent piece every time, a mile and a half."
6103
6104"What's a YEW bow?"
6105
6106"I don't know. It's some kind of a bow, of course. And if he hit that
6107dime only on the edge he would set down and cry--and curse. But we'll
6108play Robin Hood--it's nobby fun. I'll learn you."
6109
6110"I'm agreed."
6111
6112So they played Robin Hood all the afternoon, now and then casting a
6113yearning eye down upon the haunted house and passing a remark about the
6114morrow's prospects and possibilities there. As the sun began to sink
6115into the west they took their way homeward athwart the long shadows of
6116the trees and soon were buried from sight in the forests of Cardiff
6117Hill.
6118
6119On Saturday, shortly after noon, the boys were at the dead tree again.
6120They had a smoke and a chat in the shade, and then dug a little in
6121their last hole, not with great hope, but merely because Tom said there
6122were so many cases where people had given up a treasure after getting
6123down within six inches of it, and then somebody else had come along and
6124turned it up with a single thrust of a shovel. The thing failed this
6125time, however, so the boys shouldered their tools and went away feeling
6126that they had not trifled with fortune, but had fulfilled all the
6127requirements that belong to the business of treasure-hunting.
6128
6129When they reached the haunted house there was something so weird and
6130grisly about the dead silence that reigned there under the baking sun,
6131and something so depressing about the loneliness and desolation of the
6132place, that they were afraid, for a moment, to venture in. Then they
6133crept to the door and took a trembling peep. They saw a weed-grown,
6134floorless room, unplastered, an ancient fireplace, vacant windows, a
6135ruinous staircase; and here, there, and everywhere hung ragged and
6136abandoned cobwebs. They presently entered, softly, with quickened
6137pulses, talking in whispers, ears alert to catch the slightest sound,
6138and muscles tense and ready for instant retreat.
6139
6140In a little while familiarity modified their fears and they gave the
6141place a critical and interested examination, rather admiring their own
6142boldness, and wondering at it, too. Next they wanted to look up-stairs.
6143This was something like cutting off retreat, but they got to daring
6144each other, and of course there could be but one result--they threw
6145their tools into a corner and made the ascent. Up there were the same
6146signs of decay. In one corner they found a closet that promised
6147mystery, but the promise was a fraud--there was nothing in it. Their
6148courage was up now and well in hand. They were about to go down and
6149begin work when--
6150
6151"Sh!" said Tom.
6152
6153"What is it?" whispered Huck, blanching with fright.
6154
6155"Sh!... There!... Hear it?"
6156
6157"Yes!... Oh, my! Let's run!"
6158
6159"Keep still! Don't you budge! They're coming right toward the door."
6160
6161The boys stretched themselves upon the floor with their eyes to
6162knot-holes in the planking, and lay waiting, in a misery of fear.
6163
6164"They've stopped.... No--coming.... Here they are. Don't whisper
6165another word, Huck. My goodness, I wish I was out of this!"
6166
6167Two men entered. Each boy said to himself: "There's the old deaf and
6168dumb Spaniard that's been about town once or twice lately--never saw
6169t'other man before."
6170
6171"T'other" was a ragged, unkempt creature, with nothing very pleasant
6172in his face. The Spaniard was wrapped in a serape; he had bushy white
6173whiskers; long white hair flowed from under his sombrero, and he wore
6174green goggles. When they came in, "t'other" was talking in a low voice;
6175they sat down on the ground, facing the door, with their backs to the
6176wall, and the speaker continued his remarks. His manner became less
6177guarded and his words more distinct as he proceeded:
6178
6179"No," said he, "I've thought it all over, and I don't like it. It's
6180dangerous."
6181
6182"Dangerous!" grunted the "deaf and dumb" Spaniard--to the vast
6183surprise of the boys. "Milksop!"
6184
6185This voice made the boys gasp and quake. It was Injun Joe's! There was
6186silence for some time. Then Joe said:
6187
6188"What's any more dangerous than that job up yonder--but nothing's come
6189of it."
6190
6191"That's different. Away up the river so, and not another house about.
6192'Twon't ever be known that we tried, anyway, long as we didn't succeed."
6193
6194"Well, what's more dangerous than coming here in the daytime!--anybody
6195would suspicion us that saw us."
6196
6197"I know that. But there warn't any other place as handy after that
6198fool of a job. I want to quit this shanty. I wanted to yesterday, only
6199it warn't any use trying to stir out of here, with those infernal boys
6200playing over there on the hill right in full view."
6201
6202"Those infernal boys" quaked again under the inspiration of this
6203remark, and thought how lucky it was that they had remembered it was
6204Friday and concluded to wait a day. They wished in their hearts they
6205had waited a year.
6206
6207The two men got out some food and made a luncheon. After a long and
6208thoughtful silence, Injun Joe said:
6209
6210"Look here, lad--you go back up the river where you belong. Wait there
6211till you hear from me. I'll take the chances on dropping into this town
6212just once more, for a look. We'll do that 'dangerous' job after I've
6213spied around a little and think things look well for it. Then for
6214Texas! We'll leg it together!"
6215
6216This was satisfactory. Both men presently fell to yawning, and Injun
6217Joe said:
6218
6219"I'm dead for sleep! It's your turn to watch."
6220
6221He curled down in the weeds and soon began to snore. His comrade
6222stirred him once or twice and he became quiet. Presently the watcher
6223began to nod; his head drooped lower and lower, both men began to snore
6224now.
6225
6226The boys drew a long, grateful breath. Tom whispered:
6227
6228"Now's our chance--come!"
6229
6230Huck said:
6231
6232"I can't--I'd die if they was to wake."
6233
6234Tom urged--Huck held back. At last Tom rose slowly and softly, and
6235started alone. But the first step he made wrung such a hideous creak
6236from the crazy floor that he sank down almost dead with fright. He
6237never made a second attempt. The boys lay there counting the dragging
6238moments till it seemed to them that time must be done and eternity
6239growing gray; and then they were grateful to note that at last the sun
6240was setting.
6241
6242Now one snore ceased. Injun Joe sat up, stared around--smiled grimly
6243upon his comrade, whose head was drooping upon his knees--stirred him
6244up with his foot and said:
6245
6246"Here! YOU'RE a watchman, ain't you! All right, though--nothing's
6247happened."
6248
6249"My! have I been asleep?"
6250
6251"Oh, partly, partly. Nearly time for us to be moving, pard. What'll we
6252do with what little swag we've got left?"
6253
6254"I don't know--leave it here as we've always done, I reckon. No use to
6255take it away till we start south. Six hundred and fifty in silver's
6256something to carry."
6257
6258"Well--all right--it won't matter to come here once more."
6259
6260"No--but I'd say come in the night as we used to do--it's better."
6261
6262"Yes: but look here; it may be a good while before I get the right
6263chance at that job; accidents might happen; 'tain't in such a very good
6264place; we'll just regularly bury it--and bury it deep."
6265
6266"Good idea," said the comrade, who walked across the room, knelt down,
6267raised one of the rearward hearth-stones and took out a bag that
6268jingled pleasantly. He subtracted from it twenty or thirty dollars for
6269himself and as much for Injun Joe, and passed the bag to the latter,
6270who was on his knees in the corner, now, digging with his bowie-knife.
6271
6272The boys forgot all their fears, all their miseries in an instant.
6273With gloating eyes they watched every movement. Luck!--the splendor of
6274it was beyond all imagination! Six hundred dollars was money enough to
6275make half a dozen boys rich! Here was treasure-hunting under the
6276happiest auspices--there would not be any bothersome uncertainty as to
6277where to dig. They nudged each other every moment--eloquent nudges and
6278easily understood, for they simply meant--"Oh, but ain't you glad NOW
6279we're here!"
6280
6281Joe's knife struck upon something.
6282
6283"Hello!" said he.
6284
6285"What is it?" said his comrade.
6286
6287"Half-rotten plank--no, it's a box, I believe. Here--bear a hand and
6288we'll see what it's here for. Never mind, I've broke a hole."
6289
6290He reached his hand in and drew it out--
6291
6292"Man, it's money!"
6293
6294The two men examined the handful of coins. They were gold. The boys
6295above were as excited as themselves, and as delighted.
6296
6297Joe's comrade said:
6298
6299"We'll make quick work of this. There's an old rusty pick over amongst
6300the weeds in the corner the other side of the fireplace--I saw it a
6301minute ago."
6302
6303He ran and brought the boys' pick and shovel. Injun Joe took the pick,
6304looked it over critically, shook his head, muttered something to
6305himself, and then began to use it. The box was soon unearthed. It was
6306not very large; it was iron bound and had been very strong before the
6307slow years had injured it. The men contemplated the treasure awhile in
6308blissful silence.
6309
6310"Pard, there's thousands of dollars here," said Injun Joe.
6311
6312"'Twas always said that Murrel's gang used to be around here one
6313summer," the stranger observed.
6314
6315"I know it," said Injun Joe; "and this looks like it, I should say."
6316
6317"Now you won't need to do that job."
6318
6319The half-breed frowned. Said he:
6320
6321"You don't know me. Least you don't know all about that thing. 'Tain't
6322robbery altogether--it's REVENGE!" and a wicked light flamed in his
6323eyes. "I'll need your help in it. When it's finished--then Texas. Go
6324home to your Nance and your kids, and stand by till you hear from me."
6325
6326"Well--if you say so; what'll we do with this--bury it again?"
6327
6328"Yes. [Ravishing delight overhead.] NO! by the great Sachem, no!
6329[Profound distress overhead.] I'd nearly forgot. That pick had fresh
6330earth on it! [The boys were sick with terror in a moment.] What
6331business has a pick and a shovel here? What business with fresh earth
6332on them? Who brought them here--and where are they gone? Have you heard
6333anybody?--seen anybody? What! bury it again and leave them to come and
6334see the ground disturbed? Not exactly--not exactly. We'll take it to my
6335den."
6336
6337"Why, of course! Might have thought of that before. You mean Number
6338One?"
6339
6340"No--Number Two--under the cross. The other place is bad--too common."
6341
6342"All right. It's nearly dark enough to start."
6343
6344Injun Joe got up and went about from window to window cautiously
6345peeping out. Presently he said:
6346
6347"Who could have brought those tools here? Do you reckon they can be
6348up-stairs?"
6349
6350The boys' breath forsook them. Injun Joe put his hand on his knife,
6351halted a moment, undecided, and then turned toward the stairway. The
6352boys thought of the closet, but their strength was gone. The steps came
6353creaking up the stairs--the intolerable distress of the situation woke
6354the stricken resolution of the lads--they were about to spring for the
6355closet, when there was a crash of rotten timbers and Injun Joe landed
6356on the ground amid the debris of the ruined stairway. He gathered
6357himself up cursing, and his comrade said:
6358
6359"Now what's the use of all that? If it's anybody, and they're up
6360there, let them STAY there--who cares? If they want to jump down, now,
6361and get into trouble, who objects? It will be dark in fifteen minutes
6362--and then let them follow us if they want to. I'm willing. In my
6363opinion, whoever hove those things in here caught a sight of us and
6364took us for ghosts or devils or something. I'll bet they're running
6365yet."
6366
6367Joe grumbled awhile; then he agreed with his friend that what daylight
6368was left ought to be economized in getting things ready for leaving.
6369Shortly afterward they slipped out of the house in the deepening
6370twilight, and moved toward the river with their precious box.
6371
6372Tom and Huck rose up, weak but vastly relieved, and stared after them
6373through the chinks between the logs of the house. Follow? Not they.
6374They were content to reach ground again without broken necks, and take
6375the townward track over the hill. They did not talk much. They were too
6376much absorbed in hating themselves--hating the ill luck that made them
6377take the spade and the pick there. But for that, Injun Joe never would
6378have suspected. He would have hidden the silver with the gold to wait
6379there till his "revenge" was satisfied, and then he would have had the
6380misfortune to find that money turn up missing. Bitter, bitter luck that
6381the tools were ever brought there!
6382
6383They resolved to keep a lookout for that Spaniard when he should come
6384to town spying out for chances to do his revengeful job, and follow him
6385to "Number Two," wherever that might be. Then a ghastly thought
6386occurred to Tom.
6387
6388"Revenge? What if he means US, Huck!"
6389
6390"Oh, don't!" said Huck, nearly fainting.
6391
6392They talked it all over, and as they entered town they agreed to
6393believe that he might possibly mean somebody else--at least that he
6394might at least mean nobody but Tom, since only Tom had testified.
6395
6396Very, very small comfort it was to Tom to be alone in danger! Company
6397would be a palpable improvement, he thought.
6398
6399
6400
6401CHAPTER XXVII
6402
6403THE adventure of the day mightily tormented Tom's dreams that night.
6404Four times he had his hands on that rich treasure and four times it
6405wasted to nothingness in his fingers as sleep forsook him and
6406wakefulness brought back the hard reality of his misfortune. As he lay
6407in the early morning recalling the incidents of his great adventure, he
6408noticed that they seemed curiously subdued and far away--somewhat as if
6409they had happened in another world, or in a time long gone by. Then it
6410occurred to him that the great adventure itself must be a dream! There
6411was one very strong argument in favor of this idea--namely, that the
6412quantity of coin he had seen was too vast to be real. He had never seen
6413as much as fifty dollars in one mass before, and he was like all boys
6414of his age and station in life, in that he imagined that all references
6415to "hundreds" and "thousands" were mere fanciful forms of speech, and
6416that no such sums really existed in the world. He never had supposed
6417for a moment that so large a sum as a hundred dollars was to be found
6418in actual money in any one's possession. If his notions of hidden
6419treasure had been analyzed, they would have been found to consist of a
6420handful of real dimes and a bushel of vague, splendid, ungraspable
6421dollars.
6422
6423But the incidents of his adventure grew sensibly sharper and clearer
6424under the attrition of thinking them over, and so he presently found
6425himself leaning to the impression that the thing might not have been a
6426dream, after all. This uncertainty must be swept away. He would snatch
6427a hurried breakfast and go and find Huck. Huck was sitting on the
6428gunwale of a flatboat, listlessly dangling his feet in the water and
6429looking very melancholy. Tom concluded to let Huck lead up to the
6430subject. If he did not do it, then the adventure would be proved to
6431have been only a dream.
6432
6433"Hello, Huck!"
6434
6435"Hello, yourself."
6436
6437Silence, for a minute.
6438
6439"Tom, if we'd 'a' left the blame tools at the dead tree, we'd 'a' got
6440the money. Oh, ain't it awful!"
6441
6442"'Tain't a dream, then, 'tain't a dream! Somehow I most wish it was.
6443Dog'd if I don't, Huck."
6444
6445"What ain't a dream?"
6446
6447"Oh, that thing yesterday. I been half thinking it was."
6448
6449"Dream! If them stairs hadn't broke down you'd 'a' seen how much dream
6450it was! I've had dreams enough all night--with that patch-eyed Spanish
6451devil going for me all through 'em--rot him!"
6452
6453"No, not rot him. FIND him! Track the money!"
6454
6455"Tom, we'll never find him. A feller don't have only one chance for
6456such a pile--and that one's lost. I'd feel mighty shaky if I was to see
6457him, anyway."
6458
6459"Well, so'd I; but I'd like to see him, anyway--and track him out--to
6460his Number Two."
6461
6462"Number Two--yes, that's it. I been thinking 'bout that. But I can't
6463make nothing out of it. What do you reckon it is?"
6464
6465"I dono. It's too deep. Say, Huck--maybe it's the number of a house!"
6466
6467"Goody!... No, Tom, that ain't it. If it is, it ain't in this
6468one-horse town. They ain't no numbers here."
6469
6470"Well, that's so. Lemme think a minute. Here--it's the number of a
6471room--in a tavern, you know!"
6472
6473"Oh, that's the trick! They ain't only two taverns. We can find out
6474quick."
6475
6476"You stay here, Huck, till I come."
6477
6478Tom was off at once. He did not care to have Huck's company in public
6479places. He was gone half an hour. He found that in the best tavern, No.
64802 had long been occupied by a young lawyer, and was still so occupied.
6481In the less ostentatious house, No. 2 was a mystery. The
6482tavern-keeper's young son said it was kept locked all the time, and he
6483never saw anybody go into it or come out of it except at night; he did
6484not know any particular reason for this state of things; had had some
6485little curiosity, but it was rather feeble; had made the most of the
6486mystery by entertaining himself with the idea that that room was
6487"ha'nted"; had noticed that there was a light in there the night before.
6488
6489"That's what I've found out, Huck. I reckon that's the very No. 2
6490we're after."
6491
6492"I reckon it is, Tom. Now what you going to do?"
6493
6494"Lemme think."
6495
6496Tom thought a long time. Then he said:
6497
6498"I'll tell you. The back door of that No. 2 is the door that comes out
6499into that little close alley between the tavern and the old rattle trap
6500of a brick store. Now you get hold of all the door-keys you can find,
6501and I'll nip all of auntie's, and the first dark night we'll go there
6502and try 'em. And mind you, keep a lookout for Injun Joe, because he
6503said he was going to drop into town and spy around once more for a
6504chance to get his revenge. If you see him, you just follow him; and if
6505he don't go to that No. 2, that ain't the place."
6506
6507"Lordy, I don't want to foller him by myself!"
6508
6509"Why, it'll be night, sure. He mightn't ever see you--and if he did,
6510maybe he'd never think anything."
6511
6512"Well, if it's pretty dark I reckon I'll track him. I dono--I dono.
6513I'll try."
6514
6515"You bet I'll follow him, if it's dark, Huck. Why, he might 'a' found
6516out he couldn't get his revenge, and be going right after that money."
6517
6518"It's so, Tom, it's so. I'll foller him; I will, by jingoes!"
6519
6520"Now you're TALKING! Don't you ever weaken, Huck, and I won't."
6521
6522
6523
6524CHAPTER XXVIII
6525
6526THAT night Tom and Huck were ready for their adventure. They hung
6527about the neighborhood of the tavern until after nine, one watching the
6528alley at a distance and the other the tavern door. Nobody entered the
6529alley or left it; nobody resembling the Spaniard entered or left the
6530tavern door. The night promised to be a fair one; so Tom went home with
6531the understanding that if a considerable degree of darkness came on,
6532Huck was to come and "maow," whereupon he would slip out and try the
6533keys. But the night remained clear, and Huck closed his watch and
6534retired to bed in an empty sugar hogshead about twelve.
6535
6536Tuesday the boys had the same ill luck. Also Wednesday. But Thursday
6537night promised better. Tom slipped out in good season with his aunt's
6538old tin lantern, and a large towel to blindfold it with. He hid the
6539lantern in Huck's sugar hogshead and the watch began. An hour before
6540midnight the tavern closed up and its lights (the only ones
6541thereabouts) were put out. No Spaniard had been seen. Nobody had
6542entered or left the alley. Everything was auspicious. The blackness of
6543darkness reigned, the perfect stillness was interrupted only by
6544occasional mutterings of distant thunder.
6545
6546Tom got his lantern, lit it in the hogshead, wrapped it closely in the
6547towel, and the two adventurers crept in the gloom toward the tavern.
6548Huck stood sentry and Tom felt his way into the alley. Then there was a
6549season of waiting anxiety that weighed upon Huck's spirits like a
6550mountain. He began to wish he could see a flash from the lantern--it
6551would frighten him, but it would at least tell him that Tom was alive
6552yet. It seemed hours since Tom had disappeared. Surely he must have
6553fainted; maybe he was dead; maybe his heart had burst under terror and
6554excitement. In his uneasiness Huck found himself drawing closer and
6555closer to the alley; fearing all sorts of dreadful things, and
6556momentarily expecting some catastrophe to happen that would take away
6557his breath. There was not much to take away, for he seemed only able to
6558inhale it by thimblefuls, and his heart would soon wear itself out, the
6559way it was beating. Suddenly there was a flash of light and Tom came
6560tearing by him: "Run!" said he; "run, for your life!"
6561
6562He needn't have repeated it; once was enough; Huck was making thirty
6563or forty miles an hour before the repetition was uttered. The boys
6564never stopped till they reached the shed of a deserted slaughter-house
6565at the lower end of the village. Just as they got within its shelter
6566the storm burst and the rain poured down. As soon as Tom got his breath
6567he said:
6568
6569"Huck, it was awful! I tried two of the keys, just as soft as I could;
6570but they seemed to make such a power of racket that I couldn't hardly
6571get my breath I was so scared. They wouldn't turn in the lock, either.
6572Well, without noticing what I was doing, I took hold of the knob, and
6573open comes the door! It warn't locked! I hopped in, and shook off the
6574towel, and, GREAT CAESAR'S GHOST!"
6575
6576"What!--what'd you see, Tom?"
6577
6578"Huck, I most stepped onto Injun Joe's hand!"
6579
6580"No!"
6581
6582"Yes! He was lying there, sound asleep on the floor, with his old
6583patch on his eye and his arms spread out."
6584
6585"Lordy, what did you do? Did he wake up?"
6586
6587"No, never budged. Drunk, I reckon. I just grabbed that towel and
6588started!"
6589
6590"I'd never 'a' thought of the towel, I bet!"
6591
6592"Well, I would. My aunt would make me mighty sick if I lost it."
6593
6594"Say, Tom, did you see that box?"
6595
6596"Huck, I didn't wait to look around. I didn't see the box, I didn't
6597see the cross. I didn't see anything but a bottle and a tin cup on the
6598floor by Injun Joe; yes, I saw two barrels and lots more bottles in the
6599room. Don't you see, now, what's the matter with that ha'nted room?"
6600
6601"How?"
6602
6603"Why, it's ha'nted with whiskey! Maybe ALL the Temperance Taverns have
6604got a ha'nted room, hey, Huck?"
6605
6606"Well, I reckon maybe that's so. Who'd 'a' thought such a thing? But
6607say, Tom, now's a mighty good time to get that box, if Injun Joe's
6608drunk."
6609
6610"It is, that! You try it!"
6611
6612Huck shuddered.
6613
6614"Well, no--I reckon not."
6615
6616"And I reckon not, Huck. Only one bottle alongside of Injun Joe ain't
6617enough. If there'd been three, he'd be drunk enough and I'd do it."
6618
6619There was a long pause for reflection, and then Tom said:
6620
6621"Lookyhere, Huck, less not try that thing any more till we know Injun
6622Joe's not in there. It's too scary. Now, if we watch every night, we'll
6623be dead sure to see him go out, some time or other, and then we'll
6624snatch that box quicker'n lightning."
6625
6626"Well, I'm agreed. I'll watch the whole night long, and I'll do it
6627every night, too, if you'll do the other part of the job."
6628
6629"All right, I will. All you got to do is to trot up Hooper Street a
6630block and maow--and if I'm asleep, you throw some gravel at the window
6631and that'll fetch me."
6632
6633"Agreed, and good as wheat!"
6634
6635"Now, Huck, the storm's over, and I'll go home. It'll begin to be
6636daylight in a couple of hours. You go back and watch that long, will
6637you?"
6638
6639"I said I would, Tom, and I will. I'll ha'nt that tavern every night
6640for a year! I'll sleep all day and I'll stand watch all night."
6641
6642"That's all right. Now, where you going to sleep?"
6643
6644"In Ben Rogers' hayloft. He lets me, and so does his pap's nigger man,
6645Uncle Jake. I tote water for Uncle Jake whenever he wants me to, and
6646any time I ask him he gives me a little something to eat if he can
6647spare it. That's a mighty good nigger, Tom. He likes me, becuz I don't
6648ever act as if I was above him. Sometime I've set right down and eat
6649WITH him. But you needn't tell that. A body's got to do things when
6650he's awful hungry he wouldn't want to do as a steady thing."
6651
6652"Well, if I don't want you in the daytime, I'll let you sleep. I won't
6653come bothering around. Any time you see something's up, in the night,
6654just skip right around and maow."
6655
6656
6657
6658CHAPTER XXIX
6659
6660THE first thing Tom heard on Friday morning was a glad piece of news
6661--Judge Thatcher's family had come back to town the night before. Both
6662Injun Joe and the treasure sunk into secondary importance for a moment,
6663and Becky took the chief place in the boy's interest. He saw her and
6664they had an exhausting good time playing "hi-spy" and "gully-keeper"
6665with a crowd of their school-mates. The day was completed and crowned
6666in a peculiarly satisfactory way: Becky teased her mother to appoint
6667the next day for the long-promised and long-delayed picnic, and she
6668consented. The child's delight was boundless; and Tom's not more
6669moderate. The invitations were sent out before sunset, and straightway
6670the young folks of the village were thrown into a fever of preparation
6671and pleasurable anticipation. Tom's excitement enabled him to keep
6672awake until a pretty late hour, and he had good hopes of hearing Huck's
6673"maow," and of having his treasure to astonish Becky and the picnickers
6674with, next day; but he was disappointed. No signal came that night.
6675
6676Morning came, eventually, and by ten or eleven o'clock a giddy and
6677rollicking company were gathered at Judge Thatcher's, and everything
6678was ready for a start. It was not the custom for elderly people to mar
6679the picnics with their presence. The children were considered safe
6680enough under the wings of a few young ladies of eighteen and a few
6681young gentlemen of twenty-three or thereabouts. The old steam ferryboat
6682was chartered for the occasion; presently the gay throng filed up the
6683main street laden with provision-baskets. Sid was sick and had to miss
6684the fun; Mary remained at home to entertain him. The last thing Mrs.
6685Thatcher said to Becky, was:
6686
6687"You'll not get back till late. Perhaps you'd better stay all night
6688with some of the girls that live near the ferry-landing, child."
6689
6690"Then I'll stay with Susy Harper, mamma."
6691
6692"Very well. And mind and behave yourself and don't be any trouble."
6693
6694Presently, as they tripped along, Tom said to Becky:
6695
6696"Say--I'll tell you what we'll do. 'Stead of going to Joe Harper's
6697we'll climb right up the hill and stop at the Widow Douglas'. She'll
6698have ice-cream! She has it most every day--dead loads of it. And she'll
6699be awful glad to have us."
6700
6701"Oh, that will be fun!"
6702
6703Then Becky reflected a moment and said:
6704
6705"But what will mamma say?"
6706
6707"How'll she ever know?"
6708
6709The girl turned the idea over in her mind, and said reluctantly:
6710
6711"I reckon it's wrong--but--"
6712
6713"But shucks! Your mother won't know, and so what's the harm? All she
6714wants is that you'll be safe; and I bet you she'd 'a' said go there if
6715she'd 'a' thought of it. I know she would!"
6716
6717The Widow Douglas' splendid hospitality was a tempting bait. It and
6718Tom's persuasions presently carried the day. So it was decided to say
6719nothing anybody about the night's programme. Presently it occurred to
6720Tom that maybe Huck might come this very night and give the signal. The
6721thought took a deal of the spirit out of his anticipations. Still he
6722could not bear to give up the fun at Widow Douglas'. And why should he
6723give it up, he reasoned--the signal did not come the night before, so
6724why should it be any more likely to come to-night? The sure fun of the
6725evening outweighed the uncertain treasure; and, boy-like, he determined
6726to yield to the stronger inclination and not allow himself to think of
6727the box of money another time that day.
6728
6729Three miles below town the ferryboat stopped at the mouth of a woody
6730hollow and tied up. The crowd swarmed ashore and soon the forest
6731distances and craggy heights echoed far and near with shoutings and
6732laughter. All the different ways of getting hot and tired were gone
6733through with, and by-and-by the rovers straggled back to camp fortified
6734with responsible appetites, and then the destruction of the good things
6735began. After the feast there was a refreshing season of rest and chat
6736in the shade of spreading oaks. By-and-by somebody shouted:
6737
6738"Who's ready for the cave?"
6739
6740Everybody was. Bundles of candles were procured, and straightway there
6741was a general scamper up the hill. The mouth of the cave was up the
6742hillside--an opening shaped like a letter A. Its massive oaken door
6743stood unbarred. Within was a small chamber, chilly as an ice-house, and
6744walled by Nature with solid limestone that was dewy with a cold sweat.
6745It was romantic and mysterious to stand here in the deep gloom and look
6746out upon the green valley shining in the sun. But the impressiveness of
6747the situation quickly wore off, and the romping began again. The moment
6748a candle was lighted there was a general rush upon the owner of it; a
6749struggle and a gallant defence followed, but the candle was soon
6750knocked down or blown out, and then there was a glad clamor of laughter
6751and a new chase. But all things have an end. By-and-by the procession
6752went filing down the steep descent of the main avenue, the flickering
6753rank of lights dimly revealing the lofty walls of rock almost to their
6754point of junction sixty feet overhead. This main avenue was not more
6755than eight or ten feet wide. Every few steps other lofty and still
6756narrower crevices branched from it on either hand--for McDougal's cave
6757was but a vast labyrinth of crooked aisles that ran into each other and
6758out again and led nowhere. It was said that one might wander days and
6759nights together through its intricate tangle of rifts and chasms, and
6760never find the end of the cave; and that he might go down, and down,
6761and still down, into the earth, and it was just the same--labyrinth
6762under labyrinth, and no end to any of them. No man "knew" the cave.
6763That was an impossible thing. Most of the young men knew a portion of
6764it, and it was not customary to venture much beyond this known portion.
6765Tom Sawyer knew as much of the cave as any one.
6766
6767The procession moved along the main avenue some three-quarters of a
6768mile, and then groups and couples began to slip aside into branch
6769avenues, fly along the dismal corridors, and take each other by
6770surprise at points where the corridors joined again. Parties were able
6771to elude each other for the space of half an hour without going beyond
6772the "known" ground.
6773
6774By-and-by, one group after another came straggling back to the mouth
6775of the cave, panting, hilarious, smeared from head to foot with tallow
6776drippings, daubed with clay, and entirely delighted with the success of
6777the day. Then they were astonished to find that they had been taking no
6778note of time and that night was about at hand. The clanging bell had
6779been calling for half an hour. However, this sort of close to the day's
6780adventures was romantic and therefore satisfactory. When the ferryboat
6781with her wild freight pushed into the stream, nobody cared sixpence for
6782the wasted time but the captain of the craft.
6783
6784Huck was already upon his watch when the ferryboat's lights went
6785glinting past the wharf. He heard no noise on board, for the young
6786people were as subdued and still as people usually are who are nearly
6787tired to death. He wondered what boat it was, and why she did not stop
6788at the wharf--and then he dropped her out of his mind and put his
6789attention upon his business. The night was growing cloudy and dark. Ten
6790o'clock came, and the noise of vehicles ceased, scattered lights began
6791to wink out, all straggling foot-passengers disappeared, the village
6792betook itself to its slumbers and left the small watcher alone with the
6793silence and the ghosts. Eleven o'clock came, and the tavern lights were
6794put out; darkness everywhere, now. Huck waited what seemed a weary long
6795time, but nothing happened. His faith was weakening. Was there any use?
6796Was there really any use? Why not give it up and turn in?
6797
6798A noise fell upon his ear. He was all attention in an instant. The
6799alley door closed softly. He sprang to the corner of the brick store.
6800The next moment two men brushed by him, and one seemed to have
6801something under his arm. It must be that box! So they were going to
6802remove the treasure. Why call Tom now? It would be absurd--the men
6803would get away with the box and never be found again. No, he would
6804stick to their wake and follow them; he would trust to the darkness for
6805security from discovery. So communing with himself, Huck stepped out
6806and glided along behind the men, cat-like, with bare feet, allowing
6807them to keep just far enough ahead not to be invisible.
6808
6809They moved up the river street three blocks, then turned to the left
6810up a cross-street. They went straight ahead, then, until they came to
6811the path that led up Cardiff Hill; this they took. They passed by the
6812old Welshman's house, half-way up the hill, without hesitating, and
6813still climbed upward. Good, thought Huck, they will bury it in the old
6814quarry. But they never stopped at the quarry. They passed on, up the
6815summit. They plunged into the narrow path between the tall sumach
6816bushes, and were at once hidden in the gloom. Huck closed up and
6817shortened his distance, now, for they would never be able to see him.
6818He trotted along awhile; then slackened his pace, fearing he was
6819gaining too fast; moved on a piece, then stopped altogether; listened;
6820no sound; none, save that he seemed to hear the beating of his own
6821heart. The hooting of an owl came over the hill--ominous sound! But no
6822footsteps. Heavens, was everything lost! He was about to spring with
6823winged feet, when a man cleared his throat not four feet from him!
6824Huck's heart shot into his throat, but he swallowed it again; and then
6825he stood there shaking as if a dozen agues had taken charge of him at
6826once, and so weak that he thought he must surely fall to the ground. He
6827knew where he was. He knew he was within five steps of the stile
6828leading into Widow Douglas' grounds. Very well, he thought, let them
6829bury it there; it won't be hard to find.
6830
6831Now there was a voice--a very low voice--Injun Joe's:
6832
6833"Damn her, maybe she's got company--there's lights, late as it is."
6834
6835"I can't see any."
6836
6837This was that stranger's voice--the stranger of the haunted house. A
6838deadly chill went to Huck's heart--this, then, was the "revenge" job!
6839His thought was, to fly. Then he remembered that the Widow Douglas had
6840been kind to him more than once, and maybe these men were going to
6841murder her. He wished he dared venture to warn her; but he knew he
6842didn't dare--they might come and catch him. He thought all this and
6843more in the moment that elapsed between the stranger's remark and Injun
6844Joe's next--which was--
6845
6846"Because the bush is in your way. Now--this way--now you see, don't
6847you?"
6848
6849"Yes. Well, there IS company there, I reckon. Better give it up."
6850
6851"Give it up, and I just leaving this country forever! Give it up and
6852maybe never have another chance. I tell you again, as I've told you
6853before, I don't care for her swag--you may have it. But her husband was
6854rough on me--many times he was rough on me--and mainly he was the
6855justice of the peace that jugged me for a vagrant. And that ain't all.
6856It ain't a millionth part of it! He had me HORSEWHIPPED!--horsewhipped
6857in front of the jail, like a nigger!--with all the town looking on!
6858HORSEWHIPPED!--do you understand? He took advantage of me and died. But
6859I'll take it out of HER."
6860
6861"Oh, don't kill her! Don't do that!"
6862
6863"Kill? Who said anything about killing? I would kill HIM if he was
6864here; but not her. When you want to get revenge on a woman you don't
6865kill her--bosh! you go for her looks. You slit her nostrils--you notch
6866her ears like a sow!"
6867
6868"By God, that's--"
6869
6870"Keep your opinion to yourself! It will be safest for you. I'll tie
6871her to the bed. If she bleeds to death, is that my fault? I'll not cry,
6872if she does. My friend, you'll help me in this thing--for MY sake
6873--that's why you're here--I mightn't be able alone. If you flinch, I'll
6874kill you. Do you understand that? And if I have to kill you, I'll kill
6875her--and then I reckon nobody'll ever know much about who done this
6876business."
6877
6878"Well, if it's got to be done, let's get at it. The quicker the
6879better--I'm all in a shiver."
6880
6881"Do it NOW? And company there? Look here--I'll get suspicious of you,
6882first thing you know. No--we'll wait till the lights are out--there's
6883no hurry."
6884
6885Huck felt that a silence was going to ensue--a thing still more awful
6886than any amount of murderous talk; so he held his breath and stepped
6887gingerly back; planted his foot carefully and firmly, after balancing,
6888one-legged, in a precarious way and almost toppling over, first on one
6889side and then on the other. He took another step back, with the same
6890elaboration and the same risks; then another and another, and--a twig
6891snapped under his foot! His breath stopped and he listened. There was
6892no sound--the stillness was perfect. His gratitude was measureless. Now
6893he turned in his tracks, between the walls of sumach bushes--turned
6894himself as carefully as if he were a ship--and then stepped quickly but
6895cautiously along. When he emerged at the quarry he felt secure, and so
6896he picked up his nimble heels and flew. Down, down he sped, till he
6897reached the Welshman's. He banged at the door, and presently the heads
6898of the old man and his two stalwart sons were thrust from windows.
6899
6900"What's the row there? Who's banging? What do you want?"
6901
6902"Let me in--quick! I'll tell everything."
6903
6904"Why, who are you?"
6905
6906"Huckleberry Finn--quick, let me in!"
6907
6908"Huckleberry Finn, indeed! It ain't a name to open many doors, I
6909judge! But let him in, lads, and let's see what's the trouble."
6910
6911"Please don't ever tell I told you," were Huck's first words when he
6912got in. "Please don't--I'd be killed, sure--but the widow's been good
6913friends to me sometimes, and I want to tell--I WILL tell if you'll
6914promise you won't ever say it was me."
6915
6916"By George, he HAS got something to tell, or he wouldn't act so!"
6917exclaimed the old man; "out with it and nobody here'll ever tell, lad."
6918
6919Three minutes later the old man and his sons, well armed, were up the
6920hill, and just entering the sumach path on tiptoe, their weapons in
6921their hands. Huck accompanied them no further. He hid behind a great
6922bowlder and fell to listening. There was a lagging, anxious silence,
6923and then all of a sudden there was an explosion of firearms and a cry.
6924
6925Huck waited for no particulars. He sprang away and sped down the hill
6926as fast as his legs could carry him.
6927
6928
6929
6930CHAPTER XXX
6931
6932AS the earliest suspicion of dawn appeared on Sunday morning, Huck
6933came groping up the hill and rapped gently at the old Welshman's door.
6934The inmates were asleep, but it was a sleep that was set on a
6935hair-trigger, on account of the exciting episode of the night. A call
6936came from a window:
6937
6938"Who's there!"
6939
6940Huck's scared voice answered in a low tone:
6941
6942"Please let me in! It's only Huck Finn!"
6943
6944"It's a name that can open this door night or day, lad!--and welcome!"
6945
6946These were strange words to the vagabond boy's ears, and the
6947pleasantest he had ever heard. He could not recollect that the closing
6948word had ever been applied in his case before. The door was quickly
6949unlocked, and he entered. Huck was given a seat and the old man and his
6950brace of tall sons speedily dressed themselves.
6951
6952"Now, my boy, I hope you're good and hungry, because breakfast will be
6953ready as soon as the sun's up, and we'll have a piping hot one, too
6954--make yourself easy about that! I and the boys hoped you'd turn up and
6955stop here last night."
6956
6957"I was awful scared," said Huck, "and I run. I took out when the
6958pistols went off, and I didn't stop for three mile. I've come now becuz
6959I wanted to know about it, you know; and I come before daylight becuz I
6960didn't want to run across them devils, even if they was dead."
6961
6962"Well, poor chap, you do look as if you'd had a hard night of it--but
6963there's a bed here for you when you've had your breakfast. No, they
6964ain't dead, lad--we are sorry enough for that. You see we knew right
6965where to put our hands on them, by your description; so we crept along
6966on tiptoe till we got within fifteen feet of them--dark as a cellar
6967that sumach path was--and just then I found I was going to sneeze. It
6968was the meanest kind of luck! I tried to keep it back, but no use
6969--'twas bound to come, and it did come! I was in the lead with my pistol
6970raised, and when the sneeze started those scoundrels a-rustling to get
6971out of the path, I sung out, 'Fire boys!' and blazed away at the place
6972where the rustling was. So did the boys. But they were off in a jiffy,
6973those villains, and we after them, down through the woods. I judge we
6974never touched them. They fired a shot apiece as they started, but their
6975bullets whizzed by and didn't do us any harm. As soon as we lost the
6976sound of their feet we quit chasing, and went down and stirred up the
6977constables. They got a posse together, and went off to guard the river
6978bank, and as soon as it is light the sheriff and a gang are going to
6979beat up the woods. My boys will be with them presently. I wish we had
6980some sort of description of those rascals--'twould help a good deal.
6981But you couldn't see what they were like, in the dark, lad, I suppose?"
6982
6983"Oh yes; I saw them down-town and follered them."
6984
6985"Splendid! Describe them--describe them, my boy!"
6986
6987"One's the old deaf and dumb Spaniard that's ben around here once or
6988twice, and t'other's a mean-looking, ragged--"
6989
6990"That's enough, lad, we know the men! Happened on them in the woods
6991back of the widow's one day, and they slunk away. Off with you, boys,
6992and tell the sheriff--get your breakfast to-morrow morning!"
6993
6994The Welshman's sons departed at once. As they were leaving the room
6995Huck sprang up and exclaimed:
6996
6997"Oh, please don't tell ANYbody it was me that blowed on them! Oh,
6998please!"
6999
7000"All right if you say it, Huck, but you ought to have the credit of
7001what you did."
7002
7003"Oh no, no! Please don't tell!"
7004
7005When the young men were gone, the old Welshman said:
7006
7007"They won't tell--and I won't. But why don't you want it known?"
7008
7009Huck would not explain, further than to say that he already knew too
7010much about one of those men and would not have the man know that he
7011knew anything against him for the whole world--he would be killed for
7012knowing it, sure.
7013
7014The old man promised secrecy once more, and said:
7015
7016"How did you come to follow these fellows, lad? Were they looking
7017suspicious?"
7018
7019Huck was silent while he framed a duly cautious reply. Then he said:
7020
7021"Well, you see, I'm a kind of a hard lot,--least everybody says so,
7022and I don't see nothing agin it--and sometimes I can't sleep much, on
7023account of thinking about it and sort of trying to strike out a new way
7024of doing. That was the way of it last night. I couldn't sleep, and so I
7025come along up-street 'bout midnight, a-turning it all over, and when I
7026got to that old shackly brick store by the Temperance Tavern, I backed
7027up agin the wall to have another think. Well, just then along comes
7028these two chaps slipping along close by me, with something under their
7029arm, and I reckoned they'd stole it. One was a-smoking, and t'other one
7030wanted a light; so they stopped right before me and the cigars lit up
7031their faces and I see that the big one was the deaf and dumb Spaniard,
7032by his white whiskers and the patch on his eye, and t'other one was a
7033rusty, ragged-looking devil."
7034
7035"Could you see the rags by the light of the cigars?"
7036
7037This staggered Huck for a moment. Then he said:
7038
7039"Well, I don't know--but somehow it seems as if I did."
7040
7041"Then they went on, and you--"
7042
7043"Follered 'em--yes. That was it. I wanted to see what was up--they
7044sneaked along so. I dogged 'em to the widder's stile, and stood in the
7045dark and heard the ragged one beg for the widder, and the Spaniard
7046swear he'd spile her looks just as I told you and your two--"
7047
7048"What! The DEAF AND DUMB man said all that!"
7049
7050Huck had made another terrible mistake! He was trying his best to keep
7051the old man from getting the faintest hint of who the Spaniard might
7052be, and yet his tongue seemed determined to get him into trouble in
7053spite of all he could do. He made several efforts to creep out of his
7054scrape, but the old man's eye was upon him and he made blunder after
7055blunder. Presently the Welshman said:
7056
7057"My boy, don't be afraid of me. I wouldn't hurt a hair of your head
7058for all the world. No--I'd protect you--I'd protect you. This Spaniard
7059is not deaf and dumb; you've let that slip without intending it; you
7060can't cover that up now. You know something about that Spaniard that
7061you want to keep dark. Now trust me--tell me what it is, and trust me
7062--I won't betray you."
7063
7064Huck looked into the old man's honest eyes a moment, then bent over
7065and whispered in his ear:
7066
7067"'Tain't a Spaniard--it's Injun Joe!"
7068
7069The Welshman almost jumped out of his chair. In a moment he said:
7070
7071"It's all plain enough, now. When you talked about notching ears and
7072slitting noses I judged that that was your own embellishment, because
7073white men don't take that sort of revenge. But an Injun! That's a
7074different matter altogether."
7075
7076During breakfast the talk went on, and in the course of it the old man
7077said that the last thing which he and his sons had done, before going
7078to bed, was to get a lantern and examine the stile and its vicinity for
7079marks of blood. They found none, but captured a bulky bundle of--
7080
7081"Of WHAT?"
7082
7083If the words had been lightning they could not have leaped with a more
7084stunning suddenness from Huck's blanched lips. His eyes were staring
7085wide, now, and his breath suspended--waiting for the answer. The
7086Welshman started--stared in return--three seconds--five seconds--ten
7087--then replied:
7088
7089"Of burglar's tools. Why, what's the MATTER with you?"
7090
7091Huck sank back, panting gently, but deeply, unutterably grateful. The
7092Welshman eyed him gravely, curiously--and presently said:
7093
7094"Yes, burglar's tools. That appears to relieve you a good deal. But
7095what did give you that turn? What were YOU expecting we'd found?"
7096
7097Huck was in a close place--the inquiring eye was upon him--he would
7098have given anything for material for a plausible answer--nothing
7099suggested itself--the inquiring eye was boring deeper and deeper--a
7100senseless reply offered--there was no time to weigh it, so at a venture
7101he uttered it--feebly:
7102
7103"Sunday-school books, maybe."
7104
7105Poor Huck was too distressed to smile, but the old man laughed loud
7106and joyously, shook up the details of his anatomy from head to foot,
7107and ended by saying that such a laugh was money in a-man's pocket,
7108because it cut down the doctor's bill like everything. Then he added:
7109
7110"Poor old chap, you're white and jaded--you ain't well a bit--no
7111wonder you're a little flighty and off your balance. But you'll come
7112out of it. Rest and sleep will fetch you out all right, I hope."
7113
7114Huck was irritated to think he had been such a goose and betrayed such
7115a suspicious excitement, for he had dropped the idea that the parcel
7116brought from the tavern was the treasure, as soon as he had heard the
7117talk at the widow's stile. He had only thought it was not the treasure,
7118however--he had not known that it wasn't--and so the suggestion of a
7119captured bundle was too much for his self-possession. But on the whole
7120he felt glad the little episode had happened, for now he knew beyond
7121all question that that bundle was not THE bundle, and so his mind was
7122at rest and exceedingly comfortable. In fact, everything seemed to be
7123drifting just in the right direction, now; the treasure must be still
7124in No. 2, the men would be captured and jailed that day, and he and Tom
7125could seize the gold that night without any trouble or any fear of
7126interruption.
7127
7128Just as breakfast was completed there was a knock at the door. Huck
7129jumped for a hiding-place, for he had no mind to be connected even
7130remotely with the late event. The Welshman admitted several ladies and
7131gentlemen, among them the Widow Douglas, and noticed that groups of
7132citizens were climbing up the hill--to stare at the stile. So the news
7133had spread. The Welshman had to tell the story of the night to the
7134visitors. The widow's gratitude for her preservation was outspoken.
7135
7136"Don't say a word about it, madam. There's another that you're more
7137beholden to than you are to me and my boys, maybe, but he don't allow
7138me to tell his name. We wouldn't have been there but for him."
7139
7140Of course this excited a curiosity so vast that it almost belittled
7141the main matter--but the Welshman allowed it to eat into the vitals of
7142his visitors, and through them be transmitted to the whole town, for he
7143refused to part with his secret. When all else had been learned, the
7144widow said:
7145
7146"I went to sleep reading in bed and slept straight through all that
7147noise. Why didn't you come and wake me?"
7148
7149"We judged it warn't worth while. Those fellows warn't likely to come
7150again--they hadn't any tools left to work with, and what was the use of
7151waking you up and scaring you to death? My three negro men stood guard
7152at your house all the rest of the night. They've just come back."
7153
7154More visitors came, and the story had to be told and retold for a
7155couple of hours more.
7156
7157There was no Sabbath-school during day-school vacation, but everybody
7158was early at church. The stirring event was well canvassed. News came
7159that not a sign of the two villains had been yet discovered. When the
7160sermon was finished, Judge Thatcher's wife dropped alongside of Mrs.
7161Harper as she moved down the aisle with the crowd and said:
7162
7163"Is my Becky going to sleep all day? I just expected she would be
7164tired to death."
7165
7166"Your Becky?"
7167
7168"Yes," with a startled look--"didn't she stay with you last night?"
7169
7170"Why, no."
7171
7172Mrs. Thatcher turned pale, and sank into a pew, just as Aunt Polly,
7173talking briskly with a friend, passed by. Aunt Polly said:
7174
7175"Good-morning, Mrs. Thatcher. Good-morning, Mrs. Harper. I've got a
7176boy that's turned up missing. I reckon my Tom stayed at your house last
7177night--one of you. And now he's afraid to come to church. I've got to
7178settle with him."
7179
7180Mrs. Thatcher shook her head feebly and turned paler than ever.
7181
7182"He didn't stay with us," said Mrs. Harper, beginning to look uneasy.
7183A marked anxiety came into Aunt Polly's face.
7184
7185"Joe Harper, have you seen my Tom this morning?"
7186
7187"No'm."
7188
7189"When did you see him last?"
7190
7191Joe tried to remember, but was not sure he could say. The people had
7192stopped moving out of church. Whispers passed along, and a boding
7193uneasiness took possession of every countenance. Children were
7194anxiously questioned, and young teachers. They all said they had not
7195noticed whether Tom and Becky were on board the ferryboat on the
7196homeward trip; it was dark; no one thought of inquiring if any one was
7197missing. One young man finally blurted out his fear that they were
7198still in the cave! Mrs. Thatcher swooned away. Aunt Polly fell to
7199crying and wringing her hands.
7200
7201The alarm swept from lip to lip, from group to group, from street to
7202street, and within five minutes the bells were wildly clanging and the
7203whole town was up! The Cardiff Hill episode sank into instant
7204insignificance, the burglars were forgotten, horses were saddled,
7205skiffs were manned, the ferryboat ordered out, and before the horror
7206was half an hour old, two hundred men were pouring down highroad and
7207river toward the cave.
7208
7209All the long afternoon the village seemed empty and dead. Many women
7210visited Aunt Polly and Mrs. Thatcher and tried to comfort them. They
7211cried with them, too, and that was still better than words. All the
7212tedious night the town waited for news; but when the morning dawned at
7213last, all the word that came was, "Send more candles--and send food."
7214Mrs. Thatcher was almost crazed; and Aunt Polly, also. Judge Thatcher
7215sent messages of hope and encouragement from the cave, but they
7216conveyed no real cheer.
7217
7218The old Welshman came home toward daylight, spattered with
7219candle-grease, smeared with clay, and almost worn out. He found Huck
7220still in the bed that had been provided for him, and delirious with
7221fever. The physicians were all at the cave, so the Widow Douglas came
7222and took charge of the patient. She said she would do her best by him,
7223because, whether he was good, bad, or indifferent, he was the Lord's,
7224and nothing that was the Lord's was a thing to be neglected. The
7225Welshman said Huck had good spots in him, and the widow said:
7226
7227"You can depend on it. That's the Lord's mark. He don't leave it off.
7228He never does. Puts it somewhere on every creature that comes from his
7229hands."
7230
7231Early in the forenoon parties of jaded men began to straggle into the
7232village, but the strongest of the citizens continued searching. All the
7233news that could be gained was that remotenesses of the cavern were
7234being ransacked that had never been visited before; that every corner
7235and crevice was going to be thoroughly searched; that wherever one
7236wandered through the maze of passages, lights were to be seen flitting
7237hither and thither in the distance, and shoutings and pistol-shots sent
7238their hollow reverberations to the ear down the sombre aisles. In one
7239place, far from the section usually traversed by tourists, the names
7240"BECKY & TOM" had been found traced upon the rocky wall with
7241candle-smoke, and near at hand a grease-soiled bit of ribbon. Mrs.
7242Thatcher recognized the ribbon and cried over it. She said it was the
7243last relic she should ever have of her child; and that no other memorial
7244of her could ever be so precious, because this one parted latest from
7245the living body before the awful death came. Some said that now and
7246then, in the cave, a far-away speck of light would glimmer, and then a
7247glorious shout would burst forth and a score of men go trooping down the
7248echoing aisle--and then a sickening disappointment always followed; the
7249children were not there; it was only a searcher's light.
7250
7251Three dreadful days and nights dragged their tedious hours along, and
7252the village sank into a hopeless stupor. No one had heart for anything.
7253The accidental discovery, just made, that the proprietor of the
7254Temperance Tavern kept liquor on his premises, scarcely fluttered the
7255public pulse, tremendous as the fact was. In a lucid interval, Huck
7256feebly led up to the subject of taverns, and finally asked--dimly
7257dreading the worst--if anything had been discovered at the Temperance
7258Tavern since he had been ill.
7259
7260"Yes," said the widow.
7261
7262Huck started up in bed, wild-eyed:
7263
7264"What? What was it?"
7265
7266"Liquor!--and the place has been shut up. Lie down, child--what a turn
7267you did give me!"
7268
7269"Only tell me just one thing--only just one--please! Was it Tom Sawyer
7270that found it?"
7271
7272The widow burst into tears. "Hush, hush, child, hush! I've told you
7273before, you must NOT talk. You are very, very sick!"
7274
7275Then nothing but liquor had been found; there would have been a great
7276powwow if it had been the gold. So the treasure was gone forever--gone
7277forever! But what could she be crying about? Curious that she should
7278cry.
7279
7280These thoughts worked their dim way through Huck's mind, and under the
7281weariness they gave him he fell asleep. The widow said to herself:
7282
7283"There--he's asleep, poor wreck. Tom Sawyer find it! Pity but somebody
7284could find Tom Sawyer! Ah, there ain't many left, now, that's got hope
7285enough, or strength enough, either, to go on searching."
7286
7287
7288
7289CHAPTER XXXI
7290
7291NOW to return to Tom and Becky's share in the picnic. They tripped
7292along the murky aisles with the rest of the company, visiting the
7293familiar wonders of the cave--wonders dubbed with rather
7294over-descriptive names, such as "The Drawing-Room," "The Cathedral,"
7295"Aladdin's Palace," and so on. Presently the hide-and-seek frolicking
7296began, and Tom and Becky engaged in it with zeal until the exertion
7297began to grow a trifle wearisome; then they wandered down a sinuous
7298avenue holding their candles aloft and reading the tangled web-work of
7299names, dates, post-office addresses, and mottoes with which the rocky
7300walls had been frescoed (in candle-smoke). Still drifting along and
7301talking, they scarcely noticed that they were now in a part of the cave
7302whose walls were not frescoed. They smoked their own names under an
7303overhanging shelf and moved on. Presently they came to a place where a
7304little stream of water, trickling over a ledge and carrying a limestone
7305sediment with it, had, in the slow-dragging ages, formed a laced and
7306ruffled Niagara in gleaming and imperishable stone. Tom squeezed his
7307small body behind it in order to illuminate it for Becky's
7308gratification. He found that it curtained a sort of steep natural
7309stairway which was enclosed between narrow walls, and at once the
7310ambition to be a discoverer seized him. Becky responded to his call,
7311and they made a smoke-mark for future guidance, and started upon their
7312quest. They wound this way and that, far down into the secret depths of
7313the cave, made another mark, and branched off in search of novelties to
7314tell the upper world about. In one place they found a spacious cavern,
7315from whose ceiling depended a multitude of shining stalactites of the
7316length and circumference of a man's leg; they walked all about it,
7317wondering and admiring, and presently left it by one of the numerous
7318passages that opened into it. This shortly brought them to a bewitching
7319spring, whose basin was incrusted with a frostwork of glittering
7320crystals; it was in the midst of a cavern whose walls were supported by
7321many fantastic pillars which had been formed by the joining of great
7322stalactites and stalagmites together, the result of the ceaseless
7323water-drip of centuries. Under the roof vast knots of bats had packed
7324themselves together, thousands in a bunch; the lights disturbed the
7325creatures and they came flocking down by hundreds, squeaking and
7326darting furiously at the candles. Tom knew their ways and the danger of
7327this sort of conduct. He seized Becky's hand and hurried her into the
7328first corridor that offered; and none too soon, for a bat struck
7329Becky's light out with its wing while she was passing out of the
7330cavern. The bats chased the children a good distance; but the fugitives
7331plunged into every new passage that offered, and at last got rid of the
7332perilous things. Tom found a subterranean lake, shortly, which
7333stretched its dim length away until its shape was lost in the shadows.
7334He wanted to explore its borders, but concluded that it would be best
7335to sit down and rest awhile, first. Now, for the first time, the deep
7336stillness of the place laid a clammy hand upon the spirits of the
7337children. Becky said:
7338
7339"Why, I didn't notice, but it seems ever so long since I heard any of
7340the others."
7341
7342"Come to think, Becky, we are away down below them--and I don't know
7343how far away north, or south, or east, or whichever it is. We couldn't
7344hear them here."
7345
7346Becky grew apprehensive.
7347
7348"I wonder how long we've been down here, Tom? We better start back."
7349
7350"Yes, I reckon we better. P'raps we better."
7351
7352"Can you find the way, Tom? It's all a mixed-up crookedness to me."
7353
7354"I reckon I could find it--but then the bats. If they put our candles
7355out it will be an awful fix. Let's try some other way, so as not to go
7356through there."
7357
7358"Well. But I hope we won't get lost. It would be so awful!" and the
7359girl shuddered at the thought of the dreadful possibilities.
7360
7361They started through a corridor, and traversed it in silence a long
7362way, glancing at each new opening, to see if there was anything
7363familiar about the look of it; but they were all strange. Every time
7364Tom made an examination, Becky would watch his face for an encouraging
7365sign, and he would say cheerily:
7366
7367"Oh, it's all right. This ain't the one, but we'll come to it right
7368away!"
7369
7370But he felt less and less hopeful with each failure, and presently
7371began to turn off into diverging avenues at sheer random, in desperate
7372hope of finding the one that was wanted. He still said it was "all
7373right," but there was such a leaden dread at his heart that the words
7374had lost their ring and sounded just as if he had said, "All is lost!"
7375Becky clung to his side in an anguish of fear, and tried hard to keep
7376back the tears, but they would come. At last she said:
7377
7378"Oh, Tom, never mind the bats, let's go back that way! We seem to get
7379worse and worse off all the time."
7380
7381"Listen!" said he.
7382
7383Profound silence; silence so deep that even their breathings were
7384conspicuous in the hush. Tom shouted. The call went echoing down the
7385empty aisles and died out in the distance in a faint sound that
7386resembled a ripple of mocking laughter.
7387
7388"Oh, don't do it again, Tom, it is too horrid," said Becky.
7389
7390"It is horrid, but I better, Becky; they might hear us, you know," and
7391he shouted again.
7392
7393The "might" was even a chillier horror than the ghostly laughter, it
7394so confessed a perishing hope. The children stood still and listened;
7395but there was no result. Tom turned upon the back track at once, and
7396hurried his steps. It was but a little while before a certain
7397indecision in his manner revealed another fearful fact to Becky--he
7398could not find his way back!
7399
7400"Oh, Tom, you didn't make any marks!"
7401
7402"Becky, I was such a fool! Such a fool! I never thought we might want
7403to come back! No--I can't find the way. It's all mixed up."
7404
7405"Tom, Tom, we're lost! we're lost! We never can get out of this awful
7406place! Oh, why DID we ever leave the others!"
7407
7408She sank to the ground and burst into such a frenzy of crying that Tom
7409was appalled with the idea that she might die, or lose her reason. He
7410sat down by her and put his arms around her; she buried her face in his
7411bosom, she clung to him, she poured out her terrors, her unavailing
7412regrets, and the far echoes turned them all to jeering laughter. Tom
7413begged her to pluck up hope again, and she said she could not. He fell
7414to blaming and abusing himself for getting her into this miserable
7415situation; this had a better effect. She said she would try to hope
7416again, she would get up and follow wherever he might lead if only he
7417would not talk like that any more. For he was no more to blame than
7418she, she said.
7419
7420So they moved on again--aimlessly--simply at random--all they could do
7421was to move, keep moving. For a little while, hope made a show of
7422reviving--not with any reason to back it, but only because it is its
7423nature to revive when the spring has not been taken out of it by age
7424and familiarity with failure.
7425
7426By-and-by Tom took Becky's candle and blew it out. This economy meant
7427so much! Words were not needed. Becky understood, and her hope died
7428again. She knew that Tom had a whole candle and three or four pieces in
7429his pockets--yet he must economize.
7430
7431By-and-by, fatigue began to assert its claims; the children tried to
7432pay attention, for it was dreadful to think of sitting down when time
7433was grown to be so precious, moving, in some direction, in any
7434direction, was at least progress and might bear fruit; but to sit down
7435was to invite death and shorten its pursuit.
7436
7437At last Becky's frail limbs refused to carry her farther. She sat
7438down. Tom rested with her, and they talked of home, and the friends
7439there, and the comfortable beds and, above all, the light! Becky cried,
7440and Tom tried to think of some way of comforting her, but all his
7441encouragements were grown threadbare with use, and sounded like
7442sarcasms. Fatigue bore so heavily upon Becky that she drowsed off to
7443sleep. Tom was grateful. He sat looking into her drawn face and saw it
7444grow smooth and natural under the influence of pleasant dreams; and
7445by-and-by a smile dawned and rested there. The peaceful face reflected
7446somewhat of peace and healing into his own spirit, and his thoughts
7447wandered away to bygone times and dreamy memories. While he was deep in
7448his musings, Becky woke up with a breezy little laugh--but it was
7449stricken dead upon her lips, and a groan followed it.
7450
7451"Oh, how COULD I sleep! I wish I never, never had waked! No! No, I
7452don't, Tom! Don't look so! I won't say it again."
7453
7454"I'm glad you've slept, Becky; you'll feel rested, now, and we'll find
7455the way out."
7456
7457"We can try, Tom; but I've seen such a beautiful country in my dream.
7458I reckon we are going there."
7459
7460"Maybe not, maybe not. Cheer up, Becky, and let's go on trying."
7461
7462They rose up and wandered along, hand in hand and hopeless. They tried
7463to estimate how long they had been in the cave, but all they knew was
7464that it seemed days and weeks, and yet it was plain that this could not
7465be, for their candles were not gone yet. A long time after this--they
7466could not tell how long--Tom said they must go softly and listen for
7467dripping water--they must find a spring. They found one presently, and
7468Tom said it was time to rest again. Both were cruelly tired, yet Becky
7469said she thought she could go a little farther. She was surprised to
7470hear Tom dissent. She could not understand it. They sat down, and Tom
7471fastened his candle to the wall in front of them with some clay.
7472Thought was soon busy; nothing was said for some time. Then Becky broke
7473the silence:
7474
7475"Tom, I am so hungry!"
7476
7477Tom took something out of his pocket.
7478
7479"Do you remember this?" said he.
7480
7481Becky almost smiled.
7482
7483"It's our wedding-cake, Tom."
7484
7485"Yes--I wish it was as big as a barrel, for it's all we've got."
7486
7487"I saved it from the picnic for us to dream on, Tom, the way grown-up
7488people do with wedding-cake--but it'll be our--"
7489
7490She dropped the sentence where it was. Tom divided the cake and Becky
7491ate with good appetite, while Tom nibbled at his moiety. There was
7492abundance of cold water to finish the feast with. By-and-by Becky
7493suggested that they move on again. Tom was silent a moment. Then he
7494said:
7495
7496"Becky, can you bear it if I tell you something?"
7497
7498Becky's face paled, but she thought she could.
7499
7500"Well, then, Becky, we must stay here, where there's water to drink.
7501That little piece is our last candle!"
7502
7503Becky gave loose to tears and wailings. Tom did what he could to
7504comfort her, but with little effect. At length Becky said:
7505
7506"Tom!"
7507
7508"Well, Becky?"
7509
7510"They'll miss us and hunt for us!"
7511
7512"Yes, they will! Certainly they will!"
7513
7514"Maybe they're hunting for us now, Tom."
7515
7516"Why, I reckon maybe they are. I hope they are."
7517
7518"When would they miss us, Tom?"
7519
7520"When they get back to the boat, I reckon."
7521
7522"Tom, it might be dark then--would they notice we hadn't come?"
7523
7524"I don't know. But anyway, your mother would miss you as soon as they
7525got home."
7526
7527A frightened look in Becky's face brought Tom to his senses and he saw
7528that he had made a blunder. Becky was not to have gone home that night!
7529The children became silent and thoughtful. In a moment a new burst of
7530grief from Becky showed Tom that the thing in his mind had struck hers
7531also--that the Sabbath morning might be half spent before Mrs. Thatcher
7532discovered that Becky was not at Mrs. Harper's.
7533
7534The children fastened their eyes upon their bit of candle and watched
7535it melt slowly and pitilessly away; saw the half inch of wick stand
7536alone at last; saw the feeble flame rise and fall, climb the thin
7537column of smoke, linger at its top a moment, and then--the horror of
7538utter darkness reigned!
7539
7540How long afterward it was that Becky came to a slow consciousness that
7541she was crying in Tom's arms, neither could tell. All that they knew
7542was, that after what seemed a mighty stretch of time, both awoke out of
7543a dead stupor of sleep and resumed their miseries once more. Tom said
7544it might be Sunday, now--maybe Monday. He tried to get Becky to talk,
7545but her sorrows were too oppressive, all her hopes were gone. Tom said
7546that they must have been missed long ago, and no doubt the search was
7547going on. He would shout and maybe some one would come. He tried it;
7548but in the darkness the distant echoes sounded so hideously that he
7549tried it no more.
7550
7551The hours wasted away, and hunger came to torment the captives again.
7552A portion of Tom's half of the cake was left; they divided and ate it.
7553But they seemed hungrier than before. The poor morsel of food only
7554whetted desire.
7555
7556By-and-by Tom said:
7557
7558"SH! Did you hear that?"
7559
7560Both held their breath and listened. There was a sound like the
7561faintest, far-off shout. Instantly Tom answered it, and leading Becky
7562by the hand, started groping down the corridor in its direction.
7563Presently he listened again; again the sound was heard, and apparently
7564a little nearer.
7565
7566"It's them!" said Tom; "they're coming! Come along, Becky--we're all
7567right now!"
7568
7569The joy of the prisoners was almost overwhelming. Their speed was
7570slow, however, because pitfalls were somewhat common, and had to be
7571guarded against. They shortly came to one and had to stop. It might be
7572three feet deep, it might be a hundred--there was no passing it at any
7573rate. Tom got down on his breast and reached as far down as he could.
7574No bottom. They must stay there and wait until the searchers came. They
7575listened; evidently the distant shoutings were growing more distant! a
7576moment or two more and they had gone altogether. The heart-sinking
7577misery of it! Tom whooped until he was hoarse, but it was of no use. He
7578talked hopefully to Becky; but an age of anxious waiting passed and no
7579sounds came again.
7580
7581The children groped their way back to the spring. The weary time
7582dragged on; they slept again, and awoke famished and woe-stricken. Tom
7583believed it must be Tuesday by this time.
7584
7585Now an idea struck him. There were some side passages near at hand. It
7586would be better to explore some of these than bear the weight of the
7587heavy time in idleness. He took a kite-line from his pocket, tied it to
7588a projection, and he and Becky started, Tom in the lead, unwinding the
7589line as he groped along. At the end of twenty steps the corridor ended
7590in a "jumping-off place." Tom got down on his knees and felt below, and
7591then as far around the corner as he could reach with his hands
7592conveniently; he made an effort to stretch yet a little farther to the
7593right, and at that moment, not twenty yards away, a human hand, holding
7594a candle, appeared from behind a rock! Tom lifted up a glorious shout,
7595and instantly that hand was followed by the body it belonged to--Injun
7596Joe's! Tom was paralyzed; he could not move. He was vastly gratified
7597the next moment, to see the "Spaniard" take to his heels and get
7598himself out of sight. Tom wondered that Joe had not recognized his
7599voice and come over and killed him for testifying in court. But the
7600echoes must have disguised the voice. Without doubt, that was it, he
7601reasoned. Tom's fright weakened every muscle in his body. He said to
7602himself that if he had strength enough to get back to the spring he
7603would stay there, and nothing should tempt him to run the risk of
7604meeting Injun Joe again. He was careful to keep from Becky what it was
7605he had seen. He told her he had only shouted "for luck."
7606
7607But hunger and wretchedness rise superior to fears in the long run.
7608Another tedious wait at the spring and another long sleep brought
7609changes. The children awoke tortured with a raging hunger. Tom believed
7610that it must be Wednesday or Thursday or even Friday or Saturday, now,
7611and that the search had been given over. He proposed to explore another
7612passage. He felt willing to risk Injun Joe and all other terrors. But
7613Becky was very weak. She had sunk into a dreary apathy and would not be
7614roused. She said she would wait, now, where she was, and die--it would
7615not be long. She told Tom to go with the kite-line and explore if he
7616chose; but she implored him to come back every little while and speak
7617to her; and she made him promise that when the awful time came, he
7618would stay by her and hold her hand until all was over.
7619
7620Tom kissed her, with a choking sensation in his throat, and made a
7621show of being confident of finding the searchers or an escape from the
7622cave; then he took the kite-line in his hand and went groping down one
7623of the passages on his hands and knees, distressed with hunger and sick
7624with bodings of coming doom.
7625
7626
7627
7628CHAPTER XXXII
7629
7630TUESDAY afternoon came, and waned to the twilight. The village of St.
7631Petersburg still mourned. The lost children had not been found. Public
7632prayers had been offered up for them, and many and many a private
7633prayer that had the petitioner's whole heart in it; but still no good
7634news came from the cave. The majority of the searchers had given up the
7635quest and gone back to their daily avocations, saying that it was plain
7636the children could never be found. Mrs. Thatcher was very ill, and a
7637great part of the time delirious. People said it was heartbreaking to
7638hear her call her child, and raise her head and listen a whole minute
7639at a time, then lay it wearily down again with a moan. Aunt Polly had
7640drooped into a settled melancholy, and her gray hair had grown almost
7641white. The village went to its rest on Tuesday night, sad and forlorn.
7642
7643Away in the middle of the night a wild peal burst from the village
7644bells, and in a moment the streets were swarming with frantic half-clad
7645people, who shouted, "Turn out! turn out! they're found! they're
7646found!" Tin pans and horns were added to the din, the population massed
7647itself and moved toward the river, met the children coming in an open
7648carriage drawn by shouting citizens, thronged around it, joined its
7649homeward march, and swept magnificently up the main street roaring
7650huzzah after huzzah!
7651
7652The village was illuminated; nobody went to bed again; it was the
7653greatest night the little town had ever seen. During the first half-hour
7654a procession of villagers filed through Judge Thatcher's house, seized
7655the saved ones and kissed them, squeezed Mrs. Thatcher's hand, tried to
7656speak but couldn't--and drifted out raining tears all over the place.
7657
7658Aunt Polly's happiness was complete, and Mrs. Thatcher's nearly so. It
7659would be complete, however, as soon as the messenger dispatched with
7660the great news to the cave should get the word to her husband. Tom lay
7661upon a sofa with an eager auditory about him and told the history of
7662the wonderful adventure, putting in many striking additions to adorn it
7663withal; and closed with a description of how he left Becky and went on
7664an exploring expedition; how he followed two avenues as far as his
7665kite-line would reach; how he followed a third to the fullest stretch of
7666the kite-line, and was about to turn back when he glimpsed a far-off
7667speck that looked like daylight; dropped the line and groped toward it,
7668pushed his head and shoulders through a small hole, and saw the broad
7669Mississippi rolling by! And if it had only happened to be night he would
7670not have seen that speck of daylight and would not have explored that
7671passage any more! He told how he went back for Becky and broke the good
7672news and she told him not to fret her with such stuff, for she was
7673tired, and knew she was going to die, and wanted to. He described how he
7674labored with her and convinced her; and how she almost died for joy when
7675she had groped to where she actually saw the blue speck of daylight; how
7676he pushed his way out at the hole and then helped her out; how they sat
7677there and cried for gladness; how some men came along in a skiff and Tom
7678hailed them and told them their situation and their famished condition;
7679how the men didn't believe the wild tale at first, "because," said they,
7680"you are five miles down the river below the valley the cave is in"
7681--then took them aboard, rowed to a house, gave them supper, made them
7682rest till two or three hours after dark and then brought them home.
7683
7684Before day-dawn, Judge Thatcher and the handful of searchers with him
7685were tracked out, in the cave, by the twine clews they had strung
7686behind them, and informed of the great news.
7687
7688Three days and nights of toil and hunger in the cave were not to be
7689shaken off at once, as Tom and Becky soon discovered. They were
7690bedridden all of Wednesday and Thursday, and seemed to grow more and
7691more tired and worn, all the time. Tom got about, a little, on
7692Thursday, was down-town Friday, and nearly as whole as ever Saturday;
7693but Becky did not leave her room until Sunday, and then she looked as
7694if she had passed through a wasting illness.
7695
7696Tom learned of Huck's sickness and went to see him on Friday, but
7697could not be admitted to the bedroom; neither could he on Saturday or
7698Sunday. He was admitted daily after that, but was warned to keep still
7699about his adventure and introduce no exciting topic. The Widow Douglas
7700stayed by to see that he obeyed. At home Tom learned of the Cardiff
7701Hill event; also that the "ragged man's" body had eventually been found
7702in the river near the ferry-landing; he had been drowned while trying
7703to escape, perhaps.
7704
7705About a fortnight after Tom's rescue from the cave, he started off to
7706visit Huck, who had grown plenty strong enough, now, to hear exciting
7707talk, and Tom had some that would interest him, he thought. Judge
7708Thatcher's house was on Tom's way, and he stopped to see Becky. The
7709Judge and some friends set Tom to talking, and some one asked him
7710ironically if he wouldn't like to go to the cave again. Tom said he
7711thought he wouldn't mind it. The Judge said:
7712
7713"Well, there are others just like you, Tom, I've not the least doubt.
7714But we have taken care of that. Nobody will get lost in that cave any
7715more."
7716
7717"Why?"
7718
7719"Because I had its big door sheathed with boiler iron two weeks ago,
7720and triple-locked--and I've got the keys."
7721
7722Tom turned as white as a sheet.
7723
7724"What's the matter, boy! Here, run, somebody! Fetch a glass of water!"
7725
7726The water was brought and thrown into Tom's face.
7727
7728"Ah, now you're all right. What was the matter with you, Tom?"
7729
7730"Oh, Judge, Injun Joe's in the cave!"
7731
7732
7733
7734CHAPTER XXXIII
7735
7736WITHIN a few minutes the news had spread, and a dozen skiff-loads of
7737men were on their way to McDougal's cave, and the ferryboat, well
7738filled with passengers, soon followed. Tom Sawyer was in the skiff that
7739bore Judge Thatcher.
7740
7741When the cave door was unlocked, a sorrowful sight presented itself in
7742the dim twilight of the place. Injun Joe lay stretched upon the ground,
7743dead, with his face close to the crack of the door, as if his longing
7744eyes had been fixed, to the latest moment, upon the light and the cheer
7745of the free world outside. Tom was touched, for he knew by his own
7746experience how this wretch had suffered. His pity was moved, but
7747nevertheless he felt an abounding sense of relief and security, now,
7748which revealed to him in a degree which he had not fully appreciated
7749before how vast a weight of dread had been lying upon him since the day
7750he lifted his voice against this bloody-minded outcast.
7751
7752Injun Joe's bowie-knife lay close by, its blade broken in two. The
7753great foundation-beam of the door had been chipped and hacked through,
7754with tedious labor; useless labor, too, it was, for the native rock
7755formed a sill outside it, and upon that stubborn material the knife had
7756wrought no effect; the only damage done was to the knife itself. But if
7757there had been no stony obstruction there the labor would have been
7758useless still, for if the beam had been wholly cut away Injun Joe could
7759not have squeezed his body under the door, and he knew it. So he had
7760only hacked that place in order to be doing something--in order to pass
7761the weary time--in order to employ his tortured faculties. Ordinarily
7762one could find half a dozen bits of candle stuck around in the crevices
7763of this vestibule, left there by tourists; but there were none now. The
7764prisoner had searched them out and eaten them. He had also contrived to
7765catch a few bats, and these, also, he had eaten, leaving only their
7766claws. The poor unfortunate had starved to death. In one place, near at
7767hand, a stalagmite had been slowly growing up from the ground for ages,
7768builded by the water-drip from a stalactite overhead. The captive had
7769broken off the stalagmite, and upon the stump had placed a stone,
7770wherein he had scooped a shallow hollow to catch the precious drop
7771that fell once in every three minutes with the dreary regularity of a
7772clock-tick--a dessertspoonful once in four and twenty hours. That drop
7773was falling when the Pyramids were new; when Troy fell; when the
7774foundations of Rome were laid; when Christ was crucified; when the
7775Conqueror created the British empire; when Columbus sailed; when the
7776massacre at Lexington was "news." It is falling now; it will still be
7777falling when all these things shall have sunk down the afternoon of
7778history, and the twilight of tradition, and been swallowed up in the
7779thick night of oblivion. Has everything a purpose and a mission? Did
7780this drop fall patiently during five thousand years to be ready for
7781this flitting human insect's need? and has it another important object
7782to accomplish ten thousand years to come? No matter. It is many and
7783many a year since the hapless half-breed scooped out the stone to catch
7784the priceless drops, but to this day the tourist stares longest at that
7785pathetic stone and that slow-dropping water when he comes to see the
7786wonders of McDougal's cave. Injun Joe's cup stands first in the list of
7787the cavern's marvels; even "Aladdin's Palace" cannot rival it.
7788
7789Injun Joe was buried near the mouth of the cave; and people flocked
7790there in boats and wagons from the towns and from all the farms and
7791hamlets for seven miles around; they brought their children, and all
7792sorts of provisions, and confessed that they had had almost as
7793satisfactory a time at the funeral as they could have had at the
7794hanging.
7795
7796This funeral stopped the further growth of one thing--the petition to
7797the governor for Injun Joe's pardon. The petition had been largely
7798signed; many tearful and eloquent meetings had been held, and a
7799committee of sappy women been appointed to go in deep mourning and wail
7800around the governor, and implore him to be a merciful ass and trample
7801his duty under foot. Injun Joe was believed to have killed five
7802citizens of the village, but what of that? If he had been Satan himself
7803there would have been plenty of weaklings ready to scribble their names
7804to a pardon-petition, and drip a tear on it from their permanently
7805impaired and leaky water-works.
7806
7807The morning after the funeral Tom took Huck to a private place to have
7808an important talk. Huck had learned all about Tom's adventure from the
7809Welshman and the Widow Douglas, by this time, but Tom said he reckoned
7810there was one thing they had not told him; that thing was what he
7811wanted to talk about now. Huck's face saddened. He said:
7812
7813"I know what it is. You got into No. 2 and never found anything but
7814whiskey. Nobody told me it was you; but I just knowed it must 'a' ben
7815you, soon as I heard 'bout that whiskey business; and I knowed you
7816hadn't got the money becuz you'd 'a' got at me some way or other and
7817told me even if you was mum to everybody else. Tom, something's always
7818told me we'd never get holt of that swag."
7819
7820"Why, Huck, I never told on that tavern-keeper. YOU know his tavern
7821was all right the Saturday I went to the picnic. Don't you remember you
7822was to watch there that night?"
7823
7824"Oh yes! Why, it seems 'bout a year ago. It was that very night that I
7825follered Injun Joe to the widder's."
7826
7827"YOU followed him?"
7828
7829"Yes--but you keep mum. I reckon Injun Joe's left friends behind him,
7830and I don't want 'em souring on me and doing me mean tricks. If it
7831hadn't ben for me he'd be down in Texas now, all right."
7832
7833Then Huck told his entire adventure in confidence to Tom, who had only
7834heard of the Welshman's part of it before.
7835
7836"Well," said Huck, presently, coming back to the main question,
7837"whoever nipped the whiskey in No. 2, nipped the money, too, I reckon
7838--anyways it's a goner for us, Tom."
7839
7840"Huck, that money wasn't ever in No. 2!"
7841
7842"What!" Huck searched his comrade's face keenly. "Tom, have you got on
7843the track of that money again?"
7844
7845"Huck, it's in the cave!"
7846
7847Huck's eyes blazed.
7848
7849"Say it again, Tom."
7850
7851"The money's in the cave!"
7852
7853"Tom--honest injun, now--is it fun, or earnest?"
7854
7855"Earnest, Huck--just as earnest as ever I was in my life. Will you go
7856in there with me and help get it out?"
7857
7858"I bet I will! I will if it's where we can blaze our way to it and not
7859get lost."
7860
7861"Huck, we can do that without the least little bit of trouble in the
7862world."
7863
7864"Good as wheat! What makes you think the money's--"
7865
7866"Huck, you just wait till we get in there. If we don't find it I'll
7867agree to give you my drum and every thing I've got in the world. I
7868will, by jings."
7869
7870"All right--it's a whiz. When do you say?"
7871
7872"Right now, if you say it. Are you strong enough?"
7873
7874"Is it far in the cave? I ben on my pins a little, three or four days,
7875now, but I can't walk more'n a mile, Tom--least I don't think I could."
7876
7877"It's about five mile into there the way anybody but me would go,
7878Huck, but there's a mighty short cut that they don't anybody but me
7879know about. Huck, I'll take you right to it in a skiff. I'll float the
7880skiff down there, and I'll pull it back again all by myself. You
7881needn't ever turn your hand over."
7882
7883"Less start right off, Tom."
7884
7885"All right. We want some bread and meat, and our pipes, and a little
7886bag or two, and two or three kite-strings, and some of these
7887new-fangled things they call lucifer matches. I tell you, many's
7888the time I wished I had some when I was in there before."
7889
7890A trifle after noon the boys borrowed a small skiff from a citizen who
7891was absent, and got under way at once. When they were several miles
7892below "Cave Hollow," Tom said:
7893
7894"Now you see this bluff here looks all alike all the way down from the
7895cave hollow--no houses, no wood-yards, bushes all alike. But do you see
7896that white place up yonder where there's been a landslide? Well, that's
7897one of my marks. We'll get ashore, now."
7898
7899They landed.
7900
7901"Now, Huck, where we're a-standing you could touch that hole I got out
7902of with a fishing-pole. See if you can find it."
7903
7904Huck searched all the place about, and found nothing. Tom proudly
7905marched into a thick clump of sumach bushes and said:
7906
7907"Here you are! Look at it, Huck; it's the snuggest hole in this
7908country. You just keep mum about it. All along I've been wanting to be
7909a robber, but I knew I'd got to have a thing like this, and where to
7910run across it was the bother. We've got it now, and we'll keep it
7911quiet, only we'll let Joe Harper and Ben Rogers in--because of course
7912there's got to be a Gang, or else there wouldn't be any style about it.
7913Tom Sawyer's Gang--it sounds splendid, don't it, Huck?"
7914
7915"Well, it just does, Tom. And who'll we rob?"
7916
7917"Oh, most anybody. Waylay people--that's mostly the way."
7918
7919"And kill them?"
7920
7921"No, not always. Hive them in the cave till they raise a ransom."
7922
7923"What's a ransom?"
7924
7925"Money. You make them raise all they can, off'n their friends; and
7926after you've kept them a year, if it ain't raised then you kill them.
7927That's the general way. Only you don't kill the women. You shut up the
7928women, but you don't kill them. They're always beautiful and rich, and
7929awfully scared. You take their watches and things, but you always take
7930your hat off and talk polite. They ain't anybody as polite as robbers
7931--you'll see that in any book. Well, the women get to loving you, and
7932after they've been in the cave a week or two weeks they stop crying and
7933after that you couldn't get them to leave. If you drove them out they'd
7934turn right around and come back. It's so in all the books."
7935
7936"Why, it's real bully, Tom. I believe it's better'n to be a pirate."
7937
7938"Yes, it's better in some ways, because it's close to home and
7939circuses and all that."
7940
7941By this time everything was ready and the boys entered the hole, Tom
7942in the lead. They toiled their way to the farther end of the tunnel,
7943then made their spliced kite-strings fast and moved on. A few steps
7944brought them to the spring, and Tom felt a shudder quiver all through
7945him. He showed Huck the fragment of candle-wick perched on a lump of
7946clay against the wall, and described how he and Becky had watched the
7947flame struggle and expire.
7948
7949The boys began to quiet down to whispers, now, for the stillness and
7950gloom of the place oppressed their spirits. They went on, and presently
7951entered and followed Tom's other corridor until they reached the
7952"jumping-off place." The candles revealed the fact that it was not
7953really a precipice, but only a steep clay hill twenty or thirty feet
7954high. Tom whispered:
7955
7956"Now I'll show you something, Huck."
7957
7958He held his candle aloft and said:
7959
7960"Look as far around the corner as you can. Do you see that? There--on
7961the big rock over yonder--done with candle-smoke."
7962
7963"Tom, it's a CROSS!"
7964
7965"NOW where's your Number Two? 'UNDER THE CROSS,' hey? Right yonder's
7966where I saw Injun Joe poke up his candle, Huck!"
7967
7968Huck stared at the mystic sign awhile, and then said with a shaky voice:
7969
7970"Tom, less git out of here!"
7971
7972"What! and leave the treasure?"
7973
7974"Yes--leave it. Injun Joe's ghost is round about there, certain."
7975
7976"No it ain't, Huck, no it ain't. It would ha'nt the place where he
7977died--away out at the mouth of the cave--five mile from here."
7978
7979"No, Tom, it wouldn't. It would hang round the money. I know the ways
7980of ghosts, and so do you."
7981
7982Tom began to fear that Huck was right. Misgivings gathered in his
7983mind. But presently an idea occurred to him--
7984
7985"Lookyhere, Huck, what fools we're making of ourselves! Injun Joe's
7986ghost ain't a going to come around where there's a cross!"
7987
7988The point was well taken. It had its effect.
7989
7990"Tom, I didn't think of that. But that's so. It's luck for us, that
7991cross is. I reckon we'll climb down there and have a hunt for that box."
7992
7993Tom went first, cutting rude steps in the clay hill as he descended.
7994Huck followed. Four avenues opened out of the small cavern which the
7995great rock stood in. The boys examined three of them with no result.
7996They found a small recess in the one nearest the base of the rock, with
7997a pallet of blankets spread down in it; also an old suspender, some
7998bacon rind, and the well-gnawed bones of two or three fowls. But there
7999was no money-box. The lads searched and researched this place, but in
8000vain. Tom said:
8001
8002"He said UNDER the cross. Well, this comes nearest to being under the
8003cross. It can't be under the rock itself, because that sets solid on
8004the ground."
8005
8006They searched everywhere once more, and then sat down discouraged.
8007Huck could suggest nothing. By-and-by Tom said:
8008
8009"Lookyhere, Huck, there's footprints and some candle-grease on the
8010clay about one side of this rock, but not on the other sides. Now,
8011what's that for? I bet you the money IS under the rock. I'm going to
8012dig in the clay."
8013
8014"That ain't no bad notion, Tom!" said Huck with animation.
8015
8016Tom's "real Barlow" was out at once, and he had not dug four inches
8017before he struck wood.
8018
8019"Hey, Huck!--you hear that?"
8020
8021Huck began to dig and scratch now. Some boards were soon uncovered and
8022removed. They had concealed a natural chasm which led under the rock.
8023Tom got into this and held his candle as far under the rock as he
8024could, but said he could not see to the end of the rift. He proposed to
8025explore. He stooped and passed under; the narrow way descended
8026gradually. He followed its winding course, first to the right, then to
8027the left, Huck at his heels. Tom turned a short curve, by-and-by, and
8028exclaimed:
8029
8030"My goodness, Huck, lookyhere!"
8031
8032It was the treasure-box, sure enough, occupying a snug little cavern,
8033along with an empty powder-keg, a couple of guns in leather cases, two
8034or three pairs of old moccasins, a leather belt, and some other rubbish
8035well soaked with the water-drip.
8036
8037"Got it at last!" said Huck, ploughing among the tarnished coins with
8038his hand. "My, but we're rich, Tom!"
8039
8040"Huck, I always reckoned we'd get it. It's just too good to believe,
8041but we HAVE got it, sure! Say--let's not fool around here. Let's snake
8042it out. Lemme see if I can lift the box."
8043
8044It weighed about fifty pounds. Tom could lift it, after an awkward
8045fashion, but could not carry it conveniently.
8046
8047"I thought so," he said; "THEY carried it like it was heavy, that day
8048at the ha'nted house. I noticed that. I reckon I was right to think of
8049fetching the little bags along."
8050
8051The money was soon in the bags and the boys took it up to the cross
8052rock.
8053
8054"Now less fetch the guns and things," said Huck.
8055
8056"No, Huck--leave them there. They're just the tricks to have when we
8057go to robbing. We'll keep them there all the time, and we'll hold our
8058orgies there, too. It's an awful snug place for orgies."
8059
8060"What orgies?"
8061
8062"I dono. But robbers always have orgies, and of course we've got to
8063have them, too. Come along, Huck, we've been in here a long time. It's
8064getting late, I reckon. I'm hungry, too. We'll eat and smoke when we
8065get to the skiff."
8066
8067They presently emerged into the clump of sumach bushes, looked warily
8068out, found the coast clear, and were soon lunching and smoking in the
8069skiff. As the sun dipped toward the horizon they pushed out and got
8070under way. Tom skimmed up the shore through the long twilight, chatting
8071cheerily with Huck, and landed shortly after dark.
8072
8073"Now, Huck," said Tom, "we'll hide the money in the loft of the
8074widow's woodshed, and I'll come up in the morning and we'll count it
8075and divide, and then we'll hunt up a place out in the woods for it
8076where it will be safe. Just you lay quiet here and watch the stuff till
8077I run and hook Benny Taylor's little wagon; I won't be gone a minute."
8078
8079He disappeared, and presently returned with the wagon, put the two
8080small sacks into it, threw some old rags on top of them, and started
8081off, dragging his cargo behind him. When the boys reached the
8082Welshman's house, they stopped to rest. Just as they were about to move
8083on, the Welshman stepped out and said:
8084
8085"Hallo, who's that?"
8086
8087"Huck and Tom Sawyer."
8088
8089"Good! Come along with me, boys, you are keeping everybody waiting.
8090Here--hurry up, trot ahead--I'll haul the wagon for you. Why, it's not
8091as light as it might be. Got bricks in it?--or old metal?"
8092
8093"Old metal," said Tom.
8094
8095"I judged so; the boys in this town will take more trouble and fool
8096away more time hunting up six bits' worth of old iron to sell to the
8097foundry than they would to make twice the money at regular work. But
8098that's human nature--hurry along, hurry along!"
8099
8100The boys wanted to know what the hurry was about.
8101
8102"Never mind; you'll see, when we get to the Widow Douglas'."
8103
8104Huck said with some apprehension--for he was long used to being
8105falsely accused:
8106
8107"Mr. Jones, we haven't been doing nothing."
8108
8109The Welshman laughed.
8110
8111"Well, I don't know, Huck, my boy. I don't know about that. Ain't you
8112and the widow good friends?"
8113
8114"Yes. Well, she's ben good friends to me, anyway."
8115
8116"All right, then. What do you want to be afraid for?"
8117
8118This question was not entirely answered in Huck's slow mind before he
8119found himself pushed, along with Tom, into Mrs. Douglas' drawing-room.
8120Mr. Jones left the wagon near the door and followed.
8121
8122The place was grandly lighted, and everybody that was of any
8123consequence in the village was there. The Thatchers were there, the
8124Harpers, the Rogerses, Aunt Polly, Sid, Mary, the minister, the editor,
8125and a great many more, and all dressed in their best. The widow
8126received the boys as heartily as any one could well receive two such
8127looking beings. They were covered with clay and candle-grease. Aunt
8128Polly blushed crimson with humiliation, and frowned and shook her head
8129at Tom. Nobody suffered half as much as the two boys did, however. Mr.
8130Jones said:
8131
8132"Tom wasn't at home, yet, so I gave him up; but I stumbled on him and
8133Huck right at my door, and so I just brought them along in a hurry."
8134
8135"And you did just right," said the widow. "Come with me, boys."
8136
8137She took them to a bedchamber and said:
8138
8139"Now wash and dress yourselves. Here are two new suits of clothes
8140--shirts, socks, everything complete. They're Huck's--no, no thanks,
8141Huck--Mr. Jones bought one and I the other. But they'll fit both of you.
8142Get into them. We'll wait--come down when you are slicked up enough."
8143
8144Then she left.
8145
8146
8147
8148CHAPTER XXXIV
8149
8150HUCK said: "Tom, we can slope, if we can find a rope. The window ain't
8151high from the ground."
8152
8153"Shucks! what do you want to slope for?"
8154
8155"Well, I ain't used to that kind of a crowd. I can't stand it. I ain't
8156going down there, Tom."
8157
8158"Oh, bother! It ain't anything. I don't mind it a bit. I'll take care
8159of you."
8160
8161Sid appeared.
8162
8163"Tom," said he, "auntie has been waiting for you all the afternoon.
8164Mary got your Sunday clothes ready, and everybody's been fretting about
8165you. Say--ain't this grease and clay, on your clothes?"
8166
8167"Now, Mr. Siddy, you jist 'tend to your own business. What's all this
8168blow-out about, anyway?"
8169
8170"It's one of the widow's parties that she's always having. This time
8171it's for the Welshman and his sons, on account of that scrape they
8172helped her out of the other night. And say--I can tell you something,
8173if you want to know."
8174
8175"Well, what?"
8176
8177"Why, old Mr. Jones is going to try to spring something on the people
8178here to-night, but I overheard him tell auntie to-day about it, as a
8179secret, but I reckon it's not much of a secret now. Everybody knows
8180--the widow, too, for all she tries to let on she don't. Mr. Jones was
8181bound Huck should be here--couldn't get along with his grand secret
8182without Huck, you know!"
8183
8184"Secret about what, Sid?"
8185
8186"About Huck tracking the robbers to the widow's. I reckon Mr. Jones
8187was going to make a grand time over his surprise, but I bet you it will
8188drop pretty flat."
8189
8190Sid chuckled in a very contented and satisfied way.
8191
8192"Sid, was it you that told?"
8193
8194"Oh, never mind who it was. SOMEBODY told--that's enough."
8195
8196"Sid, there's only one person in this town mean enough to do that, and
8197that's you. If you had been in Huck's place you'd 'a' sneaked down the
8198hill and never told anybody on the robbers. You can't do any but mean
8199things, and you can't bear to see anybody praised for doing good ones.
8200There--no thanks, as the widow says"--and Tom cuffed Sid's ears and
8201helped him to the door with several kicks. "Now go and tell auntie if
8202you dare--and to-morrow you'll catch it!"
8203
8204Some minutes later the widow's guests were at the supper-table, and a
8205dozen children were propped up at little side-tables in the same room,
8206after the fashion of that country and that day. At the proper time Mr.
8207Jones made his little speech, in which he thanked the widow for the
8208honor she was doing himself and his sons, but said that there was
8209another person whose modesty--
8210
8211And so forth and so on. He sprung his secret about Huck's share in the
8212adventure in the finest dramatic manner he was master of, but the
8213surprise it occasioned was largely counterfeit and not as clamorous and
8214effusive as it might have been under happier circumstances. However,
8215the widow made a pretty fair show of astonishment, and heaped so many
8216compliments and so much gratitude upon Huck that he almost forgot the
8217nearly intolerable discomfort of his new clothes in the entirely
8218intolerable discomfort of being set up as a target for everybody's gaze
8219and everybody's laudations.
8220
8221The widow said she meant to give Huck a home under her roof and have
8222him educated; and that when she could spare the money she would start
8223him in business in a modest way. Tom's chance was come. He said:
8224
8225"Huck don't need it. Huck's rich."
8226
8227Nothing but a heavy strain upon the good manners of the company kept
8228back the due and proper complimentary laugh at this pleasant joke. But
8229the silence was a little awkward. Tom broke it:
8230
8231"Huck's got money. Maybe you don't believe it, but he's got lots of
8232it. Oh, you needn't smile--I reckon I can show you. You just wait a
8233minute."
8234
8235Tom ran out of doors. The company looked at each other with a
8236perplexed interest--and inquiringly at Huck, who was tongue-tied.
8237
8238"Sid, what ails Tom?" said Aunt Polly. "He--well, there ain't ever any
8239making of that boy out. I never--"
8240
8241Tom entered, struggling with the weight of his sacks, and Aunt Polly
8242did not finish her sentence. Tom poured the mass of yellow coin upon
8243the table and said:
8244
8245"There--what did I tell you? Half of it's Huck's and half of it's mine!"
8246
8247The spectacle took the general breath away. All gazed, nobody spoke
8248for a moment. Then there was a unanimous call for an explanation. Tom
8249said he could furnish it, and he did. The tale was long, but brimful of
8250interest. There was scarcely an interruption from any one to break the
8251charm of its flow. When he had finished, Mr. Jones said:
8252
8253"I thought I had fixed up a little surprise for this occasion, but it
8254don't amount to anything now. This one makes it sing mighty small, I'm
8255willing to allow."
8256
8257The money was counted. The sum amounted to a little over twelve
8258thousand dollars. It was more than any one present had ever seen at one
8259time before, though several persons were there who were worth
8260considerably more than that in property.
8261
8262
8263
8264CHAPTER XXXV
8265
8266THE reader may rest satisfied that Tom's and Huck's windfall made a
8267mighty stir in the poor little village of St. Petersburg. So vast a
8268sum, all in actual cash, seemed next to incredible. It was talked
8269about, gloated over, glorified, until the reason of many of the
8270citizens tottered under the strain of the unhealthy excitement. Every
8271"haunted" house in St. Petersburg and the neighboring villages was
8272dissected, plank by plank, and its foundations dug up and ransacked for
8273hidden treasure--and not by boys, but men--pretty grave, unromantic
8274men, too, some of them. Wherever Tom and Huck appeared they were
8275courted, admired, stared at. The boys were not able to remember that
8276their remarks had possessed weight before; but now their sayings were
8277treasured and repeated; everything they did seemed somehow to be
8278regarded as remarkable; they had evidently lost the power of doing and
8279saying commonplace things; moreover, their past history was raked up
8280and discovered to bear marks of conspicuous originality. The village
8281paper published biographical sketches of the boys.
8282
8283The Widow Douglas put Huck's money out at six per cent., and Judge
8284Thatcher did the same with Tom's at Aunt Polly's request. Each lad had
8285an income, now, that was simply prodigious--a dollar for every week-day
8286in the year and half of the Sundays. It was just what the minister got
8287--no, it was what he was promised--he generally couldn't collect it. A
8288dollar and a quarter a week would board, lodge, and school a boy in
8289those old simple days--and clothe him and wash him, too, for that
8290matter.
8291
8292Judge Thatcher had conceived a great opinion of Tom. He said that no
8293commonplace boy would ever have got his daughter out of the cave. When
8294Becky told her father, in strict confidence, how Tom had taken her
8295whipping at school, the Judge was visibly moved; and when she pleaded
8296grace for the mighty lie which Tom had told in order to shift that
8297whipping from her shoulders to his own, the Judge said with a fine
8298outburst that it was a noble, a generous, a magnanimous lie--a lie that
8299was worthy to hold up its head and march down through history breast to
8300breast with George Washington's lauded Truth about the hatchet! Becky
8301thought her father had never looked so tall and so superb as when he
8302walked the floor and stamped his foot and said that. She went straight
8303off and told Tom about it.
8304
8305Judge Thatcher hoped to see Tom a great lawyer or a great soldier some
8306day. He said he meant to look to it that Tom should be admitted to the
8307National Military Academy and afterward trained in the best law school
8308in the country, in order that he might be ready for either career or
8309both.
8310
8311Huck Finn's wealth and the fact that he was now under the Widow
8312Douglas' protection introduced him into society--no, dragged him into
8313it, hurled him into it--and his sufferings were almost more than he
8314could bear. The widow's servants kept him clean and neat, combed and
8315brushed, and they bedded him nightly in unsympathetic sheets that had
8316not one little spot or stain which he could press to his heart and know
8317for a friend. He had to eat with a knife and fork; he had to use
8318napkin, cup, and plate; he had to learn his book, he had to go to
8319church; he had to talk so properly that speech was become insipid in
8320his mouth; whithersoever he turned, the bars and shackles of
8321civilization shut him in and bound him hand and foot.
8322
8323He bravely bore his miseries three weeks, and then one day turned up
8324missing. For forty-eight hours the widow hunted for him everywhere in
8325great distress. The public were profoundly concerned; they searched
8326high and low, they dragged the river for his body. Early the third
8327morning Tom Sawyer wisely went poking among some old empty hogsheads
8328down behind the abandoned slaughter-house, and in one of them he found
8329the refugee. Huck had slept there; he had just breakfasted upon some
8330stolen odds and ends of food, and was lying off, now, in comfort, with
8331his pipe. He was unkempt, uncombed, and clad in the same old ruin of
8332rags that had made him picturesque in the days when he was free and
8333happy. Tom routed him out, told him the trouble he had been causing,
8334and urged him to go home. Huck's face lost its tranquil content, and
8335took a melancholy cast. He said:
8336
8337"Don't talk about it, Tom. I've tried it, and it don't work; it don't
8338work, Tom. It ain't for me; I ain't used to it. The widder's good to
8339me, and friendly; but I can't stand them ways. She makes me get up just
8340at the same time every morning; she makes me wash, they comb me all to
8341thunder; she won't let me sleep in the woodshed; I got to wear them
8342blamed clothes that just smothers me, Tom; they don't seem to any air
8343git through 'em, somehow; and they're so rotten nice that I can't set
8344down, nor lay down, nor roll around anywher's; I hain't slid on a
8345cellar-door for--well, it 'pears to be years; I got to go to church and
8346sweat and sweat--I hate them ornery sermons! I can't ketch a fly in
8347there, I can't chaw. I got to wear shoes all Sunday. The widder eats by
8348a bell; she goes to bed by a bell; she gits up by a bell--everything's
8349so awful reg'lar a body can't stand it."
8350
8351"Well, everybody does that way, Huck."
8352
8353"Tom, it don't make no difference. I ain't everybody, and I can't
8354STAND it. It's awful to be tied up so. And grub comes too easy--I don't
8355take no interest in vittles, that way. I got to ask to go a-fishing; I
8356got to ask to go in a-swimming--dern'd if I hain't got to ask to do
8357everything. Well, I'd got to talk so nice it wasn't no comfort--I'd got
8358to go up in the attic and rip out awhile, every day, to git a taste in
8359my mouth, or I'd a died, Tom. The widder wouldn't let me smoke; she
8360wouldn't let me yell, she wouldn't let me gape, nor stretch, nor
8361scratch, before folks--" [Then with a spasm of special irritation and
8362injury]--"And dad fetch it, she prayed all the time! I never see such a
8363woman! I HAD to shove, Tom--I just had to. And besides, that school's
8364going to open, and I'd a had to go to it--well, I wouldn't stand THAT,
8365Tom. Looky here, Tom, being rich ain't what it's cracked up to be. It's
8366just worry and worry, and sweat and sweat, and a-wishing you was dead
8367all the time. Now these clothes suits me, and this bar'l suits me, and
8368I ain't ever going to shake 'em any more. Tom, I wouldn't ever got into
8369all this trouble if it hadn't 'a' ben for that money; now you just take
8370my sheer of it along with your'n, and gimme a ten-center sometimes--not
8371many times, becuz I don't give a dern for a thing 'thout it's tollable
8372hard to git--and you go and beg off for me with the widder."
8373
8374"Oh, Huck, you know I can't do that. 'Tain't fair; and besides if
8375you'll try this thing just a while longer you'll come to like it."
8376
8377"Like it! Yes--the way I'd like a hot stove if I was to set on it long
8378enough. No, Tom, I won't be rich, and I won't live in them cussed
8379smothery houses. I like the woods, and the river, and hogsheads, and
8380I'll stick to 'em, too. Blame it all! just as we'd got guns, and a
8381cave, and all just fixed to rob, here this dern foolishness has got to
8382come up and spile it all!"
8383
8384Tom saw his opportunity--
8385
8386"Lookyhere, Huck, being rich ain't going to keep me back from turning
8387robber."
8388
8389"No! Oh, good-licks; are you in real dead-wood earnest, Tom?"
8390
8391"Just as dead earnest as I'm sitting here. But Huck, we can't let you
8392into the gang if you ain't respectable, you know."
8393
8394Huck's joy was quenched.
8395
8396"Can't let me in, Tom? Didn't you let me go for a pirate?"
8397
8398"Yes, but that's different. A robber is more high-toned than what a
8399pirate is--as a general thing. In most countries they're awful high up
8400in the nobility--dukes and such."
8401
8402"Now, Tom, hain't you always ben friendly to me? You wouldn't shet me
8403out, would you, Tom? You wouldn't do that, now, WOULD you, Tom?"
8404
8405"Huck, I wouldn't want to, and I DON'T want to--but what would people
8406say? Why, they'd say, 'Mph! Tom Sawyer's Gang! pretty low characters in
8407it!' They'd mean you, Huck. You wouldn't like that, and I wouldn't."
8408
8409Huck was silent for some time, engaged in a mental struggle. Finally
8410he said:
8411
8412"Well, I'll go back to the widder for a month and tackle it and see if
8413I can come to stand it, if you'll let me b'long to the gang, Tom."
8414
8415"All right, Huck, it's a whiz! Come along, old chap, and I'll ask the
8416widow to let up on you a little, Huck."
8417
8418"Will you, Tom--now will you? That's good. If she'll let up on some of
8419the roughest things, I'll smoke private and cuss private, and crowd
8420through or bust. When you going to start the gang and turn robbers?"
8421
8422"Oh, right off. We'll get the boys together and have the initiation
8423to-night, maybe."
8424
8425"Have the which?"
8426
8427"Have the initiation."
8428
8429"What's that?"
8430
8431"It's to swear to stand by one another, and never tell the gang's
8432secrets, even if you're chopped all to flinders, and kill anybody and
8433all his family that hurts one of the gang."
8434
8435"That's gay--that's mighty gay, Tom, I tell you."
8436
8437"Well, I bet it is. And all that swearing's got to be done at
8438midnight, in the lonesomest, awfulest place you can find--a ha'nted
8439house is the best, but they're all ripped up now."
8440
8441"Well, midnight's good, anyway, Tom."
8442
8443"Yes, so it is. And you've got to swear on a coffin, and sign it with
8444blood."
8445
8446"Now, that's something LIKE! Why, it's a million times bullier than
8447pirating. I'll stick to the widder till I rot, Tom; and if I git to be
8448a reg'lar ripper of a robber, and everybody talking 'bout it, I reckon
8449she'll be proud she snaked me in out of the wet."
8450
8451
8452
8453CONCLUSION
8454
8455SO endeth this chronicle. It being strictly a history of a BOY, it
8456must stop here; the story could not go much further without becoming
8457the history of a MAN. When one writes a novel about grown people, he
8458knows exactly where to stop--that is, with a marriage; but when he
8459writes of juveniles, he must stop where he best can.
8460
8461Most of the characters that perform in this book still live, and are
8462prosperous and happy. Some day it may seem worth while to take up the
8463story of the younger ones again and see what sort of men and women they
8464turned out to be; therefore it will be wisest not to reveal any of that
8465part of their lives at present.
8466Produced by David Widger. The previous edition was updated by Jose
8467Menendez.
8468
8469
8470
8471
8472
8473                   THE ADVENTURES OF TOM SAWYER
8474                                BY
8475                            MARK TWAIN
8476                     (Samuel Langhorne Clemens)
8477
8478
8479
8480
8481                           P R E F A C E
8482
8483MOST of the adventures recorded in this book really occurred; one or
8484two were experiences of my own, the rest those of boys who were
8485schoolmates of mine. Huck Finn is drawn from life; Tom Sawyer also, but
8486not from an individual--he is a combination of the characteristics of
8487three boys whom I knew, and therefore belongs to the composite order of
8488architecture.
8489
8490The odd superstitions touched upon were all prevalent among children
8491and slaves in the West at the period of this story--that is to say,
8492thirty or forty years ago.
8493
8494Although my book is intended mainly for the entertainment of boys and
8495girls, I hope it will not be shunned by men and women on that account,
8496for part of my plan has been to try to pleasantly remind adults of what
8497they once were themselves, and of how they felt and thought and talked,
8498and what queer enterprises they sometimes engaged in.
8499
8500                                                            THE AUTHOR.
8501
8502HARTFORD, 1876.
8503
8504
8505
8506                          T O M   S A W Y E R
8507
8508
8509
8510CHAPTER I
8511
8512"TOM!"
8513
8514No answer.
8515
8516"TOM!"
8517
8518No answer.
8519
8520"What's gone with that boy,  I wonder? You TOM!"
8521
8522No answer.
8523
8524The old lady pulled her spectacles down and looked over them about the
8525room; then she put them up and looked out under them. She seldom or
8526never looked THROUGH them for so small a thing as a boy; they were her
8527state pair, the pride of her heart, and were built for "style," not
8528service--she could have seen through a pair of stove-lids just as well.
8529She looked perplexed for a moment, and then said, not fiercely, but
8530still loud enough for the furniture to hear:
8531
8532"Well, I lay if I get hold of you I'll--"
8533
8534She did not finish, for by this time she was bending down and punching
8535under the bed with the broom, and so she needed breath to punctuate the
8536punches with. She resurrected nothing but the cat.
8537
8538"I never did see the beat of that boy!"
8539
8540She went to the open door and stood in it and looked out among the
8541tomato vines and "jimpson" weeds that constituted the garden. No Tom.
8542So she lifted up her voice at an angle calculated for distance and
8543shouted:
8544
8545"Y-o-u-u TOM!"
8546
8547There was a slight noise behind her and she turned just in time to
8548seize a small boy by the slack of his roundabout and arrest his flight.
8549
8550"There! I might 'a' thought of that closet. What you been doing in
8551there?"
8552
8553"Nothing."
8554
8555"Nothing! Look at your hands. And look at your mouth. What IS that
8556truck?"
8557
8558"I don't know, aunt."
8559
8560"Well, I know. It's jam--that's what it is. Forty times I've said if
8561you didn't let that jam alone I'd skin you. Hand me that switch."
8562
8563The switch hovered in the air--the peril was desperate--
8564
8565"My! Look behind you, aunt!"
8566
8567The old lady whirled round, and snatched her skirts out of danger. The
8568lad fled on the instant, scrambled up the high board-fence, and
8569disappeared over it.
8570
8571His aunt Polly stood surprised a moment, and then broke into a gentle
8572laugh.
8573
8574"Hang the boy, can't I never learn anything? Ain't he played me tricks
8575enough like that for me to be looking out for him by this time? But old
8576fools is the biggest fools there is. Can't learn an old dog new tricks,
8577as the saying is. But my goodness, he never plays them alike, two days,
8578and how is a body to know what's coming? He 'pears to know just how
8579long he can torment me before I get my dander up, and he knows if he
8580can make out to put me off for a minute or make me laugh, it's all down
8581again and I can't hit him a lick. I ain't doing my duty by that boy,
8582and that's the Lord's truth, goodness knows. Spare the rod and spile
8583the child, as the Good Book says. I'm a laying up sin and suffering for
8584us both, I know. He's full of the Old Scratch, but laws-a-me! he's my
8585own dead sister's boy, poor thing, and I ain't got the heart to lash
8586him, somehow. Every time I let him off, my conscience does hurt me so,
8587and every time I hit him my old heart most breaks. Well-a-well, man
8588that is born of woman is of few days and full of trouble, as the
8589Scripture says, and I reckon it's so. He'll play hookey this evening, *
8590and [* Southwestern for "afternoon"] I'll just be obleeged to make him
8591work, to-morrow, to punish him. It's mighty hard to make him work
8592Saturdays, when all the boys is having holiday, but he hates work more
8593than he hates anything else, and I've GOT to do some of my duty by him,
8594or I'll be the ruination of the child."
8595
8596Tom did play hookey, and he had a very good time. He got back home
8597barely in season to help Jim, the small colored boy, saw next-day's
8598wood and split the kindlings before supper--at least he was there in
8599time to tell his adventures to Jim while Jim did three-fourths of the
8600work. Tom's younger brother (or rather half-brother) Sid was already
8601through with his part of the work (picking up chips), for he was a
8602quiet boy, and had no adventurous, troublesome ways.
8603
8604While Tom was eating his supper, and stealing sugar as opportunity
8605offered, Aunt Polly asked him questions that were full of guile, and
8606very deep--for she wanted to trap him into damaging revealments. Like
8607many other simple-hearted souls, it was her pet vanity to believe she
8608was endowed with a talent for dark and mysterious diplomacy, and she
8609loved to contemplate her most transparent devices as marvels of low
8610cunning. Said she:
8611
8612"Tom, it was middling warm in school, warn't it?"
8613
8614"Yes'm."
8615
8616"Powerful warm, warn't it?"
8617
8618"Yes'm."
8619
8620"Didn't you want to go in a-swimming, Tom?"
8621
8622A bit of a scare shot through Tom--a touch of uncomfortable suspicion.
8623He searched Aunt Polly's face, but it told him nothing. So he said:
8624
8625"No'm--well, not very much."
8626
8627The old lady reached out her hand and felt Tom's shirt, and said:
8628
8629"But you ain't too warm now, though." And it flattered her to reflect
8630that she had discovered that the shirt was dry without anybody knowing
8631that that was what she had in her mind. But in spite of her, Tom knew
8632where the wind lay, now. So he forestalled what might be the next move:
8633
8634"Some of us pumped on our heads--mine's damp yet. See?"
8635
8636Aunt Polly was vexed to think she had overlooked that bit of
8637circumstantial evidence, and missed a trick. Then she had a new
8638inspiration:
8639
8640"Tom, you didn't have to undo your shirt collar where I sewed it, to
8641pump on your head, did you? Unbutton your jacket!"
8642
8643The trouble vanished out of Tom's face. He opened his jacket. His
8644shirt collar was securely sewed.
8645
8646"Bother! Well, go 'long with you. I'd made sure you'd played hookey
8647and been a-swimming. But I forgive ye, Tom. I reckon you're a kind of a
8648singed cat, as the saying is--better'n you look. THIS time."
8649
8650She was half sorry her sagacity had miscarried, and half glad that Tom
8651had stumbled into obedient conduct for once.
8652
8653But Sidney said:
8654
8655"Well, now, if I didn't think you sewed his collar with white thread,
8656but it's black."
8657
8658"Why, I did sew it with white! Tom!"
8659
8660But Tom did not wait for the rest. As he went out at the door he said:
8661
8662"Siddy, I'll lick you for that."
8663
8664In a safe place Tom examined two large needles which were thrust into
8665the lapels of his jacket, and had thread bound about them--one needle
8666carried white thread and the other black. He said:
8667
8668"She'd never noticed if it hadn't been for Sid. Confound it! sometimes
8669she sews it with white, and sometimes she sews it with black. I wish to
8670geeminy she'd stick to one or t'other--I can't keep the run of 'em. But
8671I bet you I'll lam Sid for that. I'll learn him!"
8672
8673He was not the Model Boy of the village. He knew the model boy very
8674well though--and loathed him.
8675
8676Within two minutes, or even less, he had forgotten all his troubles.
8677Not because his troubles were one whit less heavy and bitter to him
8678than a man's are to a man, but because a new and powerful interest bore
8679them down and drove them out of his mind for the time--just as men's
8680misfortunes are forgotten in the excitement of new enterprises. This
8681new interest was a valued novelty in whistling, which he had just
8682acquired from a negro, and he was suffering to practise it undisturbed.
8683It consisted in a peculiar bird-like turn, a sort of liquid warble,
8684produced by touching the tongue to the roof of the mouth at short
8685intervals in the midst of the music--the reader probably remembers how
8686to do it, if he has ever been a boy. Diligence and attention soon gave
8687him the knack of it, and he strode down the street with his mouth full
8688of harmony and his soul full of gratitude. He felt much as an
8689astronomer feels who has discovered a new planet--no doubt, as far as
8690strong, deep, unalloyed pleasure is concerned, the advantage was with
8691the boy, not the astronomer.
8692
8693The summer evenings were long. It was not dark, yet. Presently Tom
8694checked his whistle. A stranger was before him--a boy a shade larger
8695than himself. A new-comer of any age or either sex was an impressive
8696curiosity in the poor little shabby village of St. Petersburg. This boy
8697was well dressed, too--well dressed on a week-day. This was simply
8698astounding. His cap was a dainty thing, his close-buttoned blue cloth
8699roundabout was new and natty, and so were his pantaloons. He had shoes
8700on--and it was only Friday. He even wore a necktie, a bright bit of
8701ribbon. He had a citified air about him that ate into Tom's vitals. The
8702more Tom stared at the splendid marvel, the higher he turned up his
8703nose at his finery and the shabbier and shabbier his own outfit seemed
8704to him to grow. Neither boy spoke. If one moved, the other moved--but
8705only sidewise, in a circle; they kept face to face and eye to eye all
8706the time. Finally Tom said:
8707
8708"I can lick you!"
8709
8710"I'd like to see you try it."
8711
8712"Well, I can do it."
8713
8714"No you can't, either."
8715
8716"Yes I can."
8717
8718"No you can't."
8719
8720"I can."
8721
8722"You can't."
8723
8724"Can!"
8725
8726"Can't!"
8727
8728An uncomfortable pause. Then Tom said:
8729
8730"What's your name?"
8731
8732"'Tisn't any of your business, maybe."
8733
8734"Well I 'low I'll MAKE it my business."
8735
8736"Well why don't you?"
8737
8738"If you say much, I will."
8739
8740"Much--much--MUCH. There now."
8741
8742"Oh, you think you're mighty smart, DON'T you? I could lick you with
8743one hand tied behind me, if I wanted to."
8744
8745"Well why don't you DO it? You SAY you can do it."
8746
8747"Well I WILL, if you fool with me."
8748
8749"Oh yes--I've seen whole families in the same fix."
8750
8751"Smarty! You think you're SOME, now, DON'T you? Oh, what a hat!"
8752
8753"You can lump that hat if you don't like it. I dare you to knock it
8754off--and anybody that'll take a dare will suck eggs."
8755
8756"You're a liar!"
8757
8758"You're another."
8759
8760"You're a fighting liar and dasn't take it up."
8761
8762"Aw--take a walk!"
8763
8764"Say--if you give me much more of your sass I'll take and bounce a
8765rock off'n your head."
8766
8767"Oh, of COURSE you will."
8768
8769"Well I WILL."
8770
8771"Well why don't you DO it then? What do you keep SAYING you will for?
8772Why don't you DO it? It's because you're afraid."
8773
8774"I AIN'T afraid."
8775
8776"You are."
8777
8778"I ain't."
8779
8780"You are."
8781
8782Another pause, and more eying and sidling around each other. Presently
8783they were shoulder to shoulder. Tom said:
8784
8785"Get away from here!"
8786
8787"Go away yourself!"
8788
8789"I won't."
8790
8791"I won't either."
8792
8793So they stood, each with a foot placed at an angle as a brace, and
8794both shoving with might and main, and glowering at each other with
8795hate. But neither could get an advantage. After struggling till both
8796were hot and flushed, each relaxed his strain with watchful caution,
8797and Tom said:
8798
8799"You're a coward and a pup. I'll tell my big brother on you, and he
8800can thrash you with his little finger, and I'll make him do it, too."
8801
8802"What do I care for your big brother? I've got a brother that's bigger
8803than he is--and what's more, he can throw him over that fence, too."
8804[Both brothers were imaginary.]
8805
8806"That's a lie."
8807
8808"YOUR saying so don't make it so."
8809
8810Tom drew a line in the dust with his big toe, and said:
8811
8812"I dare you to step over that, and I'll lick you till you can't stand
8813up. Anybody that'll take a dare will steal sheep."
8814
8815The new boy stepped over promptly, and said:
8816
8817"Now you said you'd do it, now let's see you do it."
8818
8819"Don't you crowd me now; you better look out."
8820
8821"Well, you SAID you'd do it--why don't you do it?"
8822
8823"By jingo! for two cents I WILL do it."
8824
8825The new boy took two broad coppers out of his pocket and held them out
8826with derision. Tom struck them to the ground. In an instant both boys
8827were rolling and tumbling in the dirt, gripped together like cats; and
8828for the space of a minute they tugged and tore at each other's hair and
8829clothes, punched and scratched each other's nose, and covered
8830themselves with dust and glory. Presently the confusion took form, and
8831through the fog of battle Tom appeared, seated astride the new boy, and
8832pounding him with his fists. "Holler 'nuff!" said he.
8833
8834The boy only struggled to free himself. He was crying--mainly from rage.
8835
8836"Holler 'nuff!"--and the pounding went on.
8837
8838At last the stranger got out a smothered "'Nuff!" and Tom let him up
8839and said:
8840
8841"Now that'll learn you. Better look out who you're fooling with next
8842time."
8843
8844The new boy went off brushing the dust from his clothes, sobbing,
8845snuffling, and occasionally looking back and shaking his head and
8846threatening what he would do to Tom the "next time he caught him out."
8847To which Tom responded with jeers, and started off in high feather, and
8848as soon as his back was turned the new boy snatched up a stone, threw
8849it and hit him between the shoulders and then turned tail and ran like
8850an antelope. Tom chased the traitor home, and thus found out where he
8851lived. He then held a position at the gate for some time, daring the
8852enemy to come outside, but the enemy only made faces at him through the
8853window and declined. At last the enemy's mother appeared, and called
8854Tom a bad, vicious, vulgar child, and ordered him away. So he went
8855away; but he said he "'lowed" to "lay" for that boy.
8856
8857He got home pretty late that night, and when he climbed cautiously in
8858at the window, he uncovered an ambuscade, in the person of his aunt;
8859and when she saw the state his clothes were in her resolution to turn
8860his Saturday holiday into captivity at hard labor became adamantine in
8861its firmness.
8862
8863
8864
8865CHAPTER II
8866
8867SATURDAY morning was come, and all the summer world was bright and
8868fresh, and brimming with life. There was a song in every heart; and if
8869the heart was young the music issued at the lips. There was cheer in
8870every face and a spring in every step. The locust-trees were in bloom
8871and the fragrance of the blossoms filled the air. Cardiff Hill, beyond
8872the village and above it, was green with vegetation and it lay just far
8873enough away to seem a Delectable Land, dreamy, reposeful, and inviting.
8874
8875Tom appeared on the sidewalk with a bucket of whitewash and a
8876long-handled brush. He surveyed the fence, and all gladness left him and
8877a deep melancholy settled down upon his spirit. Thirty yards of board
8878fence nine feet high. Life to him seemed hollow, and existence but a
8879burden. Sighing, he dipped his brush and passed it along the topmost
8880plank; repeated the operation; did it again; compared the insignificant
8881whitewashed streak with the far-reaching continent of unwhitewashed
8882fence, and sat down on a tree-box discouraged. Jim came skipping out at
8883the gate with a tin pail, and singing Buffalo Gals. Bringing water from
8884the town pump had always been hateful work in Tom's eyes, before, but
8885now it did not strike him so. He remembered that there was company at
8886the pump. White, mulatto, and negro boys and girls were always there
8887waiting their turns, resting, trading playthings, quarrelling,
8888fighting, skylarking. And he remembered that although the pump was only
8889a hundred and fifty yards off, Jim never got back with a bucket of
8890water under an hour--and even then somebody generally had to go after
8891him. Tom said:
8892
8893"Say, Jim, I'll fetch the water if you'll whitewash some."
8894
8895Jim shook his head and said:
8896
8897"Can't, Mars Tom. Ole missis, she tole me I got to go an' git dis
8898water an' not stop foolin' roun' wid anybody. She say she spec' Mars
8899Tom gwine to ax me to whitewash, an' so she tole me go 'long an' 'tend
8900to my own business--she 'lowed SHE'D 'tend to de whitewashin'."
8901
8902"Oh, never you mind what she said, Jim. That's the way she always
8903talks. Gimme the bucket--I won't be gone only a a minute. SHE won't
8904ever know."
8905
8906"Oh, I dasn't, Mars Tom. Ole missis she'd take an' tar de head off'n
8907me. 'Deed she would."
8908
8909"SHE! She never licks anybody--whacks 'em over the head with her
8910thimble--and who cares for that, I'd like to know. She talks awful, but
8911talk don't hurt--anyways it don't if she don't cry. Jim, I'll give you
8912a marvel. I'll give you a white alley!"
8913
8914Jim began to waver.
8915
8916"White alley, Jim! And it's a bully taw."
8917
8918"My! Dat's a mighty gay marvel, I tell you! But Mars Tom I's powerful
8919'fraid ole missis--"
8920
8921"And besides, if you will I'll show you my sore toe."
8922
8923Jim was only human--this attraction was too much for him. He put down
8924his pail, took the white alley, and bent over the toe with absorbing
8925interest while the bandage was being unwound. In another moment he was
8926flying down the street with his pail and a tingling rear, Tom was
8927whitewashing with vigor, and Aunt Polly was retiring from the field
8928with a slipper in her hand and triumph in her eye.
8929
8930But Tom's energy did not last. He began to think of the fun he had
8931planned for this day, and his sorrows multiplied. Soon the free boys
8932would come tripping along on all sorts of delicious expeditions, and
8933they would make a world of fun of him for having to work--the very
8934thought of it burnt him like fire. He got out his worldly wealth and
8935examined it--bits of toys, marbles, and trash; enough to buy an
8936exchange of WORK, maybe, but not half enough to buy so much as half an
8937hour of pure freedom. So he returned his straitened means to his
8938pocket, and gave up the idea of trying to buy the boys. At this dark
8939and hopeless moment an inspiration burst upon him! Nothing less than a
8940great, magnificent inspiration.
8941
8942He took up his brush and went tranquilly to work. Ben Rogers hove in
8943sight presently--the very boy, of all boys, whose ridicule he had been
8944dreading. Ben's gait was the hop-skip-and-jump--proof enough that his
8945heart was light and his anticipations high. He was eating an apple, and
8946giving a long, melodious whoop, at intervals, followed by a deep-toned
8947ding-dong-dong, ding-dong-dong, for he was personating a steamboat. As
8948he drew near, he slackened speed, took the middle of the street, leaned
8949far over to starboard and rounded to ponderously and with laborious
8950pomp and circumstance--for he was personating the Big Missouri, and
8951considered himself to be drawing nine feet of water. He was boat and
8952captain and engine-bells combined, so he had to imagine himself
8953standing on his own hurricane-deck giving the orders and executing them:
8954
8955"Stop her, sir! Ting-a-ling-ling!" The headway ran almost out, and he
8956drew up slowly toward the sidewalk.
8957
8958"Ship up to back! Ting-a-ling-ling!" His arms straightened and
8959stiffened down his sides.
8960
8961"Set her back on the stabboard! Ting-a-ling-ling! Chow! ch-chow-wow!
8962Chow!" His right hand, meantime, describing stately circles--for it was
8963representing a forty-foot wheel.
8964
8965"Let her go back on the labboard! Ting-a-lingling! Chow-ch-chow-chow!"
8966The left hand began to describe circles.
8967
8968"Stop the stabboard! Ting-a-ling-ling! Stop the labboard! Come ahead
8969on the stabboard! Stop her! Let your outside turn over slow!
8970Ting-a-ling-ling! Chow-ow-ow! Get out that head-line! LIVELY now!
8971Come--out with your spring-line--what're you about there! Take a turn
8972round that stump with the bight of it! Stand by that stage, now--let her
8973go! Done with the engines, sir! Ting-a-ling-ling! SH'T! S'H'T! SH'T!"
8974(trying the gauge-cocks).
8975
8976Tom went on whitewashing--paid no attention to the steamboat. Ben
8977stared a moment and then said: "Hi-YI! YOU'RE up a stump, ain't you!"
8978
8979No answer. Tom surveyed his last touch with the eye of an artist, then
8980he gave his brush another gentle sweep and surveyed the result, as
8981before. Ben ranged up alongside of him. Tom's mouth watered for the
8982apple, but he stuck to his work. Ben said:
8983
8984"Hello, old chap, you got to work, hey?"
8985
8986Tom wheeled suddenly and said:
8987
8988"Why, it's you, Ben! I warn't noticing."
8989
8990"Say--I'm going in a-swimming, I am. Don't you wish you could? But of
8991course you'd druther WORK--wouldn't you? Course you would!"
8992
8993Tom contemplated the boy a bit, and said:
8994
8995"What do you call work?"
8996
8997"Why, ain't THAT work?"
8998
8999Tom resumed his whitewashing, and answered carelessly:
9000
9001"Well, maybe it is, and maybe it ain't. All I know, is, it suits Tom
9002Sawyer."
9003
9004"Oh come, now, you don't mean to let on that you LIKE it?"
9005
9006The brush continued to move.
9007
9008"Like it? Well, I don't see why I oughtn't to like it. Does a boy get
9009a chance to whitewash a fence every day?"
9010
9011That put the thing in a new light. Ben stopped nibbling his apple. Tom
9012swept his brush daintily back and forth--stepped back to note the
9013effect--added a touch here and there--criticised the effect again--Ben
9014watching every move and getting more and more interested, more and more
9015absorbed. Presently he said:
9016
9017"Say, Tom, let ME whitewash a little."
9018
9019Tom considered, was about to consent; but he altered his mind:
9020
9021"No--no--I reckon it wouldn't hardly do, Ben. You see, Aunt Polly's
9022awful particular about this fence--right here on the street, you know
9023--but if it was the back fence I wouldn't mind and SHE wouldn't. Yes,
9024she's awful particular about this fence; it's got to be done very
9025careful; I reckon there ain't one boy in a thousand, maybe two
9026thousand, that can do it the way it's got to be done."
9027
9028"No--is that so? Oh come, now--lemme just try. Only just a little--I'd
9029let YOU, if you was me, Tom."
9030
9031"Ben, I'd like to, honest injun; but Aunt Polly--well, Jim wanted to
9032do it, but she wouldn't let him; Sid wanted to do it, and she wouldn't
9033let Sid. Now don't you see how I'm fixed? If you was to tackle this
9034fence and anything was to happen to it--"
9035
9036"Oh, shucks, I'll be just as careful. Now lemme try. Say--I'll give
9037you the core of my apple."
9038
9039"Well, here--No, Ben, now don't. I'm afeard--"
9040
9041"I'll give you ALL of it!"
9042
9043Tom gave up the brush with reluctance in his face, but alacrity in his
9044heart. And while the late steamer Big Missouri worked and sweated in
9045the sun, the retired artist sat on a barrel in the shade close by,
9046dangled his legs, munched his apple, and planned the slaughter of more
9047innocents. There was no lack of material; boys happened along every
9048little while; they came to jeer, but remained to whitewash. By the time
9049Ben was fagged out, Tom had traded the next chance to Billy Fisher for
9050a kite, in good repair; and when he played out, Johnny Miller bought in
9051for a dead rat and a string to swing it with--and so on, and so on,
9052hour after hour. And when the middle of the afternoon came, from being
9053a poor poverty-stricken boy in the morning, Tom was literally rolling
9054in wealth. He had besides the things before mentioned, twelve marbles,
9055part of a jews-harp, a piece of blue bottle-glass to look through, a
9056spool cannon, a key that wouldn't unlock anything, a fragment of chalk,
9057a glass stopper of a decanter, a tin soldier, a couple of tadpoles, six
9058fire-crackers, a kitten with only one eye, a brass doorknob, a
9059dog-collar--but no dog--the handle of a knife, four pieces of
9060orange-peel, and a dilapidated old window sash.
9061
9062He had had a nice, good, idle time all the while--plenty of company
9063--and the fence had three coats of whitewash on it! If he hadn't run out
9064of whitewash he would have bankrupted every boy in the village.
9065
9066Tom said to himself that it was not such a hollow world, after all. He
9067had discovered a great law of human action, without knowing it--namely,
9068that in order to make a man or a boy covet a thing, it is only
9069necessary to make the thing difficult to attain. If he had been a great
9070and wise philosopher, like the writer of this book, he would now have
9071comprehended that Work consists of whatever a body is OBLIGED to do,
9072and that Play consists of whatever a body is not obliged to do. And
9073this would help him to understand why constructing artificial flowers
9074or performing on a tread-mill is work, while rolling ten-pins or
9075climbing Mont Blanc is only amusement. There are wealthy gentlemen in
9076England who drive four-horse passenger-coaches twenty or thirty miles
9077on a daily line, in the summer, because the privilege costs them
9078considerable money; but if they were offered wages for the service,
9079that would turn it into work and then they would resign.
9080
9081The boy mused awhile over the substantial change which had taken place
9082in his worldly circumstances, and then wended toward headquarters to
9083report.
9084
9085
9086
9087CHAPTER III
9088
9089TOM presented himself before Aunt Polly, who was sitting by an open
9090window in a pleasant rearward apartment, which was bedroom,
9091breakfast-room, dining-room, and library, combined. The balmy summer
9092air, the restful quiet, the odor of the flowers, and the drowsing murmur
9093of the bees had had their effect, and she was nodding over her knitting
9094--for she had no company but the cat, and it was asleep in her lap. Her
9095spectacles were propped up on her gray head for safety. She had thought
9096that of course Tom had deserted long ago, and she wondered at seeing him
9097place himself in her power again in this intrepid way. He said: "Mayn't
9098I go and play now, aunt?"
9099
9100"What, a'ready? How much have you done?"
9101
9102"It's all done, aunt."
9103
9104"Tom, don't lie to me--I can't bear it."
9105
9106"I ain't, aunt; it IS all done."
9107
9108Aunt Polly placed small trust in such evidence. She went out to see
9109for herself; and she would have been content to find twenty per cent.
9110of Tom's statement true. When she found the entire fence whitewashed,
9111and not only whitewashed but elaborately coated and recoated, and even
9112a streak added to the ground, her astonishment was almost unspeakable.
9113She said:
9114
9115"Well, I never! There's no getting round it, you can work when you're
9116a mind to, Tom." And then she diluted the compliment by adding, "But
9117it's powerful seldom you're a mind to, I'm bound to say. Well, go 'long
9118and play; but mind you get back some time in a week, or I'll tan you."
9119
9120She was so overcome by the splendor of his achievement that she took
9121him into the closet and selected a choice apple and delivered it to
9122him, along with an improving lecture upon the added value and flavor a
9123treat took to itself when it came without sin through virtuous effort.
9124And while she closed with a happy Scriptural flourish, he "hooked" a
9125doughnut.
9126
9127Then he skipped out, and saw Sid just starting up the outside stairway
9128that led to the back rooms on the second floor. Clods were handy and
9129the air was full of them in a twinkling. They raged around Sid like a
9130hail-storm; and before Aunt Polly could collect her surprised faculties
9131and sally to the rescue, six or seven clods had taken personal effect,
9132and Tom was over the fence and gone. There was a gate, but as a general
9133thing he was too crowded for time to make use of it. His soul was at
9134peace, now that he had settled with Sid for calling attention to his
9135black thread and getting him into trouble.
9136
9137Tom skirted the block, and came round into a muddy alley that led by
9138the back of his aunt's cow-stable. He presently got safely beyond the
9139reach of capture and punishment, and hastened toward the public square
9140of the village, where two "military" companies of boys had met for
9141conflict, according to previous appointment. Tom was General of one of
9142these armies, Joe Harper (a bosom friend) General of the other. These
9143two great commanders did not condescend to fight in person--that being
9144better suited to the still smaller fry--but sat together on an eminence
9145and conducted the field operations by orders delivered through
9146aides-de-camp. Tom's army won a great victory, after a long and
9147hard-fought battle. Then the dead were counted, prisoners exchanged,
9148the terms of the next disagreement agreed upon, and the day for the
9149necessary battle appointed; after which the armies fell into line and
9150marched away, and Tom turned homeward alone.
9151
9152As he was passing by the house where Jeff Thatcher lived, he saw a new
9153girl in the garden--a lovely little blue-eyed creature with yellow hair
9154plaited into two long-tails, white summer frock and embroidered
9155pantalettes. The fresh-crowned hero fell without firing a shot. A
9156certain Amy Lawrence vanished out of his heart and left not even a
9157memory of herself behind. He had thought he loved her to distraction;
9158he had regarded his passion as adoration; and behold it was only a poor
9159little evanescent partiality. He had been months winning her; she had
9160confessed hardly a week ago; he had been the happiest and the proudest
9161boy in the world only seven short days, and here in one instant of time
9162she had gone out of his heart like a casual stranger whose visit is
9163done.
9164
9165He worshipped this new angel with furtive eye, till he saw that she
9166had discovered him; then he pretended he did not know she was present,
9167and began to "show off" in all sorts of absurd boyish ways, in order to
9168win her admiration. He kept up this grotesque foolishness for some
9169time; but by-and-by, while he was in the midst of some dangerous
9170gymnastic performances, he glanced aside and saw that the little girl
9171was wending her way toward the house. Tom came up to the fence and
9172leaned on it, grieving, and hoping she would tarry yet awhile longer.
9173She halted a moment on the steps and then moved toward the door. Tom
9174heaved a great sigh as she put her foot on the threshold. But his face
9175lit up, right away, for she tossed a pansy over the fence a moment
9176before she disappeared.
9177
9178The boy ran around and stopped within a foot or two of the flower, and
9179then shaded his eyes with his hand and began to look down street as if
9180he had discovered something of interest going on in that direction.
9181Presently he picked up a straw and began trying to balance it on his
9182nose, with his head tilted far back; and as he moved from side to side,
9183in his efforts, he edged nearer and nearer toward the pansy; finally
9184his bare foot rested upon it, his pliant toes closed upon it, and he
9185hopped away with the treasure and disappeared round the corner. But
9186only for a minute--only while he could button the flower inside his
9187jacket, next his heart--or next his stomach, possibly, for he was not
9188much posted in anatomy, and not hypercritical, anyway.
9189
9190He returned, now, and hung about the fence till nightfall, "showing
9191off," as before; but the girl never exhibited herself again, though Tom
9192comforted himself a little with the hope that she had been near some
9193window, meantime, and been aware of his attentions. Finally he strode
9194home reluctantly, with his poor head full of visions.
9195
9196All through supper his spirits were so high that his aunt wondered
9197"what had got into the child." He took a good scolding about clodding
9198Sid, and did not seem to mind it in the least. He tried to steal sugar
9199under his aunt's very nose, and got his knuckles rapped for it. He said:
9200
9201"Aunt, you don't whack Sid when he takes it."
9202
9203"Well, Sid don't torment a body the way you do. You'd be always into
9204that sugar if I warn't watching you."
9205
9206Presently she stepped into the kitchen, and Sid, happy in his
9207immunity, reached for the sugar-bowl--a sort of glorying over Tom which
9208was wellnigh unbearable. But Sid's fingers slipped and the bowl dropped
9209and broke. Tom was in ecstasies. In such ecstasies that he even
9210controlled his tongue and was silent. He said to himself that he would
9211not speak a word, even when his aunt came in, but would sit perfectly
9212still till she asked who did the mischief; and then he would tell, and
9213there would be nothing so good in the world as to see that pet model
9214"catch it." He was so brimful of exultation that he could hardly hold
9215himself when the old lady came back and stood above the wreck
9216discharging lightnings of wrath from over her spectacles. He said to
9217himself, "Now it's coming!" And the next instant he was sprawling on
9218the floor! The potent palm was uplifted to strike again when Tom cried
9219out:
9220
9221"Hold on, now, what 'er you belting ME for?--Sid broke it!"
9222
9223Aunt Polly paused, perplexed, and Tom looked for healing pity. But
9224when she got her tongue again, she only said:
9225
9226"Umf! Well, you didn't get a lick amiss, I reckon. You been into some
9227other audacious mischief when I wasn't around, like enough."
9228
9229Then her conscience reproached her, and she yearned to say something
9230kind and loving; but she judged that this would be construed into a
9231confession that she had been in the wrong, and discipline forbade that.
9232So she kept silence, and went about her affairs with a troubled heart.
9233Tom sulked in a corner and exalted his woes. He knew that in her heart
9234his aunt was on her knees to him, and he was morosely gratified by the
9235consciousness of it. He would hang out no signals, he would take notice
9236of none. He knew that a yearning glance fell upon him, now and then,
9237through a film of tears, but he refused recognition of it. He pictured
9238himself lying sick unto death and his aunt bending over him beseeching
9239one little forgiving word, but he would turn his face to the wall, and
9240die with that word unsaid. Ah, how would she feel then? And he pictured
9241himself brought home from the river, dead, with his curls all wet, and
9242his sore heart at rest. How she would throw herself upon him, and how
9243her tears would fall like rain, and her lips pray God to give her back
9244her boy and she would never, never abuse him any more! But he would lie
9245there cold and white and make no sign--a poor little sufferer, whose
9246griefs were at an end. He so worked upon his feelings with the pathos
9247of these dreams, that he had to keep swallowing, he was so like to
9248choke; and his eyes swam in a blur of water, which overflowed when he
9249winked, and ran down and trickled from the end of his nose. And such a
9250luxury to him was this petting of his sorrows, that he could not bear
9251to have any worldly cheeriness or any grating delight intrude upon it;
9252it was too sacred for such contact; and so, presently, when his cousin
9253Mary danced in, all alive with the joy of seeing home again after an
9254age-long visit of one week to the country, he got up and moved in
9255clouds and darkness out at one door as she brought song and sunshine in
9256at the other.
9257
9258He wandered far from the accustomed haunts of boys, and sought
9259desolate places that were in harmony with his spirit. A log raft in the
9260river invited him, and he seated himself on its outer edge and
9261contemplated the dreary vastness of the stream, wishing, the while,
9262that he could only be drowned, all at once and unconsciously, without
9263undergoing the uncomfortable routine devised by nature. Then he thought
9264of his flower. He got it out, rumpled and wilted, and it mightily
9265increased his dismal felicity. He wondered if she would pity him if she
9266knew? Would she cry, and wish that she had a right to put her arms
9267around his neck and comfort him? Or would she turn coldly away like all
9268the hollow world? This picture brought such an agony of pleasurable
9269suffering that he worked it over and over again in his mind and set it
9270up in new and varied lights, till he wore it threadbare. At last he
9271rose up sighing and departed in the darkness.
9272
9273About half-past nine or ten o'clock he came along the deserted street
9274to where the Adored Unknown lived; he paused a moment; no sound fell
9275upon his listening ear; a candle was casting a dull glow upon the
9276curtain of a second-story window. Was the sacred presence there? He
9277climbed the fence, threaded his stealthy way through the plants, till
9278he stood under that window; he looked up at it long, and with emotion;
9279then he laid him down on the ground under it, disposing himself upon
9280his back, with his hands clasped upon his breast and holding his poor
9281wilted flower. And thus he would die--out in the cold world, with no
9282shelter over his homeless head, no friendly hand to wipe the
9283death-damps from his brow, no loving face to bend pityingly over him
9284when the great agony came. And thus SHE would see him when she looked
9285out upon the glad morning, and oh! would she drop one little tear upon
9286his poor, lifeless form, would she heave one little sigh to see a bright
9287young life so rudely blighted, so untimely cut down?
9288
9289The window went up, a maid-servant's discordant voice profaned the
9290holy calm, and a deluge of water drenched the prone martyr's remains!
9291
9292The strangling hero sprang up with a relieving snort. There was a whiz
9293as of a missile in the air, mingled with the murmur of a curse, a sound
9294as of shivering glass followed, and a small, vague form went over the
9295fence and shot away in the gloom.
9296
9297Not long after, as Tom, all undressed for bed, was surveying his
9298drenched garments by the light of a tallow dip, Sid woke up; but if he
9299had any dim idea of making any "references to allusions," he thought
9300better of it and held his peace, for there was danger in Tom's eye.
9301
9302Tom turned in without the added vexation of prayers, and Sid made
9303mental note of the omission.
9304
9305
9306
9307CHAPTER IV
9308
9309THE sun rose upon a tranquil world, and beamed down upon the peaceful
9310village like a benediction. Breakfast over, Aunt Polly had family
9311worship: it began with a prayer built from the ground up of solid
9312courses of Scriptural quotations, welded together with a thin mortar of
9313originality; and from the summit of this she delivered a grim chapter
9314of the Mosaic Law, as from Sinai.
9315
9316Then Tom girded up his loins, so to speak, and went to work to "get
9317his verses." Sid had learned his lesson days before. Tom bent all his
9318energies to the memorizing of five verses, and he chose part of the
9319Sermon on the Mount, because he could find no verses that were shorter.
9320At the end of half an hour Tom had a vague general idea of his lesson,
9321but no more, for his mind was traversing the whole field of human
9322thought, and his hands were busy with distracting recreations. Mary
9323took his book to hear him recite, and he tried to find his way through
9324the fog:
9325
9326"Blessed are the--a--a--"
9327
9328"Poor"--
9329
9330"Yes--poor; blessed are the poor--a--a--"
9331
9332"In spirit--"
9333
9334"In spirit; blessed are the poor in spirit, for they--they--"
9335
9336"THEIRS--"
9337
9338"For THEIRS. Blessed are the poor in spirit, for theirs is the kingdom
9339of heaven. Blessed are they that mourn, for they--they--"
9340
9341"Sh--"
9342
9343"For they--a--"
9344
9345"S, H, A--"
9346
9347"For they S, H--Oh, I don't know what it is!"
9348
9349"SHALL!"
9350
9351"Oh, SHALL! for they shall--for they shall--a--a--shall mourn--a--a--
9352blessed are they that shall--they that--a--they that shall mourn, for
9353they shall--a--shall WHAT? Why don't you tell me, Mary?--what do you
9354want to be so mean for?"
9355
9356"Oh, Tom, you poor thick-headed thing, I'm not teasing you. I wouldn't
9357do that. You must go and learn it again. Don't you be discouraged, Tom,
9358you'll manage it--and if you do, I'll give you something ever so nice.
9359There, now, that's a good boy."
9360
9361"All right! What is it, Mary, tell me what it is."
9362
9363"Never you mind, Tom. You know if I say it's nice, it is nice."
9364
9365"You bet you that's so, Mary. All right, I'll tackle it again."
9366
9367And he did "tackle it again"--and under the double pressure of
9368curiosity and prospective gain he did it with such spirit that he
9369accomplished a shining success. Mary gave him a brand-new "Barlow"
9370knife worth twelve and a half cents; and the convulsion of delight that
9371swept his system shook him to his foundations. True, the knife would
9372not cut anything, but it was a "sure-enough" Barlow, and there was
9373inconceivable grandeur in that--though where the Western boys ever got
9374the idea that such a weapon could possibly be counterfeited to its
9375injury is an imposing mystery and will always remain so, perhaps. Tom
9376contrived to scarify the cupboard with it, and was arranging to begin
9377on the bureau, when he was called off to dress for Sunday-school.
9378
9379Mary gave him a tin basin of water and a piece of soap, and he went
9380outside the door and set the basin on a little bench there; then he
9381dipped the soap in the water and laid it down; turned up his sleeves;
9382poured out the water on the ground, gently, and then entered the
9383kitchen and began to wipe his face diligently on the towel behind the
9384door. But Mary removed the towel and said:
9385
9386"Now ain't you ashamed, Tom. You mustn't be so bad. Water won't hurt
9387you."
9388
9389Tom was a trifle disconcerted. The basin was refilled, and this time
9390he stood over it a little while, gathering resolution; took in a big
9391breath and began. When he entered the kitchen presently, with both eyes
9392shut and groping for the towel with his hands, an honorable testimony
9393of suds and water was dripping from his face. But when he emerged from
9394the towel, he was not yet satisfactory, for the clean territory stopped
9395short at his chin and his jaws, like a mask; below and beyond this line
9396there was a dark expanse of unirrigated soil that spread downward in
9397front and backward around his neck. Mary took him in hand, and when she
9398was done with him he was a man and a brother, without distinction of
9399color, and his saturated hair was neatly brushed, and its short curls
9400wrought into a dainty and symmetrical general effect. [He privately
9401smoothed out the curls, with labor and difficulty, and plastered his
9402hair close down to his head; for he held curls to be effeminate, and
9403his own filled his life with bitterness.] Then Mary got out a suit of
9404his clothing that had been used only on Sundays during two years--they
9405were simply called his "other clothes"--and so by that we know the
9406size of his wardrobe. The girl "put him to rights" after he had dressed
9407himself; she buttoned his neat roundabout up to his chin, turned his
9408vast shirt collar down over his shoulders, brushed him off and crowned
9409him with his speckled straw hat. He now looked exceedingly improved and
9410uncomfortable. He was fully as uncomfortable as he looked; for there
9411was a restraint about whole clothes and cleanliness that galled him. He
9412hoped that Mary would forget his shoes, but the hope was blighted; she
9413coated them thoroughly with tallow, as was the custom, and brought them
9414out. He lost his temper and said he was always being made to do
9415everything he didn't want to do. But Mary said, persuasively:
9416
9417"Please, Tom--that's a good boy."
9418
9419So he got into the shoes snarling. Mary was soon ready, and the three
9420children set out for Sunday-school--a place that Tom hated with his
9421whole heart; but Sid and Mary were fond of it.
9422
9423Sabbath-school hours were from nine to half-past ten; and then church
9424service. Two of the children always remained for the sermon
9425voluntarily, and the other always remained too--for stronger reasons.
9426The church's high-backed, uncushioned pews would seat about three
9427hundred persons; the edifice was but a small, plain affair, with a sort
9428of pine board tree-box on top of it for a steeple. At the door Tom
9429dropped back a step and accosted a Sunday-dressed comrade:
9430
9431"Say, Billy, got a yaller ticket?"
9432
9433"Yes."
9434
9435"What'll you take for her?"
9436
9437"What'll you give?"
9438
9439"Piece of lickrish and a fish-hook."
9440
9441"Less see 'em."
9442
9443Tom exhibited. They were satisfactory, and the property changed hands.
9444Then Tom traded a couple of white alleys for three red tickets, and
9445some small trifle or other for a couple of blue ones. He waylaid other
9446boys as they came, and went on buying tickets of various colors ten or
9447fifteen minutes longer. He entered the church, now, with a swarm of
9448clean and noisy boys and girls, proceeded to his seat and started a
9449quarrel with the first boy that came handy. The teacher, a grave,
9450elderly man, interfered; then turned his back a moment and Tom pulled a
9451boy's hair in the next bench, and was absorbed in his book when the boy
9452turned around; stuck a pin in another boy, presently, in order to hear
9453him say "Ouch!" and got a new reprimand from his teacher. Tom's whole
9454class were of a pattern--restless, noisy, and troublesome. When they
9455came to recite their lessons, not one of them knew his verses
9456perfectly, but had to be prompted all along. However, they worried
9457through, and each got his reward--in small blue tickets, each with a
9458passage of Scripture on it; each blue ticket was pay for two verses of
9459the recitation. Ten blue tickets equalled a red one, and could be
9460exchanged for it; ten red tickets equalled a yellow one; for ten yellow
9461tickets the superintendent gave a very plainly bound Bible (worth forty
9462cents in those easy times) to the pupil. How many of my readers would
9463have the industry and application to memorize two thousand verses, even
9464for a Dore Bible? And yet Mary had acquired two Bibles in this way--it
9465was the patient work of two years--and a boy of German parentage had
9466won four or five. He once recited three thousand verses without
9467stopping; but the strain upon his mental faculties was too great, and
9468he was little better than an idiot from that day forth--a grievous
9469misfortune for the school, for on great occasions, before company, the
9470superintendent (as Tom expressed it) had always made this boy come out
9471and "spread himself." Only the older pupils managed to keep their
9472tickets and stick to their tedious work long enough to get a Bible, and
9473so the delivery of one of these prizes was a rare and noteworthy
9474circumstance; the successful pupil was so great and conspicuous for
9475that day that on the spot every scholar's heart was fired with a fresh
9476ambition that often lasted a couple of weeks. It is possible that Tom's
9477mental stomach had never really hungered for one of those prizes, but
9478unquestionably his entire being had for many a day longed for the glory
9479and the eclat that came with it.
9480
9481In due course the superintendent stood up in front of the pulpit, with
9482a closed hymn-book in his hand and his forefinger inserted between its
9483leaves, and commanded attention. When a Sunday-school superintendent
9484makes his customary little speech, a hymn-book in the hand is as
9485necessary as is the inevitable sheet of music in the hand of a singer
9486who stands forward on the platform and sings a solo at a concert
9487--though why, is a mystery: for neither the hymn-book nor the sheet of
9488music is ever referred to by the sufferer. This superintendent was a
9489slim creature of thirty-five, with a sandy goatee and short sandy hair;
9490he wore a stiff standing-collar whose upper edge almost reached his
9491ears and whose sharp points curved forward abreast the corners of his
9492mouth--a fence that compelled a straight lookout ahead, and a turning
9493of the whole body when a side view was required; his chin was propped
9494on a spreading cravat which was as broad and as long as a bank-note,
9495and had fringed ends; his boot toes were turned sharply up, in the
9496fashion of the day, like sleigh-runners--an effect patiently and
9497laboriously produced by the young men by sitting with their toes
9498pressed against a wall for hours together. Mr. Walters was very earnest
9499of mien, and very sincere and honest at heart; and he held sacred
9500things and places in such reverence, and so separated them from worldly
9501matters, that unconsciously to himself his Sunday-school voice had
9502acquired a peculiar intonation which was wholly absent on week-days. He
9503began after this fashion:
9504
9505"Now, children, I want you all to sit up just as straight and pretty
9506as you can and give me all your attention for a minute or two. There
9507--that is it. That is the way good little boys and girls should do. I see
9508one little girl who is looking out of the window--I am afraid she
9509thinks I am out there somewhere--perhaps up in one of the trees making
9510a speech to the little birds. [Applausive titter.] I want to tell you
9511how good it makes me feel to see so many bright, clean little faces
9512assembled in a place like this, learning to do right and be good." And
9513so forth and so on. It is not necessary to set down the rest of the
9514oration. It was of a pattern which does not vary, and so it is familiar
9515to us all.
9516
9517The latter third of the speech was marred by the resumption of fights
9518and other recreations among certain of the bad boys, and by fidgetings
9519and whisperings that extended far and wide, washing even to the bases
9520of isolated and incorruptible rocks like Sid and Mary. But now every
9521sound ceased suddenly, with the subsidence of Mr. Walters' voice, and
9522the conclusion of the speech was received with a burst of silent
9523gratitude.
9524
9525A good part of the whispering had been occasioned by an event which
9526was more or less rare--the entrance of visitors: lawyer Thatcher,
9527accompanied by a very feeble and aged man; a fine, portly, middle-aged
9528gentleman with iron-gray hair; and a dignified lady who was doubtless
9529the latter's wife. The lady was leading a child. Tom had been restless
9530and full of chafings and repinings; conscience-smitten, too--he could
9531not meet Amy Lawrence's eye, he could not brook her loving gaze. But
9532when he saw this small new-comer his soul was all ablaze with bliss in
9533a moment. The next moment he was "showing off" with all his might
9534--cuffing boys, pulling hair, making faces--in a word, using every art
9535that seemed likely to fascinate a girl and win her applause. His
9536exaltation had but one alloy--the memory of his humiliation in this
9537angel's garden--and that record in sand was fast washing out, under
9538the waves of happiness that were sweeping over it now.
9539
9540The visitors were given the highest seat of honor, and as soon as Mr.
9541Walters' speech was finished, he introduced them to the school. The
9542middle-aged man turned out to be a prodigious personage--no less a one
9543than the county judge--altogether the most august creation these
9544children had ever looked upon--and they wondered what kind of material
9545he was made of--and they half wanted to hear him roar, and were half
9546afraid he might, too. He was from Constantinople, twelve miles away--so
9547he had travelled, and seen the world--these very eyes had looked upon
9548the county court-house--which was said to have a tin roof. The awe
9549which these reflections inspired was attested by the impressive silence
9550and the ranks of staring eyes. This was the great Judge Thatcher,
9551brother of their own lawyer. Jeff Thatcher immediately went forward, to
9552be familiar with the great man and be envied by the school. It would
9553have been music to his soul to hear the whisperings:
9554
9555"Look at him, Jim! He's a going up there. Say--look! he's a going to
9556shake hands with him--he IS shaking hands with him! By jings, don't you
9557wish you was Jeff?"
9558
9559Mr. Walters fell to "showing off," with all sorts of official
9560bustlings and activities, giving orders, delivering judgments,
9561discharging directions here, there, everywhere that he could find a
9562target. The librarian "showed off"--running hither and thither with his
9563arms full of books and making a deal of the splutter and fuss that
9564insect authority delights in. The young lady teachers "showed off"
9565--bending sweetly over pupils that were lately being boxed, lifting
9566pretty warning fingers at bad little boys and patting good ones
9567lovingly. The young gentlemen teachers "showed off" with small
9568scoldings and other little displays of authority and fine attention to
9569discipline--and most of the teachers, of both sexes, found business up
9570at the library, by the pulpit; and it was business that frequently had
9571to be done over again two or three times (with much seeming vexation).
9572The little girls "showed off" in various ways, and the little boys
9573"showed off" with such diligence that the air was thick with paper wads
9574and the murmur of scufflings. And above it all the great man sat and
9575beamed a majestic judicial smile upon all the house, and warmed himself
9576in the sun of his own grandeur--for he was "showing off," too.
9577
9578There was only one thing wanting to make Mr. Walters' ecstasy
9579complete, and that was a chance to deliver a Bible-prize and exhibit a
9580prodigy. Several pupils had a few yellow tickets, but none had enough
9581--he had been around among the star pupils inquiring. He would have given
9582worlds, now, to have that German lad back again with a sound mind.
9583
9584And now at this moment, when hope was dead, Tom Sawyer came forward
9585with nine yellow tickets, nine red tickets, and ten blue ones, and
9586demanded a Bible. This was a thunderbolt out of a clear sky. Walters
9587was not expecting an application from this source for the next ten
9588years. But there was no getting around it--here were the certified
9589checks, and they were good for their face. Tom was therefore elevated
9590to a place with the Judge and the other elect, and the great news was
9591announced from headquarters. It was the most stunning surprise of the
9592decade, and so profound was the sensation that it lifted the new hero
9593up to the judicial one's altitude, and the school had two marvels to
9594gaze upon in place of one. The boys were all eaten up with envy--but
9595those that suffered the bitterest pangs were those who perceived too
9596late that they themselves had contributed to this hated splendor by
9597trading tickets to Tom for the wealth he had amassed in selling
9598whitewashing privileges. These despised themselves, as being the dupes
9599of a wily fraud, a guileful snake in the grass.
9600
9601The prize was delivered to Tom with as much effusion as the
9602superintendent could pump up under the circumstances; but it lacked
9603somewhat of the true gush, for the poor fellow's instinct taught him
9604that there was a mystery here that could not well bear the light,
9605perhaps; it was simply preposterous that this boy had warehoused two
9606thousand sheaves of Scriptural wisdom on his premises--a dozen would
9607strain his capacity, without a doubt.
9608
9609Amy Lawrence was proud and glad, and she tried to make Tom see it in
9610her face--but he wouldn't look. She wondered; then she was just a grain
9611troubled; next a dim suspicion came and went--came again; she watched;
9612a furtive glance told her worlds--and then her heart broke, and she was
9613jealous, and angry, and the tears came and she hated everybody. Tom
9614most of all (she thought).
9615
9616Tom was introduced to the Judge; but his tongue was tied, his breath
9617would hardly come, his heart quaked--partly because of the awful
9618greatness of the man, but mainly because he was her parent. He would
9619have liked to fall down and worship him, if it were in the dark. The
9620Judge put his hand on Tom's head and called him a fine little man, and
9621asked him what his name was. The boy stammered, gasped, and got it out:
9622
9623"Tom."
9624
9625"Oh, no, not Tom--it is--"
9626
9627"Thomas."
9628
9629"Ah, that's it. I thought there was more to it, maybe. That's very
9630well. But you've another one I daresay, and you'll tell it to me, won't
9631you?"
9632
9633"Tell the gentleman your other name, Thomas," said Walters, "and say
9634sir. You mustn't forget your manners."
9635
9636"Thomas Sawyer--sir."
9637
9638"That's it! That's a good boy. Fine boy. Fine, manly little fellow.
9639Two thousand verses is a great many--very, very great many. And you
9640never can be sorry for the trouble you took to learn them; for
9641knowledge is worth more than anything there is in the world; it's what
9642makes great men and good men; you'll be a great man and a good man
9643yourself, some day, Thomas, and then you'll look back and say, It's all
9644owing to the precious Sunday-school privileges of my boyhood--it's all
9645owing to my dear teachers that taught me to learn--it's all owing to
9646the good superintendent, who encouraged me, and watched over me, and
9647gave me a beautiful Bible--a splendid elegant Bible--to keep and have
9648it all for my own, always--it's all owing to right bringing up! That is
9649what you will say, Thomas--and you wouldn't take any money for those
9650two thousand verses--no indeed you wouldn't. And now you wouldn't mind
9651telling me and this lady some of the things you've learned--no, I know
9652you wouldn't--for we are proud of little boys that learn. Now, no
9653doubt you know the names of all the twelve disciples. Won't you tell us
9654the names of the first two that were appointed?"
9655
9656Tom was tugging at a button-hole and looking sheepish. He blushed,
9657now, and his eyes fell. Mr. Walters' heart sank within him. He said to
9658himself, it is not possible that the boy can answer the simplest
9659question--why DID the Judge ask him? Yet he felt obliged to speak up
9660and say:
9661
9662"Answer the gentleman, Thomas--don't be afraid."
9663
9664Tom still hung fire.
9665
9666"Now I know you'll tell me," said the lady. "The names of the first
9667two disciples were--"
9668
9669"DAVID AND GOLIAH!"
9670
9671Let us draw the curtain of charity over the rest of the scene.
9672
9673
9674
9675CHAPTER V
9676
9677ABOUT half-past ten the cracked bell of the small church began to
9678ring, and presently the people began to gather for the morning sermon.
9679The Sunday-school children distributed themselves about the house and
9680occupied pews with their parents, so as to be under supervision. Aunt
9681Polly came, and Tom and Sid and Mary sat with her--Tom being placed
9682next the aisle, in order that he might be as far away from the open
9683window and the seductive outside summer scenes as possible. The crowd
9684filed up the aisles: the aged and needy postmaster, who had seen better
9685days; the mayor and his wife--for they had a mayor there, among other
9686unnecessaries; the justice of the peace; the widow Douglass, fair,
9687smart, and forty, a generous, good-hearted soul and well-to-do, her
9688hill mansion the only palace in the town, and the most hospitable and
9689much the most lavish in the matter of festivities that St. Petersburg
9690could boast; the bent and venerable Major and Mrs. Ward; lawyer
9691Riverson, the new notable from a distance; next the belle of the
9692village, followed by a troop of lawn-clad and ribbon-decked young
9693heart-breakers; then all the young clerks in town in a body--for they
9694had stood in the vestibule sucking their cane-heads, a circling wall of
9695oiled and simpering admirers, till the last girl had run their gantlet;
9696and last of all came the Model Boy, Willie Mufferson, taking as heedful
9697care of his mother as if she were cut glass. He always brought his
9698mother to church, and was the pride of all the matrons. The boys all
9699hated him, he was so good. And besides, he had been "thrown up to them"
9700so much. His white handkerchief was hanging out of his pocket behind, as
9701usual on Sundays--accidentally. Tom had no handkerchief, and he looked
9702upon boys who had as snobs.
9703
9704The congregation being fully assembled, now, the bell rang once more,
9705to warn laggards and stragglers, and then a solemn hush fell upon the
9706church which was only broken by the tittering and whispering of the
9707choir in the gallery. The choir always tittered and whispered all
9708through service. There was once a church choir that was not ill-bred,
9709but I have forgotten where it was, now. It was a great many years ago,
9710and I can scarcely remember anything about it, but I think it was in
9711some foreign country.
9712
9713The minister gave out the hymn, and read it through with a relish, in
9714a peculiar style which was much admired in that part of the country.
9715His voice began on a medium key and climbed steadily up till it reached
9716a certain point, where it bore with strong emphasis upon the topmost
9717word and then plunged down as if from a spring-board:
9718
9719  Shall I be car-ri-ed toe the skies, on flow'ry BEDS of ease,
9720
9721  Whilst others fight to win the prize, and sail thro' BLOODY seas?
9722
9723He was regarded as a wonderful reader. At church "sociables" he was
9724always called upon to read poetry; and when he was through, the ladies
9725would lift up their hands and let them fall helplessly in their laps,
9726and "wall" their eyes, and shake their heads, as much as to say, "Words
9727cannot express it; it is too beautiful, TOO beautiful for this mortal
9728earth."
9729
9730After the hymn had been sung, the Rev. Mr. Sprague turned himself into
9731a bulletin-board, and read off "notices" of meetings and societies and
9732things till it seemed that the list would stretch out to the crack of
9733doom--a queer custom which is still kept up in America, even in cities,
9734away here in this age of abundant newspapers. Often, the less there is
9735to justify a traditional custom, the harder it is to get rid of it.
9736
9737And now the minister prayed. A good, generous prayer it was, and went
9738into details: it pleaded for the church, and the little children of the
9739church; for the other churches of the village; for the village itself;
9740for the county; for the State; for the State officers; for the United
9741States; for the churches of the United States; for Congress; for the
9742President; for the officers of the Government; for poor sailors, tossed
9743by stormy seas; for the oppressed millions groaning under the heel of
9744European monarchies and Oriental despotisms; for such as have the light
9745and the good tidings, and yet have not eyes to see nor ears to hear
9746withal; for the heathen in the far islands of the sea; and closed with
9747a supplication that the words he was about to speak might find grace
9748and favor, and be as seed sown in fertile ground, yielding in time a
9749grateful harvest of good. Amen.
9750
9751There was a rustling of dresses, and the standing congregation sat
9752down. The boy whose history this book relates did not enjoy the prayer,
9753he only endured it--if he even did that much. He was restive all
9754through it; he kept tally of the details of the prayer, unconsciously
9755--for he was not listening, but he knew the ground of old, and the
9756clergyman's regular route over it--and when a little trifle of new
9757matter was interlarded, his ear detected it and his whole nature
9758resented it; he considered additions unfair, and scoundrelly. In the
9759midst of the prayer a fly had lit on the back of the pew in front of
9760him and tortured his spirit by calmly rubbing its hands together,
9761embracing its head with its arms, and polishing it so vigorously that
9762it seemed to almost part company with the body, and the slender thread
9763of a neck was exposed to view; scraping its wings with its hind legs
9764and smoothing them to its body as if they had been coat-tails; going
9765through its whole toilet as tranquilly as if it knew it was perfectly
9766safe. As indeed it was; for as sorely as Tom's hands itched to grab for
9767it they did not dare--he believed his soul would be instantly destroyed
9768if he did such a thing while the prayer was going on. But with the
9769closing sentence his hand began to curve and steal forward; and the
9770instant the "Amen" was out the fly was a prisoner of war. His aunt
9771detected the act and made him let it go.
9772
9773The minister gave out his text and droned along monotonously through
9774an argument that was so prosy that many a head by and by began to nod
9775--and yet it was an argument that dealt in limitless fire and brimstone
9776and thinned the predestined elect down to a company so small as to be
9777hardly worth the saving. Tom counted the pages of the sermon; after
9778church he always knew how many pages there had been, but he seldom knew
9779anything else about the discourse. However, this time he was really
9780interested for a little while. The minister made a grand and moving
9781picture of the assembling together of the world's hosts at the
9782millennium when the lion and the lamb should lie down together and a
9783little child should lead them. But the pathos, the lesson, the moral of
9784the great spectacle were lost upon the boy; he only thought of the
9785conspicuousness of the principal character before the on-looking
9786nations; his face lit with the thought, and he said to himself that he
9787wished he could be that child, if it was a tame lion.
9788
9789Now he lapsed into suffering again, as the dry argument was resumed.
9790Presently he bethought him of a treasure he had and got it out. It was
9791a large black beetle with formidable jaws--a "pinchbug," he called it.
9792It was in a percussion-cap box. The first thing the beetle did was to
9793take him by the finger. A natural fillip followed, the beetle went
9794floundering into the aisle and lit on its back, and the hurt finger
9795went into the boy's mouth. The beetle lay there working its helpless
9796legs, unable to turn over. Tom eyed it, and longed for it; but it was
9797safe out of his reach. Other people uninterested in the sermon found
9798relief in the beetle, and they eyed it too. Presently a vagrant poodle
9799dog came idling along, sad at heart, lazy with the summer softness and
9800the quiet, weary of captivity, sighing for change. He spied the beetle;
9801the drooping tail lifted and wagged. He surveyed the prize; walked
9802around it; smelt at it from a safe distance; walked around it again;
9803grew bolder, and took a closer smell; then lifted his lip and made a
9804gingerly snatch at it, just missing it; made another, and another;
9805began to enjoy the diversion; subsided to his stomach with the beetle
9806between his paws, and continued his experiments; grew weary at last,
9807and then indifferent and absent-minded. His head nodded, and little by
9808little his chin descended and touched the enemy, who seized it. There
9809was a sharp yelp, a flirt of the poodle's head, and the beetle fell a
9810couple of yards away, and lit on its back once more. The neighboring
9811spectators shook with a gentle inward joy, several faces went behind
9812fans and handkerchiefs, and Tom was entirely happy. The dog looked
9813foolish, and probably felt so; but there was resentment in his heart,
9814too, and a craving for revenge. So he went to the beetle and began a
9815wary attack on it again; jumping at it from every point of a circle,
9816lighting with his fore-paws within an inch of the creature, making even
9817closer snatches at it with his teeth, and jerking his head till his
9818ears flapped again. But he grew tired once more, after a while; tried
9819to amuse himself with a fly but found no relief; followed an ant
9820around, with his nose close to the floor, and quickly wearied of that;
9821yawned, sighed, forgot the beetle entirely, and sat down on it. Then
9822there was a wild yelp of agony and the poodle went sailing up the
9823aisle; the yelps continued, and so did the dog; he crossed the house in
9824front of the altar; he flew down the other aisle; he crossed before the
9825doors; he clamored up the home-stretch; his anguish grew with his
9826progress, till presently he was but a woolly comet moving in its orbit
9827with the gleam and the speed of light. At last the frantic sufferer
9828sheered from its course, and sprang into its master's lap; he flung it
9829out of the window, and the voice of distress quickly thinned away and
9830died in the distance.
9831
9832By this time the whole church was red-faced and suffocating with
9833suppressed laughter, and the sermon had come to a dead standstill. The
9834discourse was resumed presently, but it went lame and halting, all
9835possibility of impressiveness being at an end; for even the gravest
9836sentiments were constantly being received with a smothered burst of
9837unholy mirth, under cover of some remote pew-back, as if the poor
9838parson had said a rarely facetious thing. It was a genuine relief to
9839the whole congregation when the ordeal was over and the benediction
9840pronounced.
9841
9842Tom Sawyer went home quite cheerful, thinking to himself that there
9843was some satisfaction about divine service when there was a bit of
9844variety in it. He had but one marring thought; he was willing that the
9845dog should play with his pinchbug, but he did not think it was upright
9846in him to carry it off.
9847
9848
9849
9850CHAPTER VI
9851
9852MONDAY morning found Tom Sawyer miserable. Monday morning always found
9853him so--because it began another week's slow suffering in school. He
9854generally began that day with wishing he had had no intervening
9855holiday, it made the going into captivity and fetters again so much
9856more odious.
9857
9858Tom lay thinking. Presently it occurred to him that he wished he was
9859sick; then he could stay home from school. Here was a vague
9860possibility. He canvassed his system. No ailment was found, and he
9861investigated again. This time he thought he could detect colicky
9862symptoms, and he began to encourage them with considerable hope. But
9863they soon grew feeble, and presently died wholly away. He reflected
9864further. Suddenly he discovered something. One of his upper front teeth
9865was loose. This was lucky; he was about to begin to groan, as a
9866"starter," as he called it, when it occurred to him that if he came
9867into court with that argument, his aunt would pull it out, and that
9868would hurt. So he thought he would hold the tooth in reserve for the
9869present, and seek further. Nothing offered for some little time, and
9870then he remembered hearing the doctor tell about a certain thing that
9871laid up a patient for two or three weeks and threatened to make him
9872lose a finger. So the boy eagerly drew his sore toe from under the
9873sheet and held it up for inspection. But now he did not know the
9874necessary symptoms. However, it seemed well worth while to chance it,
9875so he fell to groaning with considerable spirit.
9876
9877But Sid slept on unconscious.
9878
9879Tom groaned louder, and fancied that he began to feel pain in the toe.
9880
9881No result from Sid.
9882
9883Tom was panting with his exertions by this time. He took a rest and
9884then swelled himself up and fetched a succession of admirable groans.
9885
9886Sid snored on.
9887
9888Tom was aggravated. He said, "Sid, Sid!" and shook him. This course
9889worked well, and Tom began to groan again. Sid yawned, stretched, then
9890brought himself up on his elbow with a snort, and began to stare at
9891Tom. Tom went on groaning. Sid said:
9892
9893"Tom! Say, Tom!" [No response.] "Here, Tom! TOM! What is the matter,
9894Tom?" And he shook him and looked in his face anxiously.
9895
9896Tom moaned out:
9897
9898"Oh, don't, Sid. Don't joggle me."
9899
9900"Why, what's the matter, Tom? I must call auntie."
9901
9902"No--never mind. It'll be over by and by, maybe. Don't call anybody."
9903
9904"But I must! DON'T groan so, Tom, it's awful. How long you been this
9905way?"
9906
9907"Hours. Ouch! Oh, don't stir so, Sid, you'll kill me."
9908
9909"Tom, why didn't you wake me sooner? Oh, Tom, DON'T! It makes my
9910flesh crawl to hear you. Tom, what is the matter?"
9911
9912"I forgive you everything, Sid. [Groan.] Everything you've ever done
9913to me. When I'm gone--"
9914
9915"Oh, Tom, you ain't dying, are you? Don't, Tom--oh, don't. Maybe--"
9916
9917"I forgive everybody, Sid. [Groan.] Tell 'em so, Sid. And Sid, you
9918give my window-sash and my cat with one eye to that new girl that's
9919come to town, and tell her--"
9920
9921But Sid had snatched his clothes and gone. Tom was suffering in
9922reality, now, so handsomely was his imagination working, and so his
9923groans had gathered quite a genuine tone.
9924
9925Sid flew down-stairs and said:
9926
9927"Oh, Aunt Polly, come! Tom's dying!"
9928
9929"Dying!"
9930
9931"Yes'm. Don't wait--come quick!"
9932
9933"Rubbage! I don't believe it!"
9934
9935But she fled up-stairs, nevertheless, with Sid and Mary at her heels.
9936And her face grew white, too, and her lip trembled. When she reached
9937the bedside she gasped out:
9938
9939"You, Tom! Tom, what's the matter with you?"
9940
9941"Oh, auntie, I'm--"
9942
9943"What's the matter with you--what is the matter with you, child?"
9944
9945"Oh, auntie, my sore toe's mortified!"
9946
9947The old lady sank down into a chair and laughed a little, then cried a
9948little, then did both together. This restored her and she said:
9949
9950"Tom, what a turn you did give me. Now you shut up that nonsense and
9951climb out of this."
9952
9953The groans ceased and the pain vanished from the toe. The boy felt a
9954little foolish, and he said:
9955
9956"Aunt Polly, it SEEMED mortified, and it hurt so I never minded my
9957tooth at all."
9958
9959"Your tooth, indeed! What's the matter with your tooth?"
9960
9961"One of them's loose, and it aches perfectly awful."
9962
9963"There, there, now, don't begin that groaning again. Open your mouth.
9964Well--your tooth IS loose, but you're not going to die about that.
9965Mary, get me a silk thread, and a chunk of fire out of the kitchen."
9966
9967Tom said:
9968
9969"Oh, please, auntie, don't pull it out. It don't hurt any more. I wish
9970I may never stir if it does. Please don't, auntie. I don't want to stay
9971home from school."
9972
9973"Oh, you don't, don't you? So all this row was because you thought
9974you'd get to stay home from school and go a-fishing? Tom, Tom, I love
9975you so, and you seem to try every way you can to break my old heart
9976with your outrageousness." By this time the dental instruments were
9977ready. The old lady made one end of the silk thread fast to Tom's tooth
9978with a loop and tied the other to the bedpost. Then she seized the
9979chunk of fire and suddenly thrust it almost into the boy's face. The
9980tooth hung dangling by the bedpost, now.
9981
9982But all trials bring their compensations. As Tom wended to school
9983after breakfast, he was the envy of every boy he met because the gap in
9984his upper row of teeth enabled him to expectorate in a new and
9985admirable way. He gathered quite a following of lads interested in the
9986exhibition; and one that had cut his finger and had been a centre of
9987fascination and homage up to this time, now found himself suddenly
9988without an adherent, and shorn of his glory. His heart was heavy, and
9989he said with a disdain which he did not feel that it wasn't anything to
9990spit like Tom Sawyer; but another boy said, "Sour grapes!" and he
9991wandered away a dismantled hero.
9992
9993Shortly Tom came upon the juvenile pariah of the village, Huckleberry
9994Finn, son of the town drunkard. Huckleberry was cordially hated and
9995dreaded by all the mothers of the town, because he was idle and lawless
9996and vulgar and bad--and because all their children admired him so, and
9997delighted in his forbidden society, and wished they dared to be like
9998him. Tom was like the rest of the respectable boys, in that he envied
9999Huckleberry his gaudy outcast condition, and was under strict orders
10000not to play with him. So he played with him every time he got a chance.
10001Huckleberry was always dressed in the cast-off clothes of full-grown
10002men, and they were in perennial bloom and fluttering with rags. His hat
10003was a vast ruin with a wide crescent lopped out of its brim; his coat,
10004when he wore one, hung nearly to his heels and had the rearward buttons
10005far down the back; but one suspender supported his trousers; the seat
10006of the trousers bagged low and contained nothing, the fringed legs
10007dragged in the dirt when not rolled up.
10008
10009Huckleberry came and went, at his own free will. He slept on doorsteps
10010in fine weather and in empty hogsheads in wet; he did not have to go to
10011school or to church, or call any being master or obey anybody; he could
10012go fishing or swimming when and where he chose, and stay as long as it
10013suited him; nobody forbade him to fight; he could sit up as late as he
10014pleased; he was always the first boy that went barefoot in the spring
10015and the last to resume leather in the fall; he never had to wash, nor
10016put on clean clothes; he could swear wonderfully. In a word, everything
10017that goes to make life precious that boy had. So thought every
10018harassed, hampered, respectable boy in St. Petersburg.
10019
10020Tom hailed the romantic outcast:
10021
10022"Hello, Huckleberry!"
10023
10024"Hello yourself, and see how you like it."
10025
10026"What's that you got?"
10027
10028"Dead cat."
10029
10030"Lemme see him, Huck. My, he's pretty stiff. Where'd you get him?"
10031
10032"Bought him off'n a boy."
10033
10034"What did you give?"
10035
10036"I give a blue ticket and a bladder that I got at the slaughter-house."
10037
10038"Where'd you get the blue ticket?"
10039
10040"Bought it off'n Ben Rogers two weeks ago for a hoop-stick."
10041
10042"Say--what is dead cats good for, Huck?"
10043
10044"Good for? Cure warts with."
10045
10046"No! Is that so? I know something that's better."
10047
10048"I bet you don't. What is it?"
10049
10050"Why, spunk-water."
10051
10052"Spunk-water! I wouldn't give a dern for spunk-water."
10053
10054"You wouldn't, wouldn't you? D'you ever try it?"
10055
10056"No, I hain't. But Bob Tanner did."
10057
10058"Who told you so!"
10059
10060"Why, he told Jeff Thatcher, and Jeff told Johnny Baker, and Johnny
10061told Jim Hollis, and Jim told Ben Rogers, and Ben told a nigger, and
10062the nigger told me. There now!"
10063
10064"Well, what of it? They'll all lie. Leastways all but the nigger. I
10065don't know HIM. But I never see a nigger that WOULDN'T lie. Shucks! Now
10066you tell me how Bob Tanner done it, Huck."
10067
10068"Why, he took and dipped his hand in a rotten stump where the
10069rain-water was."
10070
10071"In the daytime?"
10072
10073"Certainly."
10074
10075"With his face to the stump?"
10076
10077"Yes. Least I reckon so."
10078
10079"Did he say anything?"
10080
10081"I don't reckon he did. I don't know."
10082
10083"Aha! Talk about trying to cure warts with spunk-water such a blame
10084fool way as that! Why, that ain't a-going to do any good. You got to go
10085all by yourself, to the middle of the woods, where you know there's a
10086spunk-water stump, and just as it's midnight you back up against the
10087stump and jam your hand in and say:
10088
10089  'Barley-corn, barley-corn, injun-meal shorts,
10090   Spunk-water, spunk-water, swaller these warts,'
10091
10092and then walk away quick, eleven steps, with your eyes shut, and then
10093turn around three times and walk home without speaking to anybody.
10094Because if you speak the charm's busted."
10095
10096"Well, that sounds like a good way; but that ain't the way Bob Tanner
10097done."
10098
10099"No, sir, you can bet he didn't, becuz he's the wartiest boy in this
10100town; and he wouldn't have a wart on him if he'd knowed how to work
10101spunk-water. I've took off thousands of warts off of my hands that way,
10102Huck. I play with frogs so much that I've always got considerable many
10103warts. Sometimes I take 'em off with a bean."
10104
10105"Yes, bean's good. I've done that."
10106
10107"Have you? What's your way?"
10108
10109"You take and split the bean, and cut the wart so as to get some
10110blood, and then you put the blood on one piece of the bean and take and
10111dig a hole and bury it 'bout midnight at the crossroads in the dark of
10112the moon, and then you burn up the rest of the bean. You see that piece
10113that's got the blood on it will keep drawing and drawing, trying to
10114fetch the other piece to it, and so that helps the blood to draw the
10115wart, and pretty soon off she comes."
10116
10117"Yes, that's it, Huck--that's it; though when you're burying it if you
10118say 'Down bean; off wart; come no more to bother me!' it's better.
10119That's the way Joe Harper does, and he's been nearly to Coonville and
10120most everywheres. But say--how do you cure 'em with dead cats?"
10121
10122"Why, you take your cat and go and get in the graveyard 'long about
10123midnight when somebody that was wicked has been buried; and when it's
10124midnight a devil will come, or maybe two or three, but you can't see
10125'em, you can only hear something like the wind, or maybe hear 'em talk;
10126and when they're taking that feller away, you heave your cat after 'em
10127and say, 'Devil follow corpse, cat follow devil, warts follow cat, I'm
10128done with ye!' That'll fetch ANY wart."
10129
10130"Sounds right. D'you ever try it, Huck?"
10131
10132"No, but old Mother Hopkins told me."
10133
10134"Well, I reckon it's so, then. Becuz they say she's a witch."
10135
10136"Say! Why, Tom, I KNOW she is. She witched pap. Pap says so his own
10137self. He come along one day, and he see she was a-witching him, so he
10138took up a rock, and if she hadn't dodged, he'd a got her. Well, that
10139very night he rolled off'n a shed wher' he was a layin drunk, and broke
10140his arm."
10141
10142"Why, that's awful. How did he know she was a-witching him?"
10143
10144"Lord, pap can tell, easy. Pap says when they keep looking at you
10145right stiddy, they're a-witching you. Specially if they mumble. Becuz
10146when they mumble they're saying the Lord's Prayer backards."
10147
10148"Say, Hucky, when you going to try the cat?"
10149
10150"To-night. I reckon they'll come after old Hoss Williams to-night."
10151
10152"But they buried him Saturday. Didn't they get him Saturday night?"
10153
10154"Why, how you talk! How could their charms work till midnight?--and
10155THEN it's Sunday. Devils don't slosh around much of a Sunday, I don't
10156reckon."
10157
10158"I never thought of that. That's so. Lemme go with you?"
10159
10160"Of course--if you ain't afeard."
10161
10162"Afeard! 'Tain't likely. Will you meow?"
10163
10164"Yes--and you meow back, if you get a chance. Last time, you kep' me
10165a-meowing around till old Hays went to throwing rocks at me and says
10166'Dern that cat!' and so I hove a brick through his window--but don't
10167you tell."
10168
10169"I won't. I couldn't meow that night, becuz auntie was watching me,
10170but I'll meow this time. Say--what's that?"
10171
10172"Nothing but a tick."
10173
10174"Where'd you get him?"
10175
10176"Out in the woods."
10177
10178"What'll you take for him?"
10179
10180"I don't know. I don't want to sell him."
10181
10182"All right. It's a mighty small tick, anyway."
10183
10184"Oh, anybody can run a tick down that don't belong to them. I'm
10185satisfied with it. It's a good enough tick for me."
10186
10187"Sho, there's ticks a plenty. I could have a thousand of 'em if I
10188wanted to."
10189
10190"Well, why don't you? Becuz you know mighty well you can't. This is a
10191pretty early tick, I reckon. It's the first one I've seen this year."
10192
10193"Say, Huck--I'll give you my tooth for him."
10194
10195"Less see it."
10196
10197Tom got out a bit of paper and carefully unrolled it. Huckleberry
10198viewed it wistfully. The temptation was very strong. At last he said:
10199
10200"Is it genuwyne?"
10201
10202Tom lifted his lip and showed the vacancy.
10203
10204"Well, all right," said Huckleberry, "it's a trade."
10205
10206Tom enclosed the tick in the percussion-cap box that had lately been
10207the pinchbug's prison, and the boys separated, each feeling wealthier
10208than before.
10209
10210When Tom reached the little isolated frame schoolhouse, he strode in
10211briskly, with the manner of one who had come with all honest speed.
10212He hung his hat on a peg and flung himself into his seat with
10213business-like alacrity. The master, throned on high in his great
10214splint-bottom arm-chair, was dozing, lulled by the drowsy hum of study.
10215The interruption roused him.
10216
10217"Thomas Sawyer!"
10218
10219Tom knew that when his name was pronounced in full, it meant trouble.
10220
10221"Sir!"
10222
10223"Come up here. Now, sir, why are you late again, as usual?"
10224
10225Tom was about to take refuge in a lie, when he saw two long tails of
10226yellow hair hanging down a back that he recognized by the electric
10227sympathy of love; and by that form was THE ONLY VACANT PLACE on the
10228girls' side of the schoolhouse. He instantly said:
10229
10230"I STOPPED TO TALK WITH HUCKLEBERRY FINN!"
10231
10232The master's pulse stood still, and he stared helplessly. The buzz of
10233study ceased. The pupils wondered if this foolhardy boy had lost his
10234mind. The master said:
10235
10236"You--you did what?"
10237
10238"Stopped to talk with Huckleberry Finn."
10239
10240There was no mistaking the words.
10241
10242"Thomas Sawyer, this is the most astounding confession I have ever
10243listened to. No mere ferule will answer for this offence. Take off your
10244jacket."
10245
10246The master's arm performed until it was tired and the stock of
10247switches notably diminished. Then the order followed:
10248
10249"Now, sir, go and sit with the girls! And let this be a warning to you."
10250
10251The titter that rippled around the room appeared to abash the boy, but
10252in reality that result was caused rather more by his worshipful awe of
10253his unknown idol and the dread pleasure that lay in his high good
10254fortune. He sat down upon the end of the pine bench and the girl
10255hitched herself away from him with a toss of her head. Nudges and winks
10256and whispers traversed the room, but Tom sat still, with his arms upon
10257the long, low desk before him, and seemed to study his book.
10258
10259By and by attention ceased from him, and the accustomed school murmur
10260rose upon the dull air once more. Presently the boy began to steal
10261furtive glances at the girl. She observed it, "made a mouth" at him and
10262gave him the back of her head for the space of a minute. When she
10263cautiously faced around again, a peach lay before her. She thrust it
10264away. Tom gently put it back. She thrust it away again, but with less
10265animosity. Tom patiently returned it to its place. Then she let it
10266remain. Tom scrawled on his slate, "Please take it--I got more." The
10267girl glanced at the words, but made no sign. Now the boy began to draw
10268something on the slate, hiding his work with his left hand. For a time
10269the girl refused to notice; but her human curiosity presently began to
10270manifest itself by hardly perceptible signs. The boy worked on,
10271apparently unconscious. The girl made a sort of noncommittal attempt to
10272see, but the boy did not betray that he was aware of it. At last she
10273gave in and hesitatingly whispered:
10274
10275"Let me see it."
10276
10277Tom partly uncovered a dismal caricature of a house with two gable
10278ends to it and a corkscrew of smoke issuing from the chimney. Then the
10279girl's interest began to fasten itself upon the work and she forgot
10280everything else. When it was finished, she gazed a moment, then
10281whispered:
10282
10283"It's nice--make a man."
10284
10285The artist erected a man in the front yard, that resembled a derrick.
10286He could have stepped over the house; but the girl was not
10287hypercritical; she was satisfied with the monster, and whispered:
10288
10289"It's a beautiful man--now make me coming along."
10290
10291Tom drew an hour-glass with a full moon and straw limbs to it and
10292armed the spreading fingers with a portentous fan. The girl said:
10293
10294"It's ever so nice--I wish I could draw."
10295
10296"It's easy," whispered Tom, "I'll learn you."
10297
10298"Oh, will you? When?"
10299
10300"At noon. Do you go home to dinner?"
10301
10302"I'll stay if you will."
10303
10304"Good--that's a whack. What's your name?"
10305
10306"Becky Thatcher. What's yours? Oh, I know. It's Thomas Sawyer."
10307
10308"That's the name they lick me by. I'm Tom when I'm good. You call me
10309Tom, will you?"
10310
10311"Yes."
10312
10313Now Tom began to scrawl something on the slate, hiding the words from
10314the girl. But she was not backward this time. She begged to see. Tom
10315said:
10316
10317"Oh, it ain't anything."
10318
10319"Yes it is."
10320
10321"No it ain't. You don't want to see."
10322
10323"Yes I do, indeed I do. Please let me."
10324
10325"You'll tell."
10326
10327"No I won't--deed and deed and double deed won't."
10328
10329"You won't tell anybody at all? Ever, as long as you live?"
10330
10331"No, I won't ever tell ANYbody. Now let me."
10332
10333"Oh, YOU don't want to see!"
10334
10335"Now that you treat me so, I WILL see." And she put her small hand
10336upon his and a little scuffle ensued, Tom pretending to resist in
10337earnest but letting his hand slip by degrees till these words were
10338revealed: "I LOVE YOU."
10339
10340"Oh, you bad thing!" And she hit his hand a smart rap, but reddened
10341and looked pleased, nevertheless.
10342
10343Just at this juncture the boy felt a slow, fateful grip closing on his
10344ear, and a steady lifting impulse. In that wise he was borne across the
10345house and deposited in his own seat, under a peppering fire of giggles
10346from the whole school. Then the master stood over him during a few
10347awful moments, and finally moved away to his throne without saying a
10348word. But although Tom's ear tingled, his heart was jubilant.
10349
10350As the school quieted down Tom made an honest effort to study, but the
10351turmoil within him was too great. In turn he took his place in the
10352reading class and made a botch of it; then in the geography class and
10353turned lakes into mountains, mountains into rivers, and rivers into
10354continents, till chaos was come again; then in the spelling class, and
10355got "turned down," by a succession of mere baby words, till he brought
10356up at the foot and yielded up the pewter medal which he had worn with
10357ostentation for months.
10358
10359
10360
10361CHAPTER VII
10362
10363THE harder Tom tried to fasten his mind on his book, the more his
10364ideas wandered. So at last, with a sigh and a yawn, he gave it up. It
10365seemed to him that the noon recess would never come. The air was
10366utterly dead. There was not a breath stirring. It was the sleepiest of
10367sleepy days. The drowsing murmur of the five and twenty studying
10368scholars soothed the soul like the spell that is in the murmur of bees.
10369Away off in the flaming sunshine, Cardiff Hill lifted its soft green
10370sides through a shimmering veil of heat, tinted with the purple of
10371distance; a few birds floated on lazy wing high in the air; no other
10372living thing was visible but some cows, and they were asleep. Tom's
10373heart ached to be free, or else to have something of interest to do to
10374pass the dreary time. His hand wandered into his pocket and his face
10375lit up with a glow of gratitude that was prayer, though he did not know
10376it. Then furtively the percussion-cap box came out. He released the
10377tick and put him on the long flat desk. The creature probably glowed
10378with a gratitude that amounted to prayer, too, at this moment, but it
10379was premature: for when he started thankfully to travel off, Tom turned
10380him aside with a pin and made him take a new direction.
10381
10382Tom's bosom friend sat next him, suffering just as Tom had been, and
10383now he was deeply and gratefully interested in this entertainment in an
10384instant. This bosom friend was Joe Harper. The two boys were sworn
10385friends all the week, and embattled enemies on Saturdays. Joe took a
10386pin out of his lapel and began to assist in exercising the prisoner.
10387The sport grew in interest momently. Soon Tom said that they were
10388interfering with each other, and neither getting the fullest benefit of
10389the tick. So he put Joe's slate on the desk and drew a line down the
10390middle of it from top to bottom.
10391
10392"Now," said he, "as long as he is on your side you can stir him up and
10393I'll let him alone; but if you let him get away and get on my side,
10394you're to leave him alone as long as I can keep him from crossing over."
10395
10396"All right, go ahead; start him up."
10397
10398The tick escaped from Tom, presently, and crossed the equator. Joe
10399harassed him awhile, and then he got away and crossed back again. This
10400change of base occurred often. While one boy was worrying the tick with
10401absorbing interest, the other would look on with interest as strong,
10402the two heads bowed together over the slate, and the two souls dead to
10403all things else. At last luck seemed to settle and abide with Joe. The
10404tick tried this, that, and the other course, and got as excited and as
10405anxious as the boys themselves, but time and again just as he would
10406have victory in his very grasp, so to speak, and Tom's fingers would be
10407twitching to begin, Joe's pin would deftly head him off, and keep
10408possession. At last Tom could stand it no longer. The temptation was
10409too strong. So he reached out and lent a hand with his pin. Joe was
10410angry in a moment. Said he:
10411
10412"Tom, you let him alone."
10413
10414"I only just want to stir him up a little, Joe."
10415
10416"No, sir, it ain't fair; you just let him alone."
10417
10418"Blame it, I ain't going to stir him much."
10419
10420"Let him alone, I tell you."
10421
10422"I won't!"
10423
10424"You shall--he's on my side of the line."
10425
10426"Look here, Joe Harper, whose is that tick?"
10427
10428"I don't care whose tick he is--he's on my side of the line, and you
10429sha'n't touch him."
10430
10431"Well, I'll just bet I will, though. He's my tick and I'll do what I
10432blame please with him, or die!"
10433
10434A tremendous whack came down on Tom's shoulders, and its duplicate on
10435Joe's; and for the space of two minutes the dust continued to fly from
10436the two jackets and the whole school to enjoy it. The boys had been too
10437absorbed to notice the hush that had stolen upon the school awhile
10438before when the master came tiptoeing down the room and stood over
10439them. He had contemplated a good part of the performance before he
10440contributed his bit of variety to it.
10441
10442When school broke up at noon, Tom flew to Becky Thatcher, and
10443whispered in her ear:
10444
10445"Put on your bonnet and let on you're going home; and when you get to
10446the corner, give the rest of 'em the slip, and turn down through the
10447lane and come back. I'll go the other way and come it over 'em the same
10448way."
10449
10450So the one went off with one group of scholars, and the other with
10451another. In a little while the two met at the bottom of the lane, and
10452when they reached the school they had it all to themselves. Then they
10453sat together, with a slate before them, and Tom gave Becky the pencil
10454and held her hand in his, guiding it, and so created another surprising
10455house. When the interest in art began to wane, the two fell to talking.
10456Tom was swimming in bliss. He said:
10457
10458"Do you love rats?"
10459
10460"No! I hate them!"
10461
10462"Well, I do, too--LIVE ones. But I mean dead ones, to swing round your
10463head with a string."
10464
10465"No, I don't care for rats much, anyway. What I like is chewing-gum."
10466
10467"Oh, I should say so! I wish I had some now."
10468
10469"Do you? I've got some. I'll let you chew it awhile, but you must give
10470it back to me."
10471
10472That was agreeable, so they chewed it turn about, and dangled their
10473legs against the bench in excess of contentment.
10474
10475"Was you ever at a circus?" said Tom.
10476
10477"Yes, and my pa's going to take me again some time, if I'm good."
10478
10479"I been to the circus three or four times--lots of times. Church ain't
10480shucks to a circus. There's things going on at a circus all the time.
10481I'm going to be a clown in a circus when I grow up."
10482
10483"Oh, are you! That will be nice. They're so lovely, all spotted up."
10484
10485"Yes, that's so. And they get slathers of money--most a dollar a day,
10486Ben Rogers says. Say, Becky, was you ever engaged?"
10487
10488"What's that?"
10489
10490"Why, engaged to be married."
10491
10492"No."
10493
10494"Would you like to?"
10495
10496"I reckon so. I don't know. What is it like?"
10497
10498"Like? Why it ain't like anything. You only just tell a boy you won't
10499ever have anybody but him, ever ever ever, and then you kiss and that's
10500all. Anybody can do it."
10501
10502"Kiss? What do you kiss for?"
10503
10504"Why, that, you know, is to--well, they always do that."
10505
10506"Everybody?"
10507
10508"Why, yes, everybody that's in love with each other. Do you remember
10509what I wrote on the slate?"
10510
10511"Ye--yes."
10512
10513"What was it?"
10514
10515"I sha'n't tell you."
10516
10517"Shall I tell YOU?"
10518
10519"Ye--yes--but some other time."
10520
10521"No, now."
10522
10523"No, not now--to-morrow."
10524
10525"Oh, no, NOW. Please, Becky--I'll whisper it, I'll whisper it ever so
10526easy."
10527
10528Becky hesitating, Tom took silence for consent, and passed his arm
10529about her waist and whispered the tale ever so softly, with his mouth
10530close to her ear. And then he added:
10531
10532"Now you whisper it to me--just the same."
10533
10534She resisted, for a while, and then said:
10535
10536"You turn your face away so you can't see, and then I will. But you
10537mustn't ever tell anybody--WILL you, Tom? Now you won't, WILL you?"
10538
10539"No, indeed, indeed I won't. Now, Becky."
10540
10541He turned his face away. She bent timidly around till her breath
10542stirred his curls and whispered, "I--love--you!"
10543
10544Then she sprang away and ran around and around the desks and benches,
10545with Tom after her, and took refuge in a corner at last, with her
10546little white apron to her face. Tom clasped her about her neck and
10547pleaded:
10548
10549"Now, Becky, it's all done--all over but the kiss. Don't you be afraid
10550of that--it ain't anything at all. Please, Becky." And he tugged at her
10551apron and the hands.
10552
10553By and by she gave up, and let her hands drop; her face, all glowing
10554with the struggle, came up and submitted. Tom kissed the red lips and
10555said:
10556
10557"Now it's all done, Becky. And always after this, you know, you ain't
10558ever to love anybody but me, and you ain't ever to marry anybody but
10559me, ever never and forever. Will you?"
10560
10561"No, I'll never love anybody but you, Tom, and I'll never marry
10562anybody but you--and you ain't to ever marry anybody but me, either."
10563
10564"Certainly. Of course. That's PART of it. And always coming to school
10565or when we're going home, you're to walk with me, when there ain't
10566anybody looking--and you choose me and I choose you at parties, because
10567that's the way you do when you're engaged."
10568
10569"It's so nice. I never heard of it before."
10570
10571"Oh, it's ever so gay! Why, me and Amy Lawrence--"
10572
10573The big eyes told Tom his blunder and he stopped, confused.
10574
10575"Oh, Tom! Then I ain't the first you've ever been engaged to!"
10576
10577The child began to cry. Tom said:
10578
10579"Oh, don't cry, Becky, I don't care for her any more."
10580
10581"Yes, you do, Tom--you know you do."
10582
10583Tom tried to put his arm about her neck, but she pushed him away and
10584turned her face to the wall, and went on crying. Tom tried again, with
10585soothing words in his mouth, and was repulsed again. Then his pride was
10586up, and he strode away and went outside. He stood about, restless and
10587uneasy, for a while, glancing at the door, every now and then, hoping
10588she would repent and come to find him. But she did not. Then he began
10589to feel badly and fear that he was in the wrong. It was a hard struggle
10590with him to make new advances, now, but he nerved himself to it and
10591entered. She was still standing back there in the corner, sobbing, with
10592her face to the wall. Tom's heart smote him. He went to her and stood a
10593moment, not knowing exactly how to proceed. Then he said hesitatingly:
10594
10595"Becky, I--I don't care for anybody but you."
10596
10597No reply--but sobs.
10598
10599"Becky"--pleadingly. "Becky, won't you say something?"
10600
10601More sobs.
10602
10603Tom got out his chiefest jewel, a brass knob from the top of an
10604andiron, and passed it around her so that she could see it, and said:
10605
10606"Please, Becky, won't you take it?"
10607
10608She struck it to the floor. Then Tom marched out of the house and over
10609the hills and far away, to return to school no more that day. Presently
10610Becky began to suspect. She ran to the door; he was not in sight; she
10611flew around to the play-yard; he was not there. Then she called:
10612
10613"Tom! Come back, Tom!"
10614
10615She listened intently, but there was no answer. She had no companions
10616but silence and loneliness. So she sat down to cry again and upbraid
10617herself; and by this time the scholars began to gather again, and she
10618had to hide her griefs and still her broken heart and take up the cross
10619of a long, dreary, aching afternoon, with none among the strangers
10620about her to exchange sorrows with.
10621
10622
10623
10624CHAPTER VIII
10625
10626TOM dodged hither and thither through lanes until he was well out of
10627the track of returning scholars, and then fell into a moody jog. He
10628crossed a small "branch" two or three times, because of a prevailing
10629juvenile superstition that to cross water baffled pursuit. Half an hour
10630later he was disappearing behind the Douglas mansion on the summit of
10631Cardiff Hill, and the schoolhouse was hardly distinguishable away off
10632in the valley behind him. He entered a dense wood, picked his pathless
10633way to the centre of it, and sat down on a mossy spot under a spreading
10634oak. There was not even a zephyr stirring; the dead noonday heat had
10635even stilled the songs of the birds; nature lay in a trance that was
10636broken by no sound but the occasional far-off hammering of a
10637woodpecker, and this seemed to render the pervading silence and sense
10638of loneliness the more profound. The boy's soul was steeped in
10639melancholy; his feelings were in happy accord with his surroundings. He
10640sat long with his elbows on his knees and his chin in his hands,
10641meditating. It seemed to him that life was but a trouble, at best, and
10642he more than half envied Jimmy Hodges, so lately released; it must be
10643very peaceful, he thought, to lie and slumber and dream forever and
10644ever, with the wind whispering through the trees and caressing the
10645grass and the flowers over the grave, and nothing to bother and grieve
10646about, ever any more. If he only had a clean Sunday-school record he
10647could be willing to go, and be done with it all. Now as to this girl.
10648What had he done? Nothing. He had meant the best in the world, and been
10649treated like a dog--like a very dog. She would be sorry some day--maybe
10650when it was too late. Ah, if he could only die TEMPORARILY!
10651
10652But the elastic heart of youth cannot be compressed into one
10653constrained shape long at a time. Tom presently began to drift
10654insensibly back into the concerns of this life again. What if he turned
10655his back, now, and disappeared mysteriously? What if he went away--ever
10656so far away, into unknown countries beyond the seas--and never came
10657back any more! How would she feel then! The idea of being a clown
10658recurred to him now, only to fill him with disgust. For frivolity and
10659jokes and spotted tights were an offense, when they intruded themselves
10660upon a spirit that was exalted into the vague august realm of the
10661romantic. No, he would be a soldier, and return after long years, all
10662war-worn and illustrious. No--better still, he would join the Indians,
10663and hunt buffaloes and go on the warpath in the mountain ranges and the
10664trackless great plains of the Far West, and away in the future come
10665back a great chief, bristling with feathers, hideous with paint, and
10666prance into Sunday-school, some drowsy summer morning, with a
10667bloodcurdling war-whoop, and sear the eyeballs of all his companions
10668with unappeasable envy. But no, there was something gaudier even than
10669this. He would be a pirate! That was it! NOW his future lay plain
10670before him, and glowing with unimaginable splendor. How his name would
10671fill the world, and make people shudder! How gloriously he would go
10672plowing the dancing seas, in his long, low, black-hulled racer, the
10673Spirit of the Storm, with his grisly flag flying at the fore! And at
10674the zenith of his fame, how he would suddenly appear at the old village
10675and stalk into church, brown and weather-beaten, in his black velvet
10676doublet and trunks, his great jack-boots, his crimson sash, his belt
10677bristling with horse-pistols, his crime-rusted cutlass at his side, his
10678slouch hat with waving plumes, his black flag unfurled, with the skull
10679and crossbones on it, and hear with swelling ecstasy the whisperings,
10680"It's Tom Sawyer the Pirate!--the Black Avenger of the Spanish Main!"
10681
10682Yes, it was settled; his career was determined. He would run away from
10683home and enter upon it. He would start the very next morning. Therefore
10684he must now begin to get ready. He would collect his resources
10685together. He went to a rotten log near at hand and began to dig under
10686one end of it with his Barlow knife. He soon struck wood that sounded
10687hollow. He put his hand there and uttered this incantation impressively:
10688
10689"What hasn't come here, come! What's here, stay here!"
10690
10691Then he scraped away the dirt, and exposed a pine shingle. He took it
10692up and disclosed a shapely little treasure-house whose bottom and sides
10693were of shingles. In it lay a marble. Tom's astonishment was boundless!
10694He scratched his head with a perplexed air, and said:
10695
10696"Well, that beats anything!"
10697
10698Then he tossed the marble away pettishly, and stood cogitating. The
10699truth was, that a superstition of his had failed, here, which he and
10700all his comrades had always looked upon as infallible. If you buried a
10701marble with certain necessary incantations, and left it alone a
10702fortnight, and then opened the place with the incantation he had just
10703used, you would find that all the marbles you had ever lost had
10704gathered themselves together there, meantime, no matter how widely they
10705had been separated. But now, this thing had actually and unquestionably
10706failed. Tom's whole structure of faith was shaken to its foundations.
10707He had many a time heard of this thing succeeding but never of its
10708failing before. It did not occur to him that he had tried it several
10709times before, himself, but could never find the hiding-places
10710afterward. He puzzled over the matter some time, and finally decided
10711that some witch had interfered and broken the charm. He thought he
10712would satisfy himself on that point; so he searched around till he
10713found a small sandy spot with a little funnel-shaped depression in it.
10714He laid himself down and put his mouth close to this depression and
10715called--
10716
10717"Doodle-bug, doodle-bug, tell me what I want to know! Doodle-bug,
10718doodle-bug, tell me what I want to know!"
10719
10720The sand began to work, and presently a small black bug appeared for a
10721second and then darted under again in a fright.
10722
10723"He dasn't tell! So it WAS a witch that done it. I just knowed it."
10724
10725He well knew the futility of trying to contend against witches, so he
10726gave up discouraged. But it occurred to him that he might as well have
10727the marble he had just thrown away, and therefore he went and made a
10728patient search for it. But he could not find it. Now he went back to
10729his treasure-house and carefully placed himself just as he had been
10730standing when he tossed the marble away; then he took another marble
10731from his pocket and tossed it in the same way, saying:
10732
10733"Brother, go find your brother!"
10734
10735He watched where it stopped, and went there and looked. But it must
10736have fallen short or gone too far; so he tried twice more. The last
10737repetition was successful. The two marbles lay within a foot of each
10738other.
10739
10740Just here the blast of a toy tin trumpet came faintly down the green
10741aisles of the forest. Tom flung off his jacket and trousers, turned a
10742suspender into a belt, raked away some brush behind the rotten log,
10743disclosing a rude bow and arrow, a lath sword and a tin trumpet, and in
10744a moment had seized these things and bounded away, barelegged, with
10745fluttering shirt. He presently halted under a great elm, blew an
10746answering blast, and then began to tiptoe and look warily out, this way
10747and that. He said cautiously--to an imaginary company:
10748
10749"Hold, my merry men! Keep hid till I blow."
10750
10751Now appeared Joe Harper, as airily clad and elaborately armed as Tom.
10752Tom called:
10753
10754"Hold! Who comes here into Sherwood Forest without my pass?"
10755
10756"Guy of Guisborne wants no man's pass. Who art thou that--that--"
10757
10758"Dares to hold such language," said Tom, prompting--for they talked
10759"by the book," from memory.
10760
10761"Who art thou that dares to hold such language?"
10762
10763"I, indeed! I am Robin Hood, as thy caitiff carcase soon shall know."
10764
10765"Then art thou indeed that famous outlaw? Right gladly will I dispute
10766with thee the passes of the merry wood. Have at thee!"
10767
10768They took their lath swords, dumped their other traps on the ground,
10769struck a fencing attitude, foot to foot, and began a grave, careful
10770combat, "two up and two down." Presently Tom said:
10771
10772"Now, if you've got the hang, go it lively!"
10773
10774So they "went it lively," panting and perspiring with the work. By and
10775by Tom shouted:
10776
10777"Fall! fall! Why don't you fall?"
10778
10779"I sha'n't! Why don't you fall yourself? You're getting the worst of
10780it."
10781
10782"Why, that ain't anything. I can't fall; that ain't the way it is in
10783the book. The book says, 'Then with one back-handed stroke he slew poor
10784Guy of Guisborne.' You're to turn around and let me hit you in the
10785back."
10786
10787There was no getting around the authorities, so Joe turned, received
10788the whack and fell.
10789
10790"Now," said Joe, getting up, "you got to let me kill YOU. That's fair."
10791
10792"Why, I can't do that, it ain't in the book."
10793
10794"Well, it's blamed mean--that's all."
10795
10796"Well, say, Joe, you can be Friar Tuck or Much the miller's son, and
10797lam me with a quarter-staff; or I'll be the Sheriff of Nottingham and
10798you be Robin Hood a little while and kill me."
10799
10800This was satisfactory, and so these adventures were carried out. Then
10801Tom became Robin Hood again, and was allowed by the treacherous nun to
10802bleed his strength away through his neglected wound. And at last Joe,
10803representing a whole tribe of weeping outlaws, dragged him sadly forth,
10804gave his bow into his feeble hands, and Tom said, "Where this arrow
10805falls, there bury poor Robin Hood under the greenwood tree." Then he
10806shot the arrow and fell back and would have died, but he lit on a
10807nettle and sprang up too gaily for a corpse.
10808
10809The boys dressed themselves, hid their accoutrements, and went off
10810grieving that there were no outlaws any more, and wondering what modern
10811civilization could claim to have done to compensate for their loss.
10812They said they would rather be outlaws a year in Sherwood Forest than
10813President of the United States forever.
10814
10815
10816
10817CHAPTER IX
10818
10819AT half-past nine, that night, Tom and Sid were sent to bed, as usual.
10820They said their prayers, and Sid was soon asleep. Tom lay awake and
10821waited, in restless impatience. When it seemed to him that it must be
10822nearly daylight, he heard the clock strike ten! This was despair. He
10823would have tossed and fidgeted, as his nerves demanded, but he was
10824afraid he might wake Sid. So he lay still, and stared up into the dark.
10825Everything was dismally still. By and by, out of the stillness, little,
10826scarcely perceptible noises began to emphasize themselves. The ticking
10827of the clock began to bring itself into notice. Old beams began to
10828crack mysteriously. The stairs creaked faintly. Evidently spirits were
10829abroad. A measured, muffled snore issued from Aunt Polly's chamber. And
10830now the tiresome chirping of a cricket that no human ingenuity could
10831locate, began. Next the ghastly ticking of a deathwatch in the wall at
10832the bed's head made Tom shudder--it meant that somebody's days were
10833numbered. Then the howl of a far-off dog rose on the night air, and was
10834answered by a fainter howl from a remoter distance. Tom was in an
10835agony. At last he was satisfied that time had ceased and eternity
10836begun; he began to doze, in spite of himself; the clock chimed eleven,
10837but he did not hear it. And then there came, mingling with his
10838half-formed dreams, a most melancholy caterwauling. The raising of a
10839neighboring window disturbed him. A cry of "Scat! you devil!" and the
10840crash of an empty bottle against the back of his aunt's woodshed
10841brought him wide awake, and a single minute later he was dressed and
10842out of the window and creeping along the roof of the "ell" on all
10843fours. He "meow'd" with caution once or twice, as he went; then jumped
10844to the roof of the woodshed and thence to the ground. Huckleberry Finn
10845was there, with his dead cat. The boys moved off and disappeared in the
10846gloom. At the end of half an hour they were wading through the tall
10847grass of the graveyard.
10848
10849It was a graveyard of the old-fashioned Western kind. It was on a
10850hill, about a mile and a half from the village. It had a crazy board
10851fence around it, which leaned inward in places, and outward the rest of
10852the time, but stood upright nowhere. Grass and weeds grew rank over the
10853whole cemetery. All the old graves were sunken in, there was not a
10854tombstone on the place; round-topped, worm-eaten boards staggered over
10855the graves, leaning for support and finding none. "Sacred to the memory
10856of" So-and-So had been painted on them once, but it could no longer
10857have been read, on the most of them, now, even if there had been light.
10858
10859A faint wind moaned through the trees, and Tom feared it might be the
10860spirits of the dead, complaining at being disturbed. The boys talked
10861little, and only under their breath, for the time and the place and the
10862pervading solemnity and silence oppressed their spirits. They found the
10863sharp new heap they were seeking, and ensconced themselves within the
10864protection of three great elms that grew in a bunch within a few feet
10865of the grave.
10866
10867Then they waited in silence for what seemed a long time. The hooting
10868of a distant owl was all the sound that troubled the dead stillness.
10869Tom's reflections grew oppressive. He must force some talk. So he said
10870in a whisper:
10871
10872"Hucky, do you believe the dead people like it for us to be here?"
10873
10874Huckleberry whispered:
10875
10876"I wisht I knowed. It's awful solemn like, AIN'T it?"
10877
10878"I bet it is."
10879
10880There was a considerable pause, while the boys canvassed this matter
10881inwardly. Then Tom whispered:
10882
10883"Say, Hucky--do you reckon Hoss Williams hears us talking?"
10884
10885"O' course he does. Least his sperrit does."
10886
10887Tom, after a pause:
10888
10889"I wish I'd said Mister Williams. But I never meant any harm.
10890Everybody calls him Hoss."
10891
10892"A body can't be too partic'lar how they talk 'bout these-yer dead
10893people, Tom."
10894
10895This was a damper, and conversation died again.
10896
10897Presently Tom seized his comrade's arm and said:
10898
10899"Sh!"
10900
10901"What is it, Tom?" And the two clung together with beating hearts.
10902
10903"Sh! There 'tis again! Didn't you hear it?"
10904
10905"I--"
10906
10907"There! Now you hear it."
10908
10909"Lord, Tom, they're coming! They're coming, sure. What'll we do?"
10910
10911"I dono. Think they'll see us?"
10912
10913"Oh, Tom, they can see in the dark, same as cats. I wisht I hadn't
10914come."
10915
10916"Oh, don't be afeard. I don't believe they'll bother us. We ain't
10917doing any harm. If we keep perfectly still, maybe they won't notice us
10918at all."
10919
10920"I'll try to, Tom, but, Lord, I'm all of a shiver."
10921
10922"Listen!"
10923
10924The boys bent their heads together and scarcely breathed. A muffled
10925sound of voices floated up from the far end of the graveyard.
10926
10927"Look! See there!" whispered Tom. "What is it?"
10928
10929"It's devil-fire. Oh, Tom, this is awful."
10930
10931Some vague figures approached through the gloom, swinging an
10932old-fashioned tin lantern that freckled the ground with innumerable
10933little spangles of light. Presently Huckleberry whispered with a
10934shudder:
10935
10936"It's the devils sure enough. Three of 'em! Lordy, Tom, we're goners!
10937Can you pray?"
10938
10939"I'll try, but don't you be afeard. They ain't going to hurt us. 'Now
10940I lay me down to sleep, I--'"
10941
10942"Sh!"
10943
10944"What is it, Huck?"
10945
10946"They're HUMANS! One of 'em is, anyway. One of 'em's old Muff Potter's
10947voice."
10948
10949"No--'tain't so, is it?"
10950
10951"I bet I know it. Don't you stir nor budge. He ain't sharp enough to
10952notice us. Drunk, the same as usual, likely--blamed old rip!"
10953
10954"All right, I'll keep still. Now they're stuck. Can't find it. Here
10955they come again. Now they're hot. Cold again. Hot again. Red hot!
10956They're p'inted right, this time. Say, Huck, I know another o' them
10957voices; it's Injun Joe."
10958
10959"That's so--that murderin' half-breed! I'd druther they was devils a
10960dern sight. What kin they be up to?"
10961
10962The whisper died wholly out, now, for the three men had reached the
10963grave and stood within a few feet of the boys' hiding-place.
10964
10965"Here it is," said the third voice; and the owner of it held the
10966lantern up and revealed the face of young Doctor Robinson.
10967
10968Potter and Injun Joe were carrying a handbarrow with a rope and a
10969couple of shovels on it. They cast down their load and began to open
10970the grave. The doctor put the lantern at the head of the grave and came
10971and sat down with his back against one of the elm trees. He was so
10972close the boys could have touched him.
10973
10974"Hurry, men!" he said, in a low voice; "the moon might come out at any
10975moment."
10976
10977They growled a response and went on digging. For some time there was
10978no noise but the grating sound of the spades discharging their freight
10979of mould and gravel. It was very monotonous. Finally a spade struck
10980upon the coffin with a dull woody accent, and within another minute or
10981two the men had hoisted it out on the ground. They pried off the lid
10982with their shovels, got out the body and dumped it rudely on the
10983ground. The moon drifted from behind the clouds and exposed the pallid
10984face. The barrow was got ready and the corpse placed on it, covered
10985with a blanket, and bound to its place with the rope. Potter took out a
10986large spring-knife and cut off the dangling end of the rope and then
10987said:
10988
10989"Now the cussed thing's ready, Sawbones, and you'll just out with
10990another five, or here she stays."
10991
10992"That's the talk!" said Injun Joe.
10993
10994"Look here, what does this mean?" said the doctor. "You required your
10995pay in advance, and I've paid you."
10996
10997"Yes, and you done more than that," said Injun Joe, approaching the
10998doctor, who was now standing. "Five years ago you drove me away from
10999your father's kitchen one night, when I come to ask for something to
11000eat, and you said I warn't there for any good; and when I swore I'd get
11001even with you if it took a hundred years, your father had me jailed for
11002a vagrant. Did you think I'd forget? The Injun blood ain't in me for
11003nothing. And now I've GOT you, and you got to SETTLE, you know!"
11004
11005He was threatening the doctor, with his fist in his face, by this
11006time. The doctor struck out suddenly and stretched the ruffian on the
11007ground. Potter dropped his knife, and exclaimed:
11008
11009"Here, now, don't you hit my pard!" and the next moment he had
11010grappled with the doctor and the two were struggling with might and
11011main, trampling the grass and tearing the ground with their heels.
11012Injun Joe sprang to his feet, his eyes flaming with passion, snatched
11013up Potter's knife, and went creeping, catlike and stooping, round and
11014round about the combatants, seeking an opportunity. All at once the
11015doctor flung himself free, seized the heavy headboard of Williams'
11016grave and felled Potter to the earth with it--and in the same instant
11017the half-breed saw his chance and drove the knife to the hilt in the
11018young man's breast. He reeled and fell partly upon Potter, flooding him
11019with his blood, and in the same moment the clouds blotted out the
11020dreadful spectacle and the two frightened boys went speeding away in
11021the dark.
11022
11023Presently, when the moon emerged again, Injun Joe was standing over
11024the two forms, contemplating them. The doctor murmured inarticulately,
11025gave a long gasp or two and was still. The half-breed muttered:
11026
11027"THAT score is settled--damn you."
11028
11029Then he robbed the body. After which he put the fatal knife in
11030Potter's open right hand, and sat down on the dismantled coffin. Three
11031--four--five minutes passed, and then Potter began to stir and moan. His
11032hand closed upon the knife; he raised it, glanced at it, and let it
11033fall, with a shudder. Then he sat up, pushing the body from him, and
11034gazed at it, and then around him, confusedly. His eyes met Joe's.
11035
11036"Lord, how is this, Joe?" he said.
11037
11038"It's a dirty business," said Joe, without moving.
11039
11040"What did you do it for?"
11041
11042"I! I never done it!"
11043
11044"Look here! That kind of talk won't wash."
11045
11046Potter trembled and grew white.
11047
11048"I thought I'd got sober. I'd no business to drink to-night. But it's
11049in my head yet--worse'n when we started here. I'm all in a muddle;
11050can't recollect anything of it, hardly. Tell me, Joe--HONEST, now, old
11051feller--did I do it? Joe, I never meant to--'pon my soul and honor, I
11052never meant to, Joe. Tell me how it was, Joe. Oh, it's awful--and him
11053so young and promising."
11054
11055"Why, you two was scuffling, and he fetched you one with the headboard
11056and you fell flat; and then up you come, all reeling and staggering
11057like, and snatched the knife and jammed it into him, just as he fetched
11058you another awful clip--and here you've laid, as dead as a wedge til
11059now."
11060
11061"Oh, I didn't know what I was a-doing. I wish I may die this minute if
11062I did. It was all on account of the whiskey and the excitement, I
11063reckon. I never used a weepon in my life before, Joe. I've fought, but
11064never with weepons. They'll all say that. Joe, don't tell! Say you
11065won't tell, Joe--that's a good feller. I always liked you, Joe, and
11066stood up for you, too. Don't you remember? You WON'T tell, WILL you,
11067Joe?" And the poor creature dropped on his knees before the stolid
11068murderer, and clasped his appealing hands.
11069
11070"No, you've always been fair and square with me, Muff Potter, and I
11071won't go back on you. There, now, that's as fair as a man can say."
11072
11073"Oh, Joe, you're an angel. I'll bless you for this the longest day I
11074live." And Potter began to cry.
11075
11076"Come, now, that's enough of that. This ain't any time for blubbering.
11077You be off yonder way and I'll go this. Move, now, and don't leave any
11078tracks behind you."
11079
11080Potter started on a trot that quickly increased to a run. The
11081half-breed stood looking after him. He muttered:
11082
11083"If he's as much stunned with the lick and fuddled with the rum as he
11084had the look of being, he won't think of the knife till he's gone so
11085far he'll be afraid to come back after it to such a place by himself
11086--chicken-heart!"
11087
11088Two or three minutes later the murdered man, the blanketed corpse, the
11089lidless coffin, and the open grave were under no inspection but the
11090moon's. The stillness was complete again, too.
11091
11092
11093
11094CHAPTER X
11095
11096THE two boys flew on and on, toward the village, speechless with
11097horror. They glanced backward over their shoulders from time to time,
11098apprehensively, as if they feared they might be followed. Every stump
11099that started up in their path seemed a man and an enemy, and made them
11100catch their breath; and as they sped by some outlying cottages that lay
11101near the village, the barking of the aroused watch-dogs seemed to give
11102wings to their feet.
11103
11104"If we can only get to the old tannery before we break down!"
11105whispered Tom, in short catches between breaths. "I can't stand it much
11106longer."
11107
11108Huckleberry's hard pantings were his only reply, and the boys fixed
11109their eyes on the goal of their hopes and bent to their work to win it.
11110They gained steadily on it, and at last, breast to breast, they burst
11111through the open door and fell grateful and exhausted in the sheltering
11112shadows beyond. By and by their pulses slowed down, and Tom whispered:
11113
11114"Huckleberry, what do you reckon'll come of this?"
11115
11116"If Doctor Robinson dies, I reckon hanging'll come of it."
11117
11118"Do you though?"
11119
11120"Why, I KNOW it, Tom."
11121
11122Tom thought a while, then he said:
11123
11124"Who'll tell? We?"
11125
11126"What are you talking about? S'pose something happened and Injun Joe
11127DIDN'T hang? Why, he'd kill us some time or other, just as dead sure as
11128we're a laying here."
11129
11130"That's just what I was thinking to myself, Huck."
11131
11132"If anybody tells, let Muff Potter do it, if he's fool enough. He's
11133generally drunk enough."
11134
11135Tom said nothing--went on thinking. Presently he whispered:
11136
11137"Huck, Muff Potter don't know it. How can he tell?"
11138
11139"What's the reason he don't know it?"
11140
11141"Because he'd just got that whack when Injun Joe done it. D'you reckon
11142he could see anything? D'you reckon he knowed anything?"
11143
11144"By hokey, that's so, Tom!"
11145
11146"And besides, look-a-here--maybe that whack done for HIM!"
11147
11148"No, 'taint likely, Tom. He had liquor in him; I could see that; and
11149besides, he always has. Well, when pap's full, you might take and belt
11150him over the head with a church and you couldn't phase him. He says so,
11151his own self. So it's the same with Muff Potter, of course. But if a
11152man was dead sober, I reckon maybe that whack might fetch him; I dono."
11153
11154After another reflective silence, Tom said:
11155
11156"Hucky, you sure you can keep mum?"
11157
11158"Tom, we GOT to keep mum. You know that. That Injun devil wouldn't
11159make any more of drownding us than a couple of cats, if we was to
11160squeak 'bout this and they didn't hang him. Now, look-a-here, Tom, less
11161take and swear to one another--that's what we got to do--swear to keep
11162mum."
11163
11164"I'm agreed. It's the best thing. Would you just hold hands and swear
11165that we--"
11166
11167"Oh no, that wouldn't do for this. That's good enough for little
11168rubbishy common things--specially with gals, cuz THEY go back on you
11169anyway, and blab if they get in a huff--but there orter be writing
11170'bout a big thing like this. And blood."
11171
11172Tom's whole being applauded this idea. It was deep, and dark, and
11173awful; the hour, the circumstances, the surroundings, were in keeping
11174with it. He picked up a clean pine shingle that lay in the moonlight,
11175took a little fragment of "red keel" out of his pocket, got the moon on
11176his work, and painfully scrawled these lines, emphasizing each slow
11177down-stroke by clamping his tongue between his teeth, and letting up
11178the pressure on the up-strokes. [See next page.]
11179
11180   "Huck Finn and
11181    Tom Sawyer swears
11182    they will keep mum
11183    about This and They
11184    wish They may Drop
11185    down dead in Their
11186    Tracks if They ever
11187    Tell and Rot."
11188
11189Huckleberry was filled with admiration of Tom's facility in writing,
11190and the sublimity of his language. He at once took a pin from his lapel
11191and was going to prick his flesh, but Tom said:
11192
11193"Hold on! Don't do that. A pin's brass. It might have verdigrease on
11194it."
11195
11196"What's verdigrease?"
11197
11198"It's p'ison. That's what it is. You just swaller some of it once
11199--you'll see."
11200
11201So Tom unwound the thread from one of his needles, and each boy
11202pricked the ball of his thumb and squeezed out a drop of blood. In
11203time, after many squeezes, Tom managed to sign his initials, using the
11204ball of his little finger for a pen. Then he showed Huckleberry how to
11205make an H and an F, and the oath was complete. They buried the shingle
11206close to the wall, with some dismal ceremonies and incantations, and
11207the fetters that bound their tongues were considered to be locked and
11208the key thrown away.
11209
11210A figure crept stealthily through a break in the other end of the
11211ruined building, now, but they did not notice it.
11212
11213"Tom," whispered Huckleberry, "does this keep us from EVER telling
11214--ALWAYS?"
11215
11216"Of course it does. It don't make any difference WHAT happens, we got
11217to keep mum. We'd drop down dead--don't YOU know that?"
11218
11219"Yes, I reckon that's so."
11220
11221They continued to whisper for some little time. Presently a dog set up
11222a long, lugubrious howl just outside--within ten feet of them. The boys
11223clasped each other suddenly, in an agony of fright.
11224
11225"Which of us does he mean?" gasped Huckleberry.
11226
11227"I dono--peep through the crack. Quick!"
11228
11229"No, YOU, Tom!"
11230
11231"I can't--I can't DO it, Huck!"
11232
11233"Please, Tom. There 'tis again!"
11234
11235"Oh, lordy, I'm thankful!" whispered Tom. "I know his voice. It's Bull
11236Harbison." *
11237
11238[* If Mr. Harbison owned a slave named Bull, Tom would have spoken of
11239him as "Harbison's Bull," but a son or a dog of that name was "Bull
11240Harbison."]
11241
11242"Oh, that's good--I tell you, Tom, I was most scared to death; I'd a
11243bet anything it was a STRAY dog."
11244
11245The dog howled again. The boys' hearts sank once more.
11246
11247"Oh, my! that ain't no Bull Harbison!" whispered Huckleberry. "DO, Tom!"
11248
11249Tom, quaking with fear, yielded, and put his eye to the crack. His
11250whisper was hardly audible when he said:
11251
11252"Oh, Huck, IT S A STRAY DOG!"
11253
11254"Quick, Tom, quick! Who does he mean?"
11255
11256"Huck, he must mean us both--we're right together."
11257
11258"Oh, Tom, I reckon we're goners. I reckon there ain't no mistake 'bout
11259where I'LL go to. I been so wicked."
11260
11261"Dad fetch it! This comes of playing hookey and doing everything a
11262feller's told NOT to do. I might a been good, like Sid, if I'd a tried
11263--but no, I wouldn't, of course. But if ever I get off this time, I lay
11264I'll just WALLER in Sunday-schools!" And Tom began to snuffle a little.
11265
11266"YOU bad!" and Huckleberry began to snuffle too. "Consound it, Tom
11267Sawyer, you're just old pie, 'longside o' what I am. Oh, LORDY, lordy,
11268lordy, I wisht I only had half your chance."
11269
11270Tom choked off and whispered:
11271
11272"Look, Hucky, look! He's got his BACK to us!"
11273
11274Hucky looked, with joy in his heart.
11275
11276"Well, he has, by jingoes! Did he before?"
11277
11278"Yes, he did. But I, like a fool, never thought. Oh, this is bully,
11279you know. NOW who can he mean?"
11280
11281The howling stopped. Tom pricked up his ears.
11282
11283"Sh! What's that?" he whispered.
11284
11285"Sounds like--like hogs grunting. No--it's somebody snoring, Tom."
11286
11287"That IS it! Where 'bouts is it, Huck?"
11288
11289"I bleeve it's down at 'tother end. Sounds so, anyway. Pap used to
11290sleep there, sometimes, 'long with the hogs, but laws bless you, he
11291just lifts things when HE snores. Besides, I reckon he ain't ever
11292coming back to this town any more."
11293
11294The spirit of adventure rose in the boys' souls once more.
11295
11296"Hucky, do you das't to go if I lead?"
11297
11298"I don't like to, much. Tom, s'pose it's Injun Joe!"
11299
11300Tom quailed. But presently the temptation rose up strong again and the
11301boys agreed to try, with the understanding that they would take to
11302their heels if the snoring stopped. So they went tiptoeing stealthily
11303down, the one behind the other. When they had got to within five steps
11304of the snorer, Tom stepped on a stick, and it broke with a sharp snap.
11305The man moaned, writhed a little, and his face came into the moonlight.
11306It was Muff Potter. The boys' hearts had stood still, and their hopes
11307too, when the man moved, but their fears passed away now. They tiptoed
11308out, through the broken weather-boarding, and stopped at a little
11309distance to exchange a parting word. That long, lugubrious howl rose on
11310the night air again! They turned and saw the strange dog standing
11311within a few feet of where Potter was lying, and FACING Potter, with
11312his nose pointing heavenward.
11313
11314"Oh, geeminy, it's HIM!" exclaimed both boys, in a breath.
11315
11316"Say, Tom--they say a stray dog come howling around Johnny Miller's
11317house, 'bout midnight, as much as two weeks ago; and a whippoorwill
11318come in and lit on the banisters and sung, the very same evening; and
11319there ain't anybody dead there yet."
11320
11321"Well, I know that. And suppose there ain't. Didn't Gracie Miller fall
11322in the kitchen fire and burn herself terrible the very next Saturday?"
11323
11324"Yes, but she ain't DEAD. And what's more, she's getting better, too."
11325
11326"All right, you wait and see. She's a goner, just as dead sure as Muff
11327Potter's a goner. That's what the niggers say, and they know all about
11328these kind of things, Huck."
11329
11330Then they separated, cogitating. When Tom crept in at his bedroom
11331window the night was almost spent. He undressed with excessive caution,
11332and fell asleep congratulating himself that nobody knew of his
11333escapade. He was not aware that the gently-snoring Sid was awake, and
11334had been so for an hour.
11335
11336When Tom awoke, Sid was dressed and gone. There was a late look in the
11337light, a late sense in the atmosphere. He was startled. Why had he not
11338been called--persecuted till he was up, as usual? The thought filled
11339him with bodings. Within five minutes he was dressed and down-stairs,
11340feeling sore and drowsy. The family were still at table, but they had
11341finished breakfast. There was no voice of rebuke; but there were
11342averted eyes; there was a silence and an air of solemnity that struck a
11343chill to the culprit's heart. He sat down and tried to seem gay, but it
11344was up-hill work; it roused no smile, no response, and he lapsed into
11345silence and let his heart sink down to the depths.
11346
11347After breakfast his aunt took him aside, and Tom almost brightened in
11348the hope that he was going to be flogged; but it was not so. His aunt
11349wept over him and asked him how he could go and break her old heart so;
11350and finally told him to go on, and ruin himself and bring her gray
11351hairs with sorrow to the grave, for it was no use for her to try any
11352more. This was worse than a thousand whippings, and Tom's heart was
11353sorer now than his body. He cried, he pleaded for forgiveness, promised
11354to reform over and over again, and then received his dismissal, feeling
11355that he had won but an imperfect forgiveness and established but a
11356feeble confidence.
11357
11358He left the presence too miserable to even feel revengeful toward Sid;
11359and so the latter's prompt retreat through the back gate was
11360unnecessary. He moped to school gloomy and sad, and took his flogging,
11361along with Joe Harper, for playing hookey the day before, with the air
11362of one whose heart was busy with heavier woes and wholly dead to
11363trifles. Then he betook himself to his seat, rested his elbows on his
11364desk and his jaws in his hands, and stared at the wall with the stony
11365stare of suffering that has reached the limit and can no further go.
11366His elbow was pressing against some hard substance. After a long time
11367he slowly and sadly changed his position, and took up this object with
11368a sigh. It was in a paper. He unrolled it. A long, lingering, colossal
11369sigh followed, and his heart broke. It was his brass andiron knob!
11370
11371This final feather broke the camel's back.
11372
11373
11374
11375CHAPTER XI
11376
11377CLOSE upon the hour of noon the whole village was suddenly electrified
11378with the ghastly news. No need of the as yet undreamed-of telegraph;
11379the tale flew from man to man, from group to group, from house to
11380house, with little less than telegraphic speed. Of course the
11381schoolmaster gave holiday for that afternoon; the town would have
11382thought strangely of him if he had not.
11383
11384A gory knife had been found close to the murdered man, and it had been
11385recognized by somebody as belonging to Muff Potter--so the story ran.
11386And it was said that a belated citizen had come upon Potter washing
11387himself in the "branch" about one or two o'clock in the morning, and
11388that Potter had at once sneaked off--suspicious circumstances,
11389especially the washing which was not a habit with Potter. It was also
11390said that the town had been ransacked for this "murderer" (the public
11391are not slow in the matter of sifting evidence and arriving at a
11392verdict), but that he could not be found. Horsemen had departed down
11393all the roads in every direction, and the Sheriff "was confident" that
11394he would be captured before night.
11395
11396All the town was drifting toward the graveyard. Tom's heartbreak
11397vanished and he joined the procession, not because he would not a
11398thousand times rather go anywhere else, but because an awful,
11399unaccountable fascination drew him on. Arrived at the dreadful place,
11400he wormed his small body through the crowd and saw the dismal
11401spectacle. It seemed to him an age since he was there before. Somebody
11402pinched his arm. He turned, and his eyes met Huckleberry's. Then both
11403looked elsewhere at once, and wondered if anybody had noticed anything
11404in their mutual glance. But everybody was talking, and intent upon the
11405grisly spectacle before them.
11406
11407"Poor fellow!" "Poor young fellow!" "This ought to be a lesson to
11408grave robbers!" "Muff Potter'll hang for this if they catch him!" This
11409was the drift of remark; and the minister said, "It was a judgment; His
11410hand is here."
11411
11412Now Tom shivered from head to heel; for his eye fell upon the stolid
11413face of Injun Joe. At this moment the crowd began to sway and struggle,
11414and voices shouted, "It's him! it's him! he's coming himself!"
11415
11416"Who? Who?" from twenty voices.
11417
11418"Muff Potter!"
11419
11420"Hallo, he's stopped!--Look out, he's turning! Don't let him get away!"
11421
11422People in the branches of the trees over Tom's head said he wasn't
11423trying to get away--he only looked doubtful and perplexed.
11424
11425"Infernal impudence!" said a bystander; "wanted to come and take a
11426quiet look at his work, I reckon--didn't expect any company."
11427
11428The crowd fell apart, now, and the Sheriff came through,
11429ostentatiously leading Potter by the arm. The poor fellow's face was
11430haggard, and his eyes showed the fear that was upon him. When he stood
11431before the murdered man, he shook as with a palsy, and he put his face
11432in his hands and burst into tears.
11433
11434"I didn't do it, friends," he sobbed; "'pon my word and honor I never
11435done it."
11436
11437"Who's accused you?" shouted a voice.
11438
11439This shot seemed to carry home. Potter lifted his face and looked
11440around him with a pathetic hopelessness in his eyes. He saw Injun Joe,
11441and exclaimed:
11442
11443"Oh, Injun Joe, you promised me you'd never--"
11444
11445"Is that your knife?" and it was thrust before him by the Sheriff.
11446
11447Potter would have fallen if they had not caught him and eased him to
11448the ground. Then he said:
11449
11450"Something told me 't if I didn't come back and get--" He shuddered;
11451then waved his nerveless hand with a vanquished gesture and said, "Tell
11452'em, Joe, tell 'em--it ain't any use any more."
11453
11454Then Huckleberry and Tom stood dumb and staring, and heard the
11455stony-hearted liar reel off his serene statement, they expecting every
11456moment that the clear sky would deliver God's lightnings upon his head,
11457and wondering to see how long the stroke was delayed. And when he had
11458finished and still stood alive and whole, their wavering impulse to
11459break their oath and save the poor betrayed prisoner's life faded and
11460vanished away, for plainly this miscreant had sold himself to Satan and
11461it would be fatal to meddle with the property of such a power as that.
11462
11463"Why didn't you leave? What did you want to come here for?" somebody
11464said.
11465
11466"I couldn't help it--I couldn't help it," Potter moaned. "I wanted to
11467run away, but I couldn't seem to come anywhere but here." And he fell
11468to sobbing again.
11469
11470Injun Joe repeated his statement, just as calmly, a few minutes
11471afterward on the inquest, under oath; and the boys, seeing that the
11472lightnings were still withheld, were confirmed in their belief that Joe
11473had sold himself to the devil. He was now become, to them, the most
11474balefully interesting object they had ever looked upon, and they could
11475not take their fascinated eyes from his face.
11476
11477They inwardly resolved to watch him nights, when opportunity should
11478offer, in the hope of getting a glimpse of his dread master.
11479
11480Injun Joe helped to raise the body of the murdered man and put it in a
11481wagon for removal; and it was whispered through the shuddering crowd
11482that the wound bled a little! The boys thought that this happy
11483circumstance would turn suspicion in the right direction; but they were
11484disappointed, for more than one villager remarked:
11485
11486"It was within three feet of Muff Potter when it done it."
11487
11488Tom's fearful secret and gnawing conscience disturbed his sleep for as
11489much as a week after this; and at breakfast one morning Sid said:
11490
11491"Tom, you pitch around and talk in your sleep so much that you keep me
11492awake half the time."
11493
11494Tom blanched and dropped his eyes.
11495
11496"It's a bad sign," said Aunt Polly, gravely. "What you got on your
11497mind, Tom?"
11498
11499"Nothing. Nothing 't I know of." But the boy's hand shook so that he
11500spilled his coffee.
11501
11502"And you do talk such stuff," Sid said. "Last night you said, 'It's
11503blood, it's blood, that's what it is!' You said that over and over. And
11504you said, 'Don't torment me so--I'll tell!' Tell WHAT? What is it
11505you'll tell?"
11506
11507Everything was swimming before Tom. There is no telling what might
11508have happened, now, but luckily the concern passed out of Aunt Polly's
11509face and she came to Tom's relief without knowing it. She said:
11510
11511"Sho! It's that dreadful murder. I dream about it most every night
11512myself. Sometimes I dream it's me that done it."
11513
11514Mary said she had been affected much the same way. Sid seemed
11515satisfied. Tom got out of the presence as quick as he plausibly could,
11516and after that he complained of toothache for a week, and tied up his
11517jaws every night. He never knew that Sid lay nightly watching, and
11518frequently slipped the bandage free and then leaned on his elbow
11519listening a good while at a time, and afterward slipped the bandage
11520back to its place again. Tom's distress of mind wore off gradually and
11521the toothache grew irksome and was discarded. If Sid really managed to
11522make anything out of Tom's disjointed mutterings, he kept it to himself.
11523
11524It seemed to Tom that his schoolmates never would get done holding
11525inquests on dead cats, and thus keeping his trouble present to his
11526mind. Sid noticed that Tom never was coroner at one of these inquiries,
11527though it had been his habit to take the lead in all new enterprises;
11528he noticed, too, that Tom never acted as a witness--and that was
11529strange; and Sid did not overlook the fact that Tom even showed a
11530marked aversion to these inquests, and always avoided them when he
11531could. Sid marvelled, but said nothing. However, even inquests went out
11532of vogue at last, and ceased to torture Tom's conscience.
11533
11534Every day or two, during this time of sorrow, Tom watched his
11535opportunity and went to the little grated jail-window and smuggled such
11536small comforts through to the "murderer" as he could get hold of. The
11537jail was a trifling little brick den that stood in a marsh at the edge
11538of the village, and no guards were afforded for it; indeed, it was
11539seldom occupied. These offerings greatly helped to ease Tom's
11540conscience.
11541
11542The villagers had a strong desire to tar-and-feather Injun Joe and
11543ride him on a rail, for body-snatching, but so formidable was his
11544character that nobody could be found who was willing to take the lead
11545in the matter, so it was dropped. He had been careful to begin both of
11546his inquest-statements with the fight, without confessing the
11547grave-robbery that preceded it; therefore it was deemed wisest not
11548to try the case in the courts at present.
11549
11550
11551
11552CHAPTER XII
11553
11554ONE of the reasons why Tom's mind had drifted away from its secret
11555troubles was, that it had found a new and weighty matter to interest
11556itself about. Becky Thatcher had stopped coming to school. Tom had
11557struggled with his pride a few days, and tried to "whistle her down the
11558wind," but failed. He began to find himself hanging around her father's
11559house, nights, and feeling very miserable. She was ill. What if she
11560should die! There was distraction in the thought. He no longer took an
11561interest in war, nor even in piracy. The charm of life was gone; there
11562was nothing but dreariness left. He put his hoop away, and his bat;
11563there was no joy in them any more. His aunt was concerned. She began to
11564try all manner of remedies on him. She was one of those people who are
11565infatuated with patent medicines and all new-fangled methods of
11566producing health or mending it. She was an inveterate experimenter in
11567these things. When something fresh in this line came out she was in a
11568fever, right away, to try it; not on herself, for she was never ailing,
11569but on anybody else that came handy. She was a subscriber for all the
11570"Health" periodicals and phrenological frauds; and the solemn ignorance
11571they were inflated with was breath to her nostrils. All the "rot" they
11572contained about ventilation, and how to go to bed, and how to get up,
11573and what to eat, and what to drink, and how much exercise to take, and
11574what frame of mind to keep one's self in, and what sort of clothing to
11575wear, was all gospel to her, and she never observed that her
11576health-journals of the current month customarily upset everything they
11577had recommended the month before. She was as simple-hearted and honest
11578as the day was long, and so she was an easy victim. She gathered
11579together her quack periodicals and her quack medicines, and thus armed
11580with death, went about on her pale horse, metaphorically speaking, with
11581"hell following after." But she never suspected that she was not an
11582angel of healing and the balm of Gilead in disguise, to the suffering
11583neighbors.
11584
11585The water treatment was new, now, and Tom's low condition was a
11586windfall to her. She had him out at daylight every morning, stood him
11587up in the woodshed and drowned him with a deluge of cold water; then
11588she scrubbed him down with a towel like a file, and so brought him to;
11589then she rolled him up in a wet sheet and put him away under blankets
11590till she sweated his soul clean and "the yellow stains of it came
11591through his pores"--as Tom said.
11592
11593Yet notwithstanding all this, the boy grew more and more melancholy
11594and pale and dejected. She added hot baths, sitz baths, shower baths,
11595and plunges. The boy remained as dismal as a hearse. She began to
11596assist the water with a slim oatmeal diet and blister-plasters. She
11597calculated his capacity as she would a jug's, and filled him up every
11598day with quack cure-alls.
11599
11600Tom had become indifferent to persecution by this time. This phase
11601filled the old lady's heart with consternation. This indifference must
11602be broken up at any cost. Now she heard of Pain-killer for the first
11603time. She ordered a lot at once. She tasted it and was filled with
11604gratitude. It was simply fire in a liquid form. She dropped the water
11605treatment and everything else, and pinned her faith to Pain-killer. She
11606gave Tom a teaspoonful and watched with the deepest anxiety for the
11607result. Her troubles were instantly at rest, her soul at peace again;
11608for the "indifference" was broken up. The boy could not have shown a
11609wilder, heartier interest, if she had built a fire under him.
11610
11611Tom felt that it was time to wake up; this sort of life might be
11612romantic enough, in his blighted condition, but it was getting to have
11613too little sentiment and too much distracting variety about it. So he
11614thought over various plans for relief, and finally hit pon that of
11615professing to be fond of Pain-killer. He asked for it so often that he
11616became a nuisance, and his aunt ended by telling him to help himself
11617and quit bothering her. If it had been Sid, she would have had no
11618misgivings to alloy her delight; but since it was Tom, she watched the
11619bottle clandestinely. She found that the medicine did really diminish,
11620but it did not occur to her that the boy was mending the health of a
11621crack in the sitting-room floor with it.
11622
11623One day Tom was in the act of dosing the crack when his aunt's yellow
11624cat came along, purring, eying the teaspoon avariciously, and begging
11625for a taste. Tom said:
11626
11627"Don't ask for it unless you want it, Peter."
11628
11629But Peter signified that he did want it.
11630
11631"You better make sure."
11632
11633Peter was sure.
11634
11635"Now you've asked for it, and I'll give it to you, because there ain't
11636anything mean about me; but if you find you don't like it, you mustn't
11637blame anybody but your own self."
11638
11639Peter was agreeable. So Tom pried his mouth open and poured down the
11640Pain-killer. Peter sprang a couple of yards in the air, and then
11641delivered a war-whoop and set off round and round the room, banging
11642against furniture, upsetting flower-pots, and making general havoc.
11643Next he rose on his hind feet and pranced around, in a frenzy of
11644enjoyment, with his head over his shoulder and his voice proclaiming
11645his unappeasable happiness. Then he went tearing around the house again
11646spreading chaos and destruction in his path. Aunt Polly entered in time
11647to see him throw a few double summersets, deliver a final mighty
11648hurrah, and sail through the open window, carrying the rest of the
11649flower-pots with him. The old lady stood petrified with astonishment,
11650peering over her glasses; Tom lay on the floor expiring with laughter.
11651
11652"Tom, what on earth ails that cat?"
11653
11654"I don't know, aunt," gasped the boy.
11655
11656"Why, I never see anything like it. What did make him act so?"
11657
11658"Deed I don't know, Aunt Polly; cats always act so when they're having
11659a good time."
11660
11661"They do, do they?" There was something in the tone that made Tom
11662apprehensive.
11663
11664"Yes'm. That is, I believe they do."
11665
11666"You DO?"
11667
11668"Yes'm."
11669
11670The old lady was bending down, Tom watching, with interest emphasized
11671by anxiety. Too late he divined her "drift." The handle of the telltale
11672teaspoon was visible under the bed-valance. Aunt Polly took it, held it
11673up. Tom winced, and dropped his eyes. Aunt Polly raised him by the
11674usual handle--his ear--and cracked his head soundly with her thimble.
11675
11676"Now, sir, what did you want to treat that poor dumb beast so, for?"
11677
11678"I done it out of pity for him--because he hadn't any aunt."
11679
11680"Hadn't any aunt!--you numskull. What has that got to do with it?"
11681
11682"Heaps. Because if he'd had one she'd a burnt him out herself! She'd a
11683roasted his bowels out of him 'thout any more feeling than if he was a
11684human!"
11685
11686Aunt Polly felt a sudden pang of remorse. This was putting the thing
11687in a new light; what was cruelty to a cat MIGHT be cruelty to a boy,
11688too. She began to soften; she felt sorry. Her eyes watered a little,
11689and she put her hand on Tom's head and said gently:
11690
11691"I was meaning for the best, Tom. And, Tom, it DID do you good."
11692
11693Tom looked up in her face with just a perceptible twinkle peeping
11694through his gravity.
11695
11696"I know you was meaning for the best, aunty, and so was I with Peter.
11697It done HIM good, too. I never see him get around so since--"
11698
11699"Oh, go 'long with you, Tom, before you aggravate me again. And you
11700try and see if you can't be a good boy, for once, and you needn't take
11701any more medicine."
11702
11703Tom reached school ahead of time. It was noticed that this strange
11704thing had been occurring every day latterly. And now, as usual of late,
11705he hung about the gate of the schoolyard instead of playing with his
11706comrades. He was sick, he said, and he looked it. He tried to seem to
11707be looking everywhere but whither he really was looking--down the road.
11708Presently Jeff Thatcher hove in sight, and Tom's face lighted; he gazed
11709a moment, and then turned sorrowfully away. When Jeff arrived, Tom
11710accosted him; and "led up" warily to opportunities for remark about
11711Becky, but the giddy lad never could see the bait. Tom watched and
11712watched, hoping whenever a frisking frock came in sight, and hating the
11713owner of it as soon as he saw she was not the right one. At last frocks
11714ceased to appear, and he dropped hopelessly into the dumps; he entered
11715the empty schoolhouse and sat down to suffer. Then one more frock
11716passed in at the gate, and Tom's heart gave a great bound. The next
11717instant he was out, and "going on" like an Indian; yelling, laughing,
11718chasing boys, jumping over the fence at risk of life and limb, throwing
11719handsprings, standing on his head--doing all the heroic things he could
11720conceive of, and keeping a furtive eye out, all the while, to see if
11721Becky Thatcher was noticing. But she seemed to be unconscious of it
11722all; she never looked. Could it be possible that she was not aware that
11723he was there? He carried his exploits to her immediate vicinity; came
11724war-whooping around, snatched a boy's cap, hurled it to the roof of the
11725schoolhouse, broke through a group of boys, tumbling them in every
11726direction, and fell sprawling, himself, under Becky's nose, almost
11727upsetting her--and she turned, with her nose in the air, and he heard
11728her say: "Mf! some people think they're mighty smart--always showing
11729off!"
11730
11731Tom's cheeks burned. He gathered himself up and sneaked off, crushed
11732and crestfallen.
11733
11734
11735
11736CHAPTER XIII
11737
11738TOM'S mind was made up now. He was gloomy and desperate. He was a
11739forsaken, friendless boy, he said; nobody loved him; when they found
11740out what they had driven him to, perhaps they would be sorry; he had
11741tried to do right and get along, but they would not let him; since
11742nothing would do them but to be rid of him, let it be so; and let them
11743blame HIM for the consequences--why shouldn't they? What right had the
11744friendless to complain? Yes, they had forced him to it at last: he
11745would lead a life of crime. There was no choice.
11746
11747By this time he was far down Meadow Lane, and the bell for school to
11748"take up" tinkled faintly upon his ear. He sobbed, now, to think he
11749should never, never hear that old familiar sound any more--it was very
11750hard, but it was forced on him; since he was driven out into the cold
11751world, he must submit--but he forgave them. Then the sobs came thick
11752and fast.
11753
11754Just at this point he met his soul's sworn comrade, Joe Harper
11755--hard-eyed, and with evidently a great and dismal purpose in his heart.
11756Plainly here were "two souls with but a single thought." Tom, wiping
11757his eyes with his sleeve, began to blubber out something about a
11758resolution to escape from hard usage and lack of sympathy at home by
11759roaming abroad into the great world never to return; and ended by
11760hoping that Joe would not forget him.
11761
11762But it transpired that this was a request which Joe had just been
11763going to make of Tom, and had come to hunt him up for that purpose. His
11764mother had whipped him for drinking some cream which he had never
11765tasted and knew nothing about; it was plain that she was tired of him
11766and wished him to go; if she felt that way, there was nothing for him
11767to do but succumb; he hoped she would be happy, and never regret having
11768driven her poor boy out into the unfeeling world to suffer and die.
11769
11770As the two boys walked sorrowing along, they made a new compact to
11771stand by each other and be brothers and never separate till death
11772relieved them of their troubles. Then they began to lay their plans.
11773Joe was for being a hermit, and living on crusts in a remote cave, and
11774dying, some time, of cold and want and grief; but after listening to
11775Tom, he conceded that there were some conspicuous advantages about a
11776life of crime, and so he consented to be a pirate.
11777
11778Three miles below St. Petersburg, at a point where the Mississippi
11779River was a trifle over a mile wide, there was a long, narrow, wooded
11780island, with a shallow bar at the head of it, and this offered well as
11781a rendezvous. It was not inhabited; it lay far over toward the further
11782shore, abreast a dense and almost wholly unpeopled forest. So Jackson's
11783Island was chosen. Who were to be the subjects of their piracies was a
11784matter that did not occur to them. Then they hunted up Huckleberry
11785Finn, and he joined them promptly, for all careers were one to him; he
11786was indifferent. They presently separated to meet at a lonely spot on
11787the river-bank two miles above the village at the favorite hour--which
11788was midnight. There was a small log raft there which they meant to
11789capture. Each would bring hooks and lines, and such provision as he
11790could steal in the most dark and mysterious way--as became outlaws. And
11791before the afternoon was done, they had all managed to enjoy the sweet
11792glory of spreading the fact that pretty soon the town would "hear
11793something." All who got this vague hint were cautioned to "be mum and
11794wait."
11795
11796About midnight Tom arrived with a boiled ham and a few trifles,
11797and stopped in a dense undergrowth on a small bluff overlooking the
11798meeting-place. It was starlight, and very still. The mighty river lay
11799like an ocean at rest. Tom listened a moment, but no sound disturbed the
11800quiet. Then he gave a low, distinct whistle. It was answered from under
11801the bluff. Tom whistled twice more; these signals were answered in the
11802same way. Then a guarded voice said:
11803
11804"Who goes there?"
11805
11806"Tom Sawyer, the Black Avenger of the Spanish Main. Name your names."
11807
11808"Huck Finn the Red-Handed, and Joe Harper the Terror of the Seas." Tom
11809had furnished these titles, from his favorite literature.
11810
11811"'Tis well. Give the countersign."
11812
11813Two hoarse whispers delivered the same awful word simultaneously to
11814the brooding night:
11815
11816"BLOOD!"
11817
11818Then Tom tumbled his ham over the bluff and let himself down after it,
11819tearing both skin and clothes to some extent in the effort. There was
11820an easy, comfortable path along the shore under the bluff, but it
11821lacked the advantages of difficulty and danger so valued by a pirate.
11822
11823The Terror of the Seas had brought a side of bacon, and had about worn
11824himself out with getting it there. Finn the Red-Handed had stolen a
11825skillet and a quantity of half-cured leaf tobacco, and had also brought
11826a few corn-cobs to make pipes with. But none of the pirates smoked or
11827"chewed" but himself. The Black Avenger of the Spanish Main said it
11828would never do to start without some fire. That was a wise thought;
11829matches were hardly known there in that day. They saw a fire
11830smouldering upon a great raft a hundred yards above, and they went
11831stealthily thither and helped themselves to a chunk. They made an
11832imposing adventure of it, saying, "Hist!" every now and then, and
11833suddenly halting with finger on lip; moving with hands on imaginary
11834dagger-hilts; and giving orders in dismal whispers that if "the foe"
11835stirred, to "let him have it to the hilt," because "dead men tell no
11836tales." They knew well enough that the raftsmen were all down at the
11837village laying in stores or having a spree, but still that was no
11838excuse for their conducting this thing in an unpiratical way.
11839
11840They shoved off, presently, Tom in command, Huck at the after oar and
11841Joe at the forward. Tom stood amidships, gloomy-browed, and with folded
11842arms, and gave his orders in a low, stern whisper:
11843
11844"Luff, and bring her to the wind!"
11845
11846"Aye-aye, sir!"
11847
11848"Steady, steady-y-y-y!"
11849
11850"Steady it is, sir!"
11851
11852"Let her go off a point!"
11853
11854"Point it is, sir!"
11855
11856As the boys steadily and monotonously drove the raft toward mid-stream
11857it was no doubt understood that these orders were given only for
11858"style," and were not intended to mean anything in particular.
11859
11860"What sail's she carrying?"
11861
11862"Courses, tops'ls, and flying-jib, sir."
11863
11864"Send the r'yals up! Lay out aloft, there, half a dozen of ye
11865--foretopmaststuns'l! Lively, now!"
11866
11867"Aye-aye, sir!"
11868
11869"Shake out that maintogalans'l! Sheets and braces! NOW my hearties!"
11870
11871"Aye-aye, sir!"
11872
11873"Hellum-a-lee--hard a port! Stand by to meet her when she comes! Port,
11874port! NOW, men! With a will! Stead-y-y-y!"
11875
11876"Steady it is, sir!"
11877
11878The raft drew beyond the middle of the river; the boys pointed her
11879head right, and then lay on their oars. The river was not high, so
11880there was not more than a two or three mile current. Hardly a word was
11881said during the next three-quarters of an hour. Now the raft was
11882passing before the distant town. Two or three glimmering lights showed
11883where it lay, peacefully sleeping, beyond the vague vast sweep of
11884star-gemmed water, unconscious of the tremendous event that was happening.
11885The Black Avenger stood still with folded arms, "looking his last" upon
11886the scene of his former joys and his later sufferings, and wishing
11887"she" could see him now, abroad on the wild sea, facing peril and death
11888with dauntless heart, going to his doom with a grim smile on his lips.
11889It was but a small strain on his imagination to remove Jackson's Island
11890beyond eyeshot of the village, and so he "looked his last" with a
11891broken and satisfied heart. The other pirates were looking their last,
11892too; and they all looked so long that they came near letting the
11893current drift them out of the range of the island. But they discovered
11894the danger in time, and made shift to avert it. About two o'clock in
11895the morning the raft grounded on the bar two hundred yards above the
11896head of the island, and they waded back and forth until they had landed
11897their freight. Part of the little raft's belongings consisted of an old
11898sail, and this they spread over a nook in the bushes for a tent to
11899shelter their provisions; but they themselves would sleep in the open
11900air in good weather, as became outlaws.
11901
11902They built a fire against the side of a great log twenty or thirty
11903steps within the sombre depths of the forest, and then cooked some
11904bacon in the frying-pan for supper, and used up half of the corn "pone"
11905stock they had brought. It seemed glorious sport to be feasting in that
11906wild, free way in the virgin forest of an unexplored and uninhabited
11907island, far from the haunts of men, and they said they never would
11908return to civilization. The climbing fire lit up their faces and threw
11909its ruddy glare upon the pillared tree-trunks of their forest temple,
11910and upon the varnished foliage and festooning vines.
11911
11912When the last crisp slice of bacon was gone, and the last allowance of
11913corn pone devoured, the boys stretched themselves out on the grass,
11914filled with contentment. They could have found a cooler place, but they
11915would not deny themselves such a romantic feature as the roasting
11916camp-fire.
11917
11918"AIN'T it gay?" said Joe.
11919
11920"It's NUTS!" said Tom. "What would the boys say if they could see us?"
11921
11922"Say? Well, they'd just die to be here--hey, Hucky!"
11923
11924"I reckon so," said Huckleberry; "anyways, I'm suited. I don't want
11925nothing better'n this. I don't ever get enough to eat, gen'ally--and
11926here they can't come and pick at a feller and bullyrag him so."
11927
11928"It's just the life for me," said Tom. "You don't have to get up,
11929mornings, and you don't have to go to school, and wash, and all that
11930blame foolishness. You see a pirate don't have to do ANYTHING, Joe,
11931when he's ashore, but a hermit HE has to be praying considerable, and
11932then he don't have any fun, anyway, all by himself that way."
11933
11934"Oh yes, that's so," said Joe, "but I hadn't thought much about it,
11935you know. I'd a good deal rather be a pirate, now that I've tried it."
11936
11937"You see," said Tom, "people don't go much on hermits, nowadays, like
11938they used to in old times, but a pirate's always respected. And a
11939hermit's got to sleep on the hardest place he can find, and put
11940sackcloth and ashes on his head, and stand out in the rain, and--"
11941
11942"What does he put sackcloth and ashes on his head for?" inquired Huck.
11943
11944"I dono. But they've GOT to do it. Hermits always do. You'd have to do
11945that if you was a hermit."
11946
11947"Dern'd if I would," said Huck.
11948
11949"Well, what would you do?"
11950
11951"I dono. But I wouldn't do that."
11952
11953"Why, Huck, you'd HAVE to. How'd you get around it?"
11954
11955"Why, I just wouldn't stand it. I'd run away."
11956
11957"Run away! Well, you WOULD be a nice old slouch of a hermit. You'd be
11958a disgrace."
11959
11960The Red-Handed made no response, being better employed. He had
11961finished gouging out a cob, and now he fitted a weed stem to it, loaded
11962it with tobacco, and was pressing a coal to the charge and blowing a
11963cloud of fragrant smoke--he was in the full bloom of luxurious
11964contentment. The other pirates envied him this majestic vice, and
11965secretly resolved to acquire it shortly. Presently Huck said:
11966
11967"What does pirates have to do?"
11968
11969Tom said:
11970
11971"Oh, they have just a bully time--take ships and burn them, and get
11972the money and bury it in awful places in their island where there's
11973ghosts and things to watch it, and kill everybody in the ships--make
11974'em walk a plank."
11975
11976"And they carry the women to the island," said Joe; "they don't kill
11977the women."
11978
11979"No," assented Tom, "they don't kill the women--they're too noble. And
11980the women's always beautiful, too.
11981
11982"And don't they wear the bulliest clothes! Oh no! All gold and silver
11983and di'monds," said Joe, with enthusiasm.
11984
11985"Who?" said Huck.
11986
11987"Why, the pirates."
11988
11989Huck scanned his own clothing forlornly.
11990
11991"I reckon I ain't dressed fitten for a pirate," said he, with a
11992regretful pathos in his voice; "but I ain't got none but these."
11993
11994But the other boys told him the fine clothes would come fast enough,
11995after they should have begun their adventures. They made him understand
11996that his poor rags would do to begin with, though it was customary for
11997wealthy pirates to start with a proper wardrobe.
11998
11999Gradually their talk died out and drowsiness began to steal upon the
12000eyelids of the little waifs. The pipe dropped from the fingers of the
12001Red-Handed, and he slept the sleep of the conscience-free and the
12002weary. The Terror of the Seas and the Black Avenger of the Spanish Main
12003had more difficulty in getting to sleep. They said their prayers
12004inwardly, and lying down, since there was nobody there with authority
12005to make them kneel and recite aloud; in truth, they had a mind not to
12006say them at all, but they were afraid to proceed to such lengths as
12007that, lest they might call down a sudden and special thunderbolt from
12008heaven. Then at once they reached and hovered upon the imminent verge
12009of sleep--but an intruder came, now, that would not "down." It was
12010conscience. They began to feel a vague fear that they had been doing
12011wrong to run away; and next they thought of the stolen meat, and then
12012the real torture came. They tried to argue it away by reminding
12013conscience that they had purloined sweetmeats and apples scores of
12014times; but conscience was not to be appeased by such thin
12015plausibilities; it seemed to them, in the end, that there was no
12016getting around the stubborn fact that taking sweetmeats was only
12017"hooking," while taking bacon and hams and such valuables was plain
12018simple stealing--and there was a command against that in the Bible. So
12019they inwardly resolved that so long as they remained in the business,
12020their piracies should not again be sullied with the crime of stealing.
12021Then conscience granted a truce, and these curiously inconsistent
12022pirates fell peacefully to sleep.
12023
12024
12025
12026CHAPTER XIV
12027
12028WHEN Tom awoke in the morning, he wondered where he was. He sat up and
12029rubbed his eyes and looked around. Then he comprehended. It was the
12030cool gray dawn, and there was a delicious sense of repose and peace in
12031the deep pervading calm and silence of the woods. Not a leaf stirred;
12032not a sound obtruded upon great Nature's meditation. Beaded dewdrops
12033stood upon the leaves and grasses. A white layer of ashes covered the
12034fire, and a thin blue breath of smoke rose straight into the air. Joe
12035and Huck still slept.
12036
12037Now, far away in the woods a bird called; another answered; presently
12038the hammering of a woodpecker was heard. Gradually the cool dim gray of
12039the morning whitened, and as gradually sounds multiplied and life
12040manifested itself. The marvel of Nature shaking off sleep and going to
12041work unfolded itself to the musing boy. A little green worm came
12042crawling over a dewy leaf, lifting two-thirds of his body into the air
12043from time to time and "sniffing around," then proceeding again--for he
12044was measuring, Tom said; and when the worm approached him, of its own
12045accord, he sat as still as a stone, with his hopes rising and falling,
12046by turns, as the creature still came toward him or seemed inclined to
12047go elsewhere; and when at last it considered a painful moment with its
12048curved body in the air and then came decisively down upon Tom's leg and
12049began a journey over him, his whole heart was glad--for that meant that
12050he was going to have a new suit of clothes--without the shadow of a
12051doubt a gaudy piratical uniform. Now a procession of ants appeared,
12052from nowhere in particular, and went about their labors; one struggled
12053manfully by with a dead spider five times as big as itself in its arms,
12054and lugged it straight up a tree-trunk. A brown spotted lady-bug
12055climbed the dizzy height of a grass blade, and Tom bent down close to
12056it and said, "Lady-bug, lady-bug, fly away home, your house is on fire,
12057your children's alone," and she took wing and went off to see about it
12058--which did not surprise the boy, for he knew of old that this insect was
12059credulous about conflagrations, and he had practised upon its
12060simplicity more than once. A tumblebug came next, heaving sturdily at
12061its ball, and Tom touched the creature, to see it shut its legs against
12062its body and pretend to be dead. The birds were fairly rioting by this
12063time. A catbird, the Northern mocker, lit in a tree over Tom's head,
12064and trilled out her imitations of her neighbors in a rapture of
12065enjoyment; then a shrill jay swept down, a flash of blue flame, and
12066stopped on a twig almost within the boy's reach, cocked his head to one
12067side and eyed the strangers with a consuming curiosity; a gray squirrel
12068and a big fellow of the "fox" kind came skurrying along, sitting up at
12069intervals to inspect and chatter at the boys, for the wild things had
12070probably never seen a human being before and scarcely knew whether to
12071be afraid or not. All Nature was wide awake and stirring, now; long
12072lances of sunlight pierced down through the dense foliage far and near,
12073and a few butterflies came fluttering upon the scene.
12074
12075Tom stirred up the other pirates and they all clattered away with a
12076shout, and in a minute or two were stripped and chasing after and
12077tumbling over each other in the shallow limpid water of the white
12078sandbar. They felt no longing for the little village sleeping in the
12079distance beyond the majestic waste of water. A vagrant current or a
12080slight rise in the river had carried off their raft, but this only
12081gratified them, since its going was something like burning the bridge
12082between them and civilization.
12083
12084They came back to camp wonderfully refreshed, glad-hearted, and
12085ravenous; and they soon had the camp-fire blazing up again. Huck found
12086a spring of clear cold water close by, and the boys made cups of broad
12087oak or hickory leaves, and felt that water, sweetened with such a
12088wildwood charm as that, would be a good enough substitute for coffee.
12089While Joe was slicing bacon for breakfast, Tom and Huck asked him to
12090hold on a minute; they stepped to a promising nook in the river-bank
12091and threw in their lines; almost immediately they had reward. Joe had
12092not had time to get impatient before they were back again with some
12093handsome bass, a couple of sun-perch and a small catfish--provisions
12094enough for quite a family. They fried the fish with the bacon, and were
12095astonished; for no fish had ever seemed so delicious before. They did
12096not know that the quicker a fresh-water fish is on the fire after he is
12097caught the better he is; and they reflected little upon what a sauce
12098open-air sleeping, open-air exercise, bathing, and a large ingredient
12099of hunger make, too.
12100
12101They lay around in the shade, after breakfast, while Huck had a smoke,
12102and then went off through the woods on an exploring expedition. They
12103tramped gayly along, over decaying logs, through tangled underbrush,
12104among solemn monarchs of the forest, hung from their crowns to the
12105ground with a drooping regalia of grape-vines. Now and then they came
12106upon snug nooks carpeted with grass and jeweled with flowers.
12107
12108They found plenty of things to be delighted with, but nothing to be
12109astonished at. They discovered that the island was about three miles
12110long and a quarter of a mile wide, and that the shore it lay closest to
12111was only separated from it by a narrow channel hardly two hundred yards
12112wide. They took a swim about every hour, so it was close upon the
12113middle of the afternoon when they got back to camp. They were too
12114hungry to stop to fish, but they fared sumptuously upon cold ham, and
12115then threw themselves down in the shade to talk. But the talk soon
12116began to drag, and then died. The stillness, the solemnity that brooded
12117in the woods, and the sense of loneliness, began to tell upon the
12118spirits of the boys. They fell to thinking. A sort of undefined longing
12119crept upon them. This took dim shape, presently--it was budding
12120homesickness. Even Finn the Red-Handed was dreaming of his doorsteps
12121and empty hogsheads. But they were all ashamed of their weakness, and
12122none was brave enough to speak his thought.
12123
12124For some time, now, the boys had been dully conscious of a peculiar
12125sound in the distance, just as one sometimes is of the ticking of a
12126clock which he takes no distinct note of. But now this mysterious sound
12127became more pronounced, and forced a recognition. The boys started,
12128glanced at each other, and then each assumed a listening attitude.
12129There was a long silence, profound and unbroken; then a deep, sullen
12130boom came floating down out of the distance.
12131
12132"What is it!" exclaimed Joe, under his breath.
12133
12134"I wonder," said Tom in a whisper.
12135
12136"'Tain't thunder," said Huckleberry, in an awed tone, "becuz thunder--"
12137
12138"Hark!" said Tom. "Listen--don't talk."
12139
12140They waited a time that seemed an age, and then the same muffled boom
12141troubled the solemn hush.
12142
12143"Let's go and see."
12144
12145They sprang to their feet and hurried to the shore toward the town.
12146They parted the bushes on the bank and peered out over the water. The
12147little steam ferryboat was about a mile below the village, drifting
12148with the current. Her broad deck seemed crowded with people. There were
12149a great many skiffs rowing about or floating with the stream in the
12150neighborhood of the ferryboat, but the boys could not determine what
12151the men in them were doing. Presently a great jet of white smoke burst
12152from the ferryboat's side, and as it expanded and rose in a lazy cloud,
12153that same dull throb of sound was borne to the listeners again.
12154
12155"I know now!" exclaimed Tom; "somebody's drownded!"
12156
12157"That's it!" said Huck; "they done that last summer, when Bill Turner
12158got drownded; they shoot a cannon over the water, and that makes him
12159come up to the top. Yes, and they take loaves of bread and put
12160quicksilver in 'em and set 'em afloat, and wherever there's anybody
12161that's drownded, they'll float right there and stop."
12162
12163"Yes, I've heard about that," said Joe. "I wonder what makes the bread
12164do that."
12165
12166"Oh, it ain't the bread, so much," said Tom; "I reckon it's mostly
12167what they SAY over it before they start it out."
12168
12169"But they don't say anything over it," said Huck. "I've seen 'em and
12170they don't."
12171
12172"Well, that's funny," said Tom. "But maybe they say it to themselves.
12173Of COURSE they do. Anybody might know that."
12174
12175The other boys agreed that there was reason in what Tom said, because
12176an ignorant lump of bread, uninstructed by an incantation, could not be
12177expected to act very intelligently when set upon an errand of such
12178gravity.
12179
12180"By jings, I wish I was over there, now," said Joe.
12181
12182"I do too" said Huck "I'd give heaps to know who it is."
12183
12184The boys still listened and watched. Presently a revealing thought
12185flashed through Tom's mind, and he exclaimed:
12186
12187"Boys, I know who's drownded--it's us!"
12188
12189They felt like heroes in an instant. Here was a gorgeous triumph; they
12190were missed; they were mourned; hearts were breaking on their account;
12191tears were being shed; accusing memories of unkindness to these poor
12192lost lads were rising up, and unavailing regrets and remorse were being
12193indulged; and best of all, the departed were the talk of the whole
12194town, and the envy of all the boys, as far as this dazzling notoriety
12195was concerned. This was fine. It was worth while to be a pirate, after
12196all.
12197
12198As twilight drew on, the ferryboat went back to her accustomed
12199business and the skiffs disappeared. The pirates returned to camp. They
12200were jubilant with vanity over their new grandeur and the illustrious
12201trouble they were making. They caught fish, cooked supper and ate it,
12202and then fell to guessing at what the village was thinking and saying
12203about them; and the pictures they drew of the public distress on their
12204account were gratifying to look upon--from their point of view. But
12205when the shadows of night closed them in, they gradually ceased to
12206talk, and sat gazing into the fire, with their minds evidently
12207wandering elsewhere. The excitement was gone, now, and Tom and Joe
12208could not keep back thoughts of certain persons at home who were not
12209enjoying this fine frolic as much as they were. Misgivings came; they
12210grew troubled and unhappy; a sigh or two escaped, unawares. By and by
12211Joe timidly ventured upon a roundabout "feeler" as to how the others
12212might look upon a return to civilization--not right now, but--
12213
12214Tom withered him with derision! Huck, being uncommitted as yet, joined
12215in with Tom, and the waverer quickly "explained," and was glad to get
12216out of the scrape with as little taint of chicken-hearted homesickness
12217clinging to his garments as he could. Mutiny was effectually laid to
12218rest for the moment.
12219
12220As the night deepened, Huck began to nod, and presently to snore. Joe
12221followed next. Tom lay upon his elbow motionless, for some time,
12222watching the two intently. At last he got up cautiously, on his knees,
12223and went searching among the grass and the flickering reflections flung
12224by the camp-fire. He picked up and inspected several large
12225semi-cylinders of the thin white bark of a sycamore, and finally chose
12226two which seemed to suit him. Then he knelt by the fire and painfully
12227wrote something upon each of these with his "red keel"; one he rolled up
12228and put in his jacket pocket, and the other he put in Joe's hat and
12229removed it to a little distance from the owner. And he also put into the
12230hat certain schoolboy treasures of almost inestimable value--among them
12231a lump of chalk, an India-rubber ball, three fishhooks, and one of that
12232kind of marbles known as a "sure 'nough crystal." Then he tiptoed his
12233way cautiously among the trees till he felt that he was out of hearing,
12234and straightway broke into a keen run in the direction of the sandbar.
12235
12236
12237
12238CHAPTER XV
12239
12240A FEW minutes later Tom was in the shoal water of the bar, wading
12241toward the Illinois shore. Before the depth reached his middle he was
12242half-way over; the current would permit no more wading, now, so he
12243struck out confidently to swim the remaining hundred yards. He swam
12244quartering upstream, but still was swept downward rather faster than he
12245had expected. However, he reached the shore finally, and drifted along
12246till he found a low place and drew himself out. He put his hand on his
12247jacket pocket, found his piece of bark safe, and then struck through
12248the woods, following the shore, with streaming garments. Shortly before
12249ten o'clock he came out into an open place opposite the village, and
12250saw the ferryboat lying in the shadow of the trees and the high bank.
12251Everything was quiet under the blinking stars. He crept down the bank,
12252watching with all his eyes, slipped into the water, swam three or four
12253strokes and climbed into the skiff that did "yawl" duty at the boat's
12254stern. He laid himself down under the thwarts and waited, panting.
12255
12256Presently the cracked bell tapped and a voice gave the order to "cast
12257off." A minute or two later the skiff's head was standing high up,
12258against the boat's swell, and the voyage was begun. Tom felt happy in
12259his success, for he knew it was the boat's last trip for the night. At
12260the end of a long twelve or fifteen minutes the wheels stopped, and Tom
12261slipped overboard and swam ashore in the dusk, landing fifty yards
12262downstream, out of danger of possible stragglers.
12263
12264He flew along unfrequented alleys, and shortly found himself at his
12265aunt's back fence. He climbed over, approached the "ell," and looked in
12266at the sitting-room window, for a light was burning there. There sat
12267Aunt Polly, Sid, Mary, and Joe Harper's mother, grouped together,
12268talking. They were by the bed, and the bed was between them and the
12269door. Tom went to the door and began to softly lift the latch; then he
12270pressed gently and the door yielded a crack; he continued pushing
12271cautiously, and quaking every time it creaked, till he judged he might
12272squeeze through on his knees; so he put his head through and began,
12273warily.
12274
12275"What makes the candle blow so?" said Aunt Polly. Tom hurried up.
12276"Why, that door's open, I believe. Why, of course it is. No end of
12277strange things now. Go 'long and shut it, Sid."
12278
12279Tom disappeared under the bed just in time. He lay and "breathed"
12280himself for a time, and then crept to where he could almost touch his
12281aunt's foot.
12282
12283"But as I was saying," said Aunt Polly, "he warn't BAD, so to say
12284--only mischEEvous. Only just giddy, and harum-scarum, you know. He
12285warn't any more responsible than a colt. HE never meant any harm, and
12286he was the best-hearted boy that ever was"--and she began to cry.
12287
12288"It was just so with my Joe--always full of his devilment, and up to
12289every kind of mischief, but he was just as unselfish and kind as he
12290could be--and laws bless me, to think I went and whipped him for taking
12291that cream, never once recollecting that I throwed it out myself
12292because it was sour, and I never to see him again in this world, never,
12293never, never, poor abused boy!" And Mrs. Harper sobbed as if her heart
12294would break.
12295
12296"I hope Tom's better off where he is," said Sid, "but if he'd been
12297better in some ways--"
12298
12299"SID!" Tom felt the glare of the old lady's eye, though he could not
12300see it. "Not a word against my Tom, now that he's gone! God'll take
12301care of HIM--never you trouble YOURself, sir! Oh, Mrs. Harper, I don't
12302know how to give him up! I don't know how to give him up! He was such a
12303comfort to me, although he tormented my old heart out of me, 'most."
12304
12305"The Lord giveth and the Lord hath taken away--Blessed be the name of
12306the Lord! But it's so hard--Oh, it's so hard! Only last Saturday my
12307Joe busted a firecracker right under my nose and I knocked him
12308sprawling. Little did I know then, how soon--Oh, if it was to do over
12309again I'd hug him and bless him for it."
12310
12311"Yes, yes, yes, I know just how you feel, Mrs. Harper, I know just
12312exactly how you feel. No longer ago than yesterday noon, my Tom took
12313and filled the cat full of Pain-killer, and I did think the cretur
12314would tear the house down. And God forgive me, I cracked Tom's head
12315with my thimble, poor boy, poor dead boy. But he's out of all his
12316troubles now. And the last words I ever heard him say was to reproach--"
12317
12318But this memory was too much for the old lady, and she broke entirely
12319down. Tom was snuffling, now, himself--and more in pity of himself than
12320anybody else. He could hear Mary crying, and putting in a kindly word
12321for him from time to time. He began to have a nobler opinion of himself
12322than ever before. Still, he was sufficiently touched by his aunt's
12323grief to long to rush out from under the bed and overwhelm her with
12324joy--and the theatrical gorgeousness of the thing appealed strongly to
12325his nature, too, but he resisted and lay still.
12326
12327He went on listening, and gathered by odds and ends that it was
12328conjectured at first that the boys had got drowned while taking a swim;
12329then the small raft had been missed; next, certain boys said the
12330missing lads had promised that the village should "hear something"
12331soon; the wise-heads had "put this and that together" and decided that
12332the lads had gone off on that raft and would turn up at the next town
12333below, presently; but toward noon the raft had been found, lodged
12334against the Missouri shore some five or six miles below the village
12335--and then hope perished; they must be drowned, else hunger would have
12336driven them home by nightfall if not sooner. It was believed that the
12337search for the bodies had been a fruitless effort merely because the
12338drowning must have occurred in mid-channel, since the boys, being good
12339swimmers, would otherwise have escaped to shore. This was Wednesday
12340night. If the bodies continued missing until Sunday, all hope would be
12341given over, and the funerals would be preached on that morning. Tom
12342shuddered.
12343
12344Mrs. Harper gave a sobbing good-night and turned to go. Then with a
12345mutual impulse the two bereaved women flung themselves into each
12346other's arms and had a good, consoling cry, and then parted. Aunt Polly
12347was tender far beyond her wont, in her good-night to Sid and Mary. Sid
12348snuffled a bit and Mary went off crying with all her heart.
12349
12350Aunt Polly knelt down and prayed for Tom so touchingly, so
12351appealingly, and with such measureless love in her words and her old
12352trembling voice, that he was weltering in tears again, long before she
12353was through.
12354
12355He had to keep still long after she went to bed, for she kept making
12356broken-hearted ejaculations from time to time, tossing unrestfully, and
12357turning over. But at last she was still, only moaning a little in her
12358sleep. Now the boy stole out, rose gradually by the bedside, shaded the
12359candle-light with his hand, and stood regarding her. His heart was full
12360of pity for her. He took out his sycamore scroll and placed it by the
12361candle. But something occurred to him, and he lingered considering. His
12362face lighted with a happy solution of his thought; he put the bark
12363hastily in his pocket. Then he bent over and kissed the faded lips, and
12364straightway made his stealthy exit, latching the door behind him.
12365
12366He threaded his way back to the ferry landing, found nobody at large
12367there, and walked boldly on board the boat, for he knew she was
12368tenantless except that there was a watchman, who always turned in and
12369slept like a graven image. He untied the skiff at the stern, slipped
12370into it, and was soon rowing cautiously upstream. When he had pulled a
12371mile above the village, he started quartering across and bent himself
12372stoutly to his work. He hit the landing on the other side neatly, for
12373this was a familiar bit of work to him. He was moved to capture the
12374skiff, arguing that it might be considered a ship and therefore
12375legitimate prey for a pirate, but he knew a thorough search would be
12376made for it and that might end in revelations. So he stepped ashore and
12377entered the woods.
12378
12379He sat down and took a long rest, torturing himself meanwhile to keep
12380awake, and then started warily down the home-stretch. The night was far
12381spent. It was broad daylight before he found himself fairly abreast the
12382island bar. He rested again until the sun was well up and gilding the
12383great river with its splendor, and then he plunged into the stream. A
12384little later he paused, dripping, upon the threshold of the camp, and
12385heard Joe say:
12386
12387"No, Tom's true-blue, Huck, and he'll come back. He won't desert. He
12388knows that would be a disgrace to a pirate, and Tom's too proud for
12389that sort of thing. He's up to something or other. Now I wonder what?"
12390
12391"Well, the things is ours, anyway, ain't they?"
12392
12393"Pretty near, but not yet, Huck. The writing says they are if he ain't
12394back here to breakfast."
12395
12396"Which he is!" exclaimed Tom, with fine dramatic effect, stepping
12397grandly into camp.
12398
12399A sumptuous breakfast of bacon and fish was shortly provided, and as
12400the boys set to work upon it, Tom recounted (and adorned) his
12401adventures. They were a vain and boastful company of heroes when the
12402tale was done. Then Tom hid himself away in a shady nook to sleep till
12403noon, and the other pirates got ready to fish and explore.
12404
12405
12406
12407CHAPTER XVI
12408
12409AFTER dinner all the gang turned out to hunt for turtle eggs on the
12410bar. They went about poking sticks into the sand, and when they found a
12411soft place they went down on their knees and dug with their hands.
12412Sometimes they would take fifty or sixty eggs out of one hole. They
12413were perfectly round white things a trifle smaller than an English
12414walnut. They had a famous fried-egg feast that night, and another on
12415Friday morning.
12416
12417After breakfast they went whooping and prancing out on the bar, and
12418chased each other round and round, shedding clothes as they went, until
12419they were naked, and then continued the frolic far away up the shoal
12420water of the bar, against the stiff current, which latter tripped their
12421legs from under them from time to time and greatly increased the fun.
12422And now and then they stooped in a group and splashed water in each
12423other's faces with their palms, gradually approaching each other, with
12424averted faces to avoid the strangling sprays, and finally gripping and
12425struggling till the best man ducked his neighbor, and then they all
12426went under in a tangle of white legs and arms and came up blowing,
12427sputtering, laughing, and gasping for breath at one and the same time.
12428
12429When they were well exhausted, they would run out and sprawl on the
12430dry, hot sand, and lie there and cover themselves up with it, and by
12431and by break for the water again and go through the original
12432performance once more. Finally it occurred to them that their naked
12433skin represented flesh-colored "tights" very fairly; so they drew a
12434ring in the sand and had a circus--with three clowns in it, for none
12435would yield this proudest post to his neighbor.
12436
12437Next they got their marbles and played "knucks" and "ring-taw" and
12438"keeps" till that amusement grew stale. Then Joe and Huck had another
12439swim, but Tom would not venture, because he found that in kicking off
12440his trousers he had kicked his string of rattlesnake rattles off his
12441ankle, and he wondered how he had escaped cramp so long without the
12442protection of this mysterious charm. He did not venture again until he
12443had found it, and by that time the other boys were tired and ready to
12444rest. They gradually wandered apart, dropped into the "dumps," and fell
12445to gazing longingly across the wide river to where the village lay
12446drowsing in the sun. Tom found himself writing "BECKY" in the sand with
12447his big toe; he scratched it out, and was angry with himself for his
12448weakness. But he wrote it again, nevertheless; he could not help it. He
12449erased it once more and then took himself out of temptation by driving
12450the other boys together and joining them.
12451
12452But Joe's spirits had gone down almost beyond resurrection. He was so
12453homesick that he could hardly endure the misery of it. The tears lay
12454very near the surface. Huck was melancholy, too. Tom was downhearted,
12455but tried hard not to show it. He had a secret which he was not ready
12456to tell, yet, but if this mutinous depression was not broken up soon,
12457he would have to bring it out. He said, with a great show of
12458cheerfulness:
12459
12460"I bet there's been pirates on this island before, boys. We'll explore
12461it again. They've hid treasures here somewhere. How'd you feel to light
12462on a rotten chest full of gold and silver--hey?"
12463
12464But it roused only faint enthusiasm, which faded out, with no reply.
12465Tom tried one or two other seductions; but they failed, too. It was
12466discouraging work. Joe sat poking up the sand with a stick and looking
12467very gloomy. Finally he said:
12468
12469"Oh, boys, let's give it up. I want to go home. It's so lonesome."
12470
12471"Oh no, Joe, you'll feel better by and by," said Tom. "Just think of
12472the fishing that's here."
12473
12474"I don't care for fishing. I want to go home."
12475
12476"But, Joe, there ain't such another swimming-place anywhere."
12477
12478"Swimming's no good. I don't seem to care for it, somehow, when there
12479ain't anybody to say I sha'n't go in. I mean to go home."
12480
12481"Oh, shucks! Baby! You want to see your mother, I reckon."
12482
12483"Yes, I DO want to see my mother--and you would, too, if you had one.
12484I ain't any more baby than you are." And Joe snuffled a little.
12485
12486"Well, we'll let the cry-baby go home to his mother, won't we, Huck?
12487Poor thing--does it want to see its mother? And so it shall. You like
12488it here, don't you, Huck? We'll stay, won't we?"
12489
12490Huck said, "Y-e-s"--without any heart in it.
12491
12492"I'll never speak to you again as long as I live," said Joe, rising.
12493"There now!" And he moved moodily away and began to dress himself.
12494
12495"Who cares!" said Tom. "Nobody wants you to. Go 'long home and get
12496laughed at. Oh, you're a nice pirate. Huck and me ain't cry-babies.
12497We'll stay, won't we, Huck? Let him go if he wants to. I reckon we can
12498get along without him, per'aps."
12499
12500But Tom was uneasy, nevertheless, and was alarmed to see Joe go
12501sullenly on with his dressing. And then it was discomforting to see
12502Huck eying Joe's preparations so wistfully, and keeping up such an
12503ominous silence. Presently, without a parting word, Joe began to wade
12504off toward the Illinois shore. Tom's heart began to sink. He glanced at
12505Huck. Huck could not bear the look, and dropped his eyes. Then he said:
12506
12507"I want to go, too, Tom. It was getting so lonesome anyway, and now
12508it'll be worse. Let's us go, too, Tom."
12509
12510"I won't! You can all go, if you want to. I mean to stay."
12511
12512"Tom, I better go."
12513
12514"Well, go 'long--who's hendering you."
12515
12516Huck began to pick up his scattered clothes. He said:
12517
12518"Tom, I wisht you'd come, too. Now you think it over. We'll wait for
12519you when we get to shore."
12520
12521"Well, you'll wait a blame long time, that's all."
12522
12523Huck started sorrowfully away, and Tom stood looking after him, with a
12524strong desire tugging at his heart to yield his pride and go along too.
12525He hoped the boys would stop, but they still waded slowly on. It
12526suddenly dawned on Tom that it was become very lonely and still. He
12527made one final struggle with his pride, and then darted after his
12528comrades, yelling:
12529
12530"Wait! Wait! I want to tell you something!"
12531
12532They presently stopped and turned around. When he got to where they
12533were, he began unfolding his secret, and they listened moodily till at
12534last they saw the "point" he was driving at, and then they set up a
12535war-whoop of applause and said it was "splendid!" and said if he had
12536told them at first, they wouldn't have started away. He made a plausible
12537excuse; but his real reason had been the fear that not even the secret
12538would keep them with him any very great length of time, and so he had
12539meant to hold it in reserve as a last seduction.
12540
12541The lads came gayly back and went at their sports again with a will,
12542chattering all the time about Tom's stupendous plan and admiring the
12543genius of it. After a dainty egg and fish dinner, Tom said he wanted to
12544learn to smoke, now. Joe caught at the idea and said he would like to
12545try, too. So Huck made pipes and filled them. These novices had never
12546smoked anything before but cigars made of grape-vine, and they "bit"
12547the tongue, and were not considered manly anyway.
12548
12549Now they stretched themselves out on their elbows and began to puff,
12550charily, and with slender confidence. The smoke had an unpleasant
12551taste, and they gagged a little, but Tom said:
12552
12553"Why, it's just as easy! If I'd a knowed this was all, I'd a learnt
12554long ago."
12555
12556"So would I," said Joe. "It's just nothing."
12557
12558"Why, many a time I've looked at people smoking, and thought well I
12559wish I could do that; but I never thought I could," said Tom.
12560
12561"That's just the way with me, hain't it, Huck? You've heard me talk
12562just that way--haven't you, Huck? I'll leave it to Huck if I haven't."
12563
12564"Yes--heaps of times," said Huck.
12565
12566"Well, I have too," said Tom; "oh, hundreds of times. Once down by the
12567slaughter-house. Don't you remember, Huck? Bob Tanner was there, and
12568Johnny Miller, and Jeff Thatcher, when I said it. Don't you remember,
12569Huck, 'bout me saying that?"
12570
12571"Yes, that's so," said Huck. "That was the day after I lost a white
12572alley. No, 'twas the day before."
12573
12574"There--I told you so," said Tom. "Huck recollects it."
12575
12576"I bleeve I could smoke this pipe all day," said Joe. "I don't feel
12577sick."
12578
12579"Neither do I," said Tom. "I could smoke it all day. But I bet you
12580Jeff Thatcher couldn't."
12581
12582"Jeff Thatcher! Why, he'd keel over just with two draws. Just let him
12583try it once. HE'D see!"
12584
12585"I bet he would. And Johnny Miller--I wish could see Johnny Miller
12586tackle it once."
12587
12588"Oh, don't I!" said Joe. "Why, I bet you Johnny Miller couldn't any
12589more do this than nothing. Just one little snifter would fetch HIM."
12590
12591"'Deed it would, Joe. Say--I wish the boys could see us now."
12592
12593"So do I."
12594
12595"Say--boys, don't say anything about it, and some time when they're
12596around, I'll come up to you and say, 'Joe, got a pipe? I want a smoke.'
12597And you'll say, kind of careless like, as if it warn't anything, you'll
12598say, 'Yes, I got my OLD pipe, and another one, but my tobacker ain't
12599very good.' And I'll say, 'Oh, that's all right, if it's STRONG
12600enough.' And then you'll out with the pipes, and we'll light up just as
12601ca'm, and then just see 'em look!"
12602
12603"By jings, that'll be gay, Tom! I wish it was NOW!"
12604
12605"So do I! And when we tell 'em we learned when we was off pirating,
12606won't they wish they'd been along?"
12607
12608"Oh, I reckon not! I'll just BET they will!"
12609
12610So the talk ran on. But presently it began to flag a trifle, and grow
12611disjointed. The silences widened; the expectoration marvellously
12612increased. Every pore inside the boys' cheeks became a spouting
12613fountain; they could scarcely bail out the cellars under their tongues
12614fast enough to prevent an inundation; little overflowings down their
12615throats occurred in spite of all they could do, and sudden retchings
12616followed every time. Both boys were looking very pale and miserable,
12617now. Joe's pipe dropped from his nerveless fingers. Tom's followed.
12618Both fountains were going furiously and both pumps bailing with might
12619and main. Joe said feebly:
12620
12621"I've lost my knife. I reckon I better go and find it."
12622
12623Tom said, with quivering lips and halting utterance:
12624
12625"I'll help you. You go over that way and I'll hunt around by the
12626spring. No, you needn't come, Huck--we can find it."
12627
12628So Huck sat down again, and waited an hour. Then he found it lonesome,
12629and went to find his comrades. They were wide apart in the woods, both
12630very pale, both fast asleep. But something informed him that if they
12631had had any trouble they had got rid of it.
12632
12633They were not talkative at supper that night. They had a humble look,
12634and when Huck prepared his pipe after the meal and was going to prepare
12635theirs, they said no, they were not feeling very well--something they
12636ate at dinner had disagreed with them.
12637
12638About midnight Joe awoke, and called the boys. There was a brooding
12639oppressiveness in the air that seemed to bode something. The boys
12640huddled themselves together and sought the friendly companionship of
12641the fire, though the dull dead heat of the breathless atmosphere was
12642stifling. They sat still, intent and waiting. The solemn hush
12643continued. Beyond the light of the fire everything was swallowed up in
12644the blackness of darkness. Presently there came a quivering glow that
12645vaguely revealed the foliage for a moment and then vanished. By and by
12646another came, a little stronger. Then another. Then a faint moan came
12647sighing through the branches of the forest and the boys felt a fleeting
12648breath upon their cheeks, and shuddered with the fancy that the Spirit
12649of the Night had gone by. There was a pause. Now a weird flash turned
12650night into day and showed every little grass-blade, separate and
12651distinct, that grew about their feet. And it showed three white,
12652startled faces, too. A deep peal of thunder went rolling and tumbling
12653down the heavens and lost itself in sullen rumblings in the distance. A
12654sweep of chilly air passed by, rustling all the leaves and snowing the
12655flaky ashes broadcast about the fire. Another fierce glare lit up the
12656forest and an instant crash followed that seemed to rend the tree-tops
12657right over the boys' heads. They clung together in terror, in the thick
12658gloom that followed. A few big rain-drops fell pattering upon the
12659leaves.
12660
12661"Quick! boys, go for the tent!" exclaimed Tom.
12662
12663They sprang away, stumbling over roots and among vines in the dark, no
12664two plunging in the same direction. A furious blast roared through the
12665trees, making everything sing as it went. One blinding flash after
12666another came, and peal on peal of deafening thunder. And now a
12667drenching rain poured down and the rising hurricane drove it in sheets
12668along the ground. The boys cried out to each other, but the roaring
12669wind and the booming thunder-blasts drowned their voices utterly.
12670However, one by one they straggled in at last and took shelter under
12671the tent, cold, scared, and streaming with water; but to have company
12672in misery seemed something to be grateful for. They could not talk, the
12673old sail flapped so furiously, even if the other noises would have
12674allowed them. The tempest rose higher and higher, and presently the
12675sail tore loose from its fastenings and went winging away on the blast.
12676The boys seized each others' hands and fled, with many tumblings and
12677bruises, to the shelter of a great oak that stood upon the river-bank.
12678Now the battle was at its highest. Under the ceaseless conflagration of
12679lightning that flamed in the skies, everything below stood out in
12680clean-cut and shadowless distinctness: the bending trees, the billowy
12681river, white with foam, the driving spray of spume-flakes, the dim
12682outlines of the high bluffs on the other side, glimpsed through the
12683drifting cloud-rack and the slanting veil of rain. Every little while
12684some giant tree yielded the fight and fell crashing through the younger
12685growth; and the unflagging thunder-peals came now in ear-splitting
12686explosive bursts, keen and sharp, and unspeakably appalling. The storm
12687culminated in one matchless effort that seemed likely to tear the island
12688to pieces, burn it up, drown it to the tree-tops, blow it away, and
12689deafen every creature in it, all at one and the same moment. It was a
12690wild night for homeless young heads to be out in.
12691
12692But at last the battle was done, and the forces retired with weaker
12693and weaker threatenings and grumblings, and peace resumed her sway. The
12694boys went back to camp, a good deal awed; but they found there was
12695still something to be thankful for, because the great sycamore, the
12696shelter of their beds, was a ruin, now, blasted by the lightnings, and
12697they were not under it when the catastrophe happened.
12698
12699Everything in camp was drenched, the camp-fire as well; for they were
12700but heedless lads, like their generation, and had made no provision
12701against rain. Here was matter for dismay, for they were soaked through
12702and chilled. They were eloquent in their distress; but they presently
12703discovered that the fire had eaten so far up under the great log it had
12704been built against (where it curved upward and separated itself from
12705the ground), that a handbreadth or so of it had escaped wetting; so
12706they patiently wrought until, with shreds and bark gathered from the
12707under sides of sheltered logs, they coaxed the fire to burn again. Then
12708they piled on great dead boughs till they had a roaring furnace, and
12709were glad-hearted once more. They dried their boiled ham and had a
12710feast, and after that they sat by the fire and expanded and glorified
12711their midnight adventure until morning, for there was not a dry spot to
12712sleep on, anywhere around.
12713
12714As the sun began to steal in upon the boys, drowsiness came over them,
12715and they went out on the sandbar and lay down to sleep. They got
12716scorched out by and by, and drearily set about getting breakfast. After
12717the meal they felt rusty, and stiff-jointed, and a little homesick once
12718more. Tom saw the signs, and fell to cheering up the pirates as well as
12719he could. But they cared nothing for marbles, or circus, or swimming,
12720or anything. He reminded them of the imposing secret, and raised a ray
12721of cheer. While it lasted, he got them interested in a new device. This
12722was to knock off being pirates, for a while, and be Indians for a
12723change. They were attracted by this idea; so it was not long before
12724they were stripped, and striped from head to heel with black mud, like
12725so many zebras--all of them chiefs, of course--and then they went
12726tearing through the woods to attack an English settlement.
12727
12728By and by they separated into three hostile tribes, and darted upon
12729each other from ambush with dreadful war-whoops, and killed and scalped
12730each other by thousands. It was a gory day. Consequently it was an
12731extremely satisfactory one.
12732
12733They assembled in camp toward supper-time, hungry and happy; but now a
12734difficulty arose--hostile Indians could not break the bread of
12735hospitality together without first making peace, and this was a simple
12736impossibility without smoking a pipe of peace. There was no other
12737process that ever they had heard of. Two of the savages almost wished
12738they had remained pirates. However, there was no other way; so with
12739such show of cheerfulness as they could muster they called for the pipe
12740and took their whiff as it passed, in due form.
12741
12742And behold, they were glad they had gone into savagery, for they had
12743gained something; they found that they could now smoke a little without
12744having to go and hunt for a lost knife; they did not get sick enough to
12745be seriously uncomfortable. They were not likely to fool away this high
12746promise for lack of effort. No, they practised cautiously, after
12747supper, with right fair success, and so they spent a jubilant evening.
12748They were prouder and happier in their new acquirement than they would
12749have been in the scalping and skinning of the Six Nations. We will
12750leave them to smoke and chatter and brag, since we have no further use
12751for them at present.
12752
12753
12754
12755CHAPTER XVII
12756
12757BUT there was no hilarity in the little town that same tranquil
12758Saturday afternoon. The Harpers, and Aunt Polly's family, were being
12759put into mourning, with great grief and many tears. An unusual quiet
12760possessed the village, although it was ordinarily quiet enough, in all
12761conscience. The villagers conducted their concerns with an absent air,
12762and talked little; but they sighed often. The Saturday holiday seemed a
12763burden to the children. They had no heart in their sports, and
12764gradually gave them up.
12765
12766In the afternoon Becky Thatcher found herself moping about the
12767deserted schoolhouse yard, and feeling very melancholy. But she found
12768nothing there to comfort her. She soliloquized:
12769
12770"Oh, if I only had a brass andiron-knob again! But I haven't got
12771anything now to remember him by." And she choked back a little sob.
12772
12773Presently she stopped, and said to herself:
12774
12775"It was right here. Oh, if it was to do over again, I wouldn't say
12776that--I wouldn't say it for the whole world. But he's gone now; I'll
12777never, never, never see him any more."
12778
12779This thought broke her down, and she wandered away, with tears rolling
12780down her cheeks. Then quite a group of boys and girls--playmates of
12781Tom's and Joe's--came by, and stood looking over the paling fence and
12782talking in reverent tones of how Tom did so-and-so the last time they
12783saw him, and how Joe said this and that small trifle (pregnant with
12784awful prophecy, as they could easily see now!)--and each speaker
12785pointed out the exact spot where the lost lads stood at the time, and
12786then added something like "and I was a-standing just so--just as I am
12787now, and as if you was him--I was as close as that--and he smiled, just
12788this way--and then something seemed to go all over me, like--awful, you
12789know--and I never thought what it meant, of course, but I can see now!"
12790
12791Then there was a dispute about who saw the dead boys last in life, and
12792many claimed that dismal distinction, and offered evidences, more or
12793less tampered with by the witness; and when it was ultimately decided
12794who DID see the departed last, and exchanged the last words with them,
12795the lucky parties took upon themselves a sort of sacred importance, and
12796were gaped at and envied by all the rest. One poor chap, who had no
12797other grandeur to offer, said with tolerably manifest pride in the
12798remembrance:
12799
12800"Well, Tom Sawyer he licked me once."
12801
12802But that bid for glory was a failure. Most of the boys could say that,
12803and so that cheapened the distinction too much. The group loitered
12804away, still recalling memories of the lost heroes, in awed voices.
12805
12806When the Sunday-school hour was finished, the next morning, the bell
12807began to toll, instead of ringing in the usual way. It was a very still
12808Sabbath, and the mournful sound seemed in keeping with the musing hush
12809that lay upon nature. The villagers began to gather, loitering a moment
12810in the vestibule to converse in whispers about the sad event. But there
12811was no whispering in the house; only the funereal rustling of dresses
12812as the women gathered to their seats disturbed the silence there. None
12813could remember when the little church had been so full before. There
12814was finally a waiting pause, an expectant dumbness, and then Aunt Polly
12815entered, followed by Sid and Mary, and they by the Harper family, all
12816in deep black, and the whole congregation, the old minister as well,
12817rose reverently and stood until the mourners were seated in the front
12818pew. There was another communing silence, broken at intervals by
12819muffled sobs, and then the minister spread his hands abroad and prayed.
12820A moving hymn was sung, and the text followed: "I am the Resurrection
12821and the Life."
12822
12823As the service proceeded, the clergyman drew such pictures of the
12824graces, the winning ways, and the rare promise of the lost lads that
12825every soul there, thinking he recognized these pictures, felt a pang in
12826remembering that he had persistently blinded himself to them always
12827before, and had as persistently seen only faults and flaws in the poor
12828boys. The minister related many a touching incident in the lives of the
12829departed, too, which illustrated their sweet, generous natures, and the
12830people could easily see, now, how noble and beautiful those episodes
12831were, and remembered with grief that at the time they occurred they had
12832seemed rank rascalities, well deserving of the cowhide. The
12833congregation became more and more moved, as the pathetic tale went on,
12834till at last the whole company broke down and joined the weeping
12835mourners in a chorus of anguished sobs, the preacher himself giving way
12836to his feelings, and crying in the pulpit.
12837
12838There was a rustle in the gallery, which nobody noticed; a moment
12839later the church door creaked; the minister raised his streaming eyes
12840above his handkerchief, and stood transfixed! First one and then
12841another pair of eyes followed the minister's, and then almost with one
12842impulse the congregation rose and stared while the three dead boys came
12843marching up the aisle, Tom in the lead, Joe next, and Huck, a ruin of
12844drooping rags, sneaking sheepishly in the rear! They had been hid in
12845the unused gallery listening to their own funeral sermon!
12846
12847Aunt Polly, Mary, and the Harpers threw themselves upon their restored
12848ones, smothered them with kisses and poured out thanksgivings, while
12849poor Huck stood abashed and uncomfortable, not knowing exactly what to
12850do or where to hide from so many unwelcoming eyes. He wavered, and
12851started to slink away, but Tom seized him and said:
12852
12853"Aunt Polly, it ain't fair. Somebody's got to be glad to see Huck."
12854
12855"And so they shall. I'm glad to see him, poor motherless thing!" And
12856the loving attentions Aunt Polly lavished upon him were the one thing
12857capable of making him more uncomfortable than he was before.
12858
12859Suddenly the minister shouted at the top of his voice: "Praise God
12860from whom all blessings flow--SING!--and put your hearts in it!"
12861
12862And they did. Old Hundred swelled up with a triumphant burst, and
12863while it shook the rafters Tom Sawyer the Pirate looked around upon the
12864envying juveniles about him and confessed in his heart that this was
12865the proudest moment of his life.
12866
12867As the "sold" congregation trooped out they said they would almost be
12868willing to be made ridiculous again to hear Old Hundred sung like that
12869once more.
12870
12871Tom got more cuffs and kisses that day--according to Aunt Polly's
12872varying moods--than he had earned before in a year; and he hardly knew
12873which expressed the most gratefulness to God and affection for himself.
12874
12875
12876
12877CHAPTER XVIII
12878
12879THAT was Tom's great secret--the scheme to return home with his
12880brother pirates and attend their own funerals. They had paddled over to
12881the Missouri shore on a log, at dusk on Saturday, landing five or six
12882miles below the village; they had slept in the woods at the edge of the
12883town till nearly daylight, and had then crept through back lanes and
12884alleys and finished their sleep in the gallery of the church among a
12885chaos of invalided benches.
12886
12887At breakfast, Monday morning, Aunt Polly and Mary were very loving to
12888Tom, and very attentive to his wants. There was an unusual amount of
12889talk. In the course of it Aunt Polly said:
12890
12891"Well, I don't say it wasn't a fine joke, Tom, to keep everybody
12892suffering 'most a week so you boys had a good time, but it is a pity
12893you could be so hard-hearted as to let me suffer so. If you could come
12894over on a log to go to your funeral, you could have come over and give
12895me a hint some way that you warn't dead, but only run off."
12896
12897"Yes, you could have done that, Tom," said Mary; "and I believe you
12898would if you had thought of it."
12899
12900"Would you, Tom?" said Aunt Polly, her face lighting wistfully. "Say,
12901now, would you, if you'd thought of it?"
12902
12903"I--well, I don't know. 'Twould 'a' spoiled everything."
12904
12905"Tom, I hoped you loved me that much," said Aunt Polly, with a grieved
12906tone that discomforted the boy. "It would have been something if you'd
12907cared enough to THINK of it, even if you didn't DO it."
12908
12909"Now, auntie, that ain't any harm," pleaded Mary; "it's only Tom's
12910giddy way--he is always in such a rush that he never thinks of
12911anything."
12912
12913"More's the pity. Sid would have thought. And Sid would have come and
12914DONE it, too. Tom, you'll look back, some day, when it's too late, and
12915wish you'd cared a little more for me when it would have cost you so
12916little."
12917
12918"Now, auntie, you know I do care for you," said Tom.
12919
12920"I'd know it better if you acted more like it."
12921
12922"I wish now I'd thought," said Tom, with a repentant tone; "but I
12923dreamt about you, anyway. That's something, ain't it?"
12924
12925"It ain't much--a cat does that much--but it's better than nothing.
12926What did you dream?"
12927
12928"Why, Wednesday night I dreamt that you was sitting over there by the
12929bed, and Sid was sitting by the woodbox, and Mary next to him."
12930
12931"Well, so we did. So we always do. I'm glad your dreams could take
12932even that much trouble about us."
12933
12934"And I dreamt that Joe Harper's mother was here."
12935
12936"Why, she was here! Did you dream any more?"
12937
12938"Oh, lots. But it's so dim, now."
12939
12940"Well, try to recollect--can't you?"
12941
12942"Somehow it seems to me that the wind--the wind blowed the--the--"
12943
12944"Try harder, Tom! The wind did blow something. Come!"
12945
12946Tom pressed his fingers on his forehead an anxious minute, and then
12947said:
12948
12949"I've got it now! I've got it now! It blowed the candle!"
12950
12951"Mercy on us! Go on, Tom--go on!"
12952
12953"And it seems to me that you said, 'Why, I believe that that door--'"
12954
12955"Go ON, Tom!"
12956
12957"Just let me study a moment--just a moment. Oh, yes--you said you
12958believed the door was open."
12959
12960"As I'm sitting here, I did! Didn't I, Mary! Go on!"
12961
12962"And then--and then--well I won't be certain, but it seems like as if
12963you made Sid go and--and--"
12964
12965"Well? Well? What did I make him do, Tom? What did I make him do?"
12966
12967"You made him--you--Oh, you made him shut it."
12968
12969"Well, for the land's sake! I never heard the beat of that in all my
12970days! Don't tell ME there ain't anything in dreams, any more. Sereny
12971Harper shall know of this before I'm an hour older. I'd like to see her
12972get around THIS with her rubbage 'bout superstition. Go on, Tom!"
12973
12974"Oh, it's all getting just as bright as day, now. Next you said I
12975warn't BAD, only mischeevous and harum-scarum, and not any more
12976responsible than--than--I think it was a colt, or something."
12977
12978"And so it was! Well, goodness gracious! Go on, Tom!"
12979
12980"And then you began to cry."
12981
12982"So I did. So I did. Not the first time, neither. And then--"
12983
12984"Then Mrs. Harper she began to cry, and said Joe was just the same,
12985and she wished she hadn't whipped him for taking cream when she'd
12986throwed it out her own self--"
12987
12988"Tom! The sperrit was upon you! You was a prophesying--that's what you
12989was doing! Land alive, go on, Tom!"
12990
12991"Then Sid he said--he said--"
12992
12993"I don't think I said anything," said Sid.
12994
12995"Yes you did, Sid," said Mary.
12996
12997"Shut your heads and let Tom go on! What did he say, Tom?"
12998
12999"He said--I THINK he said he hoped I was better off where I was gone
13000to, but if I'd been better sometimes--"
13001
13002"THERE, d'you hear that! It was his very words!"
13003
13004"And you shut him up sharp."
13005
13006"I lay I did! There must 'a' been an angel there. There WAS an angel
13007there, somewheres!"
13008
13009"And Mrs. Harper told about Joe scaring her with a firecracker, and
13010you told about Peter and the Painkiller--"
13011
13012"Just as true as I live!"
13013
13014"And then there was a whole lot of talk 'bout dragging the river for
13015us, and 'bout having the funeral Sunday, and then you and old Miss
13016Harper hugged and cried, and she went."
13017
13018"It happened just so! It happened just so, as sure as I'm a-sitting in
13019these very tracks. Tom, you couldn't told it more like if you'd 'a'
13020seen it! And then what? Go on, Tom!"
13021
13022"Then I thought you prayed for me--and I could see you and hear every
13023word you said. And you went to bed, and I was so sorry that I took and
13024wrote on a piece of sycamore bark, 'We ain't dead--we are only off
13025being pirates,' and put it on the table by the candle; and then you
13026looked so good, laying there asleep, that I thought I went and leaned
13027over and kissed you on the lips."
13028
13029"Did you, Tom, DID you! I just forgive you everything for that!" And
13030she seized the boy in a crushing embrace that made him feel like the
13031guiltiest of villains.
13032
13033"It was very kind, even though it was only a--dream," Sid soliloquized
13034just audibly.
13035
13036"Shut up, Sid! A body does just the same in a dream as he'd do if he
13037was awake. Here's a big Milum apple I've been saving for you, Tom, if
13038you was ever found again--now go 'long to school. I'm thankful to the
13039good God and Father of us all I've got you back, that's long-suffering
13040and merciful to them that believe on Him and keep His word, though
13041goodness knows I'm unworthy of it, but if only the worthy ones got His
13042blessings and had His hand to help them over the rough places, there's
13043few enough would smile here or ever enter into His rest when the long
13044night comes. Go 'long Sid, Mary, Tom--take yourselves off--you've
13045hendered me long enough."
13046
13047The children left for school, and the old lady to call on Mrs. Harper
13048and vanquish her realism with Tom's marvellous dream. Sid had better
13049judgment than to utter the thought that was in his mind as he left the
13050house. It was this: "Pretty thin--as long a dream as that, without any
13051mistakes in it!"
13052
13053What a hero Tom was become, now! He did not go skipping and prancing,
13054but moved with a dignified swagger as became a pirate who felt that the
13055public eye was on him. And indeed it was; he tried not to seem to see
13056the looks or hear the remarks as he passed along, but they were food
13057and drink to him. Smaller boys than himself flocked at his heels, as
13058proud to be seen with him, and tolerated by him, as if he had been the
13059drummer at the head of a procession or the elephant leading a menagerie
13060into town. Boys of his own size pretended not to know he had been away
13061at all; but they were consuming with envy, nevertheless. They would
13062have given anything to have that swarthy suntanned skin of his, and his
13063glittering notoriety; and Tom would not have parted with either for a
13064circus.
13065
13066At school the children made so much of him and of Joe, and delivered
13067such eloquent admiration from their eyes, that the two heroes were not
13068long in becoming insufferably "stuck-up." They began to tell their
13069adventures to hungry listeners--but they only began; it was not a thing
13070likely to have an end, with imaginations like theirs to furnish
13071material. And finally, when they got out their pipes and went serenely
13072puffing around, the very summit of glory was reached.
13073
13074Tom decided that he could be independent of Becky Thatcher now. Glory
13075was sufficient. He would live for glory. Now that he was distinguished,
13076maybe she would be wanting to "make up." Well, let her--she should see
13077that he could be as indifferent as some other people. Presently she
13078arrived. Tom pretended not to see her. He moved away and joined a group
13079of boys and girls and began to talk. Soon he observed that she was
13080tripping gayly back and forth with flushed face and dancing eyes,
13081pretending to be busy chasing schoolmates, and screaming with laughter
13082when she made a capture; but he noticed that she always made her
13083captures in his vicinity, and that she seemed to cast a conscious eye
13084in his direction at such times, too. It gratified all the vicious
13085vanity that was in him; and so, instead of winning him, it only "set
13086him up" the more and made him the more diligent to avoid betraying that
13087he knew she was about. Presently she gave over skylarking, and moved
13088irresolutely about, sighing once or twice and glancing furtively and
13089wistfully toward Tom. Then she observed that now Tom was talking more
13090particularly to Amy Lawrence than to any one else. She felt a sharp
13091pang and grew disturbed and uneasy at once. She tried to go away, but
13092her feet were treacherous, and carried her to the group instead. She
13093said to a girl almost at Tom's elbow--with sham vivacity:
13094
13095"Why, Mary Austin! you bad girl, why didn't you come to Sunday-school?"
13096
13097"I did come--didn't you see me?"
13098
13099"Why, no! Did you? Where did you sit?"
13100
13101"I was in Miss Peters' class, where I always go. I saw YOU."
13102
13103"Did you? Why, it's funny I didn't see you. I wanted to tell you about
13104the picnic."
13105
13106"Oh, that's jolly. Who's going to give it?"
13107
13108"My ma's going to let me have one."
13109
13110"Oh, goody; I hope she'll let ME come."
13111
13112"Well, she will. The picnic's for me. She'll let anybody come that I
13113want, and I want you."
13114
13115"That's ever so nice. When is it going to be?"
13116
13117"By and by. Maybe about vacation."
13118
13119"Oh, won't it be fun! You going to have all the girls and boys?"
13120
13121"Yes, every one that's friends to me--or wants to be"; and she glanced
13122ever so furtively at Tom, but he talked right along to Amy Lawrence
13123about the terrible storm on the island, and how the lightning tore the
13124great sycamore tree "all to flinders" while he was "standing within
13125three feet of it."
13126
13127"Oh, may I come?" said Grace Miller.
13128
13129"Yes."
13130
13131"And me?" said Sally Rogers.
13132
13133"Yes."
13134
13135"And me, too?" said Susy Harper. "And Joe?"
13136
13137"Yes."
13138
13139And so on, with clapping of joyful hands till all the group had begged
13140for invitations but Tom and Amy. Then Tom turned coolly away, still
13141talking, and took Amy with him. Becky's lips trembled and the tears
13142came to her eyes; she hid these signs with a forced gayety and went on
13143chattering, but the life had gone out of the picnic, now, and out of
13144everything else; she got away as soon as she could and hid herself and
13145had what her sex call "a good cry." Then she sat moody, with wounded
13146pride, till the bell rang. She roused up, now, with a vindictive cast
13147in her eye, and gave her plaited tails a shake and said she knew what
13148SHE'D do.
13149
13150At recess Tom continued his flirtation with Amy with jubilant
13151self-satisfaction. And he kept drifting about to find Becky and lacerate
13152her with the performance. At last he spied her, but there was a sudden
13153falling of his mercury. She was sitting cosily on a little bench behind
13154the schoolhouse looking at a picture-book with Alfred Temple--and so
13155absorbed were they, and their heads so close together over the book,
13156that they did not seem to be conscious of anything in the world besides.
13157Jealousy ran red-hot through Tom's veins. He began to hate himself for
13158throwing away the chance Becky had offered for a reconciliation. He
13159called himself a fool, and all the hard names he could think of. He
13160wanted to cry with vexation. Amy chatted happily along, as they walked,
13161for her heart was singing, but Tom's tongue had lost its function. He
13162did not hear what Amy was saying, and whenever she paused expectantly he
13163could only stammer an awkward assent, which was as often misplaced as
13164otherwise. He kept drifting to the rear of the schoolhouse, again and
13165again, to sear his eyeballs with the hateful spectacle there. He could
13166not help it. And it maddened him to see, as he thought he saw, that
13167Becky Thatcher never once suspected that he was even in the land of the
13168living. But she did see, nevertheless; and she knew she was winning her
13169fight, too, and was glad to see him suffer as she had suffered.
13170
13171Amy's happy prattle became intolerable. Tom hinted at things he had to
13172attend to; things that must be done; and time was fleeting. But in
13173vain--the girl chirped on. Tom thought, "Oh, hang her, ain't I ever
13174going to get rid of her?" At last he must be attending to those
13175things--and she said artlessly that she would be "around" when school
13176let out. And he hastened away, hating her for it.
13177
13178"Any other boy!" Tom thought, grating his teeth. "Any boy in the whole
13179town but that Saint Louis smarty that thinks he dresses so fine and is
13180aristocracy! Oh, all right, I licked you the first day you ever saw
13181this town, mister, and I'll lick you again! You just wait till I catch
13182you out! I'll just take and--"
13183
13184And he went through the motions of thrashing an imaginary boy
13185--pummelling the air, and kicking and gouging. "Oh, you do, do you? You
13186holler 'nough, do you? Now, then, let that learn you!" And so the
13187imaginary flogging was finished to his satisfaction.
13188
13189Tom fled home at noon. His conscience could not endure any more of
13190Amy's grateful happiness, and his jealousy could bear no more of the
13191other distress. Becky resumed her picture inspections with Alfred, but
13192as the minutes dragged along and no Tom came to suffer, her triumph
13193began to cloud and she lost interest; gravity and absent-mindedness
13194followed, and then melancholy; two or three times she pricked up her
13195ear at a footstep, but it was a false hope; no Tom came. At last she
13196grew entirely miserable and wished she hadn't carried it so far. When
13197poor Alfred, seeing that he was losing her, he did not know how, kept
13198exclaiming: "Oh, here's a jolly one! look at this!" she lost patience
13199at last, and said, "Oh, don't bother me! I don't care for them!" and
13200burst into tears, and got up and walked away.
13201
13202Alfred dropped alongside and was going to try to comfort her, but she
13203said:
13204
13205"Go away and leave me alone, can't you! I hate you!"
13206
13207So the boy halted, wondering what he could have done--for she had said
13208she would look at pictures all through the nooning--and she walked on,
13209crying. Then Alfred went musing into the deserted schoolhouse. He was
13210humiliated and angry. He easily guessed his way to the truth--the girl
13211had simply made a convenience of him to vent her spite upon Tom Sawyer.
13212He was far from hating Tom the less when this thought occurred to him.
13213He wished there was some way to get that boy into trouble without much
13214risk to himself. Tom's spelling-book fell under his eye. Here was his
13215opportunity. He gratefully opened to the lesson for the afternoon and
13216poured ink upon the page.
13217
13218Becky, glancing in at a window behind him at the moment, saw the act,
13219and moved on, without discovering herself. She started homeward, now,
13220intending to find Tom and tell him; Tom would be thankful and their
13221troubles would be healed. Before she was half way home, however, she
13222had changed her mind. The thought of Tom's treatment of her when she
13223was talking about her picnic came scorching back and filled her with
13224shame. She resolved to let him get whipped on the damaged
13225spelling-book's account, and to hate him forever, into the bargain.
13226
13227
13228
13229CHAPTER XIX
13230
13231TOM arrived at home in a dreary mood, and the first thing his aunt
13232said to him showed him that he had brought his sorrows to an
13233unpromising market:
13234
13235"Tom, I've a notion to skin you alive!"
13236
13237"Auntie, what have I done?"
13238
13239"Well, you've done enough. Here I go over to Sereny Harper, like an
13240old softy, expecting I'm going to make her believe all that rubbage
13241about that dream, when lo and behold you she'd found out from Joe that
13242you was over here and heard all the talk we had that night. Tom, I
13243don't know what is to become of a boy that will act like that. It makes
13244me feel so bad to think you could let me go to Sereny Harper and make
13245such a fool of myself and never say a word."
13246
13247This was a new aspect of the thing. His smartness of the morning had
13248seemed to Tom a good joke before, and very ingenious. It merely looked
13249mean and shabby now. He hung his head and could not think of anything
13250to say for a moment. Then he said:
13251
13252"Auntie, I wish I hadn't done it--but I didn't think."
13253
13254"Oh, child, you never think. You never think of anything but your own
13255selfishness. You could think to come all the way over here from
13256Jackson's Island in the night to laugh at our troubles, and you could
13257think to fool me with a lie about a dream; but you couldn't ever think
13258to pity us and save us from sorrow."
13259
13260"Auntie, I know now it was mean, but I didn't mean to be mean. I
13261didn't, honest. And besides, I didn't come over here to laugh at you
13262that night."
13263
13264"What did you come for, then?"
13265
13266"It was to tell you not to be uneasy about us, because we hadn't got
13267drownded."
13268
13269"Tom, Tom, I would be the thankfullest soul in this world if I could
13270believe you ever had as good a thought as that, but you know you never
13271did--and I know it, Tom."
13272
13273"Indeed and 'deed I did, auntie--I wish I may never stir if I didn't."
13274
13275"Oh, Tom, don't lie--don't do it. It only makes things a hundred times
13276worse."
13277
13278"It ain't a lie, auntie; it's the truth. I wanted to keep you from
13279grieving--that was all that made me come."
13280
13281"I'd give the whole world to believe that--it would cover up a power
13282of sins, Tom. I'd 'most be glad you'd run off and acted so bad. But it
13283ain't reasonable; because, why didn't you tell me, child?"
13284
13285"Why, you see, when you got to talking about the funeral, I just got
13286all full of the idea of our coming and hiding in the church, and I
13287couldn't somehow bear to spoil it. So I just put the bark back in my
13288pocket and kept mum."
13289
13290"What bark?"
13291
13292"The bark I had wrote on to tell you we'd gone pirating. I wish, now,
13293you'd waked up when I kissed you--I do, honest."
13294
13295The hard lines in his aunt's face relaxed and a sudden tenderness
13296dawned in her eyes.
13297
13298"DID you kiss me, Tom?"
13299
13300"Why, yes, I did."
13301
13302"Are you sure you did, Tom?"
13303
13304"Why, yes, I did, auntie--certain sure."
13305
13306"What did you kiss me for, Tom?"
13307
13308"Because I loved you so, and you laid there moaning and I was so sorry."
13309
13310The words sounded like truth. The old lady could not hide a tremor in
13311her voice when she said:
13312
13313"Kiss me again, Tom!--and be off with you to school, now, and don't
13314bother me any more."
13315
13316The moment he was gone, she ran to a closet and got out the ruin of a
13317jacket which Tom had gone pirating in. Then she stopped, with it in her
13318hand, and said to herself:
13319
13320"No, I don't dare. Poor boy, I reckon he's lied about it--but it's a
13321blessed, blessed lie, there's such a comfort come from it. I hope the
13322Lord--I KNOW the Lord will forgive him, because it was such
13323goodheartedness in him to tell it. But I don't want to find out it's a
13324lie. I won't look."
13325
13326She put the jacket away, and stood by musing a minute. Twice she put
13327out her hand to take the garment again, and twice she refrained. Once
13328more she ventured, and this time she fortified herself with the
13329thought: "It's a good lie--it's a good lie--I won't let it grieve me."
13330So she sought the jacket pocket. A moment later she was reading Tom's
13331piece of bark through flowing tears and saying: "I could forgive the
13332boy, now, if he'd committed a million sins!"
13333
13334
13335
13336CHAPTER XX
13337
13338THERE was something about Aunt Polly's manner, when she kissed Tom,
13339that swept away his low spirits and made him lighthearted and happy
13340again. He started to school and had the luck of coming upon Becky
13341Thatcher at the head of Meadow Lane. His mood always determined his
13342manner. Without a moment's hesitation he ran to her and said:
13343
13344"I acted mighty mean to-day, Becky, and I'm so sorry. I won't ever,
13345ever do that way again, as long as ever I live--please make up, won't
13346you?"
13347
13348The girl stopped and looked him scornfully in the face:
13349
13350"I'll thank you to keep yourself TO yourself, Mr. Thomas Sawyer. I'll
13351never speak to you again."
13352
13353She tossed her head and passed on. Tom was so stunned that he had not
13354even presence of mind enough to say "Who cares, Miss Smarty?" until the
13355right time to say it had gone by. So he said nothing. But he was in a
13356fine rage, nevertheless. He moped into the schoolyard wishing she were
13357a boy, and imagining how he would trounce her if she were. He presently
13358encountered her and delivered a stinging remark as he passed. She
13359hurled one in return, and the angry breach was complete. It seemed to
13360Becky, in her hot resentment, that she could hardly wait for school to
13361"take in," she was so impatient to see Tom flogged for the injured
13362spelling-book. If she had had any lingering notion of exposing Alfred
13363Temple, Tom's offensive fling had driven it entirely away.
13364
13365Poor girl, she did not know how fast she was nearing trouble herself.
13366The master, Mr. Dobbins, had reached middle age with an unsatisfied
13367ambition. The darling of his desires was, to be a doctor, but poverty
13368had decreed that he should be nothing higher than a village
13369schoolmaster. Every day he took a mysterious book out of his desk and
13370absorbed himself in it at times when no classes were reciting. He kept
13371that book under lock and key. There was not an urchin in school but was
13372perishing to have a glimpse of it, but the chance never came. Every boy
13373and girl had a theory about the nature of that book; but no two
13374theories were alike, and there was no way of getting at the facts in
13375the case. Now, as Becky was passing by the desk, which stood near the
13376door, she noticed that the key was in the lock! It was a precious
13377moment. She glanced around; found herself alone, and the next instant
13378she had the book in her hands. The title-page--Professor Somebody's
13379ANATOMY--carried no information to her mind; so she began to turn the
13380leaves. She came at once upon a handsomely engraved and colored
13381frontispiece--a human figure, stark naked. At that moment a shadow fell
13382on the page and Tom Sawyer stepped in at the door and caught a glimpse
13383of the picture. Becky snatched at the book to close it, and had the
13384hard luck to tear the pictured page half down the middle. She thrust
13385the volume into the desk, turned the key, and burst out crying with
13386shame and vexation.
13387
13388"Tom Sawyer, you are just as mean as you can be, to sneak up on a
13389person and look at what they're looking at."
13390
13391"How could I know you was looking at anything?"
13392
13393"You ought to be ashamed of yourself, Tom Sawyer; you know you're
13394going to tell on me, and oh, what shall I do, what shall I do! I'll be
13395whipped, and I never was whipped in school."
13396
13397Then she stamped her little foot and said:
13398
13399"BE so mean if you want to! I know something that's going to happen.
13400You just wait and you'll see! Hateful, hateful, hateful!"--and she
13401flung out of the house with a new explosion of crying.
13402
13403Tom stood still, rather flustered by this onslaught. Presently he said
13404to himself:
13405
13406"What a curious kind of a fool a girl is! Never been licked in school!
13407Shucks! What's a licking! That's just like a girl--they're so
13408thin-skinned and chicken-hearted. Well, of course I ain't going to tell
13409old Dobbins on this little fool, because there's other ways of getting
13410even on her, that ain't so mean; but what of it? Old Dobbins will ask
13411who it was tore his book. Nobody'll answer. Then he'll do just the way
13412he always does--ask first one and then t'other, and when he comes to the
13413right girl he'll know it, without any telling. Girls' faces always tell
13414on them. They ain't got any backbone. She'll get licked. Well, it's a
13415kind of a tight place for Becky Thatcher, because there ain't any way
13416out of it." Tom conned the thing a moment longer, and then added: "All
13417right, though; she'd like to see me in just such a fix--let her sweat it
13418out!"
13419
13420Tom joined the mob of skylarking scholars outside. In a few moments
13421the master arrived and school "took in." Tom did not feel a strong
13422interest in his studies. Every time he stole a glance at the girls'
13423side of the room Becky's face troubled him. Considering all things, he
13424did not want to pity her, and yet it was all he could do to help it. He
13425could get up no exultation that was really worthy the name. Presently
13426the spelling-book discovery was made, and Tom's mind was entirely full
13427of his own matters for a while after that. Becky roused up from her
13428lethargy of distress and showed good interest in the proceedings. She
13429did not expect that Tom could get out of his trouble by denying that he
13430spilt the ink on the book himself; and she was right. The denial only
13431seemed to make the thing worse for Tom. Becky supposed she would be
13432glad of that, and she tried to believe she was glad of it, but she
13433found she was not certain. When the worst came to the worst, she had an
13434impulse to get up and tell on Alfred Temple, but she made an effort and
13435forced herself to keep still--because, said she to herself, "he'll tell
13436about me tearing the picture sure. I wouldn't say a word, not to save
13437his life!"
13438
13439Tom took his whipping and went back to his seat not at all
13440broken-hearted, for he thought it was possible that he had unknowingly
13441upset the ink on the spelling-book himself, in some skylarking bout--he
13442had denied it for form's sake and because it was custom, and had stuck
13443to the denial from principle.
13444
13445A whole hour drifted by, the master sat nodding in his throne, the air
13446was drowsy with the hum of study. By and by, Mr. Dobbins straightened
13447himself up, yawned, then unlocked his desk, and reached for his book,
13448but seemed undecided whether to take it out or leave it. Most of the
13449pupils glanced up languidly, but there were two among them that watched
13450his movements with intent eyes. Mr. Dobbins fingered his book absently
13451for a while, then took it out and settled himself in his chair to read!
13452Tom shot a glance at Becky. He had seen a hunted and helpless rabbit
13453look as she did, with a gun levelled at its head. Instantly he forgot
13454his quarrel with her. Quick--something must be done! done in a flash,
13455too! But the very imminence of the emergency paralyzed his invention.
13456Good!--he had an inspiration! He would run and snatch the book, spring
13457through the door and fly. But his resolution shook for one little
13458instant, and the chance was lost--the master opened the volume. If Tom
13459only had the wasted opportunity back again! Too late. There was no help
13460for Becky now, he said. The next moment the master faced the school.
13461Every eye sank under his gaze. There was that in it which smote even
13462the innocent with fear. There was silence while one might count ten
13463--the master was gathering his wrath. Then he spoke: "Who tore this book?"
13464
13465There was not a sound. One could have heard a pin drop. The stillness
13466continued; the master searched face after face for signs of guilt.
13467
13468"Benjamin Rogers, did you tear this book?"
13469
13470A denial. Another pause.
13471
13472"Joseph Harper, did you?"
13473
13474Another denial. Tom's uneasiness grew more and more intense under the
13475slow torture of these proceedings. The master scanned the ranks of
13476boys--considered a while, then turned to the girls:
13477
13478"Amy Lawrence?"
13479
13480A shake of the head.
13481
13482"Gracie Miller?"
13483
13484The same sign.
13485
13486"Susan Harper, did you do this?"
13487
13488Another negative. The next girl was Becky Thatcher. Tom was trembling
13489from head to foot with excitement and a sense of the hopelessness of
13490the situation.
13491
13492"Rebecca Thatcher" [Tom glanced at her face--it was white with terror]
13493--"did you tear--no, look me in the face" [her hands rose in appeal]
13494--"did you tear this book?"
13495
13496A thought shot like lightning through Tom's brain. He sprang to his
13497feet and shouted--"I done it!"
13498
13499The school stared in perplexity at this incredible folly. Tom stood a
13500moment, to gather his dismembered faculties; and when he stepped
13501forward to go to his punishment the surprise, the gratitude, the
13502adoration that shone upon him out of poor Becky's eyes seemed pay
13503enough for a hundred floggings. Inspired by the splendor of his own
13504act, he took without an outcry the most merciless flaying that even Mr.
13505Dobbins had ever administered; and also received with indifference the
13506added cruelty of a command to remain two hours after school should be
13507dismissed--for he knew who would wait for him outside till his
13508captivity was done, and not count the tedious time as loss, either.
13509
13510Tom went to bed that night planning vengeance against Alfred Temple;
13511for with shame and repentance Becky had told him all, not forgetting
13512her own treachery; but even the longing for vengeance had to give way,
13513soon, to pleasanter musings, and he fell asleep at last with Becky's
13514latest words lingering dreamily in his ear--
13515
13516"Tom, how COULD you be so noble!"
13517
13518
13519
13520CHAPTER XXI
13521
13522VACATION was approaching. The schoolmaster, always severe, grew
13523severer and more exacting than ever, for he wanted the school to make a
13524good showing on "Examination" day. His rod and his ferule were seldom
13525idle now--at least among the smaller pupils. Only the biggest boys, and
13526young ladies of eighteen and twenty, escaped lashing. Mr. Dobbins'
13527lashings were very vigorous ones, too; for although he carried, under
13528his wig, a perfectly bald and shiny head, he had only reached middle
13529age, and there was no sign of feebleness in his muscle. As the great
13530day approached, all the tyranny that was in him came to the surface; he
13531seemed to take a vindictive pleasure in punishing the least
13532shortcomings. The consequence was, that the smaller boys spent their
13533days in terror and suffering and their nights in plotting revenge. They
13534threw away no opportunity to do the master a mischief. But he kept
13535ahead all the time. The retribution that followed every vengeful
13536success was so sweeping and majestic that the boys always retired from
13537the field badly worsted. At last they conspired together and hit upon a
13538plan that promised a dazzling victory. They swore in the sign-painter's
13539boy, told him the scheme, and asked his help. He had his own reasons
13540for being delighted, for the master boarded in his father's family and
13541had given the boy ample cause to hate him. The master's wife would go
13542on a visit to the country in a few days, and there would be nothing to
13543interfere with the plan; the master always prepared himself for great
13544occasions by getting pretty well fuddled, and the sign-painter's boy
13545said that when the dominie had reached the proper condition on
13546Examination Evening he would "manage the thing" while he napped in his
13547chair; then he would have him awakened at the right time and hurried
13548away to school.
13549
13550In the fulness of time the interesting occasion arrived. At eight in
13551the evening the schoolhouse was brilliantly lighted, and adorned with
13552wreaths and festoons of foliage and flowers. The master sat throned in
13553his great chair upon a raised platform, with his blackboard behind him.
13554He was looking tolerably mellow. Three rows of benches on each side and
13555six rows in front of him were occupied by the dignitaries of the town
13556and by the parents of the pupils. To his left, back of the rows of
13557citizens, was a spacious temporary platform upon which were seated the
13558scholars who were to take part in the exercises of the evening; rows of
13559small boys, washed and dressed to an intolerable state of discomfort;
13560rows of gawky big boys; snowbanks of girls and young ladies clad in
13561lawn and muslin and conspicuously conscious of their bare arms, their
13562grandmothers' ancient trinkets, their bits of pink and blue ribbon and
13563the flowers in their hair. All the rest of the house was filled with
13564non-participating scholars.
13565
13566The exercises began. A very little boy stood up and sheepishly
13567recited, "You'd scarce expect one of my age to speak in public on the
13568stage," etc.--accompanying himself with the painfully exact and
13569spasmodic gestures which a machine might have used--supposing the
13570machine to be a trifle out of order. But he got through safely, though
13571cruelly scared, and got a fine round of applause when he made his
13572manufactured bow and retired.
13573
13574A little shamefaced girl lisped, "Mary had a little lamb," etc.,
13575performed a compassion-inspiring curtsy, got her meed of applause, and
13576sat down flushed and happy.
13577
13578Tom Sawyer stepped forward with conceited confidence and soared into
13579the unquenchable and indestructible "Give me liberty or give me death"
13580speech, with fine fury and frantic gesticulation, and broke down in the
13581middle of it. A ghastly stage-fright seized him, his legs quaked under
13582him and he was like to choke. True, he had the manifest sympathy of the
13583house but he had the house's silence, too, which was even worse than
13584its sympathy. The master frowned, and this completed the disaster. Tom
13585struggled awhile and then retired, utterly defeated. There was a weak
13586attempt at applause, but it died early.
13587
13588"The Boy Stood on the Burning Deck" followed; also "The Assyrian Came
13589Down," and other declamatory gems. Then there were reading exercises,
13590and a spelling fight. The meagre Latin class recited with honor. The
13591prime feature of the evening was in order, now--original "compositions"
13592by the young ladies. Each in her turn stepped forward to the edge of
13593the platform, cleared her throat, held up her manuscript (tied with
13594dainty ribbon), and proceeded to read, with labored attention to
13595"expression" and punctuation. The themes were the same that had been
13596illuminated upon similar occasions by their mothers before them, their
13597grandmothers, and doubtless all their ancestors in the female line
13598clear back to the Crusades. "Friendship" was one; "Memories of Other
13599Days"; "Religion in History"; "Dream Land"; "The Advantages of
13600Culture"; "Forms of Political Government Compared and Contrasted";
13601"Melancholy"; "Filial Love"; "Heart Longings," etc., etc.
13602
13603A prevalent feature in these compositions was a nursed and petted
13604melancholy; another was a wasteful and opulent gush of "fine language";
13605another was a tendency to lug in by the ears particularly prized words
13606and phrases until they were worn entirely out; and a peculiarity that
13607conspicuously marked and marred them was the inveterate and intolerable
13608sermon that wagged its crippled tail at the end of each and every one
13609of them. No matter what the subject might be, a brain-racking effort
13610was made to squirm it into some aspect or other that the moral and
13611religious mind could contemplate with edification. The glaring
13612insincerity of these sermons was not sufficient to compass the
13613banishment of the fashion from the schools, and it is not sufficient
13614to-day; it never will be sufficient while the world stands, perhaps.
13615There is no school in all our land where the young ladies do not feel
13616obliged to close their compositions with a sermon; and you will find
13617that the sermon of the most frivolous and the least religious girl in
13618the school is always the longest and the most relentlessly pious. But
13619enough of this. Homely truth is unpalatable.
13620
13621Let us return to the "Examination." The first composition that was
13622read was one entitled "Is this, then, Life?" Perhaps the reader can
13623endure an extract from it:
13624
13625  "In the common walks of life, with what delightful
13626   emotions does the youthful mind look forward to some
13627   anticipated scene of festivity! Imagination is busy
13628   sketching rose-tinted pictures of joy. In fancy, the
13629   voluptuous votary of fashion sees herself amid the
13630   festive throng, 'the observed of all observers.' Her
13631   graceful form, arrayed in snowy robes, is whirling
13632   through the mazes of the joyous dance; her eye is
13633   brightest, her step is lightest in the gay assembly.
13634
13635  "In such delicious fancies time quickly glides by,
13636   and the welcome hour arrives for her entrance into
13637   the Elysian world, of which she has had such bright
13638   dreams. How fairy-like does everything appear to
13639   her enchanted vision! Each new scene is more charming
13640   than the last. But after a while she finds that
13641   beneath this goodly exterior, all is vanity, the
13642   flattery which once charmed her soul, now grates
13643   harshly upon her ear; the ball-room has lost its
13644   charms; and with wasted health and imbittered heart,
13645   she turns away with the conviction that earthly
13646   pleasures cannot satisfy the longings of the soul!"
13647
13648And so forth and so on. There was a buzz of gratification from time to
13649time during the reading, accompanied by whispered ejaculations of "How
13650sweet!" "How eloquent!" "So true!" etc., and after the thing had closed
13651with a peculiarly afflicting sermon the applause was enthusiastic.
13652
13653Then arose a slim, melancholy girl, whose face had the "interesting"
13654paleness that comes of pills and indigestion, and read a "poem." Two
13655stanzas of it will do:
13656
13657   "A MISSOURI MAIDEN'S FAREWELL TO ALABAMA
13658
13659   "Alabama, good-bye! I love thee well!
13660      But yet for a while do I leave thee now!
13661    Sad, yes, sad thoughts of thee my heart doth swell,
13662      And burning recollections throng my brow!
13663    For I have wandered through thy flowery woods;
13664      Have roamed and read near Tallapoosa's stream;
13665    Have listened to Tallassee's warring floods,
13666      And wooed on Coosa's side Aurora's beam.
13667
13668   "Yet shame I not to bear an o'er-full heart,
13669      Nor blush to turn behind my tearful eyes;
13670    'Tis from no stranger land I now must part,
13671      'Tis to no strangers left I yield these sighs.
13672    Welcome and home were mine within this State,
13673      Whose vales I leave--whose spires fade fast from me
13674    And cold must be mine eyes, and heart, and tete,
13675      When, dear Alabama! they turn cold on thee!"
13676
13677There were very few there who knew what "tete" meant, but the poem was
13678very satisfactory, nevertheless.
13679
13680Next appeared a dark-complexioned, black-eyed, black-haired young
13681lady, who paused an impressive moment, assumed a tragic expression, and
13682began to read in a measured, solemn tone:
13683
13684  "A VISION
13685
13686   "Dark and tempestuous was night. Around the
13687   throne on high not a single star quivered; but
13688   the deep intonations of the heavy thunder
13689   constantly vibrated upon the ear; whilst the
13690   terrific lightning revelled in angry mood
13691   through the cloudy chambers of heaven, seeming
13692   to scorn the power exerted over its terror by
13693   the illustrious Franklin! Even the boisterous
13694   winds unanimously came forth from their mystic
13695   homes, and blustered about as if to enhance by
13696   their aid the wildness of the scene.
13697
13698   "At such a time, so dark, so dreary, for human
13699   sympathy my very spirit sighed; but instead thereof,
13700
13701   "'My dearest friend, my counsellor, my comforter
13702   and guide--My joy in grief, my second bliss
13703   in joy,' came to my side. She moved like one of
13704   those bright beings pictured in the sunny walks
13705   of fancy's Eden by the romantic and young, a
13706   queen of beauty unadorned save by her own
13707   transcendent loveliness. So soft was her step, it
13708   failed to make even a sound, and but for the
13709   magical thrill imparted by her genial touch, as
13710   other unobtrusive beauties, she would have glided
13711   away un-perceived--unsought. A strange sadness
13712   rested upon her features, like icy tears upon
13713   the robe of December, as she pointed to the
13714   contending elements without, and bade me contemplate
13715   the two beings presented."
13716
13717This nightmare occupied some ten pages of manuscript and wound up with
13718a sermon so destructive of all hope to non-Presbyterians that it took
13719the first prize. This composition was considered to be the very finest
13720effort of the evening. The mayor of the village, in delivering the
13721prize to the author of it, made a warm speech in which he said that it
13722was by far the most "eloquent" thing he had ever listened to, and that
13723Daniel Webster himself might well be proud of it.
13724
13725It may be remarked, in passing, that the number of compositions in
13726which the word "beauteous" was over-fondled, and human experience
13727referred to as "life's page," was up to the usual average.
13728
13729Now the master, mellow almost to the verge of geniality, put his chair
13730aside, turned his back to the audience, and began to draw a map of
13731America on the blackboard, to exercise the geography class upon. But he
13732made a sad business of it with his unsteady hand, and a smothered
13733titter rippled over the house. He knew what the matter was, and set
13734himself to right it. He sponged out lines and remade them; but he only
13735distorted them more than ever, and the tittering was more pronounced.
13736He threw his entire attention upon his work, now, as if determined not
13737to be put down by the mirth. He felt that all eyes were fastened upon
13738him; he imagined he was succeeding, and yet the tittering continued; it
13739even manifestly increased. And well it might. There was a garret above,
13740pierced with a scuttle over his head; and down through this scuttle
13741came a cat, suspended around the haunches by a string; she had a rag
13742tied about her head and jaws to keep her from mewing; as she slowly
13743descended she curved upward and clawed at the string, she swung
13744downward and clawed at the intangible air. The tittering rose higher
13745and higher--the cat was within six inches of the absorbed teacher's
13746head--down, down, a little lower, and she grabbed his wig with her
13747desperate claws, clung to it, and was snatched up into the garret in an
13748instant with her trophy still in her possession! And how the light did
13749blaze abroad from the master's bald pate--for the sign-painter's boy
13750had GILDED it!
13751
13752That broke up the meeting. The boys were avenged. Vacation had come.
13753
13754   NOTE:--The pretended "compositions" quoted in
13755   this chapter are taken without alteration from a
13756   volume entitled "Prose and Poetry, by a Western
13757   Lady"--but they are exactly and precisely after
13758   the schoolgirl pattern, and hence are much
13759   happier than any mere imitations could be.
13760
13761
13762
13763CHAPTER XXII
13764
13765TOM joined the new order of Cadets of Temperance, being attracted by
13766the showy character of their "regalia." He promised to abstain from
13767smoking, chewing, and profanity as long as he remained a member. Now he
13768found out a new thing--namely, that to promise not to do a thing is the
13769surest way in the world to make a body want to go and do that very
13770thing. Tom soon found himself tormented with a desire to drink and
13771swear; the desire grew to be so intense that nothing but the hope of a
13772chance to display himself in his red sash kept him from withdrawing
13773from the order. Fourth of July was coming; but he soon gave that up
13774--gave it up before he had worn his shackles over forty-eight hours--and
13775fixed his hopes upon old Judge Frazer, justice of the peace, who was
13776apparently on his deathbed and would have a big public funeral, since
13777he was so high an official. During three days Tom was deeply concerned
13778about the Judge's condition and hungry for news of it. Sometimes his
13779hopes ran high--so high that he would venture to get out his regalia
13780and practise before the looking-glass. But the Judge had a most
13781discouraging way of fluctuating. At last he was pronounced upon the
13782mend--and then convalescent. Tom was disgusted; and felt a sense of
13783injury, too. He handed in his resignation at once--and that night the
13784Judge suffered a relapse and died. Tom resolved that he would never
13785trust a man like that again.
13786
13787The funeral was a fine thing. The Cadets paraded in a style calculated
13788to kill the late member with envy. Tom was a free boy again, however
13789--there was something in that. He could drink and swear, now--but found
13790to his surprise that he did not want to. The simple fact that he could,
13791took the desire away, and the charm of it.
13792
13793Tom presently wondered to find that his coveted vacation was beginning
13794to hang a little heavily on his hands.
13795
13796He attempted a diary--but nothing happened during three days, and so
13797he abandoned it.
13798
13799The first of all the negro minstrel shows came to town, and made a
13800sensation. Tom and Joe Harper got up a band of performers and were
13801happy for two days.
13802
13803Even the Glorious Fourth was in some sense a failure, for it rained
13804hard, there was no procession in consequence, and the greatest man in
13805the world (as Tom supposed), Mr. Benton, an actual United States
13806Senator, proved an overwhelming disappointment--for he was not
13807twenty-five feet high, nor even anywhere in the neighborhood of it.
13808
13809A circus came. The boys played circus for three days afterward in
13810tents made of rag carpeting--admission, three pins for boys, two for
13811girls--and then circusing was abandoned.
13812
13813A phrenologist and a mesmerizer came--and went again and left the
13814village duller and drearier than ever.
13815
13816There were some boys-and-girls' parties, but they were so few and so
13817delightful that they only made the aching voids between ache the harder.
13818
13819Becky Thatcher was gone to her Constantinople home to stay with her
13820parents during vacation--so there was no bright side to life anywhere.
13821
13822The dreadful secret of the murder was a chronic misery. It was a very
13823cancer for permanency and pain.
13824
13825Then came the measles.
13826
13827During two long weeks Tom lay a prisoner, dead to the world and its
13828happenings. He was very ill, he was interested in nothing. When he got
13829upon his feet at last and moved feebly down-town, a melancholy change
13830had come over everything and every creature. There had been a
13831"revival," and everybody had "got religion," not only the adults, but
13832even the boys and girls. Tom went about, hoping against hope for the
13833sight of one blessed sinful face, but disappointment crossed him
13834everywhere. He found Joe Harper studying a Testament, and turned sadly
13835away from the depressing spectacle. He sought Ben Rogers, and found him
13836visiting the poor with a basket of tracts. He hunted up Jim Hollis, who
13837called his attention to the precious blessing of his late measles as a
13838warning. Every boy he encountered added another ton to his depression;
13839and when, in desperation, he flew for refuge at last to the bosom of
13840Huckleberry Finn and was received with a Scriptural quotation, his
13841heart broke and he crept home and to bed realizing that he alone of all
13842the town was lost, forever and forever.
13843
13844And that night there came on a terrific storm, with driving rain,
13845awful claps of thunder and blinding sheets of lightning. He covered his
13846head with the bedclothes and waited in a horror of suspense for his
13847doom; for he had not the shadow of a doubt that all this hubbub was
13848about him. He believed he had taxed the forbearance of the powers above
13849to the extremity of endurance and that this was the result. It might
13850have seemed to him a waste of pomp and ammunition to kill a bug with a
13851battery of artillery, but there seemed nothing incongruous about the
13852getting up such an expensive thunderstorm as this to knock the turf
13853from under an insect like himself.
13854
13855By and by the tempest spent itself and died without accomplishing its
13856object. The boy's first impulse was to be grateful, and reform. His
13857second was to wait--for there might not be any more storms.
13858
13859The next day the doctors were back; Tom had relapsed. The three weeks
13860he spent on his back this time seemed an entire age. When he got abroad
13861at last he was hardly grateful that he had been spared, remembering how
13862lonely was his estate, how companionless and forlorn he was. He drifted
13863listlessly down the street and found Jim Hollis acting as judge in a
13864juvenile court that was trying a cat for murder, in the presence of her
13865victim, a bird. He found Joe Harper and Huck Finn up an alley eating a
13866stolen melon. Poor lads! they--like Tom--had suffered a relapse.
13867
13868
13869
13870CHAPTER XXIII
13871
13872AT last the sleepy atmosphere was stirred--and vigorously: the murder
13873trial came on in the court. It became the absorbing topic of village
13874talk immediately. Tom could not get away from it. Every reference to
13875the murder sent a shudder to his heart, for his troubled conscience and
13876fears almost persuaded him that these remarks were put forth in his
13877hearing as "feelers"; he did not see how he could be suspected of
13878knowing anything about the murder, but still he could not be
13879comfortable in the midst of this gossip. It kept him in a cold shiver
13880all the time. He took Huck to a lonely place to have a talk with him.
13881It would be some relief to unseal his tongue for a little while; to
13882divide his burden of distress with another sufferer. Moreover, he
13883wanted to assure himself that Huck had remained discreet.
13884
13885"Huck, have you ever told anybody about--that?"
13886
13887"'Bout what?"
13888
13889"You know what."
13890
13891"Oh--'course I haven't."
13892
13893"Never a word?"
13894
13895"Never a solitary word, so help me. What makes you ask?"
13896
13897"Well, I was afeard."
13898
13899"Why, Tom Sawyer, we wouldn't be alive two days if that got found out.
13900YOU know that."
13901
13902Tom felt more comfortable. After a pause:
13903
13904"Huck, they couldn't anybody get you to tell, could they?"
13905
13906"Get me to tell? Why, if I wanted that half-breed devil to drownd me
13907they could get me to tell. They ain't no different way."
13908
13909"Well, that's all right, then. I reckon we're safe as long as we keep
13910mum. But let's swear again, anyway. It's more surer."
13911
13912"I'm agreed."
13913
13914So they swore again with dread solemnities.
13915
13916"What is the talk around, Huck? I've heard a power of it."
13917
13918"Talk? Well, it's just Muff Potter, Muff Potter, Muff Potter all the
13919time. It keeps me in a sweat, constant, so's I want to hide som'ers."
13920
13921"That's just the same way they go on round me. I reckon he's a goner.
13922Don't you feel sorry for him, sometimes?"
13923
13924"Most always--most always. He ain't no account; but then he hain't
13925ever done anything to hurt anybody. Just fishes a little, to get money
13926to get drunk on--and loafs around considerable; but lord, we all do
13927that--leastways most of us--preachers and such like. But he's kind of
13928good--he give me half a fish, once, when there warn't enough for two;
13929and lots of times he's kind of stood by me when I was out of luck."
13930
13931"Well, he's mended kites for me, Huck, and knitted hooks on to my
13932line. I wish we could get him out of there."
13933
13934"My! we couldn't get him out, Tom. And besides, 'twouldn't do any
13935good; they'd ketch him again."
13936
13937"Yes--so they would. But I hate to hear 'em abuse him so like the
13938dickens when he never done--that."
13939
13940"I do too, Tom. Lord, I hear 'em say he's the bloodiest looking
13941villain in this country, and they wonder he wasn't ever hung before."
13942
13943"Yes, they talk like that, all the time. I've heard 'em say that if he
13944was to get free they'd lynch him."
13945
13946"And they'd do it, too."
13947
13948The boys had a long talk, but it brought them little comfort. As the
13949twilight drew on, they found themselves hanging about the neighborhood
13950of the little isolated jail, perhaps with an undefined hope that
13951something would happen that might clear away their difficulties. But
13952nothing happened; there seemed to be no angels or fairies interested in
13953this luckless captive.
13954
13955The boys did as they had often done before--went to the cell grating
13956and gave Potter some tobacco and matches. He was on the ground floor
13957and there were no guards.
13958
13959His gratitude for their gifts had always smote their consciences
13960before--it cut deeper than ever, this time. They felt cowardly and
13961treacherous to the last degree when Potter said:
13962
13963"You've been mighty good to me, boys--better'n anybody else in this
13964town. And I don't forget it, I don't. Often I says to myself, says I,
13965'I used to mend all the boys' kites and things, and show 'em where the
13966good fishin' places was, and befriend 'em what I could, and now they've
13967all forgot old Muff when he's in trouble; but Tom don't, and Huck
13968don't--THEY don't forget him, says I, 'and I don't forget them.' Well,
13969boys, I done an awful thing--drunk and crazy at the time--that's the
13970only way I account for it--and now I got to swing for it, and it's
13971right. Right, and BEST, too, I reckon--hope so, anyway. Well, we won't
13972talk about that. I don't want to make YOU feel bad; you've befriended
13973me. But what I want to say, is, don't YOU ever get drunk--then you won't
13974ever get here. Stand a litter furder west--so--that's it; it's a prime
13975comfort to see faces that's friendly when a body's in such a muck of
13976trouble, and there don't none come here but yourn. Good friendly
13977faces--good friendly faces. Git up on one another's backs and let me
13978touch 'em. That's it. Shake hands--yourn'll come through the bars, but
13979mine's too big. Little hands, and weak--but they've helped Muff Potter
13980a power, and they'd help him more if they could."
13981
13982Tom went home miserable, and his dreams that night were full of
13983horrors. The next day and the day after, he hung about the court-room,
13984drawn by an almost irresistible impulse to go in, but forcing himself
13985to stay out. Huck was having the same experience. They studiously
13986avoided each other. Each wandered away, from time to time, but the same
13987dismal fascination always brought them back presently. Tom kept his
13988ears open when idlers sauntered out of the court-room, but invariably
13989heard distressing news--the toils were closing more and more
13990relentlessly around poor Potter. At the end of the second day the
13991village talk was to the effect that Injun Joe's evidence stood firm and
13992unshaken, and that there was not the slightest question as to what the
13993jury's verdict would be.
13994
13995Tom was out late, that night, and came to bed through the window. He
13996was in a tremendous state of excitement. It was hours before he got to
13997sleep. All the village flocked to the court-house the next morning, for
13998this was to be the great day. Both sexes were about equally represented
13999in the packed audience. After a long wait the jury filed in and took
14000their places; shortly afterward, Potter, pale and haggard, timid and
14001hopeless, was brought in, with chains upon him, and seated where all
14002the curious eyes could stare at him; no less conspicuous was Injun Joe,
14003stolid as ever. There was another pause, and then the judge arrived and
14004the sheriff proclaimed the opening of the court. The usual whisperings
14005among the lawyers and gathering together of papers followed. These
14006details and accompanying delays worked up an atmosphere of preparation
14007that was as impressive as it was fascinating.
14008
14009Now a witness was called who testified that he found Muff Potter
14010washing in the brook, at an early hour of the morning that the murder
14011was discovered, and that he immediately sneaked away. After some
14012further questioning, counsel for the prosecution said:
14013
14014"Take the witness."
14015
14016The prisoner raised his eyes for a moment, but dropped them again when
14017his own counsel said:
14018
14019"I have no questions to ask him."
14020
14021The next witness proved the finding of the knife near the corpse.
14022Counsel for the prosecution said:
14023
14024"Take the witness."
14025
14026"I have no questions to ask him," Potter's lawyer replied.
14027
14028A third witness swore he had often seen the knife in Potter's
14029possession.
14030
14031"Take the witness."
14032
14033Counsel for Potter declined to question him. The faces of the audience
14034began to betray annoyance. Did this attorney mean to throw away his
14035client's life without an effort?
14036
14037Several witnesses deposed concerning Potter's guilty behavior when
14038brought to the scene of the murder. They were allowed to leave the
14039stand without being cross-questioned.
14040
14041Every detail of the damaging circumstances that occurred in the
14042graveyard upon that morning which all present remembered so well was
14043brought out by credible witnesses, but none of them were cross-examined
14044by Potter's lawyer. The perplexity and dissatisfaction of the house
14045expressed itself in murmurs and provoked a reproof from the bench.
14046Counsel for the prosecution now said:
14047
14048"By the oaths of citizens whose simple word is above suspicion, we
14049have fastened this awful crime, beyond all possibility of question,
14050upon the unhappy prisoner at the bar. We rest our case here."
14051
14052A groan escaped from poor Potter, and he put his face in his hands and
14053rocked his body softly to and fro, while a painful silence reigned in
14054the court-room. Many men were moved, and many women's compassion
14055testified itself in tears. Counsel for the defence rose and said:
14056
14057"Your honor, in our remarks at the opening of this trial, we
14058foreshadowed our purpose to prove that our client did this fearful deed
14059while under the influence of a blind and irresponsible delirium
14060produced by drink. We have changed our mind. We shall not offer that
14061plea." [Then to the clerk:] "Call Thomas Sawyer!"
14062
14063A puzzled amazement awoke in every face in the house, not even
14064excepting Potter's. Every eye fastened itself with wondering interest
14065upon Tom as he rose and took his place upon the stand. The boy looked
14066wild enough, for he was badly scared. The oath was administered.
14067
14068"Thomas Sawyer, where were you on the seventeenth of June, about the
14069hour of midnight?"
14070
14071Tom glanced at Injun Joe's iron face and his tongue failed him. The
14072audience listened breathless, but the words refused to come. After a
14073few moments, however, the boy got a little of his strength back, and
14074managed to put enough of it into his voice to make part of the house
14075hear:
14076
14077"In the graveyard!"
14078
14079"A little bit louder, please. Don't be afraid. You were--"
14080
14081"In the graveyard."
14082
14083A contemptuous smile flitted across Injun Joe's face.
14084
14085"Were you anywhere near Horse Williams' grave?"
14086
14087"Yes, sir."
14088
14089"Speak up--just a trifle louder. How near were you?"
14090
14091"Near as I am to you."
14092
14093"Were you hidden, or not?"
14094
14095"I was hid."
14096
14097"Where?"
14098
14099"Behind the elms that's on the edge of the grave."
14100
14101Injun Joe gave a barely perceptible start.
14102
14103"Any one with you?"
14104
14105"Yes, sir. I went there with--"
14106
14107"Wait--wait a moment. Never mind mentioning your companion's name. We
14108will produce him at the proper time. Did you carry anything there with
14109you."
14110
14111Tom hesitated and looked confused.
14112
14113"Speak out, my boy--don't be diffident. The truth is always
14114respectable. What did you take there?"
14115
14116"Only a--a--dead cat."
14117
14118There was a ripple of mirth, which the court checked.
14119
14120"We will produce the skeleton of that cat. Now, my boy, tell us
14121everything that occurred--tell it in your own way--don't skip anything,
14122and don't be afraid."
14123
14124Tom began--hesitatingly at first, but as he warmed to his subject his
14125words flowed more and more easily; in a little while every sound ceased
14126but his own voice; every eye fixed itself upon him; with parted lips
14127and bated breath the audience hung upon his words, taking no note of
14128time, rapt in the ghastly fascinations of the tale. The strain upon
14129pent emotion reached its climax when the boy said:
14130
14131"--and as the doctor fetched the board around and Muff Potter fell,
14132Injun Joe jumped with the knife and--"
14133
14134Crash! Quick as lightning the half-breed sprang for a window, tore his
14135way through all opposers, and was gone!
14136
14137
14138
14139CHAPTER XXIV
14140
14141TOM was a glittering hero once more--the pet of the old, the envy of
14142the young. His name even went into immortal print, for the village
14143paper magnified him. There were some that believed he would be
14144President, yet, if he escaped hanging.
14145
14146As usual, the fickle, unreasoning world took Muff Potter to its bosom
14147and fondled him as lavishly as it had abused him before. But that sort
14148of conduct is to the world's credit; therefore it is not well to find
14149fault with it.
14150
14151Tom's days were days of splendor and exultation to him, but his nights
14152were seasons of horror. Injun Joe infested all his dreams, and always
14153with doom in his eye. Hardly any temptation could persuade the boy to
14154stir abroad after nightfall. Poor Huck was in the same state of
14155wretchedness and terror, for Tom had told the whole story to the lawyer
14156the night before the great day of the trial, and Huck was sore afraid
14157that his share in the business might leak out, yet, notwithstanding
14158Injun Joe's flight had saved him the suffering of testifying in court.
14159The poor fellow had got the attorney to promise secrecy, but what of
14160that? Since Tom's harassed conscience had managed to drive him to the
14161lawyer's house by night and wring a dread tale from lips that had been
14162sealed with the dismalest and most formidable of oaths, Huck's
14163confidence in the human race was well-nigh obliterated.
14164
14165Daily Muff Potter's gratitude made Tom glad he had spoken; but nightly
14166he wished he had sealed up his tongue.
14167
14168Half the time Tom was afraid Injun Joe would never be captured; the
14169other half he was afraid he would be. He felt sure he never could draw
14170a safe breath again until that man was dead and he had seen the corpse.
14171
14172Rewards had been offered, the country had been scoured, but no Injun
14173Joe was found. One of those omniscient and awe-inspiring marvels, a
14174detective, came up from St. Louis, moused around, shook his head,
14175looked wise, and made that sort of astounding success which members of
14176that craft usually achieve. That is to say, he "found a clew." But you
14177can't hang a "clew" for murder, and so after that detective had got
14178through and gone home, Tom felt just as insecure as he was before.
14179
14180The slow days drifted on, and each left behind it a slightly lightened
14181weight of apprehension.
14182
14183
14184
14185CHAPTER XXV
14186
14187THERE comes a time in every rightly-constructed boy's life when he has
14188a raging desire to go somewhere and dig for hidden treasure. This
14189desire suddenly came upon Tom one day. He sallied out to find Joe
14190Harper, but failed of success. Next he sought Ben Rogers; he had gone
14191fishing. Presently he stumbled upon Huck Finn the Red-Handed. Huck
14192would answer. Tom took him to a private place and opened the matter to
14193him confidentially. Huck was willing. Huck was always willing to take a
14194hand in any enterprise that offered entertainment and required no
14195capital, for he had a troublesome superabundance of that sort of time
14196which is not money. "Where'll we dig?" said Huck.
14197
14198"Oh, most anywhere."
14199
14200"Why, is it hid all around?"
14201
14202"No, indeed it ain't. It's hid in mighty particular places, Huck
14203--sometimes on islands, sometimes in rotten chests under the end of a
14204limb of an old dead tree, just where the shadow falls at midnight; but
14205mostly under the floor in ha'nted houses."
14206
14207"Who hides it?"
14208
14209"Why, robbers, of course--who'd you reckon? Sunday-school
14210sup'rintendents?"
14211
14212"I don't know. If 'twas mine I wouldn't hide it; I'd spend it and have
14213a good time."
14214
14215"So would I. But robbers don't do that way. They always hide it and
14216leave it there."
14217
14218"Don't they come after it any more?"
14219
14220"No, they think they will, but they generally forget the marks, or
14221else they die. Anyway, it lays there a long time and gets rusty; and by
14222and by somebody finds an old yellow paper that tells how to find the
14223marks--a paper that's got to be ciphered over about a week because it's
14224mostly signs and hy'roglyphics."
14225
14226"Hyro--which?"
14227
14228"Hy'roglyphics--pictures and things, you know, that don't seem to mean
14229anything."
14230
14231"Have you got one of them papers, Tom?"
14232
14233"No."
14234
14235"Well then, how you going to find the marks?"
14236
14237"I don't want any marks. They always bury it under a ha'nted house or
14238on an island, or under a dead tree that's got one limb sticking out.
14239Well, we've tried Jackson's Island a little, and we can try it again
14240some time; and there's the old ha'nted house up the Still-House branch,
14241and there's lots of dead-limb trees--dead loads of 'em."
14242
14243"Is it under all of them?"
14244
14245"How you talk! No!"
14246
14247"Then how you going to know which one to go for?"
14248
14249"Go for all of 'em!"
14250
14251"Why, Tom, it'll take all summer."
14252
14253"Well, what of that? Suppose you find a brass pot with a hundred
14254dollars in it, all rusty and gray, or rotten chest full of di'monds.
14255How's that?"
14256
14257Huck's eyes glowed.
14258
14259"That's bully. Plenty bully enough for me. Just you gimme the hundred
14260dollars and I don't want no di'monds."
14261
14262"All right. But I bet you I ain't going to throw off on di'monds. Some
14263of 'em's worth twenty dollars apiece--there ain't any, hardly, but's
14264worth six bits or a dollar."
14265
14266"No! Is that so?"
14267
14268"Cert'nly--anybody'll tell you so. Hain't you ever seen one, Huck?"
14269
14270"Not as I remember."
14271
14272"Oh, kings have slathers of them."
14273
14274"Well, I don' know no kings, Tom."
14275
14276"I reckon you don't. But if you was to go to Europe you'd see a raft
14277of 'em hopping around."
14278
14279"Do they hop?"
14280
14281"Hop?--your granny! No!"
14282
14283"Well, what did you say they did, for?"
14284
14285"Shucks, I only meant you'd SEE 'em--not hopping, of course--what do
14286they want to hop for?--but I mean you'd just see 'em--scattered around,
14287you know, in a kind of a general way. Like that old humpbacked Richard."
14288
14289"Richard? What's his other name?"
14290
14291"He didn't have any other name. Kings don't have any but a given name."
14292
14293"No?"
14294
14295"But they don't."
14296
14297"Well, if they like it, Tom, all right; but I don't want to be a king
14298and have only just a given name, like a nigger. But say--where you
14299going to dig first?"
14300
14301"Well, I don't know. S'pose we tackle that old dead-limb tree on the
14302hill t'other side of Still-House branch?"
14303
14304"I'm agreed."
14305
14306So they got a crippled pick and a shovel, and set out on their
14307three-mile tramp. They arrived hot and panting, and threw themselves
14308down in the shade of a neighboring elm to rest and have a smoke.
14309
14310"I like this," said Tom.
14311
14312"So do I."
14313
14314"Say, Huck, if we find a treasure here, what you going to do with your
14315share?"
14316
14317"Well, I'll have pie and a glass of soda every day, and I'll go to
14318every circus that comes along. I bet I'll have a gay time."
14319
14320"Well, ain't you going to save any of it?"
14321
14322"Save it? What for?"
14323
14324"Why, so as to have something to live on, by and by."
14325
14326"Oh, that ain't any use. Pap would come back to thish-yer town some
14327day and get his claws on it if I didn't hurry up, and I tell you he'd
14328clean it out pretty quick. What you going to do with yourn, Tom?"
14329
14330"I'm going to buy a new drum, and a sure-'nough sword, and a red
14331necktie and a bull pup, and get married."
14332
14333"Married!"
14334
14335"That's it."
14336
14337"Tom, you--why, you ain't in your right mind."
14338
14339"Wait--you'll see."
14340
14341"Well, that's the foolishest thing you could do. Look at pap and my
14342mother. Fight! Why, they used to fight all the time. I remember, mighty
14343well."
14344
14345"That ain't anything. The girl I'm going to marry won't fight."
14346
14347"Tom, I reckon they're all alike. They'll all comb a body. Now you
14348better think 'bout this awhile. I tell you you better. What's the name
14349of the gal?"
14350
14351"It ain't a gal at all--it's a girl."
14352
14353"It's all the same, I reckon; some says gal, some says girl--both's
14354right, like enough. Anyway, what's her name, Tom?"
14355
14356"I'll tell you some time--not now."
14357
14358"All right--that'll do. Only if you get married I'll be more lonesomer
14359than ever."
14360
14361"No you won't. You'll come and live with me. Now stir out of this and
14362we'll go to digging."
14363
14364They worked and sweated for half an hour. No result. They toiled
14365another half-hour. Still no result. Huck said:
14366
14367"Do they always bury it as deep as this?"
14368
14369"Sometimes--not always. Not generally. I reckon we haven't got the
14370right place."
14371
14372So they chose a new spot and began again. The labor dragged a little,
14373but still they made progress. They pegged away in silence for some
14374time. Finally Huck leaned on his shovel, swabbed the beaded drops from
14375his brow with his sleeve, and said:
14376
14377"Where you going to dig next, after we get this one?"
14378
14379"I reckon maybe we'll tackle the old tree that's over yonder on
14380Cardiff Hill back of the widow's."
14381
14382"I reckon that'll be a good one. But won't the widow take it away from
14383us, Tom? It's on her land."
14384
14385"SHE take it away! Maybe she'd like to try it once. Whoever finds one
14386of these hid treasures, it belongs to him. It don't make any difference
14387whose land it's on."
14388
14389That was satisfactory. The work went on. By and by Huck said:
14390
14391"Blame it, we must be in the wrong place again. What do you think?"
14392
14393"It is mighty curious, Huck. I don't understand it. Sometimes witches
14394interfere. I reckon maybe that's what's the trouble now."
14395
14396"Shucks! Witches ain't got no power in the daytime."
14397
14398"Well, that's so. I didn't think of that. Oh, I know what the matter
14399is! What a blamed lot of fools we are! You got to find out where the
14400shadow of the limb falls at midnight, and that's where you dig!"
14401
14402"Then consound it, we've fooled away all this work for nothing. Now
14403hang it all, we got to come back in the night. It's an awful long way.
14404Can you get out?"
14405
14406"I bet I will. We've got to do it to-night, too, because if somebody
14407sees these holes they'll know in a minute what's here and they'll go
14408for it."
14409
14410"Well, I'll come around and maow to-night."
14411
14412"All right. Let's hide the tools in the bushes."
14413
14414The boys were there that night, about the appointed time. They sat in
14415the shadow waiting. It was a lonely place, and an hour made solemn by
14416old traditions. Spirits whispered in the rustling leaves, ghosts lurked
14417in the murky nooks, the deep baying of a hound floated up out of the
14418distance, an owl answered with his sepulchral note. The boys were
14419subdued by these solemnities, and talked little. By and by they judged
14420that twelve had come; they marked where the shadow fell, and began to
14421dig. Their hopes commenced to rise. Their interest grew stronger, and
14422their industry kept pace with it. The hole deepened and still deepened,
14423but every time their hearts jumped to hear the pick strike upon
14424something, they only suffered a new disappointment. It was only a stone
14425or a chunk. At last Tom said:
14426
14427"It ain't any use, Huck, we're wrong again."
14428
14429"Well, but we CAN'T be wrong. We spotted the shadder to a dot."
14430
14431"I know it, but then there's another thing."
14432
14433"What's that?".
14434
14435"Why, we only guessed at the time. Like enough it was too late or too
14436early."
14437
14438Huck dropped his shovel.
14439
14440"That's it," said he. "That's the very trouble. We got to give this
14441one up. We can't ever tell the right time, and besides this kind of
14442thing's too awful, here this time of night with witches and ghosts
14443a-fluttering around so. I feel as if something's behind me all the time;
14444and I'm afeard to turn around, becuz maybe there's others in front
14445a-waiting for a chance. I been creeping all over, ever since I got here."
14446
14447"Well, I've been pretty much so, too, Huck. They most always put in a
14448dead man when they bury a treasure under a tree, to look out for it."
14449
14450"Lordy!"
14451
14452"Yes, they do. I've always heard that."
14453
14454"Tom, I don't like to fool around much where there's dead people. A
14455body's bound to get into trouble with 'em, sure."
14456
14457"I don't like to stir 'em up, either. S'pose this one here was to
14458stick his skull out and say something!"
14459
14460"Don't Tom! It's awful."
14461
14462"Well, it just is. Huck, I don't feel comfortable a bit."
14463
14464"Say, Tom, let's give this place up, and try somewheres else."
14465
14466"All right, I reckon we better."
14467
14468"What'll it be?"
14469
14470Tom considered awhile; and then said:
14471
14472"The ha'nted house. That's it!"
14473
14474"Blame it, I don't like ha'nted houses, Tom. Why, they're a dern sight
14475worse'n dead people. Dead people might talk, maybe, but they don't come
14476sliding around in a shroud, when you ain't noticing, and peep over your
14477shoulder all of a sudden and grit their teeth, the way a ghost does. I
14478couldn't stand such a thing as that, Tom--nobody could."
14479
14480"Yes, but, Huck, ghosts don't travel around only at night. They won't
14481hender us from digging there in the daytime."
14482
14483"Well, that's so. But you know mighty well people don't go about that
14484ha'nted house in the day nor the night."
14485
14486"Well, that's mostly because they don't like to go where a man's been
14487murdered, anyway--but nothing's ever been seen around that house except
14488in the night--just some blue lights slipping by the windows--no regular
14489ghosts."
14490
14491"Well, where you see one of them blue lights flickering around, Tom,
14492you can bet there's a ghost mighty close behind it. It stands to
14493reason. Becuz you know that they don't anybody but ghosts use 'em."
14494
14495"Yes, that's so. But anyway they don't come around in the daytime, so
14496what's the use of our being afeard?"
14497
14498"Well, all right. We'll tackle the ha'nted house if you say so--but I
14499reckon it's taking chances."
14500
14501They had started down the hill by this time. There in the middle of
14502the moonlit valley below them stood the "ha'nted" house, utterly
14503isolated, its fences gone long ago, rank weeds smothering the very
14504doorsteps, the chimney crumbled to ruin, the window-sashes vacant, a
14505corner of the roof caved in. The boys gazed awhile, half expecting to
14506see a blue light flit past a window; then talking in a low tone, as
14507befitted the time and the circumstances, they struck far off to the
14508right, to give the haunted house a wide berth, and took their way
14509homeward through the woods that adorned the rearward side of Cardiff
14510Hill.
14511
14512
14513
14514CHAPTER XXVI
14515
14516ABOUT noon the next day the boys arrived at the dead tree; they had
14517come for their tools. Tom was impatient to go to the haunted house;
14518Huck was measurably so, also--but suddenly said:
14519
14520"Lookyhere, Tom, do you know what day it is?"
14521
14522Tom mentally ran over the days of the week, and then quickly lifted
14523his eyes with a startled look in them--
14524
14525"My! I never once thought of it, Huck!"
14526
14527"Well, I didn't neither, but all at once it popped onto me that it was
14528Friday."
14529
14530"Blame it, a body can't be too careful, Huck. We might 'a' got into an
14531awful scrape, tackling such a thing on a Friday."
14532
14533"MIGHT! Better say we WOULD! There's some lucky days, maybe, but
14534Friday ain't."
14535
14536"Any fool knows that. I don't reckon YOU was the first that found it
14537out, Huck."
14538
14539"Well, I never said I was, did I? And Friday ain't all, neither. I had
14540a rotten bad dream last night--dreampt about rats."
14541
14542"No! Sure sign of trouble. Did they fight?"
14543
14544"No."
14545
14546"Well, that's good, Huck. When they don't fight it's only a sign that
14547there's trouble around, you know. All we got to do is to look mighty
14548sharp and keep out of it. We'll drop this thing for to-day, and play.
14549Do you know Robin Hood, Huck?"
14550
14551"No. Who's Robin Hood?"
14552
14553"Why, he was one of the greatest men that was ever in England--and the
14554best. He was a robber."
14555
14556"Cracky, I wisht I was. Who did he rob?"
14557
14558"Only sheriffs and bishops and rich people and kings, and such like.
14559But he never bothered the poor. He loved 'em. He always divided up with
14560'em perfectly square."
14561
14562"Well, he must 'a' been a brick."
14563
14564"I bet you he was, Huck. Oh, he was the noblest man that ever was.
14565They ain't any such men now, I can tell you. He could lick any man in
14566England, with one hand tied behind him; and he could take his yew bow
14567and plug a ten-cent piece every time, a mile and a half."
14568
14569"What's a YEW bow?"
14570
14571"I don't know. It's some kind of a bow, of course. And if he hit that
14572dime only on the edge he would set down and cry--and curse. But we'll
14573play Robin Hood--it's nobby fun. I'll learn you."
14574
14575"I'm agreed."
14576
14577So they played Robin Hood all the afternoon, now and then casting a
14578yearning eye down upon the haunted house and passing a remark about the
14579morrow's prospects and possibilities there. As the sun began to sink
14580into the west they took their way homeward athwart the long shadows of
14581the trees and soon were buried from sight in the forests of Cardiff
14582Hill.
14583
14584On Saturday, shortly after noon, the boys were at the dead tree again.
14585They had a smoke and a chat in the shade, and then dug a little in
14586their last hole, not with great hope, but merely because Tom said there
14587were so many cases where people had given up a treasure after getting
14588down within six inches of it, and then somebody else had come along and
14589turned it up with a single thrust of a shovel. The thing failed this
14590time, however, so the boys shouldered their tools and went away feeling
14591that they had not trifled with fortune, but had fulfilled all the
14592requirements that belong to the business of treasure-hunting.
14593
14594When they reached the haunted house there was something so weird and
14595grisly about the dead silence that reigned there under the baking sun,
14596and something so depressing about the loneliness and desolation of the
14597place, that they were afraid, for a moment, to venture in. Then they
14598crept to the door and took a trembling peep. They saw a weed-grown,
14599floorless room, unplastered, an ancient fireplace, vacant windows, a
14600ruinous staircase; and here, there, and everywhere hung ragged and
14601abandoned cobwebs. They presently entered, softly, with quickened
14602pulses, talking in whispers, ears alert to catch the slightest sound,
14603and muscles tense and ready for instant retreat.
14604
14605In a little while familiarity modified their fears and they gave the
14606place a critical and interested examination, rather admiring their own
14607boldness, and wondering at it, too. Next they wanted to look up-stairs.
14608This was something like cutting off retreat, but they got to daring
14609each other, and of course there could be but one result--they threw
14610their tools into a corner and made the ascent. Up there were the same
14611signs of decay. In one corner they found a closet that promised
14612mystery, but the promise was a fraud--there was nothing in it. Their
14613courage was up now and well in hand. They were about to go down and
14614begin work when--
14615
14616"Sh!" said Tom.
14617
14618"What is it?" whispered Huck, blanching with fright.
14619
14620"Sh!... There!... Hear it?"
14621
14622"Yes!... Oh, my! Let's run!"
14623
14624"Keep still! Don't you budge! They're coming right toward the door."
14625
14626The boys stretched themselves upon the floor with their eyes to
14627knot-holes in the planking, and lay waiting, in a misery of fear.
14628
14629"They've stopped.... No--coming.... Here they are. Don't whisper
14630another word, Huck. My goodness, I wish I was out of this!"
14631
14632Two men entered. Each boy said to himself: "There's the old deaf and
14633dumb Spaniard that's been about town once or twice lately--never saw
14634t'other man before."
14635
14636"T'other" was a ragged, unkempt creature, with nothing very pleasant
14637in his face. The Spaniard was wrapped in a serape; he had bushy white
14638whiskers; long white hair flowed from under his sombrero, and he wore
14639green goggles. When they came in, "t'other" was talking in a low voice;
14640they sat down on the ground, facing the door, with their backs to the
14641wall, and the speaker continued his remarks. His manner became less
14642guarded and his words more distinct as he proceeded:
14643
14644"No," said he, "I've thought it all over, and I don't like it. It's
14645dangerous."
14646
14647"Dangerous!" grunted the "deaf and dumb" Spaniard--to the vast
14648surprise of the boys. "Milksop!"
14649
14650This voice made the boys gasp and quake. It was Injun Joe's! There was
14651silence for some time. Then Joe said:
14652
14653"What's any more dangerous than that job up yonder--but nothing's come
14654of it."
14655
14656"That's different. Away up the river so, and not another house about.
14657'Twon't ever be known that we tried, anyway, long as we didn't succeed."
14658
14659"Well, what's more dangerous than coming here in the daytime!--anybody
14660would suspicion us that saw us."
14661
14662"I know that. But there warn't any other place as handy after that
14663fool of a job. I want to quit this shanty. I wanted to yesterday, only
14664it warn't any use trying to stir out of here, with those infernal boys
14665playing over there on the hill right in full view."
14666
14667"Those infernal boys" quaked again under the inspiration of this
14668remark, and thought how lucky it was that they had remembered it was
14669Friday and concluded to wait a day. They wished in their hearts they
14670had waited a year.
14671
14672The two men got out some food and made a luncheon. After a long and
14673thoughtful silence, Injun Joe said:
14674
14675"Look here, lad--you go back up the river where you belong. Wait there
14676till you hear from me. I'll take the chances on dropping into this town
14677just once more, for a look. We'll do that 'dangerous' job after I've
14678spied around a little and think things look well for it. Then for
14679Texas! We'll leg it together!"
14680
14681This was satisfactory. Both men presently fell to yawning, and Injun
14682Joe said:
14683
14684"I'm dead for sleep! It's your turn to watch."
14685
14686He curled down in the weeds and soon began to snore. His comrade
14687stirred him once or twice and he became quiet. Presently the watcher
14688began to nod; his head drooped lower and lower, both men began to snore
14689now.
14690
14691The boys drew a long, grateful breath. Tom whispered:
14692
14693"Now's our chance--come!"
14694
14695Huck said:
14696
14697"I can't--I'd die if they was to wake."
14698
14699Tom urged--Huck held back. At last Tom rose slowly and softly, and
14700started alone. But the first step he made wrung such a hideous creak
14701from the crazy floor that he sank down almost dead with fright. He
14702never made a second attempt. The boys lay there counting the dragging
14703moments till it seemed to them that time must be done and eternity
14704growing gray; and then they were grateful to note that at last the sun
14705was setting.
14706
14707Now one snore ceased. Injun Joe sat up, stared around--smiled grimly
14708upon his comrade, whose head was drooping upon his knees--stirred him
14709up with his foot and said:
14710
14711"Here! YOU'RE a watchman, ain't you! All right, though--nothing's
14712happened."
14713
14714"My! have I been asleep?"
14715
14716"Oh, partly, partly. Nearly time for us to be moving, pard. What'll we
14717do with what little swag we've got left?"
14718
14719"I don't know--leave it here as we've always done, I reckon. No use to
14720take it away till we start south. Six hundred and fifty in silver's
14721something to carry."
14722
14723"Well--all right--it won't matter to come here once more."
14724
14725"No--but I'd say come in the night as we used to do--it's better."
14726
14727"Yes: but look here; it may be a good while before I get the right
14728chance at that job; accidents might happen; 'tain't in such a very good
14729place; we'll just regularly bury it--and bury it deep."
14730
14731"Good idea," said the comrade, who walked across the room, knelt down,
14732raised one of the rearward hearth-stones and took out a bag that
14733jingled pleasantly. He subtracted from it twenty or thirty dollars for
14734himself and as much for Injun Joe, and passed the bag to the latter,
14735who was on his knees in the corner, now, digging with his bowie-knife.
14736
14737The boys forgot all their fears, all their miseries in an instant.
14738With gloating eyes they watched every movement. Luck!--the splendor of
14739it was beyond all imagination! Six hundred dollars was money enough to
14740make half a dozen boys rich! Here was treasure-hunting under the
14741happiest auspices--there would not be any bothersome uncertainty as to
14742where to dig. They nudged each other every moment--eloquent nudges and
14743easily understood, for they simply meant--"Oh, but ain't you glad NOW
14744we're here!"
14745
14746Joe's knife struck upon something.
14747
14748"Hello!" said he.
14749
14750"What is it?" said his comrade.
14751
14752"Half-rotten plank--no, it's a box, I believe. Here--bear a hand and
14753we'll see what it's here for. Never mind, I've broke a hole."
14754
14755He reached his hand in and drew it out--
14756
14757"Man, it's money!"
14758
14759The two men examined the handful of coins. They were gold. The boys
14760above were as excited as themselves, and as delighted.
14761
14762Joe's comrade said:
14763
14764"We'll make quick work of this. There's an old rusty pick over amongst
14765the weeds in the corner the other side of the fireplace--I saw it a
14766minute ago."
14767
14768He ran and brought the boys' pick and shovel. Injun Joe took the pick,
14769looked it over critically, shook his head, muttered something to
14770himself, and then began to use it. The box was soon unearthed. It was
14771not very large; it was iron bound and had been very strong before the
14772slow years had injured it. The men contemplated the treasure awhile in
14773blissful silence.
14774
14775"Pard, there's thousands of dollars here," said Injun Joe.
14776
14777"'Twas always said that Murrel's gang used to be around here one
14778summer," the stranger observed.
14779
14780"I know it," said Injun Joe; "and this looks like it, I should say."
14781
14782"Now you won't need to do that job."
14783
14784The half-breed frowned. Said he:
14785
14786"You don't know me. Least you don't know all about that thing. 'Tain't
14787robbery altogether--it's REVENGE!" and a wicked light flamed in his
14788eyes. "I'll need your help in it. When it's finished--then Texas. Go
14789home to your Nance and your kids, and stand by till you hear from me."
14790
14791"Well--if you say so; what'll we do with this--bury it again?"
14792
14793"Yes. [Ravishing delight overhead.] NO! by the great Sachem, no!
14794[Profound distress overhead.] I'd nearly forgot. That pick had fresh
14795earth on it! [The boys were sick with terror in a moment.] What
14796business has a pick and a shovel here? What business with fresh earth
14797on them? Who brought them here--and where are they gone? Have you heard
14798anybody?--seen anybody? What! bury it again and leave them to come and
14799see the ground disturbed? Not exactly--not exactly. We'll take it to my
14800den."
14801
14802"Why, of course! Might have thought of that before. You mean Number
14803One?"
14804
14805"No--Number Two--under the cross. The other place is bad--too common."
14806
14807"All right. It's nearly dark enough to start."
14808
14809Injun Joe got up and went about from window to window cautiously
14810peeping out. Presently he said:
14811
14812"Who could have brought those tools here? Do you reckon they can be
14813up-stairs?"
14814
14815The boys' breath forsook them. Injun Joe put his hand on his knife,
14816halted a moment, undecided, and then turned toward the stairway. The
14817boys thought of the closet, but their strength was gone. The steps came
14818creaking up the stairs--the intolerable distress of the situation woke
14819the stricken resolution of the lads--they were about to spring for the
14820closet, when there was a crash of rotten timbers and Injun Joe landed
14821on the ground amid the debris of the ruined stairway. He gathered
14822himself up cursing, and his comrade said:
14823
14824"Now what's the use of all that? If it's anybody, and they're up
14825there, let them STAY there--who cares? If they want to jump down, now,
14826and get into trouble, who objects? It will be dark in fifteen minutes
14827--and then let them follow us if they want to. I'm willing. In my
14828opinion, whoever hove those things in here caught a sight of us and
14829took us for ghosts or devils or something. I'll bet they're running
14830yet."
14831
14832Joe grumbled awhile; then he agreed with his friend that what daylight
14833was left ought to be economized in getting things ready for leaving.
14834Shortly afterward they slipped out of the house in the deepening
14835twilight, and moved toward the river with their precious box.
14836
14837Tom and Huck rose up, weak but vastly relieved, and stared after them
14838through the chinks between the logs of the house. Follow? Not they.
14839They were content to reach ground again without broken necks, and take
14840the townward track over the hill. They did not talk much. They were too
14841much absorbed in hating themselves--hating the ill luck that made them
14842take the spade and the pick there. But for that, Injun Joe never would
14843have suspected. He would have hidden the silver with the gold to wait
14844there till his "revenge" was satisfied, and then he would have had the
14845misfortune to find that money turn up missing. Bitter, bitter luck that
14846the tools were ever brought there!
14847
14848They resolved to keep a lookout for that Spaniard when he should come
14849to town spying out for chances to do his revengeful job, and follow him
14850to "Number Two," wherever that might be. Then a ghastly thought
14851occurred to Tom.
14852
14853"Revenge? What if he means US, Huck!"
14854
14855"Oh, don't!" said Huck, nearly fainting.
14856
14857They talked it all over, and as they entered town they agreed to
14858believe that he might possibly mean somebody else--at least that he
14859might at least mean nobody but Tom, since only Tom had testified.
14860
14861Very, very small comfort it was to Tom to be alone in danger! Company
14862would be a palpable improvement, he thought.
14863
14864
14865
14866CHAPTER XXVII
14867
14868THE adventure of the day mightily tormented Tom's dreams that night.
14869Four times he had his hands on that rich treasure and four times it
14870wasted to nothingness in his fingers as sleep forsook him and
14871wakefulness brought back the hard reality of his misfortune. As he lay
14872in the early morning recalling the incidents of his great adventure, he
14873noticed that they seemed curiously subdued and far away--somewhat as if
14874they had happened in another world, or in a time long gone by. Then it
14875occurred to him that the great adventure itself must be a dream! There
14876was one very strong argument in favor of this idea--namely, that the
14877quantity of coin he had seen was too vast to be real. He had never seen
14878as much as fifty dollars in one mass before, and he was like all boys
14879of his age and station in life, in that he imagined that all references
14880to "hundreds" and "thousands" were mere fanciful forms of speech, and
14881that no such sums really existed in the world. He never had supposed
14882for a moment that so large a sum as a hundred dollars was to be found
14883in actual money in any one's possession. If his notions of hidden
14884treasure had been analyzed, they would have been found to consist of a
14885handful of real dimes and a bushel of vague, splendid, ungraspable
14886dollars.
14887
14888But the incidents of his adventure grew sensibly sharper and clearer
14889under the attrition of thinking them over, and so he presently found
14890himself leaning to the impression that the thing might not have been a
14891dream, after all. This uncertainty must be swept away. He would snatch
14892a hurried breakfast and go and find Huck. Huck was sitting on the
14893gunwale of a flatboat, listlessly dangling his feet in the water and
14894looking very melancholy. Tom concluded to let Huck lead up to the
14895subject. If he did not do it, then the adventure would be proved to
14896have been only a dream.
14897
14898"Hello, Huck!"
14899
14900"Hello, yourself."
14901
14902Silence, for a minute.
14903
14904"Tom, if we'd 'a' left the blame tools at the dead tree, we'd 'a' got
14905the money. Oh, ain't it awful!"
14906
14907"'Tain't a dream, then, 'tain't a dream! Somehow I most wish it was.
14908Dog'd if I don't, Huck."
14909
14910"What ain't a dream?"
14911
14912"Oh, that thing yesterday. I been half thinking it was."
14913
14914"Dream! If them stairs hadn't broke down you'd 'a' seen how much dream
14915it was! I've had dreams enough all night--with that patch-eyed Spanish
14916devil going for me all through 'em--rot him!"
14917
14918"No, not rot him. FIND him! Track the money!"
14919
14920"Tom, we'll never find him. A feller don't have only one chance for
14921such a pile--and that one's lost. I'd feel mighty shaky if I was to see
14922him, anyway."
14923
14924"Well, so'd I; but I'd like to see him, anyway--and track him out--to
14925his Number Two."
14926
14927"Number Two--yes, that's it. I been thinking 'bout that. But I can't
14928make nothing out of it. What do you reckon it is?"
14929
14930"I dono. It's too deep. Say, Huck--maybe it's the number of a house!"
14931
14932"Goody!... No, Tom, that ain't it. If it is, it ain't in this
14933one-horse town. They ain't no numbers here."
14934
14935"Well, that's so. Lemme think a minute. Here--it's the number of a
14936room--in a tavern, you know!"
14937
14938"Oh, that's the trick! They ain't only two taverns. We can find out
14939quick."
14940
14941"You stay here, Huck, till I come."
14942
14943Tom was off at once. He did not care to have Huck's company in public
14944places. He was gone half an hour. He found that in the best tavern, No.
149452 had long been occupied by a young lawyer, and was still so occupied.
14946In the less ostentatious house, No. 2 was a mystery. The
14947tavern-keeper's young son said it was kept locked all the time, and he
14948never saw anybody go into it or come out of it except at night; he did
14949not know any particular reason for this state of things; had had some
14950little curiosity, but it was rather feeble; had made the most of the
14951mystery by entertaining himself with the idea that that room was
14952"ha'nted"; had noticed that there was a light in there the night before.
14953
14954"That's what I've found out, Huck. I reckon that's the very No. 2
14955we're after."
14956
14957"I reckon it is, Tom. Now what you going to do?"
14958
14959"Lemme think."
14960
14961Tom thought a long time. Then he said:
14962
14963"I'll tell you. The back door of that No. 2 is the door that comes out
14964into that little close alley between the tavern and the old rattle trap
14965of a brick store. Now you get hold of all the door-keys you can find,
14966and I'll nip all of auntie's, and the first dark night we'll go there
14967and try 'em. And mind you, keep a lookout for Injun Joe, because he
14968said he was going to drop into town and spy around once more for a
14969chance to get his revenge. If you see him, you just follow him; and if
14970he don't go to that No. 2, that ain't the place."
14971
14972"Lordy, I don't want to foller him by myself!"
14973
14974"Why, it'll be night, sure. He mightn't ever see you--and if he did,
14975maybe he'd never think anything."
14976
14977"Well, if it's pretty dark I reckon I'll track him. I dono--I dono.
14978I'll try."
14979
14980"You bet I'll follow him, if it's dark, Huck. Why, he might 'a' found
14981out he couldn't get his revenge, and be going right after that money."
14982
14983"It's so, Tom, it's so. I'll foller him; I will, by jingoes!"
14984
14985"Now you're TALKING! Don't you ever weaken, Huck, and I won't."
14986
14987
14988
14989CHAPTER XXVIII
14990
14991THAT night Tom and Huck were ready for their adventure. They hung
14992about the neighborhood of the tavern until after nine, one watching the
14993alley at a distance and the other the tavern door. Nobody entered the
14994alley or left it; nobody resembling the Spaniard entered or left the
14995tavern door. The night promised to be a fair one; so Tom went home with
14996the understanding that if a considerable degree of darkness came on,
14997Huck was to come and "maow," whereupon he would slip out and try the
14998keys. But the night remained clear, and Huck closed his watch and
14999retired to bed in an empty sugar hogshead about twelve.
15000
15001Tuesday the boys had the same ill luck. Also Wednesday. But Thursday
15002night promised better. Tom slipped out in good season with his aunt's
15003old tin lantern, and a large towel to blindfold it with. He hid the
15004lantern in Huck's sugar hogshead and the watch began. An hour before
15005midnight the tavern closed up and its lights (the only ones
15006thereabouts) were put out. No Spaniard had been seen. Nobody had
15007entered or left the alley. Everything was auspicious. The blackness of
15008darkness reigned, the perfect stillness was interrupted only by
15009occasional mutterings of distant thunder.
15010
15011Tom got his lantern, lit it in the hogshead, wrapped it closely in the
15012towel, and the two adventurers crept in the gloom toward the tavern.
15013Huck stood sentry and Tom felt his way into the alley. Then there was a
15014season of waiting anxiety that weighed upon Huck's spirits like a
15015mountain. He began to wish he could see a flash from the lantern--it
15016would frighten him, but it would at least tell him that Tom was alive
15017yet. It seemed hours since Tom had disappeared. Surely he must have
15018fainted; maybe he was dead; maybe his heart had burst under terror and
15019excitement. In his uneasiness Huck found himself drawing closer and
15020closer to the alley; fearing all sorts of dreadful things, and
15021momentarily expecting some catastrophe to happen that would take away
15022his breath. There was not much to take away, for he seemed only able to
15023inhale it by thimblefuls, and his heart would soon wear itself out, the
15024way it was beating. Suddenly there was a flash of light and Tom came
15025tearing by him: "Run!" said he; "run, for your life!"
15026
15027He needn't have repeated it; once was enough; Huck was making thirty
15028or forty miles an hour before the repetition was uttered. The boys
15029never stopped till they reached the shed of a deserted slaughter-house
15030at the lower end of the village. Just as they got within its shelter
15031the storm burst and the rain poured down. As soon as Tom got his breath
15032he said:
15033
15034"Huck, it was awful! I tried two of the keys, just as soft as I could;
15035but they seemed to make such a power of racket that I couldn't hardly
15036get my breath I was so scared. They wouldn't turn in the lock, either.
15037Well, without noticing what I was doing, I took hold of the knob, and
15038open comes the door! It warn't locked! I hopped in, and shook off the
15039towel, and, GREAT CAESAR'S GHOST!"
15040
15041"What!--what'd you see, Tom?"
15042
15043"Huck, I most stepped onto Injun Joe's hand!"
15044
15045"No!"
15046
15047"Yes! He was lying there, sound asleep on the floor, with his old
15048patch on his eye and his arms spread out."
15049
15050"Lordy, what did you do? Did he wake up?"
15051
15052"No, never budged. Drunk, I reckon. I just grabbed that towel and
15053started!"
15054
15055"I'd never 'a' thought of the towel, I bet!"
15056
15057"Well, I would. My aunt would make me mighty sick if I lost it."
15058
15059"Say, Tom, did you see that box?"
15060
15061"Huck, I didn't wait to look around. I didn't see the box, I didn't
15062see the cross. I didn't see anything but a bottle and a tin cup on the
15063floor by Injun Joe; yes, I saw two barrels and lots more bottles in the
15064room. Don't you see, now, what's the matter with that ha'nted room?"
15065
15066"How?"
15067
15068"Why, it's ha'nted with whiskey! Maybe ALL the Temperance Taverns have
15069got a ha'nted room, hey, Huck?"
15070
15071"Well, I reckon maybe that's so. Who'd 'a' thought such a thing? But
15072say, Tom, now's a mighty good time to get that box, if Injun Joe's
15073drunk."
15074
15075"It is, that! You try it!"
15076
15077Huck shuddered.
15078
15079"Well, no--I reckon not."
15080
15081"And I reckon not, Huck. Only one bottle alongside of Injun Joe ain't
15082enough. If there'd been three, he'd be drunk enough and I'd do it."
15083
15084There was a long pause for reflection, and then Tom said:
15085
15086"Lookyhere, Huck, less not try that thing any more till we know Injun
15087Joe's not in there. It's too scary. Now, if we watch every night, we'll
15088be dead sure to see him go out, some time or other, and then we'll
15089snatch that box quicker'n lightning."
15090
15091"Well, I'm agreed. I'll watch the whole night long, and I'll do it
15092every night, too, if you'll do the other part of the job."
15093
15094"All right, I will. All you got to do is to trot up Hooper Street a
15095block and maow--and if I'm asleep, you throw some gravel at the window
15096and that'll fetch me."
15097
15098"Agreed, and good as wheat!"
15099
15100"Now, Huck, the storm's over, and I'll go home. It'll begin to be
15101daylight in a couple of hours. You go back and watch that long, will
15102you?"
15103
15104"I said I would, Tom, and I will. I'll ha'nt that tavern every night
15105for a year! I'll sleep all day and I'll stand watch all night."
15106
15107"That's all right. Now, where you going to sleep?"
15108
15109"In Ben Rogers' hayloft. He lets me, and so does his pap's nigger man,
15110Uncle Jake. I tote water for Uncle Jake whenever he wants me to, and
15111any time I ask him he gives me a little something to eat if he can
15112spare it. That's a mighty good nigger, Tom. He likes me, becuz I don't
15113ever act as if I was above him. Sometime I've set right down and eat
15114WITH him. But you needn't tell that. A body's got to do things when
15115he's awful hungry he wouldn't want to do as a steady thing."
15116
15117"Well, if I don't want you in the daytime, I'll let you sleep. I won't
15118come bothering around. Any time you see something's up, in the night,
15119just skip right around and maow."
15120
15121
15122
15123CHAPTER XXIX
15124
15125THE first thing Tom heard on Friday morning was a glad piece of news
15126--Judge Thatcher's family had come back to town the night before. Both
15127Injun Joe and the treasure sunk into secondary importance for a moment,
15128and Becky took the chief place in the boy's interest. He saw her and
15129they had an exhausting good time playing "hi-spy" and "gully-keeper"
15130with a crowd of their school-mates. The day was completed and crowned
15131in a peculiarly satisfactory way: Becky teased her mother to appoint
15132the next day for the long-promised and long-delayed picnic, and she
15133consented. The child's delight was boundless; and Tom's not more
15134moderate. The invitations were sent out before sunset, and straightway
15135the young folks of the village were thrown into a fever of preparation
15136and pleasurable anticipation. Tom's excitement enabled him to keep
15137awake until a pretty late hour, and he had good hopes of hearing Huck's
15138"maow," and of having his treasure to astonish Becky and the picnickers
15139with, next day; but he was disappointed. No signal came that night.
15140
15141Morning came, eventually, and by ten or eleven o'clock a giddy and
15142rollicking company were gathered at Judge Thatcher's, and everything
15143was ready for a start. It was not the custom for elderly people to mar
15144the picnics with their presence. The children were considered safe
15145enough under the wings of a few young ladies of eighteen and a few
15146young gentlemen of twenty-three or thereabouts. The old steam ferryboat
15147was chartered for the occasion; presently the gay throng filed up the
15148main street laden with provision-baskets. Sid was sick and had to miss
15149the fun; Mary remained at home to entertain him. The last thing Mrs.
15150Thatcher said to Becky, was:
15151
15152"You'll not get back till late. Perhaps you'd better stay all night
15153with some of the girls that live near the ferry-landing, child."
15154
15155"Then I'll stay with Susy Harper, mamma."
15156
15157"Very well. And mind and behave yourself and don't be any trouble."
15158
15159Presently, as they tripped along, Tom said to Becky:
15160
15161"Say--I'll tell you what we'll do. 'Stead of going to Joe Harper's
15162we'll climb right up the hill and stop at the Widow Douglas'. She'll
15163have ice-cream! She has it most every day--dead loads of it. And she'll
15164be awful glad to have us."
15165
15166"Oh, that will be fun!"
15167
15168Then Becky reflected a moment and said:
15169
15170"But what will mamma say?"
15171
15172"How'll she ever know?"
15173
15174The girl turned the idea over in her mind, and said reluctantly:
15175
15176"I reckon it's wrong--but--"
15177
15178"But shucks! Your mother won't know, and so what's the harm? All she
15179wants is that you'll be safe; and I bet you she'd 'a' said go there if
15180she'd 'a' thought of it. I know she would!"
15181
15182The Widow Douglas' splendid hospitality was a tempting bait. It and
15183Tom's persuasions presently carried the day. So it was decided to say
15184nothing anybody about the night's programme. Presently it occurred to
15185Tom that maybe Huck might come this very night and give the signal. The
15186thought took a deal of the spirit out of his anticipations. Still he
15187could not bear to give up the fun at Widow Douglas'. And why should he
15188give it up, he reasoned--the signal did not come the night before, so
15189why should it be any more likely to come to-night? The sure fun of the
15190evening outweighed the uncertain treasure; and, boy-like, he determined
15191to yield to the stronger inclination and not allow himself to think of
15192the box of money another time that day.
15193
15194Three miles below town the ferryboat stopped at the mouth of a woody
15195hollow and tied up. The crowd swarmed ashore and soon the forest
15196distances and craggy heights echoed far and near with shoutings and
15197laughter. All the different ways of getting hot and tired were gone
15198through with, and by-and-by the rovers straggled back to camp fortified
15199with responsible appetites, and then the destruction of the good things
15200began. After the feast there was a refreshing season of rest and chat
15201in the shade of spreading oaks. By-and-by somebody shouted:
15202
15203"Who's ready for the cave?"
15204
15205Everybody was. Bundles of candles were procured, and straightway there
15206was a general scamper up the hill. The mouth of the cave was up the
15207hillside--an opening shaped like a letter A. Its massive oaken door
15208stood unbarred. Within was a small chamber, chilly as an ice-house, and
15209walled by Nature with solid limestone that was dewy with a cold sweat.
15210It was romantic and mysterious to stand here in the deep gloom and look
15211out upon the green valley shining in the sun. But the impressiveness of
15212the situation quickly wore off, and the romping began again. The moment
15213a candle was lighted there was a general rush upon the owner of it; a
15214struggle and a gallant defence followed, but the candle was soon
15215knocked down or blown out, and then there was a glad clamor of laughter
15216and a new chase. But all things have an end. By-and-by the procession
15217went filing down the steep descent of the main avenue, the flickering
15218rank of lights dimly revealing the lofty walls of rock almost to their
15219point of junction sixty feet overhead. This main avenue was not more
15220than eight or ten feet wide. Every few steps other lofty and still
15221narrower crevices branched from it on either hand--for McDougal's cave
15222was but a vast labyrinth of crooked aisles that ran into each other and
15223out again and led nowhere. It was said that one might wander days and
15224nights together through its intricate tangle of rifts and chasms, and
15225never find the end of the cave; and that he might go down, and down,
15226and still down, into the earth, and it was just the same--labyrinth
15227under labyrinth, and no end to any of them. No man "knew" the cave.
15228That was an impossible thing. Most of the young men knew a portion of
15229it, and it was not customary to venture much beyond this known portion.
15230Tom Sawyer knew as much of the cave as any one.
15231
15232The procession moved along the main avenue some three-quarters of a
15233mile, and then groups and couples began to slip aside into branch
15234avenues, fly along the dismal corridors, and take each other by
15235surprise at points where the corridors joined again. Parties were able
15236to elude each other for the space of half an hour without going beyond
15237the "known" ground.
15238
15239By-and-by, one group after another came straggling back to the mouth
15240of the cave, panting, hilarious, smeared from head to foot with tallow
15241drippings, daubed with clay, and entirely delighted with the success of
15242the day. Then they were astonished to find that they had been taking no
15243note of time and that night was about at hand. The clanging bell had
15244been calling for half an hour. However, this sort of close to the day's
15245adventures was romantic and therefore satisfactory. When the ferryboat
15246with her wild freight pushed into the stream, nobody cared sixpence for
15247the wasted time but the captain of the craft.
15248
15249Huck was already upon his watch when the ferryboat's lights went
15250glinting past the wharf. He heard no noise on board, for the young
15251people were as subdued and still as people usually are who are nearly
15252tired to death. He wondered what boat it was, and why she did not stop
15253at the wharf--and then he dropped her out of his mind and put his
15254attention upon his business. The night was growing cloudy and dark. Ten
15255o'clock came, and the noise of vehicles ceased, scattered lights began
15256to wink out, all straggling foot-passengers disappeared, the village
15257betook itself to its slumbers and left the small watcher alone with the
15258silence and the ghosts. Eleven o'clock came, and the tavern lights were
15259put out; darkness everywhere, now. Huck waited what seemed a weary long
15260time, but nothing happened. His faith was weakening. Was there any use?
15261Was there really any use? Why not give it up and turn in?
15262
15263A noise fell upon his ear. He was all attention in an instant. The
15264alley door closed softly. He sprang to the corner of the brick store.
15265The next moment two men brushed by him, and one seemed to have
15266something under his arm. It must be that box! So they were going to
15267remove the treasure. Why call Tom now? It would be absurd--the men
15268would get away with the box and never be found again. No, he would
15269stick to their wake and follow them; he would trust to the darkness for
15270security from discovery. So communing with himself, Huck stepped out
15271and glided along behind the men, cat-like, with bare feet, allowing
15272them to keep just far enough ahead not to be invisible.
15273
15274They moved up the river street three blocks, then turned to the left
15275up a cross-street. They went straight ahead, then, until they came to
15276the path that led up Cardiff Hill; this they took. They passed by the
15277old Welshman's house, half-way up the hill, without hesitating, and
15278still climbed upward. Good, thought Huck, they will bury it in the old
15279quarry. But they never stopped at the quarry. They passed on, up the
15280summit. They plunged into the narrow path between the tall sumach
15281bushes, and were at once hidden in the gloom. Huck closed up and
15282shortened his distance, now, for they would never be able to see him.
15283He trotted along awhile; then slackened his pace, fearing he was
15284gaining too fast; moved on a piece, then stopped altogether; listened;
15285no sound; none, save that he seemed to hear the beating of his own
15286heart. The hooting of an owl came over the hill--ominous sound! But no
15287footsteps. Heavens, was everything lost! He was about to spring with
15288winged feet, when a man cleared his throat not four feet from him!
15289Huck's heart shot into his throat, but he swallowed it again; and then
15290he stood there shaking as if a dozen agues had taken charge of him at
15291once, and so weak that he thought he must surely fall to the ground. He
15292knew where he was. He knew he was within five steps of the stile
15293leading into Widow Douglas' grounds. Very well, he thought, let them
15294bury it there; it won't be hard to find.
15295
15296Now there was a voice--a very low voice--Injun Joe's:
15297
15298"Damn her, maybe she's got company--there's lights, late as it is."
15299
15300"I can't see any."
15301
15302This was that stranger's voice--the stranger of the haunted house. A
15303deadly chill went to Huck's heart--this, then, was the "revenge" job!
15304His thought was, to fly. Then he remembered that the Widow Douglas had
15305been kind to him more than once, and maybe these men were going to
15306murder her. He wished he dared venture to warn her; but he knew he
15307didn't dare--they might come and catch him. He thought all this and
15308more in the moment that elapsed between the stranger's remark and Injun
15309Joe's next--which was--
15310
15311"Because the bush is in your way. Now--this way--now you see, don't
15312you?"
15313
15314"Yes. Well, there IS company there, I reckon. Better give it up."
15315
15316"Give it up, and I just leaving this country forever! Give it up and
15317maybe never have another chance. I tell you again, as I've told you
15318before, I don't care for her swag--you may have it. But her husband was
15319rough on me--many times he was rough on me--and mainly he was the
15320justice of the peace that jugged me for a vagrant. And that ain't all.
15321It ain't a millionth part of it! He had me HORSEWHIPPED!--horsewhipped
15322in front of the jail, like a nigger!--with all the town looking on!
15323HORSEWHIPPED!--do you understand? He took advantage of me and died. But
15324I'll take it out of HER."
15325
15326"Oh, don't kill her! Don't do that!"
15327
15328"Kill? Who said anything about killing? I would kill HIM if he was
15329here; but not her. When you want to get revenge on a woman you don't
15330kill her--bosh! you go for her looks. You slit her nostrils--you notch
15331her ears like a sow!"
15332
15333"By God, that's--"
15334
15335"Keep your opinion to yourself! It will be safest for you. I'll tie
15336her to the bed. If she bleeds to death, is that my fault? I'll not cry,
15337if she does. My friend, you'll help me in this thing--for MY sake
15338--that's why you're here--I mightn't be able alone. If you flinch, I'll
15339kill you. Do you understand that? And if I have to kill you, I'll kill
15340her--and then I reckon nobody'll ever know much about who done this
15341business."
15342
15343"Well, if it's got to be done, let's get at it. The quicker the
15344better--I'm all in a shiver."
15345
15346"Do it NOW? And company there? Look here--I'll get suspicious of you,
15347first thing you know. No--we'll wait till the lights are out--there's
15348no hurry."
15349
15350Huck felt that a silence was going to ensue--a thing still more awful
15351than any amount of murderous talk; so he held his breath and stepped
15352gingerly back; planted his foot carefully and firmly, after balancing,
15353one-legged, in a precarious way and almost toppling over, first on one
15354side and then on the other. He took another step back, with the same
15355elaboration and the same risks; then another and another, and--a twig
15356snapped under his foot! His breath stopped and he listened. There was
15357no sound--the stillness was perfect. His gratitude was measureless. Now
15358he turned in his tracks, between the walls of sumach bushes--turned
15359himself as carefully as if he were a ship--and then stepped quickly but
15360cautiously along. When he emerged at the quarry he felt secure, and so
15361he picked up his nimble heels and flew. Down, down he sped, till he
15362reached the Welshman's. He banged at the door, and presently the heads
15363of the old man and his two stalwart sons were thrust from windows.
15364
15365"What's the row there? Who's banging? What do you want?"
15366
15367"Let me in--quick! I'll tell everything."
15368
15369"Why, who are you?"
15370
15371"Huckleberry Finn--quick, let me in!"
15372
15373"Huckleberry Finn, indeed! It ain't a name to open many doors, I
15374judge! But let him in, lads, and let's see what's the trouble."
15375
15376"Please don't ever tell I told you," were Huck's first words when he
15377got in. "Please don't--I'd be killed, sure--but the widow's been good
15378friends to me sometimes, and I want to tell--I WILL tell if you'll
15379promise you won't ever say it was me."
15380
15381"By George, he HAS got something to tell, or he wouldn't act so!"
15382exclaimed the old man; "out with it and nobody here'll ever tell, lad."
15383
15384Three minutes later the old man and his sons, well armed, were up the
15385hill, and just entering the sumach path on tiptoe, their weapons in
15386their hands. Huck accompanied them no further. He hid behind a great
15387bowlder and fell to listening. There was a lagging, anxious silence,
15388and then all of a sudden there was an explosion of firearms and a cry.
15389
15390Huck waited for no particulars. He sprang away and sped down the hill
15391as fast as his legs could carry him.
15392
15393
15394
15395CHAPTER XXX
15396
15397AS the earliest suspicion of dawn appeared on Sunday morning, Huck
15398came groping up the hill and rapped gently at the old Welshman's door.
15399The inmates were asleep, but it was a sleep that was set on a
15400hair-trigger, on account of the exciting episode of the night. A call
15401came from a window:
15402
15403"Who's there!"
15404
15405Huck's scared voice answered in a low tone:
15406
15407"Please let me in! It's only Huck Finn!"
15408
15409"It's a name that can open this door night or day, lad!--and welcome!"
15410
15411These were strange words to the vagabond boy's ears, and the
15412pleasantest he had ever heard. He could not recollect that the closing
15413word had ever been applied in his case before. The door was quickly
15414unlocked, and he entered. Huck was given a seat and the old man and his
15415brace of tall sons speedily dressed themselves.
15416
15417"Now, my boy, I hope you're good and hungry, because breakfast will be
15418ready as soon as the sun's up, and we'll have a piping hot one, too
15419--make yourself easy about that! I and the boys hoped you'd turn up and
15420stop here last night."
15421
15422"I was awful scared," said Huck, "and I run. I took out when the
15423pistols went off, and I didn't stop for three mile. I've come now becuz
15424I wanted to know about it, you know; and I come before daylight becuz I
15425didn't want to run across them devils, even if they was dead."
15426
15427"Well, poor chap, you do look as if you'd had a hard night of it--but
15428there's a bed here for you when you've had your breakfast. No, they
15429ain't dead, lad--we are sorry enough for that. You see we knew right
15430where to put our hands on them, by your description; so we crept along
15431on tiptoe till we got within fifteen feet of them--dark as a cellar
15432that sumach path was--and just then I found I was going to sneeze. It
15433was the meanest kind of luck! I tried to keep it back, but no use
15434--'twas bound to come, and it did come! I was in the lead with my pistol
15435raised, and when the sneeze started those scoundrels a-rustling to get
15436out of the path, I sung out, 'Fire boys!' and blazed away at the place
15437where the rustling was. So did the boys. But they were off in a jiffy,
15438those villains, and we after them, down through the woods. I judge we
15439never touched them. They fired a shot apiece as they started, but their
15440bullets whizzed by and didn't do us any harm. As soon as we lost the
15441sound of their feet we quit chasing, and went down and stirred up the
15442constables. They got a posse together, and went off to guard the river
15443bank, and as soon as it is light the sheriff and a gang are going to
15444beat up the woods. My boys will be with them presently. I wish we had
15445some sort of description of those rascals--'twould help a good deal.
15446But you couldn't see what they were like, in the dark, lad, I suppose?"
15447
15448"Oh yes; I saw them down-town and follered them."
15449
15450"Splendid! Describe them--describe them, my boy!"
15451
15452"One's the old deaf and dumb Spaniard that's ben around here once or
15453twice, and t'other's a mean-looking, ragged--"
15454
15455"That's enough, lad, we know the men! Happened on them in the woods
15456back of the widow's one day, and they slunk away. Off with you, boys,
15457and tell the sheriff--get your breakfast to-morrow morning!"
15458
15459The Welshman's sons departed at once. As they were leaving the room
15460Huck sprang up and exclaimed:
15461
15462"Oh, please don't tell ANYbody it was me that blowed on them! Oh,
15463please!"
15464
15465"All right if you say it, Huck, but you ought to have the credit of
15466what you did."
15467
15468"Oh no, no! Please don't tell!"
15469
15470When the young men were gone, the old Welshman said:
15471
15472"They won't tell--and I won't. But why don't you want it known?"
15473
15474Huck would not explain, further than to say that he already knew too
15475much about one of those men and would not have the man know that he
15476knew anything against him for the whole world--he would be killed for
15477knowing it, sure.
15478
15479The old man promised secrecy once more, and said:
15480
15481"How did you come to follow these fellows, lad? Were they looking
15482suspicious?"
15483
15484Huck was silent while he framed a duly cautious reply. Then he said:
15485
15486"Well, you see, I'm a kind of a hard lot,--least everybody says so,
15487and I don't see nothing agin it--and sometimes I can't sleep much, on
15488account of thinking about it and sort of trying to strike out a new way
15489of doing. That was the way of it last night. I couldn't sleep, and so I
15490come along up-street 'bout midnight, a-turning it all over, and when I
15491got to that old shackly brick store by the Temperance Tavern, I backed
15492up agin the wall to have another think. Well, just then along comes
15493these two chaps slipping along close by me, with something under their
15494arm, and I reckoned they'd stole it. One was a-smoking, and t'other one
15495wanted a light; so they stopped right before me and the cigars lit up
15496their faces and I see that the big one was the deaf and dumb Spaniard,
15497by his white whiskers and the patch on his eye, and t'other one was a
15498rusty, ragged-looking devil."
15499
15500"Could you see the rags by the light of the cigars?"
15501
15502This staggered Huck for a moment. Then he said:
15503
15504"Well, I don't know--but somehow it seems as if I did."
15505
15506"Then they went on, and you--"
15507
15508"Follered 'em--yes. That was it. I wanted to see what was up--they
15509sneaked along so. I dogged 'em to the widder's stile, and stood in the
15510dark and heard the ragged one beg for the widder, and the Spaniard
15511swear he'd spile her looks just as I told you and your two--"
15512
15513"What! The DEAF AND DUMB man said all that!"
15514
15515Huck had made another terrible mistake! He was trying his best to keep
15516the old man from getting the faintest hint of who the Spaniard might
15517be, and yet his tongue seemed determined to get him into trouble in
15518spite of all he could do. He made several efforts to creep out of his
15519scrape, but the old man's eye was upon him and he made blunder after
15520blunder. Presently the Welshman said:
15521
15522"My boy, don't be afraid of me. I wouldn't hurt a hair of your head
15523for all the world. No--I'd protect you--I'd protect you. This Spaniard
15524is not deaf and dumb; you've let that slip without intending it; you
15525can't cover that up now. You know something about that Spaniard that
15526you want to keep dark. Now trust me--tell me what it is, and trust me
15527--I won't betray you."
15528
15529Huck looked into the old man's honest eyes a moment, then bent over
15530and whispered in his ear:
15531
15532"'Tain't a Spaniard--it's Injun Joe!"
15533
15534The Welshman almost jumped out of his chair. In a moment he said:
15535
15536"It's all plain enough, now. When you talked about notching ears and
15537slitting noses I judged that that was your own embellishment, because
15538white men don't take that sort of revenge. But an Injun! That's a
15539different matter altogether."
15540
15541During breakfast the talk went on, and in the course of it the old man
15542said that the last thing which he and his sons had done, before going
15543to bed, was to get a lantern and examine the stile and its vicinity for
15544marks of blood. They found none, but captured a bulky bundle of--
15545
15546"Of WHAT?"
15547
15548If the words had been lightning they could not have leaped with a more
15549stunning suddenness from Huck's blanched lips. His eyes were staring
15550wide, now, and his breath suspended--waiting for the answer. The
15551Welshman started--stared in return--three seconds--five seconds--ten
15552--then replied:
15553
15554"Of burglar's tools. Why, what's the MATTER with you?"
15555
15556Huck sank back, panting gently, but deeply, unutterably grateful. The
15557Welshman eyed him gravely, curiously--and presently said:
15558
15559"Yes, burglar's tools. That appears to relieve you a good deal. But
15560what did give you that turn? What were YOU expecting we'd found?"
15561
15562Huck was in a close place--the inquiring eye was upon him--he would
15563have given anything for material for a plausible answer--nothing
15564suggested itself--the inquiring eye was boring deeper and deeper--a
15565senseless reply offered--there was no time to weigh it, so at a venture
15566he uttered it--feebly:
15567
15568"Sunday-school books, maybe."
15569
15570Poor Huck was too distressed to smile, but the old man laughed loud
15571and joyously, shook up the details of his anatomy from head to foot,
15572and ended by saying that such a laugh was money in a-man's pocket,
15573because it cut down the doctor's bill like everything. Then he added:
15574
15575"Poor old chap, you're white and jaded--you ain't well a bit--no
15576wonder you're a little flighty and off your balance. But you'll come
15577out of it. Rest and sleep will fetch you out all right, I hope."
15578
15579Huck was irritated to think he had been such a goose and betrayed such
15580a suspicious excitement, for he had dropped the idea that the parcel
15581brought from the tavern was the treasure, as soon as he had heard the
15582talk at the widow's stile. He had only thought it was not the treasure,
15583however--he had not known that it wasn't--and so the suggestion of a
15584captured bundle was too much for his self-possession. But on the whole
15585he felt glad the little episode had happened, for now he knew beyond
15586all question that that bundle was not THE bundle, and so his mind was
15587at rest and exceedingly comfortable. In fact, everything seemed to be
15588drifting just in the right direction, now; the treasure must be still
15589in No. 2, the men would be captured and jailed that day, and he and Tom
15590could seize the gold that night without any trouble or any fear of
15591interruption.
15592
15593Just as breakfast was completed there was a knock at the door. Huck
15594jumped for a hiding-place, for he had no mind to be connected even
15595remotely with the late event. The Welshman admitted several ladies and
15596gentlemen, among them the Widow Douglas, and noticed that groups of
15597citizens were climbing up the hill--to stare at the stile. So the news
15598had spread. The Welshman had to tell the story of the night to the
15599visitors. The widow's gratitude for her preservation was outspoken.
15600
15601"Don't say a word about it, madam. There's another that you're more
15602beholden to than you are to me and my boys, maybe, but he don't allow
15603me to tell his name. We wouldn't have been there but for him."
15604
15605Of course this excited a curiosity so vast that it almost belittled
15606the main matter--but the Welshman allowed it to eat into the vitals of
15607his visitors, and through them be transmitted to the whole town, for he
15608refused to part with his secret. When all else had been learned, the
15609widow said:
15610
15611"I went to sleep reading in bed and slept straight through all that
15612noise. Why didn't you come and wake me?"
15613
15614"We judged it warn't worth while. Those fellows warn't likely to come
15615again--they hadn't any tools left to work with, and what was the use of
15616waking you up and scaring you to death? My three negro men stood guard
15617at your house all the rest of the night. They've just come back."
15618
15619More visitors came, and the story had to be told and retold for a
15620couple of hours more.
15621
15622There was no Sabbath-school during day-school vacation, but everybody
15623was early at church. The stirring event was well canvassed. News came
15624that not a sign of the two villains had been yet discovered. When the
15625sermon was finished, Judge Thatcher's wife dropped alongside of Mrs.
15626Harper as she moved down the aisle with the crowd and said:
15627
15628"Is my Becky going to sleep all day? I just expected she would be
15629tired to death."
15630
15631"Your Becky?"
15632
15633"Yes," with a startled look--"didn't she stay with you last night?"
15634
15635"Why, no."
15636
15637Mrs. Thatcher turned pale, and sank into a pew, just as Aunt Polly,
15638talking briskly with a friend, passed by. Aunt Polly said:
15639
15640"Good-morning, Mrs. Thatcher. Good-morning, Mrs. Harper. I've got a
15641boy that's turned up missing. I reckon my Tom stayed at your house last
15642night--one of you. And now he's afraid to come to church. I've got to
15643settle with him."
15644
15645Mrs. Thatcher shook her head feebly and turned paler than ever.
15646
15647"He didn't stay with us," said Mrs. Harper, beginning to look uneasy.
15648A marked anxiety came into Aunt Polly's face.
15649
15650"Joe Harper, have you seen my Tom this morning?"
15651
15652"No'm."
15653
15654"When did you see him last?"
15655
15656Joe tried to remember, but was not sure he could say. The people had
15657stopped moving out of church. Whispers passed along, and a boding
15658uneasiness took possession of every countenance. Children were
15659anxiously questioned, and young teachers. They all said they had not
15660noticed whether Tom and Becky were on board the ferryboat on the
15661homeward trip; it was dark; no one thought of inquiring if any one was
15662missing. One young man finally blurted out his fear that they were
15663still in the cave! Mrs. Thatcher swooned away. Aunt Polly fell to
15664crying and wringing her hands.
15665
15666The alarm swept from lip to lip, from group to group, from street to
15667street, and within five minutes the bells were wildly clanging and the
15668whole town was up! The Cardiff Hill episode sank into instant
15669insignificance, the burglars were forgotten, horses were saddled,
15670skiffs were manned, the ferryboat ordered out, and before the horror
15671was half an hour old, two hundred men were pouring down highroad and
15672river toward the cave.
15673
15674All the long afternoon the village seemed empty and dead. Many women
15675visited Aunt Polly and Mrs. Thatcher and tried to comfort them. They
15676cried with them, too, and that was still better than words. All the
15677tedious night the town waited for news; but when the morning dawned at
15678last, all the word that came was, "Send more candles--and send food."
15679Mrs. Thatcher was almost crazed; and Aunt Polly, also. Judge Thatcher
15680sent messages of hope and encouragement from the cave, but they
15681conveyed no real cheer.
15682
15683The old Welshman came home toward daylight, spattered with
15684candle-grease, smeared with clay, and almost worn out. He found Huck
15685still in the bed that had been provided for him, and delirious with
15686fever. The physicians were all at the cave, so the Widow Douglas came
15687and took charge of the patient. She said she would do her best by him,
15688because, whether he was good, bad, or indifferent, he was the Lord's,
15689and nothing that was the Lord's was a thing to be neglected. The
15690Welshman said Huck had good spots in him, and the widow said:
15691
15692"You can depend on it. That's the Lord's mark. He don't leave it off.
15693He never does. Puts it somewhere on every creature that comes from his
15694hands."
15695
15696Early in the forenoon parties of jaded men began to straggle into the
15697village, but the strongest of the citizens continued searching. All the
15698news that could be gained was that remotenesses of the cavern were
15699being ransacked that had never been visited before; that every corner
15700and crevice was going to be thoroughly searched; that wherever one
15701wandered through the maze of passages, lights were to be seen flitting
15702hither and thither in the distance, and shoutings and pistol-shots sent
15703their hollow reverberations to the ear down the sombre aisles. In one
15704place, far from the section usually traversed by tourists, the names
15705"BECKY & TOM" had been found traced upon the rocky wall with
15706candle-smoke, and near at hand a grease-soiled bit of ribbon. Mrs.
15707Thatcher recognized the ribbon and cried over it. She said it was the
15708last relic she should ever have of her child; and that no other memorial
15709of her could ever be so precious, because this one parted latest from
15710the living body before the awful death came. Some said that now and
15711then, in the cave, a far-away speck of light would glimmer, and then a
15712glorious shout would burst forth and a score of men go trooping down the
15713echoing aisle--and then a sickening disappointment always followed; the
15714children were not there; it was only a searcher's light.
15715
15716Three dreadful days and nights dragged their tedious hours along, and
15717the village sank into a hopeless stupor. No one had heart for anything.
15718The accidental discovery, just made, that the proprietor of the
15719Temperance Tavern kept liquor on his premises, scarcely fluttered the
15720public pulse, tremendous as the fact was. In a lucid interval, Huck
15721feebly led up to the subject of taverns, and finally asked--dimly
15722dreading the worst--if anything had been discovered at the Temperance
15723Tavern since he had been ill.
15724
15725"Yes," said the widow.
15726
15727Huck started up in bed, wild-eyed:
15728
15729"What? What was it?"
15730
15731"Liquor!--and the place has been shut up. Lie down, child--what a turn
15732you did give me!"
15733
15734"Only tell me just one thing--only just one--please! Was it Tom Sawyer
15735that found it?"
15736
15737The widow burst into tears. "Hush, hush, child, hush! I've told you
15738before, you must NOT talk. You are very, very sick!"
15739
15740Then nothing but liquor had been found; there would have been a great
15741powwow if it had been the gold. So the treasure was gone forever--gone
15742forever! But what could she be crying about? Curious that she should
15743cry.
15744
15745These thoughts worked their dim way through Huck's mind, and under the
15746weariness they gave him he fell asleep. The widow said to herself:
15747
15748"There--he's asleep, poor wreck. Tom Sawyer find it! Pity but somebody
15749could find Tom Sawyer! Ah, there ain't many left, now, that's got hope
15750enough, or strength enough, either, to go on searching."
15751
15752
15753
15754CHAPTER XXXI
15755
15756NOW to return to Tom and Becky's share in the picnic. They tripped
15757along the murky aisles with the rest of the company, visiting the
15758familiar wonders of the cave--wonders dubbed with rather
15759over-descriptive names, such as "The Drawing-Room," "The Cathedral,"
15760"Aladdin's Palace," and so on. Presently the hide-and-seek frolicking
15761began, and Tom and Becky engaged in it with zeal until the exertion
15762began to grow a trifle wearisome; then they wandered down a sinuous
15763avenue holding their candles aloft and reading the tangled web-work of
15764names, dates, post-office addresses, and mottoes with which the rocky
15765walls had been frescoed (in candle-smoke). Still drifting along and
15766talking, they scarcely noticed that they were now in a part of the cave
15767whose walls were not frescoed. They smoked their own names under an
15768overhanging shelf and moved on. Presently they came to a place where a
15769little stream of water, trickling over a ledge and carrying a limestone
15770sediment with it, had, in the slow-dragging ages, formed a laced and
15771ruffled Niagara in gleaming and imperishable stone. Tom squeezed his
15772small body behind it in order to illuminate it for Becky's
15773gratification. He found that it curtained a sort of steep natural
15774stairway which was enclosed between narrow walls, and at once the
15775ambition to be a discoverer seized him. Becky responded to his call,
15776and they made a smoke-mark for future guidance, and started upon their
15777quest. They wound this way and that, far down into the secret depths of
15778the cave, made another mark, and branched off in search of novelties to
15779tell the upper world about. In one place they found a spacious cavern,
15780from whose ceiling depended a multitude of shining stalactites of the
15781length and circumference of a man's leg; they walked all about it,
15782wondering and admiring, and presently left it by one of the numerous
15783passages that opened into it. This shortly brought them to a bewitching
15784spring, whose basin was incrusted with a frostwork of glittering
15785crystals; it was in the midst of a cavern whose walls were supported by
15786many fantastic pillars which had been formed by the joining of great
15787stalactites and stalagmites together, the result of the ceaseless
15788water-drip of centuries. Under the roof vast knots of bats had packed
15789themselves together, thousands in a bunch; the lights disturbed the
15790creatures and they came flocking down by hundreds, squeaking and
15791darting furiously at the candles. Tom knew their ways and the danger of
15792this sort of conduct. He seized Becky's hand and hurried her into the
15793first corridor that offered; and none too soon, for a bat struck
15794Becky's light out with its wing while she was passing out of the
15795cavern. The bats chased the children a good distance; but the fugitives
15796plunged into every new passage that offered, and at last got rid of the
15797perilous things. Tom found a subterranean lake, shortly, which
15798stretched its dim length away until its shape was lost in the shadows.
15799He wanted to explore its borders, but concluded that it would be best
15800to sit down and rest awhile, first. Now, for the first time, the deep
15801stillness of the place laid a clammy hand upon the spirits of the
15802children. Becky said:
15803
15804"Why, I didn't notice, but it seems ever so long since I heard any of
15805the others."
15806
15807"Come to think, Becky, we are away down below them--and I don't know
15808how far away north, or south, or east, or whichever it is. We couldn't
15809hear them here."
15810
15811Becky grew apprehensive.
15812
15813"I wonder how long we've been down here, Tom? We better start back."
15814
15815"Yes, I reckon we better. P'raps we better."
15816
15817"Can you find the way, Tom? It's all a mixed-up crookedness to me."
15818
15819"I reckon I could find it--but then the bats. If they put our candles
15820out it will be an awful fix. Let's try some other way, so as not to go
15821through there."
15822
15823"Well. But I hope we won't get lost. It would be so awful!" and the
15824girl shuddered at the thought of the dreadful possibilities.
15825
15826They started through a corridor, and traversed it in silence a long
15827way, glancing at each new opening, to see if there was anything
15828familiar about the look of it; but they were all strange. Every time
15829Tom made an examination, Becky would watch his face for an encouraging
15830sign, and he would say cheerily:
15831
15832"Oh, it's all right. This ain't the one, but we'll come to it right
15833away!"
15834
15835But he felt less and less hopeful with each failure, and presently
15836began to turn off into diverging avenues at sheer random, in desperate
15837hope of finding the one that was wanted. He still said it was "all
15838right," but there was such a leaden dread at his heart that the words
15839had lost their ring and sounded just as if he had said, "All is lost!"
15840Becky clung to his side in an anguish of fear, and tried hard to keep
15841back the tears, but they would come. At last she said:
15842
15843"Oh, Tom, never mind the bats, let's go back that way! We seem to get
15844worse and worse off all the time."
15845
15846"Listen!" said he.
15847
15848Profound silence; silence so deep that even their breathings were
15849conspicuous in the hush. Tom shouted. The call went echoing down the
15850empty aisles and died out in the distance in a faint sound that
15851resembled a ripple of mocking laughter.
15852
15853"Oh, don't do it again, Tom, it is too horrid," said Becky.
15854
15855"It is horrid, but I better, Becky; they might hear us, you know," and
15856he shouted again.
15857
15858The "might" was even a chillier horror than the ghostly laughter, it
15859so confessed a perishing hope. The children stood still and listened;
15860but there was no result. Tom turned upon the back track at once, and
15861hurried his steps. It was but a little while before a certain
15862indecision in his manner revealed another fearful fact to Becky--he
15863could not find his way back!
15864
15865"Oh, Tom, you didn't make any marks!"
15866
15867"Becky, I was such a fool! Such a fool! I never thought we might want
15868to come back! No--I can't find the way. It's all mixed up."
15869
15870"Tom, Tom, we're lost! we're lost! We never can get out of this awful
15871place! Oh, why DID we ever leave the others!"
15872
15873She sank to the ground and burst into such a frenzy of crying that Tom
15874was appalled with the idea that she might die, or lose her reason. He
15875sat down by her and put his arms around her; she buried her face in his
15876bosom, she clung to him, she poured out her terrors, her unavailing
15877regrets, and the far echoes turned them all to jeering laughter. Tom
15878begged her to pluck up hope again, and she said she could not. He fell
15879to blaming and abusing himself for getting her into this miserable
15880situation; this had a better effect. She said she would try to hope
15881again, she would get up and follow wherever he might lead if only he
15882would not talk like that any more. For he was no more to blame than
15883she, she said.
15884
15885So they moved on again--aimlessly--simply at random--all they could do
15886was to move, keep moving. For a little while, hope made a show of
15887reviving--not with any reason to back it, but only because it is its
15888nature to revive when the spring has not been taken out of it by age
15889and familiarity with failure.
15890
15891By-and-by Tom took Becky's candle and blew it out. This economy meant
15892so much! Words were not needed. Becky understood, and her hope died
15893again. She knew that Tom had a whole candle and three or four pieces in
15894his pockets--yet he must economize.
15895
15896By-and-by, fatigue began to assert its claims; the children tried to
15897pay attention, for it was dreadful to think of sitting down when time
15898was grown to be so precious, moving, in some direction, in any
15899direction, was at least progress and might bear fruit; but to sit down
15900was to invite death and shorten its pursuit.
15901
15902At last Becky's frail limbs refused to carry her farther. She sat
15903down. Tom rested with her, and they talked of home, and the friends
15904there, and the comfortable beds and, above all, the light! Becky cried,
15905and Tom tried to think of some way of comforting her, but all his
15906encouragements were grown threadbare with use, and sounded like
15907sarcasms. Fatigue bore so heavily upon Becky that she drowsed off to
15908sleep. Tom was grateful. He sat looking into her drawn face and saw it
15909grow smooth and natural under the influence of pleasant dreams; and
15910by-and-by a smile dawned and rested there. The peaceful face reflected
15911somewhat of peace and healing into his own spirit, and his thoughts
15912wandered away to bygone times and dreamy memories. While he was deep in
15913his musings, Becky woke up with a breezy little laugh--but it was
15914stricken dead upon her lips, and a groan followed it.
15915
15916"Oh, how COULD I sleep! I wish I never, never had waked! No! No, I
15917don't, Tom! Don't look so! I won't say it again."
15918
15919"I'm glad you've slept, Becky; you'll feel rested, now, and we'll find
15920the way out."
15921
15922"We can try, Tom; but I've seen such a beautiful country in my dream.
15923I reckon we are going there."
15924
15925"Maybe not, maybe not. Cheer up, Becky, and let's go on trying."
15926
15927They rose up and wandered along, hand in hand and hopeless. They tried
15928to estimate how long they had been in the cave, but all they knew was
15929that it seemed days and weeks, and yet it was plain that this could not
15930be, for their candles were not gone yet. A long time after this--they
15931could not tell how long--Tom said they must go softly and listen for
15932dripping water--they must find a spring. They found one presently, and
15933Tom said it was time to rest again. Both were cruelly tired, yet Becky
15934said she thought she could go a little farther. She was surprised to
15935hear Tom dissent. She could not understand it. They sat down, and Tom
15936fastened his candle to the wall in front of them with some clay.
15937Thought was soon busy; nothing was said for some time. Then Becky broke
15938the silence:
15939
15940"Tom, I am so hungry!"
15941
15942Tom took something out of his pocket.
15943
15944"Do you remember this?" said he.
15945
15946Becky almost smiled.
15947
15948"It's our wedding-cake, Tom."
15949
15950"Yes--I wish it was as big as a barrel, for it's all we've got."
15951
15952"I saved it from the picnic for us to dream on, Tom, the way grown-up
15953people do with wedding-cake--but it'll be our--"
15954
15955She dropped the sentence where it was. Tom divided the cake and Becky
15956ate with good appetite, while Tom nibbled at his moiety. There was
15957abundance of cold water to finish the feast with. By-and-by Becky
15958suggested that they move on again. Tom was silent a moment. Then he
15959said:
15960
15961"Becky, can you bear it if I tell you something?"
15962
15963Becky's face paled, but she thought she could.
15964
15965"Well, then, Becky, we must stay here, where there's water to drink.
15966That little piece is our last candle!"
15967
15968Becky gave loose to tears and wailings. Tom did what he could to
15969comfort her, but with little effect. At length Becky said:
15970
15971"Tom!"
15972
15973"Well, Becky?"
15974
15975"They'll miss us and hunt for us!"
15976
15977"Yes, they will! Certainly they will!"
15978
15979"Maybe they're hunting for us now, Tom."
15980
15981"Why, I reckon maybe they are. I hope they are."
15982
15983"When would they miss us, Tom?"
15984
15985"When they get back to the boat, I reckon."
15986
15987"Tom, it might be dark then--would they notice we hadn't come?"
15988
15989"I don't know. But anyway, your mother would miss you as soon as they
15990got home."
15991
15992A frightened look in Becky's face brought Tom to his senses and he saw
15993that he had made a blunder. Becky was not to have gone home that night!
15994The children became silent and thoughtful. In a moment a new burst of
15995grief from Becky showed Tom that the thing in his mind had struck hers
15996also--that the Sabbath morning might be half spent before Mrs. Thatcher
15997discovered that Becky was not at Mrs. Harper's.
15998
15999The children fastened their eyes upon their bit of candle and watched
16000it melt slowly and pitilessly away; saw the half inch of wick stand
16001alone at last; saw the feeble flame rise and fall, climb the thin
16002column of smoke, linger at its top a moment, and then--the horror of
16003utter darkness reigned!
16004
16005How long afterward it was that Becky came to a slow consciousness that
16006she was crying in Tom's arms, neither could tell. All that they knew
16007was, that after what seemed a mighty stretch of time, both awoke out of
16008a dead stupor of sleep and resumed their miseries once more. Tom said
16009it might be Sunday, now--maybe Monday. He tried to get Becky to talk,
16010but her sorrows were too oppressive, all her hopes were gone. Tom said
16011that they must have been missed long ago, and no doubt the search was
16012going on. He would shout and maybe some one would come. He tried it;
16013but in the darkness the distant echoes sounded so hideously that he
16014tried it no more.
16015
16016The hours wasted away, and hunger came to torment the captives again.
16017A portion of Tom's half of the cake was left; they divided and ate it.
16018But they seemed hungrier than before. The poor morsel of food only
16019whetted desire.
16020
16021By-and-by Tom said:
16022
16023"SH! Did you hear that?"
16024
16025Both held their breath and listened. There was a sound like the
16026faintest, far-off shout. Instantly Tom answered it, and leading Becky
16027by the hand, started groping down the corridor in its direction.
16028Presently he listened again; again the sound was heard, and apparently
16029a little nearer.
16030
16031"It's them!" said Tom; "they're coming! Come along, Becky--we're all
16032right now!"
16033
16034The joy of the prisoners was almost overwhelming. Their speed was
16035slow, however, because pitfalls were somewhat common, and had to be
16036guarded against. They shortly came to one and had to stop. It might be
16037three feet deep, it might be a hundred--there was no passing it at any
16038rate. Tom got down on his breast and reached as far down as he could.
16039No bottom. They must stay there and wait until the searchers came. They
16040listened; evidently the distant shoutings were growing more distant! a
16041moment or two more and they had gone altogether. The heart-sinking
16042misery of it! Tom whooped until he was hoarse, but it was of no use. He
16043talked hopefully to Becky; but an age of anxious waiting passed and no
16044sounds came again.
16045
16046The children groped their way back to the spring. The weary time
16047dragged on; they slept again, and awoke famished and woe-stricken. Tom
16048believed it must be Tuesday by this time.
16049
16050Now an idea struck him. There were some side passages near at hand. It
16051would be better to explore some of these than bear the weight of the
16052heavy time in idleness. He took a kite-line from his pocket, tied it to
16053a projection, and he and Becky started, Tom in the lead, unwinding the
16054line as he groped along. At the end of twenty steps the corridor ended
16055in a "jumping-off place." Tom got down on his knees and felt below, and
16056then as far around the corner as he could reach with his hands
16057conveniently; he made an effort to stretch yet a little farther to the
16058right, and at that moment, not twenty yards away, a human hand, holding
16059a candle, appeared from behind a rock! Tom lifted up a glorious shout,
16060and instantly that hand was followed by the body it belonged to--Injun
16061Joe's! Tom was paralyzed; he could not move. He was vastly gratified
16062the next moment, to see the "Spaniard" take to his heels and get
16063himself out of sight. Tom wondered that Joe had not recognized his
16064voice and come over and killed him for testifying in court. But the
16065echoes must have disguised the voice. Without doubt, that was it, he
16066reasoned. Tom's fright weakened every muscle in his body. He said to
16067himself that if he had strength enough to get back to the spring he
16068would stay there, and nothing should tempt him to run the risk of
16069meeting Injun Joe again. He was careful to keep from Becky what it was
16070he had seen. He told her he had only shouted "for luck."
16071
16072But hunger and wretchedness rise superior to fears in the long run.
16073Another tedious wait at the spring and another long sleep brought
16074changes. The children awoke tortured with a raging hunger. Tom believed
16075that it must be Wednesday or Thursday or even Friday or Saturday, now,
16076and that the search had been given over. He proposed to explore another
16077passage. He felt willing to risk Injun Joe and all other terrors. But
16078Becky was very weak. She had sunk into a dreary apathy and would not be
16079roused. She said she would wait, now, where she was, and die--it would
16080not be long. She told Tom to go with the kite-line and explore if he
16081chose; but she implored him to come back every little while and speak
16082to her; and she made him promise that when the awful time came, he
16083would stay by her and hold her hand until all was over.
16084
16085Tom kissed her, with a choking sensation in his throat, and made a
16086show of being confident of finding the searchers or an escape from the
16087cave; then he took the kite-line in his hand and went groping down one
16088of the passages on his hands and knees, distressed with hunger and sick
16089with bodings of coming doom.
16090
16091
16092
16093CHAPTER XXXII
16094
16095TUESDAY afternoon came, and waned to the twilight. The village of St.
16096Petersburg still mourned. The lost children had not been found. Public
16097prayers had been offered up for them, and many and many a private
16098prayer that had the petitioner's whole heart in it; but still no good
16099news came from the cave. The majority of the searchers had given up the
16100quest and gone back to their daily avocations, saying that it was plain
16101the children could never be found. Mrs. Thatcher was very ill, and a
16102great part of the time delirious. People said it was heartbreaking to
16103hear her call her child, and raise her head and listen a whole minute
16104at a time, then lay it wearily down again with a moan. Aunt Polly had
16105drooped into a settled melancholy, and her gray hair had grown almost
16106white. The village went to its rest on Tuesday night, sad and forlorn.
16107
16108Away in the middle of the night a wild peal burst from the village
16109bells, and in a moment the streets were swarming with frantic half-clad
16110people, who shouted, "Turn out! turn out! they're found! they're
16111found!" Tin pans and horns were added to the din, the population massed
16112itself and moved toward the river, met the children coming in an open
16113carriage drawn by shouting citizens, thronged around it, joined its
16114homeward march, and swept magnificently up the main street roaring
16115huzzah after huzzah!
16116
16117The village was illuminated; nobody went to bed again; it was the
16118greatest night the little town had ever seen. During the first half-hour
16119a procession of villagers filed through Judge Thatcher's house, seized
16120the saved ones and kissed them, squeezed Mrs. Thatcher's hand, tried to
16121speak but couldn't--and drifted out raining tears all over the place.
16122
16123Aunt Polly's happiness was complete, and Mrs. Thatcher's nearly so. It
16124would be complete, however, as soon as the messenger dispatched with
16125the great news to the cave should get the word to her husband. Tom lay
16126upon a sofa with an eager auditory about him and told the history of
16127the wonderful adventure, putting in many striking additions to adorn it
16128withal; and closed with a description of how he left Becky and went on
16129an exploring expedition; how he followed two avenues as far as his
16130kite-line would reach; how he followed a third to the fullest stretch of
16131the kite-line, and was about to turn back when he glimpsed a far-off
16132speck that looked like daylight; dropped the line and groped toward it,
16133pushed his head and shoulders through a small hole, and saw the broad
16134Mississippi rolling by! And if it had only happened to be night he would
16135not have seen that speck of daylight and would not have explored that
16136passage any more! He told how he went back for Becky and broke the good
16137news and she told him not to fret her with such stuff, for she was
16138tired, and knew she was going to die, and wanted to. He described how he
16139labored with her and convinced her; and how she almost died for joy when
16140she had groped to where she actually saw the blue speck of daylight; how
16141he pushed his way out at the hole and then helped her out; how they sat
16142there and cried for gladness; how some men came along in a skiff and Tom
16143hailed them and told them their situation and their famished condition;
16144how the men didn't believe the wild tale at first, "because," said they,
16145"you are five miles down the river below the valley the cave is in"
16146--then took them aboard, rowed to a house, gave them supper, made them
16147rest till two or three hours after dark and then brought them home.
16148
16149Before day-dawn, Judge Thatcher and the handful of searchers with him
16150were tracked out, in the cave, by the twine clews they had strung
16151behind them, and informed of the great news.
16152
16153Three days and nights of toil and hunger in the cave were not to be
16154shaken off at once, as Tom and Becky soon discovered. They were
16155bedridden all of Wednesday and Thursday, and seemed to grow more and
16156more tired and worn, all the time. Tom got about, a little, on
16157Thursday, was down-town Friday, and nearly as whole as ever Saturday;
16158but Becky did not leave her room until Sunday, and then she looked as
16159if she had passed through a wasting illness.
16160
16161Tom learned of Huck's sickness and went to see him on Friday, but
16162could not be admitted to the bedroom; neither could he on Saturday or
16163Sunday. He was admitted daily after that, but was warned to keep still
16164about his adventure and introduce no exciting topic. The Widow Douglas
16165stayed by to see that he obeyed. At home Tom learned of the Cardiff
16166Hill event; also that the "ragged man's" body had eventually been found
16167in the river near the ferry-landing; he had been drowned while trying
16168to escape, perhaps.
16169
16170About a fortnight after Tom's rescue from the cave, he started off to
16171visit Huck, who had grown plenty strong enough, now, to hear exciting
16172talk, and Tom had some that would interest him, he thought. Judge
16173Thatcher's house was on Tom's way, and he stopped to see Becky. The
16174Judge and some friends set Tom to talking, and some one asked him
16175ironically if he wouldn't like to go to the cave again. Tom said he
16176thought he wouldn't mind it. The Judge said:
16177
16178"Well, there are others just like you, Tom, I've not the least doubt.
16179But we have taken care of that. Nobody will get lost in that cave any
16180more."
16181
16182"Why?"
16183
16184"Because I had its big door sheathed with boiler iron two weeks ago,
16185and triple-locked--and I've got the keys."
16186
16187Tom turned as white as a sheet.
16188
16189"What's the matter, boy! Here, run, somebody! Fetch a glass of water!"
16190
16191The water was brought and thrown into Tom's face.
16192
16193"Ah, now you're all right. What was the matter with you, Tom?"
16194
16195"Oh, Judge, Injun Joe's in the cave!"
16196
16197
16198
16199CHAPTER XXXIII
16200
16201WITHIN a few minutes the news had spread, and a dozen skiff-loads of
16202men were on their way to McDougal's cave, and the ferryboat, well
16203filled with passengers, soon followed. Tom Sawyer was in the skiff that
16204bore Judge Thatcher.
16205
16206When the cave door was unlocked, a sorrowful sight presented itself in
16207the dim twilight of the place. Injun Joe lay stretched upon the ground,
16208dead, with his face close to the crack of the door, as if his longing
16209eyes had been fixed, to the latest moment, upon the light and the cheer
16210of the free world outside. Tom was touched, for he knew by his own
16211experience how this wretch had suffered. His pity was moved, but
16212nevertheless he felt an abounding sense of relief and security, now,
16213which revealed to him in a degree which he had not fully appreciated
16214before how vast a weight of dread had been lying upon him since the day
16215he lifted his voice against this bloody-minded outcast.
16216
16217Injun Joe's bowie-knife lay close by, its blade broken in two. The
16218great foundation-beam of the door had been chipped and hacked through,
16219with tedious labor; useless labor, too, it was, for the native rock
16220formed a sill outside it, and upon that stubborn material the knife had
16221wrought no effect; the only damage done was to the knife itself. But if
16222there had been no stony obstruction there the labor would have been
16223useless still, for if the beam had been wholly cut away Injun Joe could
16224not have squeezed his body under the door, and he knew it. So he had
16225only hacked that place in order to be doing something--in order to pass
16226the weary time--in order to employ his tortured faculties. Ordinarily
16227one could find half a dozen bits of candle stuck around in the crevices
16228of this vestibule, left there by tourists; but there were none now. The
16229prisoner had searched them out and eaten them. He had also contrived to
16230catch a few bats, and these, also, he had eaten, leaving only their
16231claws. The poor unfortunate had starved to death. In one place, near at
16232hand, a stalagmite had been slowly growing up from the ground for ages,
16233builded by the water-drip from a stalactite overhead. The captive had
16234broken off the stalagmite, and upon the stump had placed a stone,
16235wherein he had scooped a shallow hollow to catch the precious drop
16236that fell once in every three minutes with the dreary regularity of a
16237clock-tick--a dessertspoonful once in four and twenty hours. That drop
16238was falling when the Pyramids were new; when Troy fell; when the
16239foundations of Rome were laid; when Christ was crucified; when the
16240Conqueror created the British empire; when Columbus sailed; when the
16241massacre at Lexington was "news." It is falling now; it will still be
16242falling when all these things shall have sunk down the afternoon of
16243history, and the twilight of tradition, and been swallowed up in the
16244thick night of oblivion. Has everything a purpose and a mission? Did
16245this drop fall patiently during five thousand years to be ready for
16246this flitting human insect's need? and has it another important object
16247to accomplish ten thousand years to come? No matter. It is many and
16248many a year since the hapless half-breed scooped out the stone to catch
16249the priceless drops, but to this day the tourist stares longest at that
16250pathetic stone and that slow-dropping water when he comes to see the
16251wonders of McDougal's cave. Injun Joe's cup stands first in the list of
16252the cavern's marvels; even "Aladdin's Palace" cannot rival it.
16253
16254Injun Joe was buried near the mouth of the cave; and people flocked
16255there in boats and wagons from the towns and from all the farms and
16256hamlets for seven miles around; they brought their children, and all
16257sorts of provisions, and confessed that they had had almost as
16258satisfactory a time at the funeral as they could have had at the
16259hanging.
16260
16261This funeral stopped the further growth of one thing--the petition to
16262the governor for Injun Joe's pardon. The petition had been largely
16263signed; many tearful and eloquent meetings had been held, and a
16264committee of sappy women been appointed to go in deep mourning and wail
16265around the governor, and implore him to be a merciful ass and trample
16266his duty under foot. Injun Joe was believed to have killed five
16267citizens of the village, but what of that? If he had been Satan himself
16268there would have been plenty of weaklings ready to scribble their names
16269to a pardon-petition, and drip a tear on it from their permanently
16270impaired and leaky water-works.
16271
16272The morning after the funeral Tom took Huck to a private place to have
16273an important talk. Huck had learned all about Tom's adventure from the
16274Welshman and the Widow Douglas, by this time, but Tom said he reckoned
16275there was one thing they had not told him; that thing was what he
16276wanted to talk about now. Huck's face saddened. He said:
16277
16278"I know what it is. You got into No. 2 and never found anything but
16279whiskey. Nobody told me it was you; but I just knowed it must 'a' ben
16280you, soon as I heard 'bout that whiskey business; and I knowed you
16281hadn't got the money becuz you'd 'a' got at me some way or other and
16282told me even if you was mum to everybody else. Tom, something's always
16283told me we'd never get holt of that swag."
16284
16285"Why, Huck, I never told on that tavern-keeper. YOU know his tavern
16286was all right the Saturday I went to the picnic. Don't you remember you
16287was to watch there that night?"
16288
16289"Oh yes! Why, it seems 'bout a year ago. It was that very night that I
16290follered Injun Joe to the widder's."
16291
16292"YOU followed him?"
16293
16294"Yes--but you keep mum. I reckon Injun Joe's left friends behind him,
16295and I don't want 'em souring on me and doing me mean tricks. If it
16296hadn't ben for me he'd be down in Texas now, all right."
16297
16298Then Huck told his entire adventure in confidence to Tom, who had only
16299heard of the Welshman's part of it before.
16300
16301"Well," said Huck, presently, coming back to the main question,
16302"whoever nipped the whiskey in No. 2, nipped the money, too, I reckon
16303--anyways it's a goner for us, Tom."
16304
16305"Huck, that money wasn't ever in No. 2!"
16306
16307"What!" Huck searched his comrade's face keenly. "Tom, have you got on
16308the track of that money again?"
16309
16310"Huck, it's in the cave!"
16311
16312Huck's eyes blazed.
16313
16314"Say it again, Tom."
16315
16316"The money's in the cave!"
16317
16318"Tom--honest injun, now--is it fun, or earnest?"
16319
16320"Earnest, Huck--just as earnest as ever I was in my life. Will you go
16321in there with me and help get it out?"
16322
16323"I bet I will! I will if it's where we can blaze our way to it and not
16324get lost."
16325
16326"Huck, we can do that without the least little bit of trouble in the
16327world."
16328
16329"Good as wheat! What makes you think the money's--"
16330
16331"Huck, you just wait till we get in there. If we don't find it I'll
16332agree to give you my drum and every thing I've got in the world. I
16333will, by jings."
16334
16335"All right--it's a whiz. When do you say?"
16336
16337"Right now, if you say it. Are you strong enough?"
16338
16339"Is it far in the cave? I ben on my pins a little, three or four days,
16340now, but I can't walk more'n a mile, Tom--least I don't think I could."
16341
16342"It's about five mile into there the way anybody but me would go,
16343Huck, but there's a mighty short cut that they don't anybody but me
16344know about. Huck, I'll take you right to it in a skiff. I'll float the
16345skiff down there, and I'll pull it back again all by myself. You
16346needn't ever turn your hand over."
16347
16348"Less start right off, Tom."
16349
16350"All right. We want some bread and meat, and our pipes, and a little
16351bag or two, and two or three kite-strings, and some of these
16352new-fangled things they call lucifer matches. I tell you, many's
16353the time I wished I had some when I was in there before."
16354
16355A trifle after noon the boys borrowed a small skiff from a citizen who
16356was absent, and got under way at once. When they were several miles
16357below "Cave Hollow," Tom said:
16358
16359"Now you see this bluff here looks all alike all the way down from the
16360cave hollow--no houses, no wood-yards, bushes all alike. But do you see
16361that white place up yonder where there's been a landslide? Well, that's
16362one of my marks. We'll get ashore, now."
16363
16364They landed.
16365
16366"Now, Huck, where we're a-standing you could touch that hole I got out
16367of with a fishing-pole. See if you can find it."
16368
16369Huck searched all the place about, and found nothing. Tom proudly
16370marched into a thick clump of sumach bushes and said:
16371
16372"Here you are! Look at it, Huck; it's the snuggest hole in this
16373country. You just keep mum about it. All along I've been wanting to be
16374a robber, but I knew I'd got to have a thing like this, and where to
16375run across it was the bother. We've got it now, and we'll keep it
16376quiet, only we'll let Joe Harper and Ben Rogers in--because of course
16377there's got to be a Gang, or else there wouldn't be any style about it.
16378Tom Sawyer's Gang--it sounds splendid, don't it, Huck?"
16379
16380"Well, it just does, Tom. And who'll we rob?"
16381
16382"Oh, most anybody. Waylay people--that's mostly the way."
16383
16384"And kill them?"
16385
16386"No, not always. Hive them in the cave till they raise a ransom."
16387
16388"What's a ransom?"
16389
16390"Money. You make them raise all they can, off'n their friends; and
16391after you've kept them a year, if it ain't raised then you kill them.
16392That's the general way. Only you don't kill the women. You shut up the
16393women, but you don't kill them. They're always beautiful and rich, and
16394awfully scared. You take their watches and things, but you always take
16395your hat off and talk polite. They ain't anybody as polite as robbers
16396--you'll see that in any book. Well, the women get to loving you, and
16397after they've been in the cave a week or two weeks they stop crying and
16398after that you couldn't get them to leave. If you drove them out they'd
16399turn right around and come back. It's so in all the books."
16400
16401"Why, it's real bully, Tom. I believe it's better'n to be a pirate."
16402
16403"Yes, it's better in some ways, because it's close to home and
16404circuses and all that."
16405
16406By this time everything was ready and the boys entered the hole, Tom
16407in the lead. They toiled their way to the farther end of the tunnel,
16408then made their spliced kite-strings fast and moved on. A few steps
16409brought them to the spring, and Tom felt a shudder quiver all through
16410him. He showed Huck the fragment of candle-wick perched on a lump of
16411clay against the wall, and described how he and Becky had watched the
16412flame struggle and expire.
16413
16414The boys began to quiet down to whispers, now, for the stillness and
16415gloom of the place oppressed their spirits. They went on, and presently
16416entered and followed Tom's other corridor until they reached the
16417"jumping-off place." The candles revealed the fact that it was not
16418really a precipice, but only a steep clay hill twenty or thirty feet
16419high. Tom whispered:
16420
16421"Now I'll show you something, Huck."
16422
16423He held his candle aloft and said:
16424
16425"Look as far around the corner as you can. Do you see that? There--on
16426the big rock over yonder--done with candle-smoke."
16427
16428"Tom, it's a CROSS!"
16429
16430"NOW where's your Number Two? 'UNDER THE CROSS,' hey? Right yonder's
16431where I saw Injun Joe poke up his candle, Huck!"
16432
16433Huck stared at the mystic sign awhile, and then said with a shaky voice:
16434
16435"Tom, less git out of here!"
16436
16437"What! and leave the treasure?"
16438
16439"Yes--leave it. Injun Joe's ghost is round about there, certain."
16440
16441"No it ain't, Huck, no it ain't. It would ha'nt the place where he
16442died--away out at the mouth of the cave--five mile from here."
16443
16444"No, Tom, it wouldn't. It would hang round the money. I know the ways
16445of ghosts, and so do you."
16446
16447Tom began to fear that Huck was right. Misgivings gathered in his
16448mind. But presently an idea occurred to him--
16449
16450"Lookyhere, Huck, what fools we're making of ourselves! Injun Joe's
16451ghost ain't a going to come around where there's a cross!"
16452
16453The point was well taken. It had its effect.
16454
16455"Tom, I didn't think of that. But that's so. It's luck for us, that
16456cross is. I reckon we'll climb down there and have a hunt for that box."
16457
16458Tom went first, cutting rude steps in the clay hill as he descended.
16459Huck followed. Four avenues opened out of the small cavern which the
16460great rock stood in. The boys examined three of them with no result.
16461They found a small recess in the one nearest the base of the rock, with
16462a pallet of blankets spread down in it; also an old suspender, some
16463bacon rind, and the well-gnawed bones of two or three fowls. But there
16464was no money-box. The lads searched and researched this place, but in
16465vain. Tom said:
16466
16467"He said UNDER the cross. Well, this comes nearest to being under the
16468cross. It can't be under the rock itself, because that sets solid on
16469the ground."
16470
16471They searched everywhere once more, and then sat down discouraged.
16472Huck could suggest nothing. By-and-by Tom said:
16473
16474"Lookyhere, Huck, there's footprints and some candle-grease on the
16475clay about one side of this rock, but not on the other sides. Now,
16476what's that for? I bet you the money IS under the rock. I'm going to
16477dig in the clay."
16478
16479"That ain't no bad notion, Tom!" said Huck with animation.
16480
16481Tom's "real Barlow" was out at once, and he had not dug four inches
16482before he struck wood.
16483
16484"Hey, Huck!--you hear that?"
16485
16486Huck began to dig and scratch now. Some boards were soon uncovered and
16487removed. They had concealed a natural chasm which led under the rock.
16488Tom got into this and held his candle as far under the rock as he
16489could, but said he could not see to the end of the rift. He proposed to
16490explore. He stooped and passed under; the narrow way descended
16491gradually. He followed its winding course, first to the right, then to
16492the left, Huck at his heels. Tom turned a short curve, by-and-by, and
16493exclaimed:
16494
16495"My goodness, Huck, lookyhere!"
16496
16497It was the treasure-box, sure enough, occupying a snug little cavern,
16498along with an empty powder-keg, a couple of guns in leather cases, two
16499or three pairs of old moccasins, a leather belt, and some other rubbish
16500well soaked with the water-drip.
16501
16502"Got it at last!" said Huck, ploughing among the tarnished coins with
16503his hand. "My, but we're rich, Tom!"
16504
16505"Huck, I always reckoned we'd get it. It's just too good to believe,
16506but we HAVE got it, sure! Say--let's not fool around here. Let's snake
16507it out. Lemme see if I can lift the box."
16508
16509It weighed about fifty pounds. Tom could lift it, after an awkward
16510fashion, but could not carry it conveniently.
16511
16512"I thought so," he said; "THEY carried it like it was heavy, that day
16513at the ha'nted house. I noticed that. I reckon I was right to think of
16514fetching the little bags along."
16515
16516The money was soon in the bags and the boys took it up to the cross
16517rock.
16518
16519"Now less fetch the guns and things," said Huck.
16520
16521"No, Huck--leave them there. They're just the tricks to have when we
16522go to robbing. We'll keep them there all the time, and we'll hold our
16523orgies there, too. It's an awful snug place for orgies."
16524
16525"What orgies?"
16526
16527"I dono. But robbers always have orgies, and of course we've got to
16528have them, too. Come along, Huck, we've been in here a long time. It's
16529getting late, I reckon. I'm hungry, too. We'll eat and smoke when we
16530get to the skiff."
16531
16532They presently emerged into the clump of sumach bushes, looked warily
16533out, found the coast clear, and were soon lunching and smoking in the
16534skiff. As the sun dipped toward the horizon they pushed out and got
16535under way. Tom skimmed up the shore through the long twilight, chatting
16536cheerily with Huck, and landed shortly after dark.
16537
16538"Now, Huck," said Tom, "we'll hide the money in the loft of the
16539widow's woodshed, and I'll come up in the morning and we'll count it
16540and divide, and then we'll hunt up a place out in the woods for it
16541where it will be safe. Just you lay quiet here and watch the stuff till
16542I run and hook Benny Taylor's little wagon; I won't be gone a minute."
16543
16544He disappeared, and presently returned with the wagon, put the two
16545small sacks into it, threw some old rags on top of them, and started
16546off, dragging his cargo behind him. When the boys reached the
16547Welshman's house, they stopped to rest. Just as they were about to move
16548on, the Welshman stepped out and said:
16549
16550"Hallo, who's that?"
16551
16552"Huck and Tom Sawyer."
16553
16554"Good! Come along with me, boys, you are keeping everybody waiting.
16555Here--hurry up, trot ahead--I'll haul the wagon for you. Why, it's not
16556as light as it might be. Got bricks in it?--or old metal?"
16557
16558"Old metal," said Tom.
16559
16560"I judged so; the boys in this town will take more trouble and fool
16561away more time hunting up six bits' worth of old iron to sell to the
16562foundry than they would to make twice the money at regular work. But
16563that's human nature--hurry along, hurry along!"
16564
16565The boys wanted to know what the hurry was about.
16566
16567"Never mind; you'll see, when we get to the Widow Douglas'."
16568
16569Huck said with some apprehension--for he was long used to being
16570falsely accused:
16571
16572"Mr. Jones, we haven't been doing nothing."
16573
16574The Welshman laughed.
16575
16576"Well, I don't know, Huck, my boy. I don't know about that. Ain't you
16577and the widow good friends?"
16578
16579"Yes. Well, she's ben good friends to me, anyway."
16580
16581"All right, then. What do you want to be afraid for?"
16582
16583This question was not entirely answered in Huck's slow mind before he
16584found himself pushed, along with Tom, into Mrs. Douglas' drawing-room.
16585Mr. Jones left the wagon near the door and followed.
16586
16587The place was grandly lighted, and everybody that was of any
16588consequence in the village was there. The Thatchers were there, the
16589Harpers, the Rogerses, Aunt Polly, Sid, Mary, the minister, the editor,
16590and a great many more, and all dressed in their best. The widow
16591received the boys as heartily as any one could well receive two such
16592looking beings. They were covered with clay and candle-grease. Aunt
16593Polly blushed crimson with humiliation, and frowned and shook her head
16594at Tom. Nobody suffered half as much as the two boys did, however. Mr.
16595Jones said:
16596
16597"Tom wasn't at home, yet, so I gave him up; but I stumbled on him and
16598Huck right at my door, and so I just brought them along in a hurry."
16599
16600"And you did just right," said the widow. "Come with me, boys."
16601
16602She took them to a bedchamber and said:
16603
16604"Now wash and dress yourselves. Here are two new suits of clothes
16605--shirts, socks, everything complete. They're Huck's--no, no thanks,
16606Huck--Mr. Jones bought one and I the other. But they'll fit both of you.
16607Get into them. We'll wait--come down when you are slicked up enough."
16608
16609Then she left.
16610
16611
16612
16613CHAPTER XXXIV
16614
16615HUCK said: "Tom, we can slope, if we can find a rope. The window ain't
16616high from the ground."
16617
16618"Shucks! what do you want to slope for?"
16619
16620"Well, I ain't used to that kind of a crowd. I can't stand it. I ain't
16621going down there, Tom."
16622
16623"Oh, bother! It ain't anything. I don't mind it a bit. I'll take care
16624of you."
16625
16626Sid appeared.
16627
16628"Tom," said he, "auntie has been waiting for you all the afternoon.
16629Mary got your Sunday clothes ready, and everybody's been fretting about
16630you. Say--ain't this grease and clay, on your clothes?"
16631
16632"Now, Mr. Siddy, you jist 'tend to your own business. What's all this
16633blow-out about, anyway?"
16634
16635"It's one of the widow's parties that she's always having. This time
16636it's for the Welshman and his sons, on account of that scrape they
16637helped her out of the other night. And say--I can tell you something,
16638if you want to know."
16639
16640"Well, what?"
16641
16642"Why, old Mr. Jones is going to try to spring something on the people
16643here to-night, but I overheard him tell auntie to-day about it, as a
16644secret, but I reckon it's not much of a secret now. Everybody knows
16645--the widow, too, for all she tries to let on she don't. Mr. Jones was
16646bound Huck should be here--couldn't get along with his grand secret
16647without Huck, you know!"
16648
16649"Secret about what, Sid?"
16650
16651"About Huck tracking the robbers to the widow's. I reckon Mr. Jones
16652was going to make a grand time over his surprise, but I bet you it will
16653drop pretty flat."
16654
16655Sid chuckled in a very contented and satisfied way.
16656
16657"Sid, was it you that told?"
16658
16659"Oh, never mind who it was. SOMEBODY told--that's enough."
16660
16661"Sid, there's only one person in this town mean enough to do that, and
16662that's you. If you had been in Huck's place you'd 'a' sneaked down the
16663hill and never told anybody on the robbers. You can't do any but mean
16664things, and you can't bear to see anybody praised for doing good ones.
16665There--no thanks, as the widow says"--and Tom cuffed Sid's ears and
16666helped him to the door with several kicks. "Now go and tell auntie if
16667you dare--and to-morrow you'll catch it!"
16668
16669Some minutes later the widow's guests were at the supper-table, and a
16670dozen children were propped up at little side-tables in the same room,
16671after the fashion of that country and that day. At the proper time Mr.
16672Jones made his little speech, in which he thanked the widow for the
16673honor she was doing himself and his sons, but said that there was
16674another person whose modesty--
16675
16676And so forth and so on. He sprung his secret about Huck's share in the
16677adventure in the finest dramatic manner he was master of, but the
16678surprise it occasioned was largely counterfeit and not as clamorous and
16679effusive as it might have been under happier circumstances. However,
16680the widow made a pretty fair show of astonishment, and heaped so many
16681compliments and so much gratitude upon Huck that he almost forgot the
16682nearly intolerable discomfort of his new clothes in the entirely
16683intolerable discomfort of being set up as a target for everybody's gaze
16684and everybody's laudations.
16685
16686The widow said she meant to give Huck a home under her roof and have
16687him educated; and that when she could spare the money she would start
16688him in business in a modest way. Tom's chance was come. He said:
16689
16690"Huck don't need it. Huck's rich."
16691
16692Nothing but a heavy strain upon the good manners of the company kept
16693back the due and proper complimentary laugh at this pleasant joke. But
16694the silence was a little awkward. Tom broke it:
16695
16696"Huck's got money. Maybe you don't believe it, but he's got lots of
16697it. Oh, you needn't smile--I reckon I can show you. You just wait a
16698minute."
16699
16700Tom ran out of doors. The company looked at each other with a
16701perplexed interest--and inquiringly at Huck, who was tongue-tied.
16702
16703"Sid, what ails Tom?" said Aunt Polly. "He--well, there ain't ever any
16704making of that boy out. I never--"
16705
16706Tom entered, struggling with the weight of his sacks, and Aunt Polly
16707did not finish her sentence. Tom poured the mass of yellow coin upon
16708the table and said:
16709
16710"There--what did I tell you? Half of it's Huck's and half of it's mine!"
16711
16712The spectacle took the general breath away. All gazed, nobody spoke
16713for a moment. Then there was a unanimous call for an explanation. Tom
16714said he could furnish it, and he did. The tale was long, but brimful of
16715interest. There was scarcely an interruption from any one to break the
16716charm of its flow. When he had finished, Mr. Jones said:
16717
16718"I thought I had fixed up a little surprise for this occasion, but it
16719don't amount to anything now. This one makes it sing mighty small, I'm
16720willing to allow."
16721
16722The money was counted. The sum amounted to a little over twelve
16723thousand dollars. It was more than any one present had ever seen at one
16724time before, though several persons were there who were worth
16725considerably more than that in property.
16726
16727
16728
16729CHAPTER XXXV
16730
16731THE reader may rest satisfied that Tom's and Huck's windfall made a
16732mighty stir in the poor little village of St. Petersburg. So vast a
16733sum, all in actual cash, seemed next to incredible. It was talked
16734about, gloated over, glorified, until the reason of many of the
16735citizens tottered under the strain of the unhealthy excitement. Every
16736"haunted" house in St. Petersburg and the neighboring villages was
16737dissected, plank by plank, and its foundations dug up and ransacked for
16738hidden treasure--and not by boys, but men--pretty grave, unromantic
16739men, too, some of them. Wherever Tom and Huck appeared they were
16740courted, admired, stared at. The boys were not able to remember that
16741their remarks had possessed weight before; but now their sayings were
16742treasured and repeated; everything they did seemed somehow to be
16743regarded as remarkable; they had evidently lost the power of doing and
16744saying commonplace things; moreover, their past history was raked up
16745and discovered to bear marks of conspicuous originality. The village
16746paper published biographical sketches of the boys.
16747
16748The Widow Douglas put Huck's money out at six per cent., and Judge
16749Thatcher did the same with Tom's at Aunt Polly's request. Each lad had
16750an income, now, that was simply prodigious--a dollar for every week-day
16751in the year and half of the Sundays. It was just what the minister got
16752--no, it was what he was promised--he generally couldn't collect it. A
16753dollar and a quarter a week would board, lodge, and school a boy in
16754those old simple days--and clothe him and wash him, too, for that
16755matter.
16756
16757Judge Thatcher had conceived a great opinion of Tom. He said that no
16758commonplace boy would ever have got his daughter out of the cave. When
16759Becky told her father, in strict confidence, how Tom had taken her
16760whipping at school, the Judge was visibly moved; and when she pleaded
16761grace for the mighty lie which Tom had told in order to shift that
16762whipping from her shoulders to his own, the Judge said with a fine
16763outburst that it was a noble, a generous, a magnanimous lie--a lie that
16764was worthy to hold up its head and march down through history breast to
16765breast with George Washington's lauded Truth about the hatchet! Becky
16766thought her father had never looked so tall and so superb as when he
16767walked the floor and stamped his foot and said that. She went straight
16768off and told Tom about it.
16769
16770Judge Thatcher hoped to see Tom a great lawyer or a great soldier some
16771day. He said he meant to look to it that Tom should be admitted to the
16772National Military Academy and afterward trained in the best law school
16773in the country, in order that he might be ready for either career or
16774both.
16775
16776Huck Finn's wealth and the fact that he was now under the Widow
16777Douglas' protection introduced him into society--no, dragged him into
16778it, hurled him into it--and his sufferings were almost more than he
16779could bear. The widow's servants kept him clean and neat, combed and
16780brushed, and they bedded him nightly in unsympathetic sheets that had
16781not one little spot or stain which he could press to his heart and know
16782for a friend. He had to eat with a knife and fork; he had to use
16783napkin, cup, and plate; he had to learn his book, he had to go to
16784church; he had to talk so properly that speech was become insipid in
16785his mouth; whithersoever he turned, the bars and shackles of
16786civilization shut him in and bound him hand and foot.
16787
16788He bravely bore his miseries three weeks, and then one day turned up
16789missing. For forty-eight hours the widow hunted for him everywhere in
16790great distress. The public were profoundly concerned; they searched
16791high and low, they dragged the river for his body. Early the third
16792morning Tom Sawyer wisely went poking among some old empty hogsheads
16793down behind the abandoned slaughter-house, and in one of them he found
16794the refugee. Huck had slept there; he had just breakfasted upon some
16795stolen odds and ends of food, and was lying off, now, in comfort, with
16796his pipe. He was unkempt, uncombed, and clad in the same old ruin of
16797rags that had made him picturesque in the days when he was free and
16798happy. Tom routed him out, told him the trouble he had been causing,
16799and urged him to go home. Huck's face lost its tranquil content, and
16800took a melancholy cast. He said:
16801
16802"Don't talk about it, Tom. I've tried it, and it don't work; it don't
16803work, Tom. It ain't for me; I ain't used to it. The widder's good to
16804me, and friendly; but I can't stand them ways. She makes me get up just
16805at the same time every morning; she makes me wash, they comb me all to
16806thunder; she won't let me sleep in the woodshed; I got to wear them
16807blamed clothes that just smothers me, Tom; they don't seem to any air
16808git through 'em, somehow; and they're so rotten nice that I can't set
16809down, nor lay down, nor roll around anywher's; I hain't slid on a
16810cellar-door for--well, it 'pears to be years; I got to go to church and
16811sweat and sweat--I hate them ornery sermons! I can't ketch a fly in
16812there, I can't chaw. I got to wear shoes all Sunday. The widder eats by
16813a bell; she goes to bed by a bell; she gits up by a bell--everything's
16814so awful reg'lar a body can't stand it."
16815
16816"Well, everybody does that way, Huck."
16817
16818"Tom, it don't make no difference. I ain't everybody, and I can't
16819STAND it. It's awful to be tied up so. And grub comes too easy--I don't
16820take no interest in vittles, that way. I got to ask to go a-fishing; I
16821got to ask to go in a-swimming--dern'd if I hain't got to ask to do
16822everything. Well, I'd got to talk so nice it wasn't no comfort--I'd got
16823to go up in the attic and rip out awhile, every day, to git a taste in
16824my mouth, or I'd a died, Tom. The widder wouldn't let me smoke; she
16825wouldn't let me yell, she wouldn't let me gape, nor stretch, nor
16826scratch, before folks--" [Then with a spasm of special irritation and
16827injury]--"And dad fetch it, she prayed all the time! I never see such a
16828woman! I HAD to shove, Tom--I just had to. And besides, that school's
16829going to open, and I'd a had to go to it--well, I wouldn't stand THAT,
16830Tom. Looky here, Tom, being rich ain't what it's cracked up to be. It's
16831just worry and worry, and sweat and sweat, and a-wishing you was dead
16832all the time. Now these clothes suits me, and this bar'l suits me, and
16833I ain't ever going to shake 'em any more. Tom, I wouldn't ever got into
16834all this trouble if it hadn't 'a' ben for that money; now you just take
16835my sheer of it along with your'n, and gimme a ten-center sometimes--not
16836many times, becuz I don't give a dern for a thing 'thout it's tollable
16837hard to git--and you go and beg off for me with the widder."
16838
16839"Oh, Huck, you know I can't do that. 'Tain't fair; and besides if
16840you'll try this thing just a while longer you'll come to like it."
16841
16842"Like it! Yes--the way I'd like a hot stove if I was to set on it long
16843enough. No, Tom, I won't be rich, and I won't live in them cussed
16844smothery houses. I like the woods, and the river, and hogsheads, and
16845I'll stick to 'em, too. Blame it all! just as we'd got guns, and a
16846cave, and all just fixed to rob, here this dern foolishness has got to
16847come up and spile it all!"
16848
16849Tom saw his opportunity--
16850
16851"Lookyhere, Huck, being rich ain't going to keep me back from turning
16852robber."
16853
16854"No! Oh, good-licks; are you in real dead-wood earnest, Tom?"
16855
16856"Just as dead earnest as I'm sitting here. But Huck, we can't let you
16857into the gang if you ain't respectable, you know."
16858
16859Huck's joy was quenched.
16860
16861"Can't let me in, Tom? Didn't you let me go for a pirate?"
16862
16863"Yes, but that's different. A robber is more high-toned than what a
16864pirate is--as a general thing. In most countries they're awful high up
16865in the nobility--dukes and such."
16866
16867"Now, Tom, hain't you always ben friendly to me? You wouldn't shet me
16868out, would you, Tom? You wouldn't do that, now, WOULD you, Tom?"
16869
16870"Huck, I wouldn't want to, and I DON'T want to--but what would people
16871say? Why, they'd say, 'Mph! Tom Sawyer's Gang! pretty low characters in
16872it!' They'd mean you, Huck. You wouldn't like that, and I wouldn't."
16873
16874Huck was silent for some time, engaged in a mental struggle. Finally
16875he said:
16876
16877"Well, I'll go back to the widder for a month and tackle it and see if
16878I can come to stand it, if you'll let me b'long to the gang, Tom."
16879
16880"All right, Huck, it's a whiz! Come along, old chap, and I'll ask the
16881widow to let up on you a little, Huck."
16882
16883"Will you, Tom--now will you? That's good. If she'll let up on some of
16884the roughest things, I'll smoke private and cuss private, and crowd
16885through or bust. When you going to start the gang and turn robbers?"
16886
16887"Oh, right off. We'll get the boys together and have the initiation
16888to-night, maybe."
16889
16890"Have the which?"
16891
16892"Have the initiation."
16893
16894"What's that?"
16895
16896"It's to swear to stand by one another, and never tell the gang's
16897secrets, even if you're chopped all to flinders, and kill anybody and
16898all his family that hurts one of the gang."
16899
16900"That's gay--that's mighty gay, Tom, I tell you."
16901
16902"Well, I bet it is. And all that swearing's got to be done at
16903midnight, in the lonesomest, awfulest place you can find--a ha'nted
16904house is the best, but they're all ripped up now."
16905
16906"Well, midnight's good, anyway, Tom."
16907
16908"Yes, so it is. And you've got to swear on a coffin, and sign it with
16909blood."
16910
16911"Now, that's something LIKE! Why, it's a million times bullier than
16912pirating. I'll stick to the widder till I rot, Tom; and if I git to be
16913a reg'lar ripper of a robber, and everybody talking 'bout it, I reckon
16914she'll be proud she snaked me in out of the wet."
16915
16916
16917
16918CONCLUSION
16919
16920SO endeth this chronicle. It being strictly a history of a BOY, it
16921must stop here; the story could not go much further without becoming
16922the history of a MAN. When one writes a novel about grown people, he
16923knows exactly where to stop--that is, with a marriage; but when he
16924writes of juveniles, he must stop where he best can.
16925
16926Most of the characters that perform in this book still live, and are
16927prosperous and happy. Some day it may seem worth while to take up the
16928story of the younger ones again and see what sort of men and women they
16929turned out to be; therefore it will be wisest not to reveal any of that
16930part of their lives at present.
16931Produced by David Widger. The previous edition was updated by Jose
16932Menendez.
16933
16934
16935
16936
16937
16938                   THE ADVENTURES OF TOM SAWYER
16939                                BY
16940                            MARK TWAIN
16941                     (Samuel Langhorne Clemens)
16942
16943
16944
16945
16946                           P R E F A C E
16947
16948MOST of the adventures recorded in this book really occurred; one or
16949two were experiences of my own, the rest those of boys who were
16950schoolmates of mine. Huck Finn is drawn from life; Tom Sawyer also, but
16951not from an individual--he is a combination of the characteristics of
16952three boys whom I knew, and therefore belongs to the composite order of
16953architecture.
16954
16955The odd superstitions touched upon were all prevalent among children
16956and slaves in the West at the period of this story--that is to say,
16957thirty or forty years ago.
16958
16959Although my book is intended mainly for the entertainment of boys and
16960girls, I hope it will not be shunned by men and women on that account,
16961for part of my plan has been to try to pleasantly remind adults of what
16962they once were themselves, and of how they felt and thought and talked,
16963and what queer enterprises they sometimes engaged in.
16964
16965                                                            THE AUTHOR.
16966
16967HARTFORD, 1876.
16968
16969
16970
16971                          T O M   S A W Y E R
16972
16973
16974
16975CHAPTER I
16976
16977"TOM!"
16978
16979No answer.
16980
16981"TOM!"
16982
16983No answer.
16984
16985"What's gone with that boy,  I wonder? You TOM!"
16986
16987No answer.
16988
16989The old lady pulled her spectacles down and looked over them about the
16990room; then she put them up and looked out under them. She seldom or
16991never looked THROUGH them for so small a thing as a boy; they were her
16992state pair, the pride of her heart, and were built for "style," not
16993service--she could have seen through a pair of stove-lids just as well.
16994She looked perplexed for a moment, and then said, not fiercely, but
16995still loud enough for the furniture to hear:
16996
16997"Well, I lay if I get hold of you I'll--"
16998
16999She did not finish, for by this time she was bending down and punching
17000under the bed with the broom, and so she needed breath to punctuate the
17001punches with. She resurrected nothing but the cat.
17002
17003"I never did see the beat of that boy!"
17004
17005She went to the open door and stood in it and looked out among the
17006tomato vines and "jimpson" weeds that constituted the garden. No Tom.
17007So she lifted up her voice at an angle calculated for distance and
17008shouted:
17009
17010"Y-o-u-u TOM!"
17011
17012There was a slight noise behind her and she turned just in time to
17013seize a small boy by the slack of his roundabout and arrest his flight.
17014
17015"There! I might 'a' thought of that closet. What you been doing in
17016there?"
17017
17018"Nothing."
17019
17020"Nothing! Look at your hands. And look at your mouth. What IS that
17021truck?"
17022
17023"I don't know, aunt."
17024
17025"Well, I know. It's jam--that's what it is. Forty times I've said if
17026you didn't let that jam alone I'd skin you. Hand me that switch."
17027
17028The switch hovered in the air--the peril was desperate--
17029
17030"My! Look behind you, aunt!"
17031
17032The old lady whirled round, and snatched her skirts out of danger. The
17033lad fled on the instant, scrambled up the high board-fence, and
17034disappeared over it.
17035
17036His aunt Polly stood surprised a moment, and then broke into a gentle
17037laugh.
17038
17039"Hang the boy, can't I never learn anything? Ain't he played me tricks
17040enough like that for me to be looking out for him by this time? But old
17041fools is the biggest fools there is. Can't learn an old dog new tricks,
17042as the saying is. But my goodness, he never plays them alike, two days,
17043and how is a body to know what's coming? He 'pears to know just how
17044long he can torment me before I get my dander up, and he knows if he
17045can make out to put me off for a minute or make me laugh, it's all down
17046again and I can't hit him a lick. I ain't doing my duty by that boy,
17047and that's the Lord's truth, goodness knows. Spare the rod and spile
17048the child, as the Good Book says. I'm a laying up sin and suffering for
17049us both, I know. He's full of the Old Scratch, but laws-a-me! he's my
17050own dead sister's boy, poor thing, and I ain't got the heart to lash
17051him, somehow. Every time I let him off, my conscience does hurt me so,
17052and every time I hit him my old heart most breaks. Well-a-well, man
17053that is born of woman is of few days and full of trouble, as the
17054Scripture says, and I reckon it's so. He'll play hookey this evening, *
17055and [* Southwestern for "afternoon"] I'll just be obleeged to make him
17056work, to-morrow, to punish him. It's mighty hard to make him work
17057Saturdays, when all the boys is having holiday, but he hates work more
17058than he hates anything else, and I've GOT to do some of my duty by him,
17059or I'll be the ruination of the child."
17060
17061Tom did play hookey, and he had a very good time. He got back home
17062barely in season to help Jim, the small colored boy, saw next-day's
17063wood and split the kindlings before supper--at least he was there in
17064time to tell his adventures to Jim while Jim did three-fourths of the
17065work. Tom's younger brother (or rather half-brother) Sid was already
17066through with his part of the work (picking up chips), for he was a
17067quiet boy, and had no adventurous, troublesome ways.
17068
17069While Tom was eating his supper, and stealing sugar as opportunity
17070offered, Aunt Polly asked him questions that were full of guile, and
17071very deep--for she wanted to trap him into damaging revealments. Like
17072many other simple-hearted souls, it was her pet vanity to believe she
17073was endowed with a talent for dark and mysterious diplomacy, and she
17074loved to contemplate her most transparent devices as marvels of low
17075cunning. Said she:
17076
17077"Tom, it was middling warm in school, warn't it?"
17078
17079"Yes'm."
17080
17081"Powerful warm, warn't it?"
17082
17083"Yes'm."
17084
17085"Didn't you want to go in a-swimming, Tom?"
17086
17087A bit of a scare shot through Tom--a touch of uncomfortable suspicion.
17088He searched Aunt Polly's face, but it told him nothing. So he said:
17089
17090"No'm--well, not very much."
17091
17092The old lady reached out her hand and felt Tom's shirt, and said:
17093
17094"But you ain't too warm now, though." And it flattered her to reflect
17095that she had discovered that the shirt was dry without anybody knowing
17096that that was what she had in her mind. But in spite of her, Tom knew
17097where the wind lay, now. So he forestalled what might be the next move:
17098
17099"Some of us pumped on our heads--mine's damp yet. See?"
17100
17101Aunt Polly was vexed to think she had overlooked that bit of
17102circumstantial evidence, and missed a trick. Then she had a new
17103inspiration:
17104
17105"Tom, you didn't have to undo your shirt collar where I sewed it, to
17106pump on your head, did you? Unbutton your jacket!"
17107
17108The trouble vanished out of Tom's face. He opened his jacket. His
17109shirt collar was securely sewed.
17110
17111"Bother! Well, go 'long with you. I'd made sure you'd played hookey
17112and been a-swimming. But I forgive ye, Tom. I reckon you're a kind of a
17113singed cat, as the saying is--better'n you look. THIS time."
17114
17115She was half sorry her sagacity had miscarried, and half glad that Tom
17116had stumbled into obedient conduct for once.
17117
17118But Sidney said:
17119
17120"Well, now, if I didn't think you sewed his collar with white thread,
17121but it's black."
17122
17123"Why, I did sew it with white! Tom!"
17124
17125But Tom did not wait for the rest. As he went out at the door he said:
17126
17127"Siddy, I'll lick you for that."
17128
17129In a safe place Tom examined two large needles which were thrust into
17130the lapels of his jacket, and had thread bound about them--one needle
17131carried white thread and the other black. He said:
17132
17133"She'd never noticed if it hadn't been for Sid. Confound it! sometimes
17134she sews it with white, and sometimes she sews it with black. I wish to
17135geeminy she'd stick to one or t'other--I can't keep the run of 'em. But
17136I bet you I'll lam Sid for that. I'll learn him!"
17137
17138He was not the Model Boy of the village. He knew the model boy very
17139well though--and loathed him.
17140
17141Within two minutes, or even less, he had forgotten all his troubles.
17142Not because his troubles were one whit less heavy and bitter to him
17143than a man's are to a man, but because a new and powerful interest bore
17144them down and drove them out of his mind for the time--just as men's
17145misfortunes are forgotten in the excitement of new enterprises. This
17146new interest was a valued novelty in whistling, which he had just
17147acquired from a negro, and he was suffering to practise it undisturbed.
17148It consisted in a peculiar bird-like turn, a sort of liquid warble,
17149produced by touching the tongue to the roof of the mouth at short
17150intervals in the midst of the music--the reader probably remembers how
17151to do it, if he has ever been a boy. Diligence and attention soon gave
17152him the knack of it, and he strode down the street with his mouth full
17153of harmony and his soul full of gratitude. He felt much as an
17154astronomer feels who has discovered a new planet--no doubt, as far as
17155strong, deep, unalloyed pleasure is concerned, the advantage was with
17156the boy, not the astronomer.
17157
17158The summer evenings were long. It was not dark, yet. Presently Tom
17159checked his whistle. A stranger was before him--a boy a shade larger
17160than himself. A new-comer of any age or either sex was an impressive
17161curiosity in the poor little shabby village of St. Petersburg. This boy
17162was well dressed, too--well dressed on a week-day. This was simply
17163astounding. His cap was a dainty thing, his close-buttoned blue cloth
17164roundabout was new and natty, and so were his pantaloons. He had shoes
17165on--and it was only Friday. He even wore a necktie, a bright bit of
17166ribbon. He had a citified air about him that ate into Tom's vitals. The
17167more Tom stared at the splendid marvel, the higher he turned up his
17168nose at his finery and the shabbier and shabbier his own outfit seemed
17169to him to grow. Neither boy spoke. If one moved, the other moved--but
17170only sidewise, in a circle; they kept face to face and eye to eye all
17171the time. Finally Tom said:
17172
17173"I can lick you!"
17174
17175"I'd like to see you try it."
17176
17177"Well, I can do it."
17178
17179"No you can't, either."
17180
17181"Yes I can."
17182
17183"No you can't."
17184
17185"I can."
17186
17187"You can't."
17188
17189"Can!"
17190
17191"Can't!"
17192
17193An uncomfortable pause. Then Tom said:
17194
17195"What's your name?"
17196
17197"'Tisn't any of your business, maybe."
17198
17199"Well I 'low I'll MAKE it my business."
17200
17201"Well why don't you?"
17202
17203"If you say much, I will."
17204
17205"Much--much--MUCH. There now."
17206
17207"Oh, you think you're mighty smart, DON'T you? I could lick you with
17208one hand tied behind me, if I wanted to."
17209
17210"Well why don't you DO it? You SAY you can do it."
17211
17212"Well I WILL, if you fool with me."
17213
17214"Oh yes--I've seen whole families in the same fix."
17215
17216"Smarty! You think you're SOME, now, DON'T you? Oh, what a hat!"
17217
17218"You can lump that hat if you don't like it. I dare you to knock it
17219off--and anybody that'll take a dare will suck eggs."
17220
17221"You're a liar!"
17222
17223"You're another."
17224
17225"You're a fighting liar and dasn't take it up."
17226
17227"Aw--take a walk!"
17228
17229"Say--if you give me much more of your sass I'll take and bounce a
17230rock off'n your head."
17231
17232"Oh, of COURSE you will."
17233
17234"Well I WILL."
17235
17236"Well why don't you DO it then? What do you keep SAYING you will for?
17237Why don't you DO it? It's because you're afraid."
17238
17239"I AIN'T afraid."
17240
17241"You are."
17242
17243"I ain't."
17244
17245"You are."
17246
17247Another pause, and more eying and sidling around each other. Presently
17248they were shoulder to shoulder. Tom said:
17249
17250"Get away from here!"
17251
17252"Go away yourself!"
17253
17254"I won't."
17255
17256"I won't either."
17257
17258So they stood, each with a foot placed at an angle as a brace, and
17259both shoving with might and main, and glowering at each other with
17260hate. But neither could get an advantage. After struggling till both
17261were hot and flushed, each relaxed his strain with watchful caution,
17262and Tom said:
17263
17264"You're a coward and a pup. I'll tell my big brother on you, and he
17265can thrash you with his little finger, and I'll make him do it, too."
17266
17267"What do I care for your big brother? I've got a brother that's bigger
17268than he is--and what's more, he can throw him over that fence, too."
17269[Both brothers were imaginary.]
17270
17271"That's a lie."
17272
17273"YOUR saying so don't make it so."
17274
17275Tom drew a line in the dust with his big toe, and said:
17276
17277"I dare you to step over that, and I'll lick you till you can't stand
17278up. Anybody that'll take a dare will steal sheep."
17279
17280The new boy stepped over promptly, and said:
17281
17282"Now you said you'd do it, now let's see you do it."
17283
17284"Don't you crowd me now; you better look out."
17285
17286"Well, you SAID you'd do it--why don't you do it?"
17287
17288"By jingo! for two cents I WILL do it."
17289
17290The new boy took two broad coppers out of his pocket and held them out
17291with derision. Tom struck them to the ground. In an instant both boys
17292were rolling and tumbling in the dirt, gripped together like cats; and
17293for the space of a minute they tugged and tore at each other's hair and
17294clothes, punched and scratched each other's nose, and covered
17295themselves with dust and glory. Presently the confusion took form, and
17296through the fog of battle Tom appeared, seated astride the new boy, and
17297pounding him with his fists. "Holler 'nuff!" said he.
17298
17299The boy only struggled to free himself. He was crying--mainly from rage.
17300
17301"Holler 'nuff!"--and the pounding went on.
17302
17303At last the stranger got out a smothered "'Nuff!" and Tom let him up
17304and said:
17305
17306"Now that'll learn you. Better look out who you're fooling with next
17307time."
17308
17309The new boy went off brushing the dust from his clothes, sobbing,
17310snuffling, and occasionally looking back and shaking his head and
17311threatening what he would do to Tom the "next time he caught him out."
17312To which Tom responded with jeers, and started off in high feather, and
17313as soon as his back was turned the new boy snatched up a stone, threw
17314it and hit him between the shoulders and then turned tail and ran like
17315an antelope. Tom chased the traitor home, and thus found out where he
17316lived. He then held a position at the gate for some time, daring the
17317enemy to come outside, but the enemy only made faces at him through the
17318window and declined. At last the enemy's mother appeared, and called
17319Tom a bad, vicious, vulgar child, and ordered him away. So he went
17320away; but he said he "'lowed" to "lay" for that boy.
17321
17322He got home pretty late that night, and when he climbed cautiously in
17323at the window, he uncovered an ambuscade, in the person of his aunt;
17324and when she saw the state his clothes were in her resolution to turn
17325his Saturday holiday into captivity at hard labor became adamantine in
17326its firmness.
17327
17328
17329
17330CHAPTER II
17331
17332SATURDAY morning was come, and all the summer world was bright and
17333fresh, and brimming with life. There was a song in every heart; and if
17334the heart was young the music issued at the lips. There was cheer in
17335every face and a spring in every step. The locust-trees were in bloom
17336and the fragrance of the blossoms filled the air. Cardiff Hill, beyond
17337the village and above it, was green with vegetation and it lay just far
17338enough away to seem a Delectable Land, dreamy, reposeful, and inviting.
17339
17340Tom appeared on the sidewalk with a bucket of whitewash and a
17341long-handled brush. He surveyed the fence, and all gladness left him and
17342a deep melancholy settled down upon his spirit. Thirty yards of board
17343fence nine feet high. Life to him seemed hollow, and existence but a
17344burden. Sighing, he dipped his brush and passed it along the topmost
17345plank; repeated the operation; did it again; compared the insignificant
17346whitewashed streak with the far-reaching continent of unwhitewashed
17347fence, and sat down on a tree-box discouraged. Jim came skipping out at
17348the gate with a tin pail, and singing Buffalo Gals. Bringing water from
17349the town pump had always been hateful work in Tom's eyes, before, but
17350now it did not strike him so. He remembered that there was company at
17351the pump. White, mulatto, and negro boys and girls were always there
17352waiting their turns, resting, trading playthings, quarrelling,
17353fighting, skylarking. And he remembered that although the pump was only
17354a hundred and fifty yards off, Jim never got back with a bucket of
17355water under an hour--and even then somebody generally had to go after
17356him. Tom said:
17357
17358"Say, Jim, I'll fetch the water if you'll whitewash some."
17359
17360Jim shook his head and said:
17361
17362"Can't, Mars Tom. Ole missis, she tole me I got to go an' git dis
17363water an' not stop foolin' roun' wid anybody. She say she spec' Mars
17364Tom gwine to ax me to whitewash, an' so she tole me go 'long an' 'tend
17365to my own business--she 'lowed SHE'D 'tend to de whitewashin'."
17366
17367"Oh, never you mind what she said, Jim. That's the way she always
17368talks. Gimme the bucket--I won't be gone only a a minute. SHE won't
17369ever know."
17370
17371"Oh, I dasn't, Mars Tom. Ole missis she'd take an' tar de head off'n
17372me. 'Deed she would."
17373
17374"SHE! She never licks anybody--whacks 'em over the head with her
17375thimble--and who cares for that, I'd like to know. She talks awful, but
17376talk don't hurt--anyways it don't if she don't cry. Jim, I'll give you
17377a marvel. I'll give you a white alley!"
17378
17379Jim began to waver.
17380
17381"White alley, Jim! And it's a bully taw."
17382
17383"My! Dat's a mighty gay marvel, I tell you! But Mars Tom I's powerful
17384'fraid ole missis--"
17385
17386"And besides, if you will I'll show you my sore toe."
17387
17388Jim was only human--this attraction was too much for him. He put down
17389his pail, took the white alley, and bent over the toe with absorbing
17390interest while the bandage was being unwound. In another moment he was
17391flying down the street with his pail and a tingling rear, Tom was
17392whitewashing with vigor, and Aunt Polly was retiring from the field
17393with a slipper in her hand and triumph in her eye.
17394
17395But Tom's energy did not last. He began to think of the fun he had
17396planned for this day, and his sorrows multiplied. Soon the free boys
17397would come tripping along on all sorts of delicious expeditions, and
17398they would make a world of fun of him for having to work--the very
17399thought of it burnt him like fire. He got out his worldly wealth and
17400examined it--bits of toys, marbles, and trash; enough to buy an
17401exchange of WORK, maybe, but not half enough to buy so much as half an
17402hour of pure freedom. So he returned his straitened means to his
17403pocket, and gave up the idea of trying to buy the boys. At this dark
17404and hopeless moment an inspiration burst upon him! Nothing less than a
17405great, magnificent inspiration.
17406
17407He took up his brush and went tranquilly to work. Ben Rogers hove in
17408sight presently--the very boy, of all boys, whose ridicule he had been
17409dreading. Ben's gait was the hop-skip-and-jump--proof enough that his
17410heart was light and his anticipations high. He was eating an apple, and
17411giving a long, melodious whoop, at intervals, followed by a deep-toned
17412ding-dong-dong, ding-dong-dong, for he was personating a steamboat. As
17413he drew near, he slackened speed, took the middle of the street, leaned
17414far over to starboard and rounded to ponderously and with laborious
17415pomp and circumstance--for he was personating the Big Missouri, and
17416considered himself to be drawing nine feet of water. He was boat and
17417captain and engine-bells combined, so he had to imagine himself
17418standing on his own hurricane-deck giving the orders and executing them:
17419
17420"Stop her, sir! Ting-a-ling-ling!" The headway ran almost out, and he
17421drew up slowly toward the sidewalk.
17422
17423"Ship up to back! Ting-a-ling-ling!" His arms straightened and
17424stiffened down his sides.
17425
17426"Set her back on the stabboard! Ting-a-ling-ling! Chow! ch-chow-wow!
17427Chow!" His right hand, meantime, describing stately circles--for it was
17428representing a forty-foot wheel.
17429
17430"Let her go back on the labboard! Ting-a-lingling! Chow-ch-chow-chow!"
17431The left hand began to describe circles.
17432
17433"Stop the stabboard! Ting-a-ling-ling! Stop the labboard! Come ahead
17434on the stabboard! Stop her! Let your outside turn over slow!
17435Ting-a-ling-ling! Chow-ow-ow! Get out that head-line! LIVELY now!
17436Come--out with your spring-line--what're you about there! Take a turn
17437round that stump with the bight of it! Stand by that stage, now--let her
17438go! Done with the engines, sir! Ting-a-ling-ling! SH'T! S'H'T! SH'T!"
17439(trying the gauge-cocks).
17440
17441Tom went on whitewashing--paid no attention to the steamboat. Ben
17442stared a moment and then said: "Hi-YI! YOU'RE up a stump, ain't you!"
17443
17444No answer. Tom surveyed his last touch with the eye of an artist, then
17445he gave his brush another gentle sweep and surveyed the result, as
17446before. Ben ranged up alongside of him. Tom's mouth watered for the
17447apple, but he stuck to his work. Ben said:
17448
17449"Hello, old chap, you got to work, hey?"
17450
17451Tom wheeled suddenly and said:
17452
17453"Why, it's you, Ben! I warn't noticing."
17454
17455"Say--I'm going in a-swimming, I am. Don't you wish you could? But of
17456course you'd druther WORK--wouldn't you? Course you would!"
17457
17458Tom contemplated the boy a bit, and said:
17459
17460"What do you call work?"
17461
17462"Why, ain't THAT work?"
17463
17464Tom resumed his whitewashing, and answered carelessly:
17465
17466"Well, maybe it is, and maybe it ain't. All I know, is, it suits Tom
17467Sawyer."
17468
17469"Oh come, now, you don't mean to let on that you LIKE it?"
17470
17471The brush continued to move.
17472
17473"Like it? Well, I don't see why I oughtn't to like it. Does a boy get
17474a chance to whitewash a fence every day?"
17475
17476That put the thing in a new light. Ben stopped nibbling his apple. Tom
17477swept his brush daintily back and forth--stepped back to note the
17478effect--added a touch here and there--criticised the effect again--Ben
17479watching every move and getting more and more interested, more and more
17480absorbed. Presently he said:
17481
17482"Say, Tom, let ME whitewash a little."
17483
17484Tom considered, was about to consent; but he altered his mind:
17485
17486"No--no--I reckon it wouldn't hardly do, Ben. You see, Aunt Polly's
17487awful particular about this fence--right here on the street, you know
17488--but if it was the back fence I wouldn't mind and SHE wouldn't. Yes,
17489she's awful particular about this fence; it's got to be done very
17490careful; I reckon there ain't one boy in a thousand, maybe two
17491thousand, that can do it the way it's got to be done."
17492
17493"No--is that so? Oh come, now--lemme just try. Only just a little--I'd
17494let YOU, if you was me, Tom."
17495
17496"Ben, I'd like to, honest injun; but Aunt Polly--well, Jim wanted to
17497do it, but she wouldn't let him; Sid wanted to do it, and she wouldn't
17498let Sid. Now don't you see how I'm fixed? If you was to tackle this
17499fence and anything was to happen to it--"
17500
17501"Oh, shucks, I'll be just as careful. Now lemme try. Say--I'll give
17502you the core of my apple."
17503
17504"Well, here--No, Ben, now don't. I'm afeard--"
17505
17506"I'll give you ALL of it!"
17507
17508Tom gave up the brush with reluctance in his face, but alacrity in his
17509heart. And while the late steamer Big Missouri worked and sweated in
17510the sun, the retired artist sat on a barrel in the shade close by,
17511dangled his legs, munched his apple, and planned the slaughter of more
17512innocents. There was no lack of material; boys happened along every
17513little while; they came to jeer, but remained to whitewash. By the time
17514Ben was fagged out, Tom had traded the next chance to Billy Fisher for
17515a kite, in good repair; and when he played out, Johnny Miller bought in
17516for a dead rat and a string to swing it with--and so on, and so on,
17517hour after hour. And when the middle of the afternoon came, from being
17518a poor poverty-stricken boy in the morning, Tom was literally rolling
17519in wealth. He had besides the things before mentioned, twelve marbles,
17520part of a jews-harp, a piece of blue bottle-glass to look through, a
17521spool cannon, a key that wouldn't unlock anything, a fragment of chalk,
17522a glass stopper of a decanter, a tin soldier, a couple of tadpoles, six
17523fire-crackers, a kitten with only one eye, a brass doorknob, a
17524dog-collar--but no dog--the handle of a knife, four pieces of
17525orange-peel, and a dilapidated old window sash.
17526
17527He had had a nice, good, idle time all the while--plenty of company
17528--and the fence had three coats of whitewash on it! If he hadn't run out
17529of whitewash he would have bankrupted every boy in the village.
17530
17531Tom said to himself that it was not such a hollow world, after all. He
17532had discovered a great law of human action, without knowing it--namely,
17533that in order to make a man or a boy covet a thing, it is only
17534necessary to make the thing difficult to attain. If he had been a great
17535and wise philosopher, like the writer of this book, he would now have
17536comprehended that Work consists of whatever a body is OBLIGED to do,
17537and that Play consists of whatever a body is not obliged to do. And
17538this would help him to understand why constructing artificial flowers
17539or performing on a tread-mill is work, while rolling ten-pins or
17540climbing Mont Blanc is only amusement. There are wealthy gentlemen in
17541England who drive four-horse passenger-coaches twenty or thirty miles
17542on a daily line, in the summer, because the privilege costs them
17543considerable money; but if they were offered wages for the service,
17544that would turn it into work and then they would resign.
17545
17546The boy mused awhile over the substantial change which had taken place
17547in his worldly circumstances, and then wended toward headquarters to
17548report.
17549
17550
17551
17552CHAPTER III
17553
17554TOM presented himself before Aunt Polly, who was sitting by an open
17555window in a pleasant rearward apartment, which was bedroom,
17556breakfast-room, dining-room, and library, combined. The balmy summer
17557air, the restful quiet, the odor of the flowers, and the drowsing murmur
17558of the bees had had their effect, and she was nodding over her knitting
17559--for she had no company but the cat, and it was asleep in her lap. Her
17560spectacles were propped up on her gray head for safety. She had thought
17561that of course Tom had deserted long ago, and she wondered at seeing him
17562place himself in her power again in this intrepid way. He said: "Mayn't
17563I go and play now, aunt?"
17564
17565"What, a'ready? How much have you done?"
17566
17567"It's all done, aunt."
17568
17569"Tom, don't lie to me--I can't bear it."
17570
17571"I ain't, aunt; it IS all done."
17572
17573Aunt Polly placed small trust in such evidence. She went out to see
17574for herself; and she would have been content to find twenty per cent.
17575of Tom's statement true. When she found the entire fence whitewashed,
17576and not only whitewashed but elaborately coated and recoated, and even
17577a streak added to the ground, her astonishment was almost unspeakable.
17578She said:
17579
17580"Well, I never! There's no getting round it, you can work when you're
17581a mind to, Tom." And then she diluted the compliment by adding, "But
17582it's powerful seldom you're a mind to, I'm bound to say. Well, go 'long
17583and play; but mind you get back some time in a week, or I'll tan you."
17584
17585She was so overcome by the splendor of his achievement that she took
17586him into the closet and selected a choice apple and delivered it to
17587him, along with an improving lecture upon the added value and flavor a
17588treat took to itself when it came without sin through virtuous effort.
17589And while she closed with a happy Scriptural flourish, he "hooked" a
17590doughnut.
17591
17592Then he skipped out, and saw Sid just starting up the outside stairway
17593that led to the back rooms on the second floor. Clods were handy and
17594the air was full of them in a twinkling. They raged around Sid like a
17595hail-storm; and before Aunt Polly could collect her surprised faculties
17596and sally to the rescue, six or seven clods had taken personal effect,
17597and Tom was over the fence and gone. There was a gate, but as a general
17598thing he was too crowded for time to make use of it. His soul was at
17599peace, now that he had settled with Sid for calling attention to his
17600black thread and getting him into trouble.
17601
17602Tom skirted the block, and came round into a muddy alley that led by
17603the back of his aunt's cow-stable. He presently got safely beyond the
17604reach of capture and punishment, and hastened toward the public square
17605of the village, where two "military" companies of boys had met for
17606conflict, according to previous appointment. Tom was General of one of
17607these armies, Joe Harper (a bosom friend) General of the other. These
17608two great commanders did not condescend to fight in person--that being
17609better suited to the still smaller fry--but sat together on an eminence
17610and conducted the field operations by orders delivered through
17611aides-de-camp. Tom's army won a great victory, after a long and
17612hard-fought battle. Then the dead were counted, prisoners exchanged,
17613the terms of the next disagreement agreed upon, and the day for the
17614necessary battle appointed; after which the armies fell into line and
17615marched away, and Tom turned homeward alone.
17616
17617As he was passing by the house where Jeff Thatcher lived, he saw a new
17618girl in the garden--a lovely little blue-eyed creature with yellow hair
17619plaited into two long-tails, white summer frock and embroidered
17620pantalettes. The fresh-crowned hero fell without firing a shot. A
17621certain Amy Lawrence vanished out of his heart and left not even a
17622memory of herself behind. He had thought he loved her to distraction;
17623he had regarded his passion as adoration; and behold it was only a poor
17624little evanescent partiality. He had been months winning her; she had
17625confessed hardly a week ago; he had been the happiest and the proudest
17626boy in the world only seven short days, and here in one instant of time
17627she had gone out of his heart like a casual stranger whose visit is
17628done.
17629
17630He worshipped this new angel with furtive eye, till he saw that she
17631had discovered him; then he pretended he did not know she was present,
17632and began to "show off" in all sorts of absurd boyish ways, in order to
17633win her admiration. He kept up this grotesque foolishness for some
17634time; but by-and-by, while he was in the midst of some dangerous
17635gymnastic performances, he glanced aside and saw that the little girl
17636was wending her way toward the house. Tom came up to the fence and
17637leaned on it, grieving, and hoping she would tarry yet awhile longer.
17638She halted a moment on the steps and then moved toward the door. Tom
17639heaved a great sigh as she put her foot on the threshold. But his face
17640lit up, right away, for she tossed a pansy over the fence a moment
17641before she disappeared.
17642
17643The boy ran around and stopped within a foot or two of the flower, and
17644then shaded his eyes with his hand and began to look down street as if
17645he had discovered something of interest going on in that direction.
17646Presently he picked up a straw and began trying to balance it on his
17647nose, with his head tilted far back; and as he moved from side to side,
17648in his efforts, he edged nearer and nearer toward the pansy; finally
17649his bare foot rested upon it, his pliant toes closed upon it, and he
17650hopped away with the treasure and disappeared round the corner. But
17651only for a minute--only while he could button the flower inside his
17652jacket, next his heart--or next his stomach, possibly, for he was not
17653much posted in anatomy, and not hypercritical, anyway.
17654
17655He returned, now, and hung about the fence till nightfall, "showing
17656off," as before; but the girl never exhibited herself again, though Tom
17657comforted himself a little with the hope that she had been near some
17658window, meantime, and been aware of his attentions. Finally he strode
17659home reluctantly, with his poor head full of visions.
17660
17661All through supper his spirits were so high that his aunt wondered
17662"what had got into the child." He took a good scolding about clodding
17663Sid, and did not seem to mind it in the least. He tried to steal sugar
17664under his aunt's very nose, and got his knuckles rapped for it. He said:
17665
17666"Aunt, you don't whack Sid when he takes it."
17667
17668"Well, Sid don't torment a body the way you do. You'd be always into
17669that sugar if I warn't watching you."
17670
17671Presently she stepped into the kitchen, and Sid, happy in his
17672immunity, reached for the sugar-bowl--a sort of glorying over Tom which
17673was wellnigh unbearable. But Sid's fingers slipped and the bowl dropped
17674and broke. Tom was in ecstasies. In such ecstasies that he even
17675controlled his tongue and was silent. He said to himself that he would
17676not speak a word, even when his aunt came in, but would sit perfectly
17677still till she asked who did the mischief; and then he would tell, and
17678there would be nothing so good in the world as to see that pet model
17679"catch it." He was so brimful of exultation that he could hardly hold
17680himself when the old lady came back and stood above the wreck
17681discharging lightnings of wrath from over her spectacles. He said to
17682himself, "Now it's coming!" And the next instant he was sprawling on
17683the floor! The potent palm was uplifted to strike again when Tom cried
17684out:
17685
17686"Hold on, now, what 'er you belting ME for?--Sid broke it!"
17687
17688Aunt Polly paused, perplexed, and Tom looked for healing pity. But
17689when she got her tongue again, she only said:
17690
17691"Umf! Well, you didn't get a lick amiss, I reckon. You been into some
17692other audacious mischief when I wasn't around, like enough."
17693
17694Then her conscience reproached her, and she yearned to say something
17695kind and loving; but she judged that this would be construed into a
17696confession that she had been in the wrong, and discipline forbade that.
17697So she kept silence, and went about her affairs with a troubled heart.
17698Tom sulked in a corner and exalted his woes. He knew that in her heart
17699his aunt was on her knees to him, and he was morosely gratified by the
17700consciousness of it. He would hang out no signals, he would take notice
17701of none. He knew that a yearning glance fell upon him, now and then,
17702through a film of tears, but he refused recognition of it. He pictured
17703himself lying sick unto death and his aunt bending over him beseeching
17704one little forgiving word, but he would turn his face to the wall, and
17705die with that word unsaid. Ah, how would she feel then? And he pictured
17706himself brought home from the river, dead, with his curls all wet, and
17707his sore heart at rest. How she would throw herself upon him, and how
17708her tears would fall like rain, and her lips pray God to give her back
17709her boy and she would never, never abuse him any more! But he would lie
17710there cold and white and make no sign--a poor little sufferer, whose
17711griefs were at an end. He so worked upon his feelings with the pathos
17712of these dreams, that he had to keep swallowing, he was so like to
17713choke; and his eyes swam in a blur of water, which overflowed when he
17714winked, and ran down and trickled from the end of his nose. And such a
17715luxury to him was this petting of his sorrows, that he could not bear
17716to have any worldly cheeriness or any grating delight intrude upon it;
17717it was too sacred for such contact; and so, presently, when his cousin
17718Mary danced in, all alive with the joy of seeing home again after an
17719age-long visit of one week to the country, he got up and moved in
17720clouds and darkness out at one door as she brought song and sunshine in
17721at the other.
17722
17723He wandered far from the accustomed haunts of boys, and sought
17724desolate places that were in harmony with his spirit. A log raft in the
17725river invited him, and he seated himself on its outer edge and
17726contemplated the dreary vastness of the stream, wishing, the while,
17727that he could only be drowned, all at once and unconsciously, without
17728undergoing the uncomfortable routine devised by nature. Then he thought
17729of his flower. He got it out, rumpled and wilted, and it mightily
17730increased his dismal felicity. He wondered if she would pity him if she
17731knew? Would she cry, and wish that she had a right to put her arms
17732around his neck and comfort him? Or would she turn coldly away like all
17733the hollow world? This picture brought such an agony of pleasurable
17734suffering that he worked it over and over again in his mind and set it
17735up in new and varied lights, till he wore it threadbare. At last he
17736rose up sighing and departed in the darkness.
17737
17738About half-past nine or ten o'clock he came along the deserted street
17739to where the Adored Unknown lived; he paused a moment; no sound fell
17740upon his listening ear; a candle was casting a dull glow upon the
17741curtain of a second-story window. Was the sacred presence there? He
17742climbed the fence, threaded his stealthy way through the plants, till
17743he stood under that window; he looked up at it long, and with emotion;
17744then he laid him down on the ground under it, disposing himself upon
17745his back, with his hands clasped upon his breast and holding his poor
17746wilted flower. And thus he would die--out in the cold world, with no
17747shelter over his homeless head, no friendly hand to wipe the
17748death-damps from his brow, no loving face to bend pityingly over him
17749when the great agony came. And thus SHE would see him when she looked
17750out upon the glad morning, and oh! would she drop one little tear upon
17751his poor, lifeless form, would she heave one little sigh to see a bright
17752young life so rudely blighted, so untimely cut down?
17753
17754The window went up, a maid-servant's discordant voice profaned the
17755holy calm, and a deluge of water drenched the prone martyr's remains!
17756
17757The strangling hero sprang up with a relieving snort. There was a whiz
17758as of a missile in the air, mingled with the murmur of a curse, a sound
17759as of shivering glass followed, and a small, vague form went over the
17760fence and shot away in the gloom.
17761
17762Not long after, as Tom, all undressed for bed, was surveying his
17763drenched garments by the light of a tallow dip, Sid woke up; but if he
17764had any dim idea of making any "references to allusions," he thought
17765better of it and held his peace, for there was danger in Tom's eye.
17766
17767Tom turned in without the added vexation of prayers, and Sid made
17768mental note of the omission.
17769
17770
17771
17772CHAPTER IV
17773
17774THE sun rose upon a tranquil world, and beamed down upon the peaceful
17775village like a benediction. Breakfast over, Aunt Polly had family
17776worship: it began with a prayer built from the ground up of solid
17777courses of Scriptural quotations, welded together with a thin mortar of
17778originality; and from the summit of this she delivered a grim chapter
17779of the Mosaic Law, as from Sinai.
17780
17781Then Tom girded up his loins, so to speak, and went to work to "get
17782his verses." Sid had learned his lesson days before. Tom bent all his
17783energies to the memorizing of five verses, and he chose part of the
17784Sermon on the Mount, because he could find no verses that were shorter.
17785At the end of half an hour Tom had a vague general idea of his lesson,
17786but no more, for his mind was traversing the whole field of human
17787thought, and his hands were busy with distracting recreations. Mary
17788took his book to hear him recite, and he tried to find his way through
17789the fog:
17790
17791"Blessed are the--a--a--"
17792
17793"Poor"--
17794
17795"Yes--poor; blessed are the poor--a--a--"
17796
17797"In spirit--"
17798
17799"In spirit; blessed are the poor in spirit, for they--they--"
17800
17801"THEIRS--"
17802
17803"For THEIRS. Blessed are the poor in spirit, for theirs is the kingdom
17804of heaven. Blessed are they that mourn, for they--they--"
17805
17806"Sh--"
17807
17808"For they--a--"
17809
17810"S, H, A--"
17811
17812"For they S, H--Oh, I don't know what it is!"
17813
17814"SHALL!"
17815
17816"Oh, SHALL! for they shall--for they shall--a--a--shall mourn--a--a--
17817blessed are they that shall--they that--a--they that shall mourn, for
17818they shall--a--shall WHAT? Why don't you tell me, Mary?--what do you
17819want to be so mean for?"
17820
17821"Oh, Tom, you poor thick-headed thing, I'm not teasing you. I wouldn't
17822do that. You must go and learn it again. Don't you be discouraged, Tom,
17823you'll manage it--and if you do, I'll give you something ever so nice.
17824There, now, that's a good boy."
17825
17826"All right! What is it, Mary, tell me what it is."
17827
17828"Never you mind, Tom. You know if I say it's nice, it is nice."
17829
17830"You bet you that's so, Mary. All right, I'll tackle it again."
17831
17832And he did "tackle it again"--and under the double pressure of
17833curiosity and prospective gain he did it with such spirit that he
17834accomplished a shining success. Mary gave him a brand-new "Barlow"
17835knife worth twelve and a half cents; and the convulsion of delight that
17836swept his system shook him to his foundations. True, the knife would
17837not cut anything, but it was a "sure-enough" Barlow, and there was
17838inconceivable grandeur in that--though where the Western boys ever got
17839the idea that such a weapon could possibly be counterfeited to its
17840injury is an imposing mystery and will always remain so, perhaps. Tom
17841contrived to scarify the cupboard with it, and was arranging to begin
17842on the bureau, when he was called off to dress for Sunday-school.
17843
17844Mary gave him a tin basin of water and a piece of soap, and he went
17845outside the door and set the basin on a little bench there; then he
17846dipped the soap in the water and laid it down; turned up his sleeves;
17847poured out the water on the ground, gently, and then entered the
17848kitchen and began to wipe his face diligently on the towel behind the
17849door. But Mary removed the towel and said:
17850
17851"Now ain't you ashamed, Tom. You mustn't be so bad. Water won't hurt
17852you."
17853
17854Tom was a trifle disconcerted. The basin was refilled, and this time
17855he stood over it a little while, gathering resolution; took in a big
17856breath and began. When he entered the kitchen presently, with both eyes
17857shut and groping for the towel with his hands, an honorable testimony
17858of suds and water was dripping from his face. But when he emerged from
17859the towel, he was not yet satisfactory, for the clean territory stopped
17860short at his chin and his jaws, like a mask; below and beyond this line
17861there was a dark expanse of unirrigated soil that spread downward in
17862front and backward around his neck. Mary took him in hand, and when she
17863was done with him he was a man and a brother, without distinction of
17864color, and his saturated hair was neatly brushed, and its short curls
17865wrought into a dainty and symmetrical general effect. [He privately
17866smoothed out the curls, with labor and difficulty, and plastered his
17867hair close down to his head; for he held curls to be effeminate, and
17868his own filled his life with bitterness.] Then Mary got out a suit of
17869his clothing that had been used only on Sundays during two years--they
17870were simply called his "other clothes"--and so by that we know the
17871size of his wardrobe. The girl "put him to rights" after he had dressed
17872himself; she buttoned his neat roundabout up to his chin, turned his
17873vast shirt collar down over his shoulders, brushed him off and crowned
17874him with his speckled straw hat. He now looked exceedingly improved and
17875uncomfortable. He was fully as uncomfortable as he looked; for there
17876was a restraint about whole clothes and cleanliness that galled him. He
17877hoped that Mary would forget his shoes, but the hope was blighted; she
17878coated them thoroughly with tallow, as was the custom, and brought them
17879out. He lost his temper and said he was always being made to do
17880everything he didn't want to do. But Mary said, persuasively:
17881
17882"Please, Tom--that's a good boy."
17883
17884So he got into the shoes snarling. Mary was soon ready, and the three
17885children set out for Sunday-school--a place that Tom hated with his
17886whole heart; but Sid and Mary were fond of it.
17887
17888Sabbath-school hours were from nine to half-past ten; and then church
17889service. Two of the children always remained for the sermon
17890voluntarily, and the other always remained too--for stronger reasons.
17891The church's high-backed, uncushioned pews would seat about three
17892hundred persons; the edifice was but a small, plain affair, with a sort
17893of pine board tree-box on top of it for a steeple. At the door Tom
17894dropped back a step and accosted a Sunday-dressed comrade:
17895
17896"Say, Billy, got a yaller ticket?"
17897
17898"Yes."
17899
17900"What'll you take for her?"
17901
17902"What'll you give?"
17903
17904"Piece of lickrish and a fish-hook."
17905
17906"Less see 'em."
17907
17908Tom exhibited. They were satisfactory, and the property changed hands.
17909Then Tom traded a couple of white alleys for three red tickets, and
17910some small trifle or other for a couple of blue ones. He waylaid other
17911boys as they came, and went on buying tickets of various colors ten or
17912fifteen minutes longer. He entered the church, now, with a swarm of
17913clean and noisy boys and girls, proceeded to his seat and started a
17914quarrel with the first boy that came handy. The teacher, a grave,
17915elderly man, interfered; then turned his back a moment and Tom pulled a
17916boy's hair in the next bench, and was absorbed in his book when the boy
17917turned around; stuck a pin in another boy, presently, in order to hear
17918him say "Ouch!" and got a new reprimand from his teacher. Tom's whole
17919class were of a pattern--restless, noisy, and troublesome. When they
17920came to recite their lessons, not one of them knew his verses
17921perfectly, but had to be prompted all along. However, they worried
17922through, and each got his reward--in small blue tickets, each with a
17923passage of Scripture on it; each blue ticket was pay for two verses of
17924the recitation. Ten blue tickets equalled a red one, and could be
17925exchanged for it; ten red tickets equalled a yellow one; for ten yellow
17926tickets the superintendent gave a very plainly bound Bible (worth forty
17927cents in those easy times) to the pupil. How many of my readers would
17928have the industry and application to memorize two thousand verses, even
17929for a Dore Bible? And yet Mary had acquired two Bibles in this way--it
17930was the patient work of two years--and a boy of German parentage had
17931won four or five. He once recited three thousand verses without
17932stopping; but the strain upon his mental faculties was too great, and
17933he was little better than an idiot from that day forth--a grievous
17934misfortune for the school, for on great occasions, before company, the
17935superintendent (as Tom expressed it) had always made this boy come out
17936and "spread himself." Only the older pupils managed to keep their
17937tickets and stick to their tedious work long enough to get a Bible, and
17938so the delivery of one of these prizes was a rare and noteworthy
17939circumstance; the successful pupil was so great and conspicuous for
17940that day that on the spot every scholar's heart was fired with a fresh
17941ambition that often lasted a couple of weeks. It is possible that Tom's
17942mental stomach had never really hungered for one of those prizes, but
17943unquestionably his entire being had for many a day longed for the glory
17944and the eclat that came with it.
17945
17946In due course the superintendent stood up in front of the pulpit, with
17947a closed hymn-book in his hand and his forefinger inserted between its
17948leaves, and commanded attention. When a Sunday-school superintendent
17949makes his customary little speech, a hymn-book in the hand is as
17950necessary as is the inevitable sheet of music in the hand of a singer
17951who stands forward on the platform and sings a solo at a concert
17952--though why, is a mystery: for neither the hymn-book nor the sheet of
17953music is ever referred to by the sufferer. This superintendent was a
17954slim creature of thirty-five, with a sandy goatee and short sandy hair;
17955he wore a stiff standing-collar whose upper edge almost reached his
17956ears and whose sharp points curved forward abreast the corners of his
17957mouth--a fence that compelled a straight lookout ahead, and a turning
17958of the whole body when a side view was required; his chin was propped
17959on a spreading cravat which was as broad and as long as a bank-note,
17960and had fringed ends; his boot toes were turned sharply up, in the
17961fashion of the day, like sleigh-runners--an effect patiently and
17962laboriously produced by the young men by sitting with their toes
17963pressed against a wall for hours together. Mr. Walters was very earnest
17964of mien, and very sincere and honest at heart; and he held sacred
17965things and places in such reverence, and so separated them from worldly
17966matters, that unconsciously to himself his Sunday-school voice had
17967acquired a peculiar intonation which was wholly absent on week-days. He
17968began after this fashion:
17969
17970"Now, children, I want you all to sit up just as straight and pretty
17971as you can and give me all your attention for a minute or two. There
17972--that is it. That is the way good little boys and girls should do. I see
17973one little girl who is looking out of the window--I am afraid she
17974thinks I am out there somewhere--perhaps up in one of the trees making
17975a speech to the little birds. [Applausive titter.] I want to tell you
17976how good it makes me feel to see so many bright, clean little faces
17977assembled in a place like this, learning to do right and be good." And
17978so forth and so on. It is not necessary to set down the rest of the
17979oration. It was of a pattern which does not vary, and so it is familiar
17980to us all.
17981
17982The latter third of the speech was marred by the resumption of fights
17983and other recreations among certain of the bad boys, and by fidgetings
17984and whisperings that extended far and wide, washing even to the bases
17985of isolated and incorruptible rocks like Sid and Mary. But now every
17986sound ceased suddenly, with the subsidence of Mr. Walters' voice, and
17987the conclusion of the speech was received with a burst of silent
17988gratitude.
17989
17990A good part of the whispering had been occasioned by an event which
17991was more or less rare--the entrance of visitors: lawyer Thatcher,
17992accompanied by a very feeble and aged man; a fine, portly, middle-aged
17993gentleman with iron-gray hair; and a dignified lady who was doubtless
17994the latter's wife. The lady was leading a child. Tom had been restless
17995and full of chafings and repinings; conscience-smitten, too--he could
17996not meet Amy Lawrence's eye, he could not brook her loving gaze. But
17997when he saw this small new-comer his soul was all ablaze with bliss in
17998a moment. The next moment he was "showing off" with all his might
17999--cuffing boys, pulling hair, making faces--in a word, using every art
18000that seemed likely to fascinate a girl and win her applause. His
18001exaltation had but one alloy--the memory of his humiliation in this
18002angel's garden--and that record in sand was fast washing out, under
18003the waves of happiness that were sweeping over it now.
18004
18005The visitors were given the highest seat of honor, and as soon as Mr.
18006Walters' speech was finished, he introduced them to the school. The
18007middle-aged man turned out to be a prodigious personage--no less a one
18008than the county judge--altogether the most august creation these
18009children had ever looked upon--and they wondered what kind of material
18010he was made of--and they half wanted to hear him roar, and were half
18011afraid he might, too. He was from Constantinople, twelve miles away--so
18012he had travelled, and seen the world--these very eyes had looked upon
18013the county court-house--which was said to have a tin roof. The awe
18014which these reflections inspired was attested by the impressive silence
18015and the ranks of staring eyes. This was the great Judge Thatcher,
18016brother of their own lawyer. Jeff Thatcher immediately went forward, to
18017be familiar with the great man and be envied by the school. It would
18018have been music to his soul to hear the whisperings:
18019
18020"Look at him, Jim! He's a going up there. Say--look! he's a going to
18021shake hands with him--he IS shaking hands with him! By jings, don't you
18022wish you was Jeff?"
18023
18024Mr. Walters fell to "showing off," with all sorts of official
18025bustlings and activities, giving orders, delivering judgments,
18026discharging directions here, there, everywhere that he could find a
18027target. The librarian "showed off"--running hither and thither with his
18028arms full of books and making a deal of the splutter and fuss that
18029insect authority delights in. The young lady teachers "showed off"
18030--bending sweetly over pupils that were lately being boxed, lifting
18031pretty warning fingers at bad little boys and patting good ones
18032lovingly. The young gentlemen teachers "showed off" with small
18033scoldings and other little displays of authority and fine attention to
18034discipline--and most of the teachers, of both sexes, found business up
18035at the library, by the pulpit; and it was business that frequently had
18036to be done over again two or three times (with much seeming vexation).
18037The little girls "showed off" in various ways, and the little boys
18038"showed off" with such diligence that the air was thick with paper wads
18039and the murmur of scufflings. And above it all the great man sat and
18040beamed a majestic judicial smile upon all the house, and warmed himself
18041in the sun of his own grandeur--for he was "showing off," too.
18042
18043There was only one thing wanting to make Mr. Walters' ecstasy
18044complete, and that was a chance to deliver a Bible-prize and exhibit a
18045prodigy. Several pupils had a few yellow tickets, but none had enough
18046--he had been around among the star pupils inquiring. He would have given
18047worlds, now, to have that German lad back again with a sound mind.
18048
18049And now at this moment, when hope was dead, Tom Sawyer came forward
18050with nine yellow tickets, nine red tickets, and ten blue ones, and
18051demanded a Bible. This was a thunderbolt out of a clear sky. Walters
18052was not expecting an application from this source for the next ten
18053years. But there was no getting around it--here were the certified
18054checks, and they were good for their face. Tom was therefore elevated
18055to a place with the Judge and the other elect, and the great news was
18056announced from headquarters. It was the most stunning surprise of the
18057decade, and so profound was the sensation that it lifted the new hero
18058up to the judicial one's altitude, and the school had two marvels to
18059gaze upon in place of one. The boys were all eaten up with envy--but
18060those that suffered the bitterest pangs were those who perceived too
18061late that they themselves had contributed to this hated splendor by
18062trading tickets to Tom for the wealth he had amassed in selling
18063whitewashing privileges. These despised themselves, as being the dupes
18064of a wily fraud, a guileful snake in the grass.
18065
18066The prize was delivered to Tom with as much effusion as the
18067superintendent could pump up under the circumstances; but it lacked
18068somewhat of the true gush, for the poor fellow's instinct taught him
18069that there was a mystery here that could not well bear the light,
18070perhaps; it was simply preposterous that this boy had warehoused two
18071thousand sheaves of Scriptural wisdom on his premises--a dozen would
18072strain his capacity, without a doubt.
18073
18074Amy Lawrence was proud and glad, and she tried to make Tom see it in
18075her face--but he wouldn't look. She wondered; then she was just a grain
18076troubled; next a dim suspicion came and went--came again; she watched;
18077a furtive glance told her worlds--and then her heart broke, and she was
18078jealous, and angry, and the tears came and she hated everybody. Tom
18079most of all (she thought).
18080
18081Tom was introduced to the Judge; but his tongue was tied, his breath
18082would hardly come, his heart quaked--partly because of the awful
18083greatness of the man, but mainly because he was her parent. He would
18084have liked to fall down and worship him, if it were in the dark. The
18085Judge put his hand on Tom's head and called him a fine little man, and
18086asked him what his name was. The boy stammered, gasped, and got it out:
18087
18088"Tom."
18089
18090"Oh, no, not Tom--it is--"
18091
18092"Thomas."
18093
18094"Ah, that's it. I thought there was more to it, maybe. That's very
18095well. But you've another one I daresay, and you'll tell it to me, won't
18096you?"
18097
18098"Tell the gentleman your other name, Thomas," said Walters, "and say
18099sir. You mustn't forget your manners."
18100
18101"Thomas Sawyer--sir."
18102
18103"That's it! That's a good boy. Fine boy. Fine, manly little fellow.
18104Two thousand verses is a great many--very, very great many. And you
18105never can be sorry for the trouble you took to learn them; for
18106knowledge is worth more than anything there is in the world; it's what
18107makes great men and good men; you'll be a great man and a good man
18108yourself, some day, Thomas, and then you'll look back and say, It's all
18109owing to the precious Sunday-school privileges of my boyhood--it's all
18110owing to my dear teachers that taught me to learn--it's all owing to
18111the good superintendent, who encouraged me, and watched over me, and
18112gave me a beautiful Bible--a splendid elegant Bible--to keep and have
18113it all for my own, always--it's all owing to right bringing up! That is
18114what you will say, Thomas--and you wouldn't take any money for those
18115two thousand verses--no indeed you wouldn't. And now you wouldn't mind
18116telling me and this lady some of the things you've learned--no, I know
18117you wouldn't--for we are proud of little boys that learn. Now, no
18118doubt you know the names of all the twelve disciples. Won't you tell us
18119the names of the first two that were appointed?"
18120
18121Tom was tugging at a button-hole and looking sheepish. He blushed,
18122now, and his eyes fell. Mr. Walters' heart sank within him. He said to
18123himself, it is not possible that the boy can answer the simplest
18124question--why DID the Judge ask him? Yet he felt obliged to speak up
18125and say:
18126
18127"Answer the gentleman, Thomas--don't be afraid."
18128
18129Tom still hung fire.
18130
18131"Now I know you'll tell me," said the lady. "The names of the first
18132two disciples were--"
18133
18134"DAVID AND GOLIAH!"
18135
18136Let us draw the curtain of charity over the rest of the scene.
18137
18138
18139
18140CHAPTER V
18141
18142ABOUT half-past ten the cracked bell of the small church began to
18143ring, and presently the people began to gather for the morning sermon.
18144The Sunday-school children distributed themselves about the house and
18145occupied pews with their parents, so as to be under supervision. Aunt
18146Polly came, and Tom and Sid and Mary sat with her--Tom being placed
18147next the aisle, in order that he might be as far away from the open
18148window and the seductive outside summer scenes as possible. The crowd
18149filed up the aisles: the aged and needy postmaster, who had seen better
18150days; the mayor and his wife--for they had a mayor there, among other
18151unnecessaries; the justice of the peace; the widow Douglass, fair,
18152smart, and forty, a generous, good-hearted soul and well-to-do, her
18153hill mansion the only palace in the town, and the most hospitable and
18154much the most lavish in the matter of festivities that St. Petersburg
18155could boast; the bent and venerable Major and Mrs. Ward; lawyer
18156Riverson, the new notable from a distance; next the belle of the
18157village, followed by a troop of lawn-clad and ribbon-decked young
18158heart-breakers; then all the young clerks in town in a body--for they
18159had stood in the vestibule sucking their cane-heads, a circling wall of
18160oiled and simpering admirers, till the last girl had run their gantlet;
18161and last of all came the Model Boy, Willie Mufferson, taking as heedful
18162care of his mother as if she were cut glass. He always brought his
18163mother to church, and was the pride of all the matrons. The boys all
18164hated him, he was so good. And besides, he had been "thrown up to them"
18165so much. His white handkerchief was hanging out of his pocket behind, as
18166usual on Sundays--accidentally. Tom had no handkerchief, and he looked
18167upon boys who had as snobs.
18168
18169The congregation being fully assembled, now, the bell rang once more,
18170to warn laggards and stragglers, and then a solemn hush fell upon the
18171church which was only broken by the tittering and whispering of the
18172choir in the gallery. The choir always tittered and whispered all
18173through service. There was once a church choir that was not ill-bred,
18174but I have forgotten where it was, now. It was a great many years ago,
18175and I can scarcely remember anything about it, but I think it was in
18176some foreign country.
18177
18178The minister gave out the hymn, and read it through with a relish, in
18179a peculiar style which was much admired in that part of the country.
18180His voice began on a medium key and climbed steadily up till it reached
18181a certain point, where it bore with strong emphasis upon the topmost
18182word and then plunged down as if from a spring-board:
18183
18184  Shall I be car-ri-ed toe the skies, on flow'ry BEDS of ease,
18185
18186  Whilst others fight to win the prize, and sail thro' BLOODY seas?
18187
18188He was regarded as a wonderful reader. At church "sociables" he was
18189always called upon to read poetry; and when he was through, the ladies
18190would lift up their hands and let them fall helplessly in their laps,
18191and "wall" their eyes, and shake their heads, as much as to say, "Words
18192cannot express it; it is too beautiful, TOO beautiful for this mortal
18193earth."
18194
18195After the hymn had been sung, the Rev. Mr. Sprague turned himself into
18196a bulletin-board, and read off "notices" of meetings and societies and
18197things till it seemed that the list would stretch out to the crack of
18198doom--a queer custom which is still kept up in America, even in cities,
18199away here in this age of abundant newspapers. Often, the less there is
18200to justify a traditional custom, the harder it is to get rid of it.
18201
18202And now the minister prayed. A good, generous prayer it was, and went
18203into details: it pleaded for the church, and the little children of the
18204church; for the other churches of the village; for the village itself;
18205for the county; for the State; for the State officers; for the United
18206States; for the churches of the United States; for Congress; for the
18207President; for the officers of the Government; for poor sailors, tossed
18208by stormy seas; for the oppressed millions groaning under the heel of
18209European monarchies and Oriental despotisms; for such as have the light
18210and the good tidings, and yet have not eyes to see nor ears to hear
18211withal; for the heathen in the far islands of the sea; and closed with
18212a supplication that the words he was about to speak might find grace
18213and favor, and be as seed sown in fertile ground, yielding in time a
18214grateful harvest of good. Amen.
18215
18216There was a rustling of dresses, and the standing congregation sat
18217down. The boy whose history this book relates did not enjoy the prayer,
18218he only endured it--if he even did that much. He was restive all
18219through it; he kept tally of the details of the prayer, unconsciously
18220--for he was not listening, but he knew the ground of old, and the
18221clergyman's regular route over it--and when a little trifle of new
18222matter was interlarded, his ear detected it and his whole nature
18223resented it; he considered additions unfair, and scoundrelly. In the
18224midst of the prayer a fly had lit on the back of the pew in front of
18225him and tortured his spirit by calmly rubbing its hands together,
18226embracing its head with its arms, and polishing it so vigorously that
18227it seemed to almost part company with the body, and the slender thread
18228of a neck was exposed to view; scraping its wings with its hind legs
18229and smoothing them to its body as if they had been coat-tails; going
18230through its whole toilet as tranquilly as if it knew it was perfectly
18231safe. As indeed it was; for as sorely as Tom's hands itched to grab for
18232it they did not dare--he believed his soul would be instantly destroyed
18233if he did such a thing while the prayer was going on. But with the
18234closing sentence his hand began to curve and steal forward; and the
18235instant the "Amen" was out the fly was a prisoner of war. His aunt
18236detected the act and made him let it go.
18237
18238The minister gave out his text and droned along monotonously through
18239an argument that was so prosy that many a head by and by began to nod
18240--and yet it was an argument that dealt in limitless fire and brimstone
18241and thinned the predestined elect down to a company so small as to be
18242hardly worth the saving. Tom counted the pages of the sermon; after
18243church he always knew how many pages there had been, but he seldom knew
18244anything else about the discourse. However, this time he was really
18245interested for a little while. The minister made a grand and moving
18246picture of the assembling together of the world's hosts at the
18247millennium when the lion and the lamb should lie down together and a
18248little child should lead them. But the pathos, the lesson, the moral of
18249the great spectacle were lost upon the boy; he only thought of the
18250conspicuousness of the principal character before the on-looking
18251nations; his face lit with the thought, and he said to himself that he
18252wished he could be that child, if it was a tame lion.
18253
18254Now he lapsed into suffering again, as the dry argument was resumed.
18255Presently he bethought him of a treasure he had and got it out. It was
18256a large black beetle with formidable jaws--a "pinchbug," he called it.
18257It was in a percussion-cap box. The first thing the beetle did was to
18258take him by the finger. A natural fillip followed, the beetle went
18259floundering into the aisle and lit on its back, and the hurt finger
18260went into the boy's mouth. The beetle lay there working its helpless
18261legs, unable to turn over. Tom eyed it, and longed for it; but it was
18262safe out of his reach. Other people uninterested in the sermon found
18263relief in the beetle, and they eyed it too. Presently a vagrant poodle
18264dog came idling along, sad at heart, lazy with the summer softness and
18265the quiet, weary of captivity, sighing for change. He spied the beetle;
18266the drooping tail lifted and wagged. He surveyed the prize; walked
18267around it; smelt at it from a safe distance; walked around it again;
18268grew bolder, and took a closer smell; then lifted his lip and made a
18269gingerly snatch at it, just missing it; made another, and another;
18270began to enjoy the diversion; subsided to his stomach with the beetle
18271between his paws, and continued his experiments; grew weary at last,
18272and then indifferent and absent-minded. His head nodded, and little by
18273little his chin descended and touched the enemy, who seized it. There
18274was a sharp yelp, a flirt of the poodle's head, and the beetle fell a
18275couple of yards away, and lit on its back once more. The neighboring
18276spectators shook with a gentle inward joy, several faces went behind
18277fans and handkerchiefs, and Tom was entirely happy. The dog looked
18278foolish, and probably felt so; but there was resentment in his heart,
18279too, and a craving for revenge. So he went to the beetle and began a
18280wary attack on it again; jumping at it from every point of a circle,
18281lighting with his fore-paws within an inch of the creature, making even
18282closer snatches at it with his teeth, and jerking his head till his
18283ears flapped again. But he grew tired once more, after a while; tried
18284to amuse himself with a fly but found no relief; followed an ant
18285around, with his nose close to the floor, and quickly wearied of that;
18286yawned, sighed, forgot the beetle entirely, and sat down on it. Then
18287there was a wild yelp of agony and the poodle went sailing up the
18288aisle; the yelps continued, and so did the dog; he crossed the house in
18289front of the altar; he flew down the other aisle; he crossed before the
18290doors; he clamored up the home-stretch; his anguish grew with his
18291progress, till presently he was but a woolly comet moving in its orbit
18292with the gleam and the speed of light. At last the frantic sufferer
18293sheered from its course, and sprang into its master's lap; he flung it
18294out of the window, and the voice of distress quickly thinned away and
18295died in the distance.
18296
18297By this time the whole church was red-faced and suffocating with
18298suppressed laughter, and the sermon had come to a dead standstill. The
18299discourse was resumed presently, but it went lame and halting, all
18300possibility of impressiveness being at an end; for even the gravest
18301sentiments were constantly being received with a smothered burst of
18302unholy mirth, under cover of some remote pew-back, as if the poor
18303parson had said a rarely facetious thing. It was a genuine relief to
18304the whole congregation when the ordeal was over and the benediction
18305pronounced.
18306
18307Tom Sawyer went home quite cheerful, thinking to himself that there
18308was some satisfaction about divine service when there was a bit of
18309variety in it. He had but one marring thought; he was willing that the
18310dog should play with his pinchbug, but he did not think it was upright
18311in him to carry it off.
18312
18313
18314
18315CHAPTER VI
18316
18317MONDAY morning found Tom Sawyer miserable. Monday morning always found
18318him so--because it began another week's slow suffering in school. He
18319generally began that day with wishing he had had no intervening
18320holiday, it made the going into captivity and fetters again so much
18321more odious.
18322
18323Tom lay thinking. Presently it occurred to him that he wished he was
18324sick; then he could stay home from school. Here was a vague
18325possibility. He canvassed his system. No ailment was found, and he
18326investigated again. This time he thought he could detect colicky
18327symptoms, and he began to encourage them with considerable hope. But
18328they soon grew feeble, and presently died wholly away. He reflected
18329further. Suddenly he discovered something. One of his upper front teeth
18330was loose. This was lucky; he was about to begin to groan, as a
18331"starter," as he called it, when it occurred to him that if he came
18332into court with that argument, his aunt would pull it out, and that
18333would hurt. So he thought he would hold the tooth in reserve for the
18334present, and seek further. Nothing offered for some little time, and
18335then he remembered hearing the doctor tell about a certain thing that
18336laid up a patient for two or three weeks and threatened to make him
18337lose a finger. So the boy eagerly drew his sore toe from under the
18338sheet and held it up for inspection. But now he did not know the
18339necessary symptoms. However, it seemed well worth while to chance it,
18340so he fell to groaning with considerable spirit.
18341
18342But Sid slept on unconscious.
18343
18344Tom groaned louder, and fancied that he began to feel pain in the toe.
18345
18346No result from Sid.
18347
18348Tom was panting with his exertions by this time. He took a rest and
18349then swelled himself up and fetched a succession of admirable groans.
18350
18351Sid snored on.
18352
18353Tom was aggravated. He said, "Sid, Sid!" and shook him. This course
18354worked well, and Tom began to groan again. Sid yawned, stretched, then
18355brought himself up on his elbow with a snort, and began to stare at
18356Tom. Tom went on groaning. Sid said:
18357
18358"Tom! Say, Tom!" [No response.] "Here, Tom! TOM! What is the matter,
18359Tom?" And he shook him and looked in his face anxiously.
18360
18361Tom moaned out:
18362
18363"Oh, don't, Sid. Don't joggle me."
18364
18365"Why, what's the matter, Tom? I must call auntie."
18366
18367"No--never mind. It'll be over by and by, maybe. Don't call anybody."
18368
18369"But I must! DON'T groan so, Tom, it's awful. How long you been this
18370way?"
18371
18372"Hours. Ouch! Oh, don't stir so, Sid, you'll kill me."
18373
18374"Tom, why didn't you wake me sooner? Oh, Tom, DON'T! It makes my
18375flesh crawl to hear you. Tom, what is the matter?"
18376
18377"I forgive you everything, Sid. [Groan.] Everything you've ever done
18378to me. When I'm gone--"
18379
18380"Oh, Tom, you ain't dying, are you? Don't, Tom--oh, don't. Maybe--"
18381
18382"I forgive everybody, Sid. [Groan.] Tell 'em so, Sid. And Sid, you
18383give my window-sash and my cat with one eye to that new girl that's
18384come to town, and tell her--"
18385
18386But Sid had snatched his clothes and gone. Tom was suffering in
18387reality, now, so handsomely was his imagination working, and so his
18388groans had gathered quite a genuine tone.
18389
18390Sid flew down-stairs and said:
18391
18392"Oh, Aunt Polly, come! Tom's dying!"
18393
18394"Dying!"
18395
18396"Yes'm. Don't wait--come quick!"
18397
18398"Rubbage! I don't believe it!"
18399
18400But she fled up-stairs, nevertheless, with Sid and Mary at her heels.
18401And her face grew white, too, and her lip trembled. When she reached
18402the bedside she gasped out:
18403
18404"You, Tom! Tom, what's the matter with you?"
18405
18406"Oh, auntie, I'm--"
18407
18408"What's the matter with you--what is the matter with you, child?"
18409
18410"Oh, auntie, my sore toe's mortified!"
18411
18412The old lady sank down into a chair and laughed a little, then cried a
18413little, then did both together. This restored her and she said:
18414
18415"Tom, what a turn you did give me. Now you shut up that nonsense and
18416climb out of this."
18417
18418The groans ceased and the pain vanished from the toe. The boy felt a
18419little foolish, and he said:
18420
18421"Aunt Polly, it SEEMED mortified, and it hurt so I never minded my
18422tooth at all."
18423
18424"Your tooth, indeed! What's the matter with your tooth?"
18425
18426"One of them's loose, and it aches perfectly awful."
18427
18428"There, there, now, don't begin that groaning again. Open your mouth.
18429Well--your tooth IS loose, but you're not going to die about that.
18430Mary, get me a silk thread, and a chunk of fire out of the kitchen."
18431
18432Tom said:
18433
18434"Oh, please, auntie, don't pull it out. It don't hurt any more. I wish
18435I may never stir if it does. Please don't, auntie. I don't want to stay
18436home from school."
18437
18438"Oh, you don't, don't you? So all this row was because you thought
18439you'd get to stay home from school and go a-fishing? Tom, Tom, I love
18440you so, and you seem to try every way you can to break my old heart
18441with your outrageousness." By this time the dental instruments were
18442ready. The old lady made one end of the silk thread fast to Tom's tooth
18443with a loop and tied the other to the bedpost. Then she seized the
18444chunk of fire and suddenly thrust it almost into the boy's face. The
18445tooth hung dangling by the bedpost, now.
18446
18447But all trials bring their compensations. As Tom wended to school
18448after breakfast, he was the envy of every boy he met because the gap in
18449his upper row of teeth enabled him to expectorate in a new and
18450admirable way. He gathered quite a following of lads interested in the
18451exhibition; and one that had cut his finger and had been a centre of
18452fascination and homage up to this time, now found himself suddenly
18453without an adherent, and shorn of his glory. His heart was heavy, and
18454he said with a disdain which he did not feel that it wasn't anything to
18455spit like Tom Sawyer; but another boy said, "Sour grapes!" and he
18456wandered away a dismantled hero.
18457
18458Shortly Tom came upon the juvenile pariah of the village, Huckleberry
18459Finn, son of the town drunkard. Huckleberry was cordially hated and
18460dreaded by all the mothers of the town, because he was idle and lawless
18461and vulgar and bad--and because all their children admired him so, and
18462delighted in his forbidden society, and wished they dared to be like
18463him. Tom was like the rest of the respectable boys, in that he envied
18464Huckleberry his gaudy outcast condition, and was under strict orders
18465not to play with him. So he played with him every time he got a chance.
18466Huckleberry was always dressed in the cast-off clothes of full-grown
18467men, and they were in perennial bloom and fluttering with rags. His hat
18468was a vast ruin with a wide crescent lopped out of its brim; his coat,
18469when he wore one, hung nearly to his heels and had the rearward buttons
18470far down the back; but one suspender supported his trousers; the seat
18471of the trousers bagged low and contained nothing, the fringed legs
18472dragged in the dirt when not rolled up.
18473
18474Huckleberry came and went, at his own free will. He slept on doorsteps
18475in fine weather and in empty hogsheads in wet; he did not have to go to
18476school or to church, or call any being master or obey anybody; he could
18477go fishing or swimming when and where he chose, and stay as long as it
18478suited him; nobody forbade him to fight; he could sit up as late as he
18479pleased; he was always the first boy that went barefoot in the spring
18480and the last to resume leather in the fall; he never had to wash, nor
18481put on clean clothes; he could swear wonderfully. In a word, everything
18482that goes to make life precious that boy had. So thought every
18483harassed, hampered, respectable boy in St. Petersburg.
18484
18485Tom hailed the romantic outcast:
18486
18487"Hello, Huckleberry!"
18488
18489"Hello yourself, and see how you like it."
18490
18491"What's that you got?"
18492
18493"Dead cat."
18494
18495"Lemme see him, Huck. My, he's pretty stiff. Where'd you get him?"
18496
18497"Bought him off'n a boy."
18498
18499"What did you give?"
18500
18501"I give a blue ticket and a bladder that I got at the slaughter-house."
18502
18503"Where'd you get the blue ticket?"
18504
18505"Bought it off'n Ben Rogers two weeks ago for a hoop-stick."
18506
18507"Say--what is dead cats good for, Huck?"
18508
18509"Good for? Cure warts with."
18510
18511"No! Is that so? I know something that's better."
18512
18513"I bet you don't. What is it?"
18514
18515"Why, spunk-water."
18516
18517"Spunk-water! I wouldn't give a dern for spunk-water."
18518
18519"You wouldn't, wouldn't you? D'you ever try it?"
18520
18521"No, I hain't. But Bob Tanner did."
18522
18523"Who told you so!"
18524
18525"Why, he told Jeff Thatcher, and Jeff told Johnny Baker, and Johnny
18526told Jim Hollis, and Jim told Ben Rogers, and Ben told a nigger, and
18527the nigger told me. There now!"
18528
18529"Well, what of it? They'll all lie. Leastways all but the nigger. I
18530don't know HIM. But I never see a nigger that WOULDN'T lie. Shucks! Now
18531you tell me how Bob Tanner done it, Huck."
18532
18533"Why, he took and dipped his hand in a rotten stump where the
18534rain-water was."
18535
18536"In the daytime?"
18537
18538"Certainly."
18539
18540"With his face to the stump?"
18541
18542"Yes. Least I reckon so."
18543
18544"Did he say anything?"
18545
18546"I don't reckon he did. I don't know."
18547
18548"Aha! Talk about trying to cure warts with spunk-water such a blame
18549fool way as that! Why, that ain't a-going to do any good. You got to go
18550all by yourself, to the middle of the woods, where you know there's a
18551spunk-water stump, and just as it's midnight you back up against the
18552stump and jam your hand in and say:
18553
18554  'Barley-corn, barley-corn, injun-meal shorts,
18555   Spunk-water, spunk-water, swaller these warts,'
18556
18557and then walk away quick, eleven steps, with your eyes shut, and then
18558turn around three times and walk home without speaking to anybody.
18559Because if you speak the charm's busted."
18560
18561"Well, that sounds like a good way; but that ain't the way Bob Tanner
18562done."
18563
18564"No, sir, you can bet he didn't, becuz he's the wartiest boy in this
18565town; and he wouldn't have a wart on him if he'd knowed how to work
18566spunk-water. I've took off thousands of warts off of my hands that way,
18567Huck. I play with frogs so much that I've always got considerable many
18568warts. Sometimes I take 'em off with a bean."
18569
18570"Yes, bean's good. I've done that."
18571
18572"Have you? What's your way?"
18573
18574"You take and split the bean, and cut the wart so as to get some
18575blood, and then you put the blood on one piece of the bean and take and
18576dig a hole and bury it 'bout midnight at the crossroads in the dark of
18577the moon, and then you burn up the rest of the bean. You see that piece
18578that's got the blood on it will keep drawing and drawing, trying to
18579fetch the other piece to it, and so that helps the blood to draw the
18580wart, and pretty soon off she comes."
18581
18582"Yes, that's it, Huck--that's it; though when you're burying it if you
18583say 'Down bean; off wart; come no more to bother me!' it's better.
18584That's the way Joe Harper does, and he's been nearly to Coonville and
18585most everywheres. But say--how do you cure 'em with dead cats?"
18586
18587"Why, you take your cat and go and get in the graveyard 'long about
18588midnight when somebody that was wicked has been buried; and when it's
18589midnight a devil will come, or maybe two or three, but you can't see
18590'em, you can only hear something like the wind, or maybe hear 'em talk;
18591and when they're taking that feller away, you heave your cat after 'em
18592and say, 'Devil follow corpse, cat follow devil, warts follow cat, I'm
18593done with ye!' That'll fetch ANY wart."
18594
18595"Sounds right. D'you ever try it, Huck?"
18596
18597"No, but old Mother Hopkins told me."
18598
18599"Well, I reckon it's so, then. Becuz they say she's a witch."
18600
18601"Say! Why, Tom, I KNOW she is. She witched pap. Pap says so his own
18602self. He come along one day, and he see she was a-witching him, so he
18603took up a rock, and if she hadn't dodged, he'd a got her. Well, that
18604very night he rolled off'n a shed wher' he was a layin drunk, and broke
18605his arm."
18606
18607"Why, that's awful. How did he know she was a-witching him?"
18608
18609"Lord, pap can tell, easy. Pap says when they keep looking at you
18610right stiddy, they're a-witching you. Specially if they mumble. Becuz
18611when they mumble they're saying the Lord's Prayer backards."
18612
18613"Say, Hucky, when you going to try the cat?"
18614
18615"To-night. I reckon they'll come after old Hoss Williams to-night."
18616
18617"But they buried him Saturday. Didn't they get him Saturday night?"
18618
18619"Why, how you talk! How could their charms work till midnight?--and
18620THEN it's Sunday. Devils don't slosh around much of a Sunday, I don't
18621reckon."
18622
18623"I never thought of that. That's so. Lemme go with you?"
18624
18625"Of course--if you ain't afeard."
18626
18627"Afeard! 'Tain't likely. Will you meow?"
18628
18629"Yes--and you meow back, if you get a chance. Last time, you kep' me
18630a-meowing around till old Hays went to throwing rocks at me and says
18631'Dern that cat!' and so I hove a brick through his window--but don't
18632you tell."
18633
18634"I won't. I couldn't meow that night, becuz auntie was watching me,
18635but I'll meow this time. Say--what's that?"
18636
18637"Nothing but a tick."
18638
18639"Where'd you get him?"
18640
18641"Out in the woods."
18642
18643"What'll you take for him?"
18644
18645"I don't know. I don't want to sell him."
18646
18647"All right. It's a mighty small tick, anyway."
18648
18649"Oh, anybody can run a tick down that don't belong to them. I'm
18650satisfied with it. It's a good enough tick for me."
18651
18652"Sho, there's ticks a plenty. I could have a thousand of 'em if I
18653wanted to."
18654
18655"Well, why don't you? Becuz you know mighty well you can't. This is a
18656pretty early tick, I reckon. It's the first one I've seen this year."
18657
18658"Say, Huck--I'll give you my tooth for him."
18659
18660"Less see it."
18661
18662Tom got out a bit of paper and carefully unrolled it. Huckleberry
18663viewed it wistfully. The temptation was very strong. At last he said:
18664
18665"Is it genuwyne?"
18666
18667Tom lifted his lip and showed the vacancy.
18668
18669"Well, all right," said Huckleberry, "it's a trade."
18670
18671Tom enclosed the tick in the percussion-cap box that had lately been
18672the pinchbug's prison, and the boys separated, each feeling wealthier
18673than before.
18674
18675When Tom reached the little isolated frame schoolhouse, he strode in
18676briskly, with the manner of one who had come with all honest speed.
18677He hung his hat on a peg and flung himself into his seat with
18678business-like alacrity. The master, throned on high in his great
18679splint-bottom arm-chair, was dozing, lulled by the drowsy hum of study.
18680The interruption roused him.
18681
18682"Thomas Sawyer!"
18683
18684Tom knew that when his name was pronounced in full, it meant trouble.
18685
18686"Sir!"
18687
18688"Come up here. Now, sir, why are you late again, as usual?"
18689
18690Tom was about to take refuge in a lie, when he saw two long tails of
18691yellow hair hanging down a back that he recognized by the electric
18692sympathy of love; and by that form was THE ONLY VACANT PLACE on the
18693girls' side of the schoolhouse. He instantly said:
18694
18695"I STOPPED TO TALK WITH HUCKLEBERRY FINN!"
18696
18697The master's pulse stood still, and he stared helplessly. The buzz of
18698study ceased. The pupils wondered if this foolhardy boy had lost his
18699mind. The master said:
18700
18701"You--you did what?"
18702
18703"Stopped to talk with Huckleberry Finn."
18704
18705There was no mistaking the words.
18706
18707"Thomas Sawyer, this is the most astounding confession I have ever
18708listened to. No mere ferule will answer for this offence. Take off your
18709jacket."
18710
18711The master's arm performed until it was tired and the stock of
18712switches notably diminished. Then the order followed:
18713
18714"Now, sir, go and sit with the girls! And let this be a warning to you."
18715
18716The titter that rippled around the room appeared to abash the boy, but
18717in reality that result was caused rather more by his worshipful awe of
18718his unknown idol and the dread pleasure that lay in his high good
18719fortune. He sat down upon the end of the pine bench and the girl
18720hitched herself away from him with a toss of her head. Nudges and winks
18721and whispers traversed the room, but Tom sat still, with his arms upon
18722the long, low desk before him, and seemed to study his book.
18723
18724By and by attention ceased from him, and the accustomed school murmur
18725rose upon the dull air once more. Presently the boy began to steal
18726furtive glances at the girl. She observed it, "made a mouth" at him and
18727gave him the back of her head for the space of a minute. When she
18728cautiously faced around again, a peach lay before her. She thrust it
18729away. Tom gently put it back. She thrust it away again, but with less
18730animosity. Tom patiently returned it to its place. Then she let it
18731remain. Tom scrawled on his slate, "Please take it--I got more." The
18732girl glanced at the words, but made no sign. Now the boy began to draw
18733something on the slate, hiding his work with his left hand. For a time
18734the girl refused to notice; but her human curiosity presently began to
18735manifest itself by hardly perceptible signs. The boy worked on,
18736apparently unconscious. The girl made a sort of noncommittal attempt to
18737see, but the boy did not betray that he was aware of it. At last she
18738gave in and hesitatingly whispered:
18739
18740"Let me see it."
18741
18742Tom partly uncovered a dismal caricature of a house with two gable
18743ends to it and a corkscrew of smoke issuing from the chimney. Then the
18744girl's interest began to fasten itself upon the work and she forgot
18745everything else. When it was finished, she gazed a moment, then
18746whispered:
18747
18748"It's nice--make a man."
18749
18750The artist erected a man in the front yard, that resembled a derrick.
18751He could have stepped over the house; but the girl was not
18752hypercritical; she was satisfied with the monster, and whispered:
18753
18754"It's a beautiful man--now make me coming along."
18755
18756Tom drew an hour-glass with a full moon and straw limbs to it and
18757armed the spreading fingers with a portentous fan. The girl said:
18758
18759"It's ever so nice--I wish I could draw."
18760
18761"It's easy," whispered Tom, "I'll learn you."
18762
18763"Oh, will you? When?"
18764
18765"At noon. Do you go home to dinner?"
18766
18767"I'll stay if you will."
18768
18769"Good--that's a whack. What's your name?"
18770
18771"Becky Thatcher. What's yours? Oh, I know. It's Thomas Sawyer."
18772
18773"That's the name they lick me by. I'm Tom when I'm good. You call me
18774Tom, will you?"
18775
18776"Yes."
18777
18778Now Tom began to scrawl something on the slate, hiding the words from
18779the girl. But she was not backward this time. She begged to see. Tom
18780said:
18781
18782"Oh, it ain't anything."
18783
18784"Yes it is."
18785
18786"No it ain't. You don't want to see."
18787
18788"Yes I do, indeed I do. Please let me."
18789
18790"You'll tell."
18791
18792"No I won't--deed and deed and double deed won't."
18793
18794"You won't tell anybody at all? Ever, as long as you live?"
18795
18796"No, I won't ever tell ANYbody. Now let me."
18797
18798"Oh, YOU don't want to see!"
18799
18800"Now that you treat me so, I WILL see." And she put her small hand
18801upon his and a little scuffle ensued, Tom pretending to resist in
18802earnest but letting his hand slip by degrees till these words were
18803revealed: "I LOVE YOU."
18804
18805"Oh, you bad thing!" And she hit his hand a smart rap, but reddened
18806and looked pleased, nevertheless.
18807
18808Just at this juncture the boy felt a slow, fateful grip closing on his
18809ear, and a steady lifting impulse. In that wise he was borne across the
18810house and deposited in his own seat, under a peppering fire of giggles
18811from the whole school. Then the master stood over him during a few
18812awful moments, and finally moved away to his throne without saying a
18813word. But although Tom's ear tingled, his heart was jubilant.
18814
18815As the school quieted down Tom made an honest effort to study, but the
18816turmoil within him was too great. In turn he took his place in the
18817reading class and made a botch of it; then in the geography class and
18818turned lakes into mountains, mountains into rivers, and rivers into
18819continents, till chaos was come again; then in the spelling class, and
18820got "turned down," by a succession of mere baby words, till he brought
18821up at the foot and yielded up the pewter medal which he had worn with
18822ostentation for months.
18823
18824
18825
18826CHAPTER VII
18827
18828THE harder Tom tried to fasten his mind on his book, the more his
18829ideas wandered. So at last, with a sigh and a yawn, he gave it up. It
18830seemed to him that the noon recess would never come. The air was
18831utterly dead. There was not a breath stirring. It was the sleepiest of
18832sleepy days. The drowsing murmur of the five and twenty studying
18833scholars soothed the soul like the spell that is in the murmur of bees.
18834Away off in the flaming sunshine, Cardiff Hill lifted its soft green
18835sides through a shimmering veil of heat, tinted with the purple of
18836distance; a few birds floated on lazy wing high in the air; no other
18837living thing was visible but some cows, and they were asleep. Tom's
18838heart ached to be free, or else to have something of interest to do to
18839pass the dreary time. His hand wandered into his pocket and his face
18840lit up with a glow of gratitude that was prayer, though he did not know
18841it. Then furtively the percussion-cap box came out. He released the
18842tick and put him on the long flat desk. The creature probably glowed
18843with a gratitude that amounted to prayer, too, at this moment, but it
18844was premature: for when he started thankfully to travel off, Tom turned
18845him aside with a pin and made him take a new direction.
18846
18847Tom's bosom friend sat next him, suffering just as Tom had been, and
18848now he was deeply and gratefully interested in this entertainment in an
18849instant. This bosom friend was Joe Harper. The two boys were sworn
18850friends all the week, and embattled enemies on Saturdays. Joe took a
18851pin out of his lapel and began to assist in exercising the prisoner.
18852The sport grew in interest momently. Soon Tom said that they were
18853interfering with each other, and neither getting the fullest benefit of
18854the tick. So he put Joe's slate on the desk and drew a line down the
18855middle of it from top to bottom.
18856
18857"Now," said he, "as long as he is on your side you can stir him up and
18858I'll let him alone; but if you let him get away and get on my side,
18859you're to leave him alone as long as I can keep him from crossing over."
18860
18861"All right, go ahead; start him up."
18862
18863The tick escaped from Tom, presently, and crossed the equator. Joe
18864harassed him awhile, and then he got away and crossed back again. This
18865change of base occurred often. While one boy was worrying the tick with
18866absorbing interest, the other would look on with interest as strong,
18867the two heads bowed together over the slate, and the two souls dead to
18868all things else. At last luck seemed to settle and abide with Joe. The
18869tick tried this, that, and the other course, and got as excited and as
18870anxious as the boys themselves, but time and again just as he would
18871have victory in his very grasp, so to speak, and Tom's fingers would be
18872twitching to begin, Joe's pin would deftly head him off, and keep
18873possession. At last Tom could stand it no longer. The temptation was
18874too strong. So he reached out and lent a hand with his pin. Joe was
18875angry in a moment. Said he:
18876
18877"Tom, you let him alone."
18878
18879"I only just want to stir him up a little, Joe."
18880
18881"No, sir, it ain't fair; you just let him alone."
18882
18883"Blame it, I ain't going to stir him much."
18884
18885"Let him alone, I tell you."
18886
18887"I won't!"
18888
18889"You shall--he's on my side of the line."
18890
18891"Look here, Joe Harper, whose is that tick?"
18892
18893"I don't care whose tick he is--he's on my side of the line, and you
18894sha'n't touch him."
18895
18896"Well, I'll just bet I will, though. He's my tick and I'll do what I
18897blame please with him, or die!"
18898
18899A tremendous whack came down on Tom's shoulders, and its duplicate on
18900Joe's; and for the space of two minutes the dust continued to fly from
18901the two jackets and the whole school to enjoy it. The boys had been too
18902absorbed to notice the hush that had stolen upon the school awhile
18903before when the master came tiptoeing down the room and stood over
18904them. He had contemplated a good part of the performance before he
18905contributed his bit of variety to it.
18906
18907When school broke up at noon, Tom flew to Becky Thatcher, and
18908whispered in her ear:
18909
18910"Put on your bonnet and let on you're going home; and when you get to
18911the corner, give the rest of 'em the slip, and turn down through the
18912lane and come back. I'll go the other way and come it over 'em the same
18913way."
18914
18915So the one went off with one group of scholars, and the other with
18916another. In a little while the two met at the bottom of the lane, and
18917when they reached the school they had it all to themselves. Then they
18918sat together, with a slate before them, and Tom gave Becky the pencil
18919and held her hand in his, guiding it, and so created another surprising
18920house. When the interest in art began to wane, the two fell to talking.
18921Tom was swimming in bliss. He said:
18922
18923"Do you love rats?"
18924
18925"No! I hate them!"
18926
18927"Well, I do, too--LIVE ones. But I mean dead ones, to swing round your
18928head with a string."
18929
18930"No, I don't care for rats much, anyway. What I like is chewing-gum."
18931
18932"Oh, I should say so! I wish I had some now."
18933
18934"Do you? I've got some. I'll let you chew it awhile, but you must give
18935it back to me."
18936
18937That was agreeable, so they chewed it turn about, and dangled their
18938legs against the bench in excess of contentment.
18939
18940"Was you ever at a circus?" said Tom.
18941
18942"Yes, and my pa's going to take me again some time, if I'm good."
18943
18944"I been to the circus three or four times--lots of times. Church ain't
18945shucks to a circus. There's things going on at a circus all the time.
18946I'm going to be a clown in a circus when I grow up."
18947
18948"Oh, are you! That will be nice. They're so lovely, all spotted up."
18949
18950"Yes, that's so. And they get slathers of money--most a dollar a day,
18951Ben Rogers says. Say, Becky, was you ever engaged?"
18952
18953"What's that?"
18954
18955"Why, engaged to be married."
18956
18957"No."
18958
18959"Would you like to?"
18960
18961"I reckon so. I don't know. What is it like?"
18962
18963"Like? Why it ain't like anything. You only just tell a boy you won't
18964ever have anybody but him, ever ever ever, and then you kiss and that's
18965all. Anybody can do it."
18966
18967"Kiss? What do you kiss for?"
18968
18969"Why, that, you know, is to--well, they always do that."
18970
18971"Everybody?"
18972
18973"Why, yes, everybody that's in love with each other. Do you remember
18974what I wrote on the slate?"
18975
18976"Ye--yes."
18977
18978"What was it?"
18979
18980"I sha'n't tell you."
18981
18982"Shall I tell YOU?"
18983
18984"Ye--yes--but some other time."
18985
18986"No, now."
18987
18988"No, not now--to-morrow."
18989
18990"Oh, no, NOW. Please, Becky--I'll whisper it, I'll whisper it ever so
18991easy."
18992
18993Becky hesitating, Tom took silence for consent, and passed his arm
18994about her waist and whispered the tale ever so softly, with his mouth
18995close to her ear. And then he added:
18996
18997"Now you whisper it to me--just the same."
18998
18999She resisted, for a while, and then said:
19000
19001"You turn your face away so you can't see, and then I will. But you
19002mustn't ever tell anybody--WILL you, Tom? Now you won't, WILL you?"
19003
19004"No, indeed, indeed I won't. Now, Becky."
19005
19006He turned his face away. She bent timidly around till her breath
19007stirred his curls and whispered, "I--love--you!"
19008
19009Then she sprang away and ran around and around the desks and benches,
19010with Tom after her, and took refuge in a corner at last, with her
19011little white apron to her face. Tom clasped her about her neck and
19012pleaded:
19013
19014"Now, Becky, it's all done--all over but the kiss. Don't you be afraid
19015of that--it ain't anything at all. Please, Becky." And he tugged at her
19016apron and the hands.
19017
19018By and by she gave up, and let her hands drop; her face, all glowing
19019with the struggle, came up and submitted. Tom kissed the red lips and
19020said:
19021
19022"Now it's all done, Becky. And always after this, you know, you ain't
19023ever to love anybody but me, and you ain't ever to marry anybody but
19024me, ever never and forever. Will you?"
19025
19026"No, I'll never love anybody but you, Tom, and I'll never marry
19027anybody but you--and you ain't to ever marry anybody but me, either."
19028
19029"Certainly. Of course. That's PART of it. And always coming to school
19030or when we're going home, you're to walk with me, when there ain't
19031anybody looking--and you choose me and I choose you at parties, because
19032that's the way you do when you're engaged."
19033
19034"It's so nice. I never heard of it before."
19035
19036"Oh, it's ever so gay! Why, me and Amy Lawrence--"
19037
19038The big eyes told Tom his blunder and he stopped, confused.
19039
19040"Oh, Tom! Then I ain't the first you've ever been engaged to!"
19041
19042The child began to cry. Tom said:
19043
19044"Oh, don't cry, Becky, I don't care for her any more."
19045
19046"Yes, you do, Tom--you know you do."
19047
19048Tom tried to put his arm about her neck, but she pushed him away and
19049turned her face to the wall, and went on crying. Tom tried again, with
19050soothing words in his mouth, and was repulsed again. Then his pride was
19051up, and he strode away and went outside. He stood about, restless and
19052uneasy, for a while, glancing at the door, every now and then, hoping
19053she would repent and come to find him. But she did not. Then he began
19054to feel badly and fear that he was in the wrong. It was a hard struggle
19055with him to make new advances, now, but he nerved himself to it and
19056entered. She was still standing back there in the corner, sobbing, with
19057her face to the wall. Tom's heart smote him. He went to her and stood a
19058moment, not knowing exactly how to proceed. Then he said hesitatingly:
19059
19060"Becky, I--I don't care for anybody but you."
19061
19062No reply--but sobs.
19063
19064"Becky"--pleadingly. "Becky, won't you say something?"
19065
19066More sobs.
19067
19068Tom got out his chiefest jewel, a brass knob from the top of an
19069andiron, and passed it around her so that she could see it, and said:
19070
19071"Please, Becky, won't you take it?"
19072
19073She struck it to the floor. Then Tom marched out of the house and over
19074the hills and far away, to return to school no more that day. Presently
19075Becky began to suspect. She ran to the door; he was not in sight; she
19076flew around to the play-yard; he was not there. Then she called:
19077
19078"Tom! Come back, Tom!"
19079
19080She listened intently, but there was no answer. She had no companions
19081but silence and loneliness. So she sat down to cry again and upbraid
19082herself; and by this time the scholars began to gather again, and she
19083had to hide her griefs and still her broken heart and take up the cross
19084of a long, dreary, aching afternoon, with none among the strangers
19085about her to exchange sorrows with.
19086
19087
19088
19089CHAPTER VIII
19090
19091TOM dodged hither and thither through lanes until he was well out of
19092the track of returning scholars, and then fell into a moody jog. He
19093crossed a small "branch" two or three times, because of a prevailing
19094juvenile superstition that to cross water baffled pursuit. Half an hour
19095later he was disappearing behind the Douglas mansion on the summit of
19096Cardiff Hill, and the schoolhouse was hardly distinguishable away off
19097in the valley behind him. He entered a dense wood, picked his pathless
19098way to the centre of it, and sat down on a mossy spot under a spreading
19099oak. There was not even a zephyr stirring; the dead noonday heat had
19100even stilled the songs of the birds; nature lay in a trance that was
19101broken by no sound but the occasional far-off hammering of a
19102woodpecker, and this seemed to render the pervading silence and sense
19103of loneliness the more profound. The boy's soul was steeped in
19104melancholy; his feelings were in happy accord with his surroundings. He
19105sat long with his elbows on his knees and his chin in his hands,
19106meditating. It seemed to him that life was but a trouble, at best, and
19107he more than half envied Jimmy Hodges, so lately released; it must be
19108very peaceful, he thought, to lie and slumber and dream forever and
19109ever, with the wind whispering through the trees and caressing the
19110grass and the flowers over the grave, and nothing to bother and grieve
19111about, ever any more. If he only had a clean Sunday-school record he
19112could be willing to go, and be done with it all. Now as to this girl.
19113What had he done? Nothing. He had meant the best in the world, and been
19114treated like a dog--like a very dog. She would be sorry some day--maybe
19115when it was too late. Ah, if he could only die TEMPORARILY!
19116
19117But the elastic heart of youth cannot be compressed into one
19118constrained shape long at a time. Tom presently began to drift
19119insensibly back into the concerns of this life again. What if he turned
19120his back, now, and disappeared mysteriously? What if he went away--ever
19121so far away, into unknown countries beyond the seas--and never came
19122back any more! How would she feel then! The idea of being a clown
19123recurred to him now, only to fill him with disgust. For frivolity and
19124jokes and spotted tights were an offense, when they intruded themselves
19125upon a spirit that was exalted into the vague august realm of the
19126romantic. No, he would be a soldier, and return after long years, all
19127war-worn and illustrious. No--better still, he would join the Indians,
19128and hunt buffaloes and go on the warpath in the mountain ranges and the
19129trackless great plains of the Far West, and away in the future come
19130back a great chief, bristling with feathers, hideous with paint, and
19131prance into Sunday-school, some drowsy summer morning, with a
19132bloodcurdling war-whoop, and sear the eyeballs of all his companions
19133with unappeasable envy. But no, there was something gaudier even than
19134this. He would be a pirate! That was it! NOW his future lay plain
19135before him, and glowing with unimaginable splendor. How his name would
19136fill the world, and make people shudder! How gloriously he would go
19137plowing the dancing seas, in his long, low, black-hulled racer, the
19138Spirit of the Storm, with his grisly flag flying at the fore! And at
19139the zenith of his fame, how he would suddenly appear at the old village
19140and stalk into church, brown and weather-beaten, in his black velvet
19141doublet and trunks, his great jack-boots, his crimson sash, his belt
19142bristling with horse-pistols, his crime-rusted cutlass at his side, his
19143slouch hat with waving plumes, his black flag unfurled, with the skull
19144and crossbones on it, and hear with swelling ecstasy the whisperings,
19145"It's Tom Sawyer the Pirate!--the Black Avenger of the Spanish Main!"
19146
19147Yes, it was settled; his career was determined. He would run away from
19148home and enter upon it. He would start the very next morning. Therefore
19149he must now begin to get ready. He would collect his resources
19150together. He went to a rotten log near at hand and began to dig under
19151one end of it with his Barlow knife. He soon struck wood that sounded
19152hollow. He put his hand there and uttered this incantation impressively:
19153
19154"What hasn't come here, come! What's here, stay here!"
19155
19156Then he scraped away the dirt, and exposed a pine shingle. He took it
19157up and disclosed a shapely little treasure-house whose bottom and sides
19158were of shingles. In it lay a marble. Tom's astonishment was boundless!
19159He scratched his head with a perplexed air, and said:
19160
19161"Well, that beats anything!"
19162
19163Then he tossed the marble away pettishly, and stood cogitating. The
19164truth was, that a superstition of his had failed, here, which he and
19165all his comrades had always looked upon as infallible. If you buried a
19166marble with certain necessary incantations, and left it alone a
19167fortnight, and then opened the place with the incantation he had just
19168used, you would find that all the marbles you had ever lost had
19169gathered themselves together there, meantime, no matter how widely they
19170had been separated. But now, this thing had actually and unquestionably
19171failed. Tom's whole structure of faith was shaken to its foundations.
19172He had many a time heard of this thing succeeding but never of its
19173failing before. It did not occur to him that he had tried it several
19174times before, himself, but could never find the hiding-places
19175afterward. He puzzled over the matter some time, and finally decided
19176that some witch had interfered and broken the charm. He thought he
19177would satisfy himself on that point; so he searched around till he
19178found a small sandy spot with a little funnel-shaped depression in it.
19179He laid himself down and put his mouth close to this depression and
19180called--
19181
19182"Doodle-bug, doodle-bug, tell me what I want to know! Doodle-bug,
19183doodle-bug, tell me what I want to know!"
19184
19185The sand began to work, and presently a small black bug appeared for a
19186second and then darted under again in a fright.
19187
19188"He dasn't tell! So it WAS a witch that done it. I just knowed it."
19189
19190He well knew the futility of trying to contend against witches, so he
19191gave up discouraged. But it occurred to him that he might as well have
19192the marble he had just thrown away, and therefore he went and made a
19193patient search for it. But he could not find it. Now he went back to
19194his treasure-house and carefully placed himself just as he had been
19195standing when he tossed the marble away; then he took another marble
19196from his pocket and tossed it in the same way, saying:
19197
19198"Brother, go find your brother!"
19199
19200He watched where it stopped, and went there and looked. But it must
19201have fallen short or gone too far; so he tried twice more. The last
19202repetition was successful. The two marbles lay within a foot of each
19203other.
19204
19205Just here the blast of a toy tin trumpet came faintly down the green
19206aisles of the forest. Tom flung off his jacket and trousers, turned a
19207suspender into a belt, raked away some brush behind the rotten log,
19208disclosing a rude bow and arrow, a lath sword and a tin trumpet, and in
19209a moment had seized these things and bounded away, barelegged, with
19210fluttering shirt. He presently halted under a great elm, blew an
19211answering blast, and then began to tiptoe and look warily out, this way
19212and that. He said cautiously--to an imaginary company:
19213
19214"Hold, my merry men! Keep hid till I blow."
19215
19216Now appeared Joe Harper, as airily clad and elaborately armed as Tom.
19217Tom called:
19218
19219"Hold! Who comes here into Sherwood Forest without my pass?"
19220
19221"Guy of Guisborne wants no man's pass. Who art thou that--that--"
19222
19223"Dares to hold such language," said Tom, prompting--for they talked
19224"by the book," from memory.
19225
19226"Who art thou that dares to hold such language?"
19227
19228"I, indeed! I am Robin Hood, as thy caitiff carcase soon shall know."
19229
19230"Then art thou indeed that famous outlaw? Right gladly will I dispute
19231with thee the passes of the merry wood. Have at thee!"
19232
19233They took their lath swords, dumped their other traps on the ground,
19234struck a fencing attitude, foot to foot, and began a grave, careful
19235combat, "two up and two down." Presently Tom said:
19236
19237"Now, if you've got the hang, go it lively!"
19238
19239So they "went it lively," panting and perspiring with the work. By and
19240by Tom shouted:
19241
19242"Fall! fall! Why don't you fall?"
19243
19244"I sha'n't! Why don't you fall yourself? You're getting the worst of
19245it."
19246
19247"Why, that ain't anything. I can't fall; that ain't the way it is in
19248the book. The book says, 'Then with one back-handed stroke he slew poor
19249Guy of Guisborne.' You're to turn around and let me hit you in the
19250back."
19251
19252There was no getting around the authorities, so Joe turned, received
19253the whack and fell.
19254
19255"Now," said Joe, getting up, "you got to let me kill YOU. That's fair."
19256
19257"Why, I can't do that, it ain't in the book."
19258
19259"Well, it's blamed mean--that's all."
19260
19261"Well, say, Joe, you can be Friar Tuck or Much the miller's son, and
19262lam me with a quarter-staff; or I'll be the Sheriff of Nottingham and
19263you be Robin Hood a little while and kill me."
19264
19265This was satisfactory, and so these adventures were carried out. Then
19266Tom became Robin Hood again, and was allowed by the treacherous nun to
19267bleed his strength away through his neglected wound. And at last Joe,
19268representing a whole tribe of weeping outlaws, dragged him sadly forth,
19269gave his bow into his feeble hands, and Tom said, "Where this arrow
19270falls, there bury poor Robin Hood under the greenwood tree." Then he
19271shot the arrow and fell back and would have died, but he lit on a
19272nettle and sprang up too gaily for a corpse.
19273
19274The boys dressed themselves, hid their accoutrements, and went off
19275grieving that there were no outlaws any more, and wondering what modern
19276civilization could claim to have done to compensate for their loss.
19277They said they would rather be outlaws a year in Sherwood Forest than
19278President of the United States forever.
19279
19280
19281
19282CHAPTER IX
19283
19284AT half-past nine, that night, Tom and Sid were sent to bed, as usual.
19285They said their prayers, and Sid was soon asleep. Tom lay awake and
19286waited, in restless impatience. When it seemed to him that it must be
19287nearly daylight, he heard the clock strike ten! This was despair. He
19288would have tossed and fidgeted, as his nerves demanded, but he was
19289afraid he might wake Sid. So he lay still, and stared up into the dark.
19290Everything was dismally still. By and by, out of the stillness, little,
19291scarcely perceptible noises began to emphasize themselves. The ticking
19292of the clock began to bring itself into notice. Old beams began to
19293crack mysteriously. The stairs creaked faintly. Evidently spirits were
19294abroad. A measured, muffled snore issued from Aunt Polly's chamber. And
19295now the tiresome chirping of a cricket that no human ingenuity could
19296locate, began. Next the ghastly ticking of a deathwatch in the wall at
19297the bed's head made Tom shudder--it meant that somebody's days were
19298numbered. Then the howl of a far-off dog rose on the night air, and was
19299answered by a fainter howl from a remoter distance. Tom was in an
19300agony. At last he was satisfied that time had ceased and eternity
19301begun; he began to doze, in spite of himself; the clock chimed eleven,
19302but he did not hear it. And then there came, mingling with his
19303half-formed dreams, a most melancholy caterwauling. The raising of a
19304neighboring window disturbed him. A cry of "Scat! you devil!" and the
19305crash of an empty bottle against the back of his aunt's woodshed
19306brought him wide awake, and a single minute later he was dressed and
19307out of the window and creeping along the roof of the "ell" on all
19308fours. He "meow'd" with caution once or twice, as he went; then jumped
19309to the roof of the woodshed and thence to the ground. Huckleberry Finn
19310was there, with his dead cat. The boys moved off and disappeared in the
19311gloom. At the end of half an hour they were wading through the tall
19312grass of the graveyard.
19313
19314It was a graveyard of the old-fashioned Western kind. It was on a
19315hill, about a mile and a half from the village. It had a crazy board
19316fence around it, which leaned inward in places, and outward the rest of
19317the time, but stood upright nowhere. Grass and weeds grew rank over the
19318whole cemetery. All the old graves were sunken in, there was not a
19319tombstone on the place; round-topped, worm-eaten boards staggered over
19320the graves, leaning for support and finding none. "Sacred to the memory
19321of" So-and-So had been painted on them once, but it could no longer
19322have been read, on the most of them, now, even if there had been light.
19323
19324A faint wind moaned through the trees, and Tom feared it might be the
19325spirits of the dead, complaining at being disturbed. The boys talked
19326little, and only under their breath, for the time and the place and the
19327pervading solemnity and silence oppressed their spirits. They found the
19328sharp new heap they were seeking, and ensconced themselves within the
19329protection of three great elms that grew in a bunch within a few feet
19330of the grave.
19331
19332Then they waited in silence for what seemed a long time. The hooting
19333of a distant owl was all the sound that troubled the dead stillness.
19334Tom's reflections grew oppressive. He must force some talk. So he said
19335in a whisper:
19336
19337"Hucky, do you believe the dead people like it for us to be here?"
19338
19339Huckleberry whispered:
19340
19341"I wisht I knowed. It's awful solemn like, AIN'T it?"
19342
19343"I bet it is."
19344
19345There was a considerable pause, while the boys canvassed this matter
19346inwardly. Then Tom whispered:
19347
19348"Say, Hucky--do you reckon Hoss Williams hears us talking?"
19349
19350"O' course he does. Least his sperrit does."
19351
19352Tom, after a pause:
19353
19354"I wish I'd said Mister Williams. But I never meant any harm.
19355Everybody calls him Hoss."
19356
19357"A body can't be too partic'lar how they talk 'bout these-yer dead
19358people, Tom."
19359
19360This was a damper, and conversation died again.
19361
19362Presently Tom seized his comrade's arm and said:
19363
19364"Sh!"
19365
19366"What is it, Tom?" And the two clung together with beating hearts.
19367
19368"Sh! There 'tis again! Didn't you hear it?"
19369
19370"I--"
19371
19372"There! Now you hear it."
19373
19374"Lord, Tom, they're coming! They're coming, sure. What'll we do?"
19375
19376"I dono. Think they'll see us?"
19377
19378"Oh, Tom, they can see in the dark, same as cats. I wisht I hadn't
19379come."
19380
19381"Oh, don't be afeard. I don't believe they'll bother us. We ain't
19382doing any harm. If we keep perfectly still, maybe they won't notice us
19383at all."
19384
19385"I'll try to, Tom, but, Lord, I'm all of a shiver."
19386
19387"Listen!"
19388
19389The boys bent their heads together and scarcely breathed. A muffled
19390sound of voices floated up from the far end of the graveyard.
19391
19392"Look! See there!" whispered Tom. "What is it?"
19393
19394"It's devil-fire. Oh, Tom, this is awful."
19395
19396Some vague figures approached through the gloom, swinging an
19397old-fashioned tin lantern that freckled the ground with innumerable
19398little spangles of light. Presently Huckleberry whispered with a
19399shudder:
19400
19401"It's the devils sure enough. Three of 'em! Lordy, Tom, we're goners!
19402Can you pray?"
19403
19404"I'll try, but don't you be afeard. They ain't going to hurt us. 'Now
19405I lay me down to sleep, I--'"
19406
19407"Sh!"
19408
19409"What is it, Huck?"
19410
19411"They're HUMANS! One of 'em is, anyway. One of 'em's old Muff Potter's
19412voice."
19413
19414"No--'tain't so, is it?"
19415
19416"I bet I know it. Don't you stir nor budge. He ain't sharp enough to
19417notice us. Drunk, the same as usual, likely--blamed old rip!"
19418
19419"All right, I'll keep still. Now they're stuck. Can't find it. Here
19420they come again. Now they're hot. Cold again. Hot again. Red hot!
19421They're p'inted right, this time. Say, Huck, I know another o' them
19422voices; it's Injun Joe."
19423
19424"That's so--that murderin' half-breed! I'd druther they was devils a
19425dern sight. What kin they be up to?"
19426
19427The whisper died wholly out, now, for the three men had reached the
19428grave and stood within a few feet of the boys' hiding-place.
19429
19430"Here it is," said the third voice; and the owner of it held the
19431lantern up and revealed the face of young Doctor Robinson.
19432
19433Potter and Injun Joe were carrying a handbarrow with a rope and a
19434couple of shovels on it. They cast down their load and began to open
19435the grave. The doctor put the lantern at the head of the grave and came
19436and sat down with his back against one of the elm trees. He was so
19437close the boys could have touched him.
19438
19439"Hurry, men!" he said, in a low voice; "the moon might come out at any
19440moment."
19441
19442They growled a response and went on digging. For some time there was
19443no noise but the grating sound of the spades discharging their freight
19444of mould and gravel. It was very monotonous. Finally a spade struck
19445upon the coffin with a dull woody accent, and within another minute or
19446two the men had hoisted it out on the ground. They pried off the lid
19447with their shovels, got out the body and dumped it rudely on the
19448ground. The moon drifted from behind the clouds and exposed the pallid
19449face. The barrow was got ready and the corpse placed on it, covered
19450with a blanket, and bound to its place with the rope. Potter took out a
19451large spring-knife and cut off the dangling end of the rope and then
19452said:
19453
19454"Now the cussed thing's ready, Sawbones, and you'll just out with
19455another five, or here she stays."
19456
19457"That's the talk!" said Injun Joe.
19458
19459"Look here, what does this mean?" said the doctor. "You required your
19460pay in advance, and I've paid you."
19461
19462"Yes, and you done more than that," said Injun Joe, approaching the
19463doctor, who was now standing. "Five years ago you drove me away from
19464your father's kitchen one night, when I come to ask for something to
19465eat, and you said I warn't there for any good; and when I swore I'd get
19466even with you if it took a hundred years, your father had me jailed for
19467a vagrant. Did you think I'd forget? The Injun blood ain't in me for
19468nothing. And now I've GOT you, and you got to SETTLE, you know!"
19469
19470He was threatening the doctor, with his fist in his face, by this
19471time. The doctor struck out suddenly and stretched the ruffian on the
19472ground. Potter dropped his knife, and exclaimed:
19473
19474"Here, now, don't you hit my pard!" and the next moment he had
19475grappled with the doctor and the two were struggling with might and
19476main, trampling the grass and tearing the ground with their heels.
19477Injun Joe sprang to his feet, his eyes flaming with passion, snatched
19478up Potter's knife, and went creeping, catlike and stooping, round and
19479round about the combatants, seeking an opportunity. All at once the
19480doctor flung himself free, seized the heavy headboard of Williams'
19481grave and felled Potter to the earth with it--and in the same instant
19482the half-breed saw his chance and drove the knife to the hilt in the
19483young man's breast. He reeled and fell partly upon Potter, flooding him
19484with his blood, and in the same moment the clouds blotted out the
19485dreadful spectacle and the two frightened boys went speeding away in
19486the dark.
19487
19488Presently, when the moon emerged again, Injun Joe was standing over
19489the two forms, contemplating them. The doctor murmured inarticulately,
19490gave a long gasp or two and was still. The half-breed muttered:
19491
19492"THAT score is settled--damn you."
19493
19494Then he robbed the body. After which he put the fatal knife in
19495Potter's open right hand, and sat down on the dismantled coffin. Three
19496--four--five minutes passed, and then Potter began to stir and moan. His
19497hand closed upon the knife; he raised it, glanced at it, and let it
19498fall, with a shudder. Then he sat up, pushing the body from him, and
19499gazed at it, and then around him, confusedly. His eyes met Joe's.
19500
19501"Lord, how is this, Joe?" he said.
19502
19503"It's a dirty business," said Joe, without moving.
19504
19505"What did you do it for?"
19506
19507"I! I never done it!"
19508
19509"Look here! That kind of talk won't wash."
19510
19511Potter trembled and grew white.
19512
19513"I thought I'd got sober. I'd no business to drink to-night. But it's
19514in my head yet--worse'n when we started here. I'm all in a muddle;
19515can't recollect anything of it, hardly. Tell me, Joe--HONEST, now, old
19516feller--did I do it? Joe, I never meant to--'pon my soul and honor, I
19517never meant to, Joe. Tell me how it was, Joe. Oh, it's awful--and him
19518so young and promising."
19519
19520"Why, you two was scuffling, and he fetched you one with the headboard
19521and you fell flat; and then up you come, all reeling and staggering
19522like, and snatched the knife and jammed it into him, just as he fetched
19523you another awful clip--and here you've laid, as dead as a wedge til
19524now."
19525
19526"Oh, I didn't know what I was a-doing. I wish I may die this minute if
19527I did. It was all on account of the whiskey and the excitement, I
19528reckon. I never used a weepon in my life before, Joe. I've fought, but
19529never with weepons. They'll all say that. Joe, don't tell! Say you
19530won't tell, Joe--that's a good feller. I always liked you, Joe, and
19531stood up for you, too. Don't you remember? You WON'T tell, WILL you,
19532Joe?" And the poor creature dropped on his knees before the stolid
19533murderer, and clasped his appealing hands.
19534
19535"No, you've always been fair and square with me, Muff Potter, and I
19536won't go back on you. There, now, that's as fair as a man can say."
19537
19538"Oh, Joe, you're an angel. I'll bless you for this the longest day I
19539live." And Potter began to cry.
19540
19541"Come, now, that's enough of that. This ain't any time for blubbering.
19542You be off yonder way and I'll go this. Move, now, and don't leave any
19543tracks behind you."
19544
19545Potter started on a trot that quickly increased to a run. The
19546half-breed stood looking after him. He muttered:
19547
19548"If he's as much stunned with the lick and fuddled with the rum as he
19549had the look of being, he won't think of the knife till he's gone so
19550far he'll be afraid to come back after it to such a place by himself
19551--chicken-heart!"
19552
19553Two or three minutes later the murdered man, the blanketed corpse, the
19554lidless coffin, and the open grave were under no inspection but the
19555moon's. The stillness was complete again, too.
19556
19557
19558
19559CHAPTER X
19560
19561THE two boys flew on and on, toward the village, speechless with
19562horror. They glanced backward over their shoulders from time to time,
19563apprehensively, as if they feared they might be followed. Every stump
19564that started up in their path seemed a man and an enemy, and made them
19565catch their breath; and as they sped by some outlying cottages that lay
19566near the village, the barking of the aroused watch-dogs seemed to give
19567wings to their feet.
19568
19569"If we can only get to the old tannery before we break down!"
19570whispered Tom, in short catches between breaths. "I can't stand it much
19571longer."
19572
19573Huckleberry's hard pantings were his only reply, and the boys fixed
19574their eyes on the goal of their hopes and bent to their work to win it.
19575They gained steadily on it, and at last, breast to breast, they burst
19576through the open door and fell grateful and exhausted in the sheltering
19577shadows beyond. By and by their pulses slowed down, and Tom whispered:
19578
19579"Huckleberry, what do you reckon'll come of this?"
19580
19581"If Doctor Robinson dies, I reckon hanging'll come of it."
19582
19583"Do you though?"
19584
19585"Why, I KNOW it, Tom."
19586
19587Tom thought a while, then he said:
19588
19589"Who'll tell? We?"
19590
19591"What are you talking about? S'pose something happened and Injun Joe
19592DIDN'T hang? Why, he'd kill us some time or other, just as dead sure as
19593we're a laying here."
19594
19595"That's just what I was thinking to myself, Huck."
19596
19597"If anybody tells, let Muff Potter do it, if he's fool enough. He's
19598generally drunk enough."
19599
19600Tom said nothing--went on thinking. Presently he whispered:
19601
19602"Huck, Muff Potter don't know it. How can he tell?"
19603
19604"What's the reason he don't know it?"
19605
19606"Because he'd just got that whack when Injun Joe done it. D'you reckon
19607he could see anything? D'you reckon he knowed anything?"
19608
19609"By hokey, that's so, Tom!"
19610
19611"And besides, look-a-here--maybe that whack done for HIM!"
19612
19613"No, 'taint likely, Tom. He had liquor in him; I could see that; and
19614besides, he always has. Well, when pap's full, you might take and belt
19615him over the head with a church and you couldn't phase him. He says so,
19616his own self. So it's the same with Muff Potter, of course. But if a
19617man was dead sober, I reckon maybe that whack might fetch him; I dono."
19618
19619After another reflective silence, Tom said:
19620
19621"Hucky, you sure you can keep mum?"
19622
19623"Tom, we GOT to keep mum. You know that. That Injun devil wouldn't
19624make any more of drownding us than a couple of cats, if we was to
19625squeak 'bout this and they didn't hang him. Now, look-a-here, Tom, less
19626take and swear to one another--that's what we got to do--swear to keep
19627mum."
19628
19629"I'm agreed. It's the best thing. Would you just hold hands and swear
19630that we--"
19631
19632"Oh no, that wouldn't do for this. That's good enough for little
19633rubbishy common things--specially with gals, cuz THEY go back on you
19634anyway, and blab if they get in a huff--but there orter be writing
19635'bout a big thing like this. And blood."
19636
19637Tom's whole being applauded this idea. It was deep, and dark, and
19638awful; the hour, the circumstances, the surroundings, were in keeping
19639with it. He picked up a clean pine shingle that lay in the moonlight,
19640took a little fragment of "red keel" out of his pocket, got the moon on
19641his work, and painfully scrawled these lines, emphasizing each slow
19642down-stroke by clamping his tongue between his teeth, and letting up
19643the pressure on the up-strokes. [See next page.]
19644
19645   "Huck Finn and
19646    Tom Sawyer swears
19647    they will keep mum
19648    about This and They
19649    wish They may Drop
19650    down dead in Their
19651    Tracks if They ever
19652    Tell and Rot."
19653
19654Huckleberry was filled with admiration of Tom's facility in writing,
19655and the sublimity of his language. He at once took a pin from his lapel
19656and was going to prick his flesh, but Tom said:
19657
19658"Hold on! Don't do that. A pin's brass. It might have verdigrease on
19659it."
19660
19661"What's verdigrease?"
19662
19663"It's p'ison. That's what it is. You just swaller some of it once
19664--you'll see."
19665
19666So Tom unwound the thread from one of his needles, and each boy
19667pricked the ball of his thumb and squeezed out a drop of blood. In
19668time, after many squeezes, Tom managed to sign his initials, using the
19669ball of his little finger for a pen. Then he showed Huckleberry how to
19670make an H and an F, and the oath was complete. They buried the shingle
19671close to the wall, with some dismal ceremonies and incantations, and
19672the fetters that bound their tongues were considered to be locked and
19673the key thrown away.
19674
19675A figure crept stealthily through a break in the other end of the
19676ruined building, now, but they did not notice it.
19677
19678"Tom," whispered Huckleberry, "does this keep us from EVER telling
19679--ALWAYS?"
19680
19681"Of course it does. It don't make any difference WHAT happens, we got
19682to keep mum. We'd drop down dead--don't YOU know that?"
19683
19684"Yes, I reckon that's so."
19685
19686They continued to whisper for some little time. Presently a dog set up
19687a long, lugubrious howl just outside--within ten feet of them. The boys
19688clasped each other suddenly, in an agony of fright.
19689
19690"Which of us does he mean?" gasped Huckleberry.
19691
19692"I dono--peep through the crack. Quick!"
19693
19694"No, YOU, Tom!"
19695
19696"I can't--I can't DO it, Huck!"
19697
19698"Please, Tom. There 'tis again!"
19699
19700"Oh, lordy, I'm thankful!" whispered Tom. "I know his voice. It's Bull
19701Harbison." *
19702
19703[* If Mr. Harbison owned a slave named Bull, Tom would have spoken of
19704him as "Harbison's Bull," but a son or a dog of that name was "Bull
19705Harbison."]
19706
19707"Oh, that's good--I tell you, Tom, I was most scared to death; I'd a
19708bet anything it was a STRAY dog."
19709
19710The dog howled again. The boys' hearts sank once more.
19711
19712"Oh, my! that ain't no Bull Harbison!" whispered Huckleberry. "DO, Tom!"
19713
19714Tom, quaking with fear, yielded, and put his eye to the crack. His
19715whisper was hardly audible when he said:
19716
19717"Oh, Huck, IT S A STRAY DOG!"
19718
19719"Quick, Tom, quick! Who does he mean?"
19720
19721"Huck, he must mean us both--we're right together."
19722
19723"Oh, Tom, I reckon we're goners. I reckon there ain't no mistake 'bout
19724where I'LL go to. I been so wicked."
19725
19726"Dad fetch it! This comes of playing hookey and doing everything a
19727feller's told NOT to do. I might a been good, like Sid, if I'd a tried
19728--but no, I wouldn't, of course. But if ever I get off this time, I lay
19729I'll just WALLER in Sunday-schools!" And Tom began to snuffle a little.
19730
19731"YOU bad!" and Huckleberry began to snuffle too. "Consound it, Tom
19732Sawyer, you're just old pie, 'longside o' what I am. Oh, LORDY, lordy,
19733lordy, I wisht I only had half your chance."
19734
19735Tom choked off and whispered:
19736
19737"Look, Hucky, look! He's got his BACK to us!"
19738
19739Hucky looked, with joy in his heart.
19740
19741"Well, he has, by jingoes! Did he before?"
19742
19743"Yes, he did. But I, like a fool, never thought. Oh, this is bully,
19744you know. NOW who can he mean?"
19745
19746The howling stopped. Tom pricked up his ears.
19747
19748"Sh! What's that?" he whispered.
19749
19750"Sounds like--like hogs grunting. No--it's somebody snoring, Tom."
19751
19752"That IS it! Where 'bouts is it, Huck?"
19753
19754"I bleeve it's down at 'tother end. Sounds so, anyway. Pap used to
19755sleep there, sometimes, 'long with the hogs, but laws bless you, he
19756just lifts things when HE snores. Besides, I reckon he ain't ever
19757coming back to this town any more."
19758
19759The spirit of adventure rose in the boys' souls once more.
19760
19761"Hucky, do you das't to go if I lead?"
19762
19763"I don't like to, much. Tom, s'pose it's Injun Joe!"
19764
19765Tom quailed. But presently the temptation rose up strong again and the
19766boys agreed to try, with the understanding that they would take to
19767their heels if the snoring stopped. So they went tiptoeing stealthily
19768down, the one behind the other. When they had got to within five steps
19769of the snorer, Tom stepped on a stick, and it broke with a sharp snap.
19770The man moaned, writhed a little, and his face came into the moonlight.
19771It was Muff Potter. The boys' hearts had stood still, and their hopes
19772too, when the man moved, but their fears passed away now. They tiptoed
19773out, through the broken weather-boarding, and stopped at a little
19774distance to exchange a parting word. That long, lugubrious howl rose on
19775the night air again! They turned and saw the strange dog standing
19776within a few feet of where Potter was lying, and FACING Potter, with
19777his nose pointing heavenward.
19778
19779"Oh, geeminy, it's HIM!" exclaimed both boys, in a breath.
19780
19781"Say, Tom--they say a stray dog come howling around Johnny Miller's
19782house, 'bout midnight, as much as two weeks ago; and a whippoorwill
19783come in and lit on the banisters and sung, the very same evening; and
19784there ain't anybody dead there yet."
19785
19786"Well, I know that. And suppose there ain't. Didn't Gracie Miller fall
19787in the kitchen fire and burn herself terrible the very next Saturday?"
19788
19789"Yes, but she ain't DEAD. And what's more, she's getting better, too."
19790
19791"All right, you wait and see. She's a goner, just as dead sure as Muff
19792Potter's a goner. That's what the niggers say, and they know all about
19793these kind of things, Huck."
19794
19795Then they separated, cogitating. When Tom crept in at his bedroom
19796window the night was almost spent. He undressed with excessive caution,
19797and fell asleep congratulating himself that nobody knew of his
19798escapade. He was not aware that the gently-snoring Sid was awake, and
19799had been so for an hour.
19800
19801When Tom awoke, Sid was dressed and gone. There was a late look in the
19802light, a late sense in the atmosphere. He was startled. Why had he not
19803been called--persecuted till he was up, as usual? The thought filled
19804him with bodings. Within five minutes he was dressed and down-stairs,
19805feeling sore and drowsy. The family were still at table, but they had
19806finished breakfast. There was no voice of rebuke; but there were
19807averted eyes; there was a silence and an air of solemnity that struck a
19808chill to the culprit's heart. He sat down and tried to seem gay, but it
19809was up-hill work; it roused no smile, no response, and he lapsed into
19810silence and let his heart sink down to the depths.
19811
19812After breakfast his aunt took him aside, and Tom almost brightened in
19813the hope that he was going to be flogged; but it was not so. His aunt
19814wept over him and asked him how he could go and break her old heart so;
19815and finally told him to go on, and ruin himself and bring her gray
19816hairs with sorrow to the grave, for it was no use for her to try any
19817more. This was worse than a thousand whippings, and Tom's heart was
19818sorer now than his body. He cried, he pleaded for forgiveness, promised
19819to reform over and over again, and then received his dismissal, feeling
19820that he had won but an imperfect forgiveness and established but a
19821feeble confidence.
19822
19823He left the presence too miserable to even feel revengeful toward Sid;
19824and so the latter's prompt retreat through the back gate was
19825unnecessary. He moped to school gloomy and sad, and took his flogging,
19826along with Joe Harper, for playing hookey the day before, with the air
19827of one whose heart was busy with heavier woes and wholly dead to
19828trifles. Then he betook himself to his seat, rested his elbows on his
19829desk and his jaws in his hands, and stared at the wall with the stony
19830stare of suffering that has reached the limit and can no further go.
19831His elbow was pressing against some hard substance. After a long time
19832he slowly and sadly changed his position, and took up this object with
19833a sigh. It was in a paper. He unrolled it. A long, lingering, colossal
19834sigh followed, and his heart broke. It was his brass andiron knob!
19835
19836This final feather broke the camel's back.
19837
19838
19839
19840CHAPTER XI
19841
19842CLOSE upon the hour of noon the whole village was suddenly electrified
19843with the ghastly news. No need of the as yet undreamed-of telegraph;
19844the tale flew from man to man, from group to group, from house to
19845house, with little less than telegraphic speed. Of course the
19846schoolmaster gave holiday for that afternoon; the town would have
19847thought strangely of him if he had not.
19848
19849A gory knife had been found close to the murdered man, and it had been
19850recognized by somebody as belonging to Muff Potter--so the story ran.
19851And it was said that a belated citizen had come upon Potter washing
19852himself in the "branch" about one or two o'clock in the morning, and
19853that Potter had at once sneaked off--suspicious circumstances,
19854especially the washing which was not a habit with Potter. It was also
19855said that the town had been ransacked for this "murderer" (the public
19856are not slow in the matter of sifting evidence and arriving at a
19857verdict), but that he could not be found. Horsemen had departed down
19858all the roads in every direction, and the Sheriff "was confident" that
19859he would be captured before night.
19860
19861All the town was drifting toward the graveyard. Tom's heartbreak
19862vanished and he joined the procession, not because he would not a
19863thousand times rather go anywhere else, but because an awful,
19864unaccountable fascination drew him on. Arrived at the dreadful place,
19865he wormed his small body through the crowd and saw the dismal
19866spectacle. It seemed to him an age since he was there before. Somebody
19867pinched his arm. He turned, and his eyes met Huckleberry's. Then both
19868looked elsewhere at once, and wondered if anybody had noticed anything
19869in their mutual glance. But everybody was talking, and intent upon the
19870grisly spectacle before them.
19871
19872"Poor fellow!" "Poor young fellow!" "This ought to be a lesson to
19873grave robbers!" "Muff Potter'll hang for this if they catch him!" This
19874was the drift of remark; and the minister said, "It was a judgment; His
19875hand is here."
19876
19877Now Tom shivered from head to heel; for his eye fell upon the stolid
19878face of Injun Joe. At this moment the crowd began to sway and struggle,
19879and voices shouted, "It's him! it's him! he's coming himself!"
19880
19881"Who? Who?" from twenty voices.
19882
19883"Muff Potter!"
19884
19885"Hallo, he's stopped!--Look out, he's turning! Don't let him get away!"
19886
19887People in the branches of the trees over Tom's head said he wasn't
19888trying to get away--he only looked doubtful and perplexed.
19889
19890"Infernal impudence!" said a bystander; "wanted to come and take a
19891quiet look at his work, I reckon--didn't expect any company."
19892
19893The crowd fell apart, now, and the Sheriff came through,
19894ostentatiously leading Potter by the arm. The poor fellow's face was
19895haggard, and his eyes showed the fear that was upon him. When he stood
19896before the murdered man, he shook as with a palsy, and he put his face
19897in his hands and burst into tears.
19898
19899"I didn't do it, friends," he sobbed; "'pon my word and honor I never
19900done it."
19901
19902"Who's accused you?" shouted a voice.
19903
19904This shot seemed to carry home. Potter lifted his face and looked
19905around him with a pathetic hopelessness in his eyes. He saw Injun Joe,
19906and exclaimed:
19907
19908"Oh, Injun Joe, you promised me you'd never--"
19909
19910"Is that your knife?" and it was thrust before him by the Sheriff.
19911
19912Potter would have fallen if they had not caught him and eased him to
19913the ground. Then he said:
19914
19915"Something told me 't if I didn't come back and get--" He shuddered;
19916then waved his nerveless hand with a vanquished gesture and said, "Tell
19917'em, Joe, tell 'em--it ain't any use any more."
19918
19919Then Huckleberry and Tom stood dumb and staring, and heard the
19920stony-hearted liar reel off his serene statement, they expecting every
19921moment that the clear sky would deliver God's lightnings upon his head,
19922and wondering to see how long the stroke was delayed. And when he had
19923finished and still stood alive and whole, their wavering impulse to
19924break their oath and save the poor betrayed prisoner's life faded and
19925vanished away, for plainly this miscreant had sold himself to Satan and
19926it would be fatal to meddle with the property of such a power as that.
19927
19928"Why didn't you leave? What did you want to come here for?" somebody
19929said.
19930
19931"I couldn't help it--I couldn't help it," Potter moaned. "I wanted to
19932run away, but I couldn't seem to come anywhere but here." And he fell
19933to sobbing again.
19934
19935Injun Joe repeated his statement, just as calmly, a few minutes
19936afterward on the inquest, under oath; and the boys, seeing that the
19937lightnings were still withheld, were confirmed in their belief that Joe
19938had sold himself to the devil. He was now become, to them, the most
19939balefully interesting object they had ever looked upon, and they could
19940not take their fascinated eyes from his face.
19941
19942They inwardly resolved to watch him nights, when opportunity should
19943offer, in the hope of getting a glimpse of his dread master.
19944
19945Injun Joe helped to raise the body of the murdered man and put it in a
19946wagon for removal; and it was whispered through the shuddering crowd
19947that the wound bled a little! The boys thought that this happy
19948circumstance would turn suspicion in the right direction; but they were
19949disappointed, for more than one villager remarked:
19950
19951"It was within three feet of Muff Potter when it done it."
19952
19953Tom's fearful secret and gnawing conscience disturbed his sleep for as
19954much as a week after this; and at breakfast one morning Sid said:
19955
19956"Tom, you pitch around and talk in your sleep so much that you keep me
19957awake half the time."
19958
19959Tom blanched and dropped his eyes.
19960
19961"It's a bad sign," said Aunt Polly, gravely. "What you got on your
19962mind, Tom?"
19963
19964"Nothing. Nothing 't I know of." But the boy's hand shook so that he
19965spilled his coffee.
19966
19967"And you do talk such stuff," Sid said. "Last night you said, 'It's
19968blood, it's blood, that's what it is!' You said that over and over. And
19969you said, 'Don't torment me so--I'll tell!' Tell WHAT? What is it
19970you'll tell?"
19971
19972Everything was swimming before Tom. There is no telling what might
19973have happened, now, but luckily the concern passed out of Aunt Polly's
19974face and she came to Tom's relief without knowing it. She said:
19975
19976"Sho! It's that dreadful murder. I dream about it most every night
19977myself. Sometimes I dream it's me that done it."
19978
19979Mary said she had been affected much the same way. Sid seemed
19980satisfied. Tom got out of the presence as quick as he plausibly could,
19981and after that he complained of toothache for a week, and tied up his
19982jaws every night. He never knew that Sid lay nightly watching, and
19983frequently slipped the bandage free and then leaned on his elbow
19984listening a good while at a time, and afterward slipped the bandage
19985back to its place again. Tom's distress of mind wore off gradually and
19986the toothache grew irksome and was discarded. If Sid really managed to
19987make anything out of Tom's disjointed mutterings, he kept it to himself.
19988
19989It seemed to Tom that his schoolmates never would get done holding
19990inquests on dead cats, and thus keeping his trouble present to his
19991mind. Sid noticed that Tom never was coroner at one of these inquiries,
19992though it had been his habit to take the lead in all new enterprises;
19993he noticed, too, that Tom never acted as a witness--and that was
19994strange; and Sid did not overlook the fact that Tom even showed a
19995marked aversion to these inquests, and always avoided them when he
19996could. Sid marvelled, but said nothing. However, even inquests went out
19997of vogue at last, and ceased to torture Tom's conscience.
19998
19999Every day or two, during this time of sorrow, Tom watched his
20000opportunity and went to the little grated jail-window and smuggled such
20001small comforts through to the "murderer" as he could get hold of. The
20002jail was a trifling little brick den that stood in a marsh at the edge
20003of the village, and no guards were afforded for it; indeed, it was
20004seldom occupied. These offerings greatly helped to ease Tom's
20005conscience.
20006
20007The villagers had a strong desire to tar-and-feather Injun Joe and
20008ride him on a rail, for body-snatching, but so formidable was his
20009character that nobody could be found who was willing to take the lead
20010in the matter, so it was dropped. He had been careful to begin both of
20011his inquest-statements with the fight, without confessing the
20012grave-robbery that preceded it; therefore it was deemed wisest not
20013to try the case in the courts at present.
20014
20015
20016
20017CHAPTER XII
20018
20019ONE of the reasons why Tom's mind had drifted away from its secret
20020troubles was, that it had found a new and weighty matter to interest
20021itself about. Becky Thatcher had stopped coming to school. Tom had
20022struggled with his pride a few days, and tried to "whistle her down the
20023wind," but failed. He began to find himself hanging around her father's
20024house, nights, and feeling very miserable. She was ill. What if she
20025should die! There was distraction in the thought. He no longer took an
20026interest in war, nor even in piracy. The charm of life was gone; there
20027was nothing but dreariness left. He put his hoop away, and his bat;
20028there was no joy in them any more. His aunt was concerned. She began to
20029try all manner of remedies on him. She was one of those people who are
20030infatuated with patent medicines and all new-fangled methods of
20031producing health or mending it. She was an inveterate experimenter in
20032these things. When something fresh in this line came out she was in a
20033fever, right away, to try it; not on herself, for she was never ailing,
20034but on anybody else that came handy. She was a subscriber for all the
20035"Health" periodicals and phrenological frauds; and the solemn ignorance
20036they were inflated with was breath to her nostrils. All the "rot" they
20037contained about ventilation, and how to go to bed, and how to get up,
20038and what to eat, and what to drink, and how much exercise to take, and
20039what frame of mind to keep one's self in, and what sort of clothing to
20040wear, was all gospel to her, and she never observed that her
20041health-journals of the current month customarily upset everything they
20042had recommended the month before. She was as simple-hearted and honest
20043as the day was long, and so she was an easy victim. She gathered
20044together her quack periodicals and her quack medicines, and thus armed
20045with death, went about on her pale horse, metaphorically speaking, with
20046"hell following after." But she never suspected that she was not an
20047angel of healing and the balm of Gilead in disguise, to the suffering
20048neighbors.
20049
20050The water treatment was new, now, and Tom's low condition was a
20051windfall to her. She had him out at daylight every morning, stood him
20052up in the woodshed and drowned him with a deluge of cold water; then
20053she scrubbed him down with a towel like a file, and so brought him to;
20054then she rolled him up in a wet sheet and put him away under blankets
20055till she sweated his soul clean and "the yellow stains of it came
20056through his pores"--as Tom said.
20057
20058Yet notwithstanding all this, the boy grew more and more melancholy
20059and pale and dejected. She added hot baths, sitz baths, shower baths,
20060and plunges. The boy remained as dismal as a hearse. She began to
20061assist the water with a slim oatmeal diet and blister-plasters. She
20062calculated his capacity as she would a jug's, and filled him up every
20063day with quack cure-alls.
20064
20065Tom had become indifferent to persecution by this time. This phase
20066filled the old lady's heart with consternation. This indifference must
20067be broken up at any cost. Now she heard of Pain-killer for the first
20068time. She ordered a lot at once. She tasted it and was filled with
20069gratitude. It was simply fire in a liquid form. She dropped the water
20070treatment and everything else, and pinned her faith to Pain-killer. She
20071gave Tom a teaspoonful and watched with the deepest anxiety for the
20072result. Her troubles were instantly at rest, her soul at peace again;
20073for the "indifference" was broken up. The boy could not have shown a
20074wilder, heartier interest, if she had built a fire under him.
20075
20076Tom felt that it was time to wake up; this sort of life might be
20077romantic enough, in his blighted condition, but it was getting to have
20078too little sentiment and too much distracting variety about it. So he
20079thought over various plans for relief, and finally hit pon that of
20080professing to be fond of Pain-killer. He asked for it so often that he
20081became a nuisance, and his aunt ended by telling him to help himself
20082and quit bothering her. If it had been Sid, she would have had no
20083misgivings to alloy her delight; but since it was Tom, she watched the
20084bottle clandestinely. She found that the medicine did really diminish,
20085but it did not occur to her that the boy was mending the health of a
20086crack in the sitting-room floor with it.
20087
20088One day Tom was in the act of dosing the crack when his aunt's yellow
20089cat came along, purring, eying the teaspoon avariciously, and begging
20090for a taste. Tom said:
20091
20092"Don't ask for it unless you want it, Peter."
20093
20094But Peter signified that he did want it.
20095
20096"You better make sure."
20097
20098Peter was sure.
20099
20100"Now you've asked for it, and I'll give it to you, because there ain't
20101anything mean about me; but if you find you don't like it, you mustn't
20102blame anybody but your own self."
20103
20104Peter was agreeable. So Tom pried his mouth open and poured down the
20105Pain-killer. Peter sprang a couple of yards in the air, and then
20106delivered a war-whoop and set off round and round the room, banging
20107against furniture, upsetting flower-pots, and making general havoc.
20108Next he rose on his hind feet and pranced around, in a frenzy of
20109enjoyment, with his head over his shoulder and his voice proclaiming
20110his unappeasable happiness. Then he went tearing around the house again
20111spreading chaos and destruction in his path. Aunt Polly entered in time
20112to see him throw a few double summersets, deliver a final mighty
20113hurrah, and sail through the open window, carrying the rest of the
20114flower-pots with him. The old lady stood petrified with astonishment,
20115peering over her glasses; Tom lay on the floor expiring with laughter.
20116
20117"Tom, what on earth ails that cat?"
20118
20119"I don't know, aunt," gasped the boy.
20120
20121"Why, I never see anything like it. What did make him act so?"
20122
20123"Deed I don't know, Aunt Polly; cats always act so when they're having
20124a good time."
20125
20126"They do, do they?" There was something in the tone that made Tom
20127apprehensive.
20128
20129"Yes'm. That is, I believe they do."
20130
20131"You DO?"
20132
20133"Yes'm."
20134
20135The old lady was bending down, Tom watching, with interest emphasized
20136by anxiety. Too late he divined her "drift." The handle of the telltale
20137teaspoon was visible under the bed-valance. Aunt Polly took it, held it
20138up. Tom winced, and dropped his eyes. Aunt Polly raised him by the
20139usual handle--his ear--and cracked his head soundly with her thimble.
20140
20141"Now, sir, what did you want to treat that poor dumb beast so, for?"
20142
20143"I done it out of pity for him--because he hadn't any aunt."
20144
20145"Hadn't any aunt!--you numskull. What has that got to do with it?"
20146
20147"Heaps. Because if he'd had one she'd a burnt him out herself! She'd a
20148roasted his bowels out of him 'thout any more feeling than if he was a
20149human!"
20150
20151Aunt Polly felt a sudden pang of remorse. This was putting the thing
20152in a new light; what was cruelty to a cat MIGHT be cruelty to a boy,
20153too. She began to soften; she felt sorry. Her eyes watered a little,
20154and she put her hand on Tom's head and said gently:
20155
20156"I was meaning for the best, Tom. And, Tom, it DID do you good."
20157
20158Tom looked up in her face with just a perceptible twinkle peeping
20159through his gravity.
20160
20161"I know you was meaning for the best, aunty, and so was I with Peter.
20162It done HIM good, too. I never see him get around so since--"
20163
20164"Oh, go 'long with you, Tom, before you aggravate me again. And you
20165try and see if you can't be a good boy, for once, and you needn't take
20166any more medicine."
20167
20168Tom reached school ahead of time. It was noticed that this strange
20169thing had been occurring every day latterly. And now, as usual of late,
20170he hung about the gate of the schoolyard instead of playing with his
20171comrades. He was sick, he said, and he looked it. He tried to seem to
20172be looking everywhere but whither he really was looking--down the road.
20173Presently Jeff Thatcher hove in sight, and Tom's face lighted; he gazed
20174a moment, and then turned sorrowfully away. When Jeff arrived, Tom
20175accosted him; and "led up" warily to opportunities for remark about
20176Becky, but the giddy lad never could see the bait. Tom watched and
20177watched, hoping whenever a frisking frock came in sight, and hating the
20178owner of it as soon as he saw she was not the right one. At last frocks
20179ceased to appear, and he dropped hopelessly into the dumps; he entered
20180the empty schoolhouse and sat down to suffer. Then one more frock
20181passed in at the gate, and Tom's heart gave a great bound. The next
20182instant he was out, and "going on" like an Indian; yelling, laughing,
20183chasing boys, jumping over the fence at risk of life and limb, throwing
20184handsprings, standing on his head--doing all the heroic things he could
20185conceive of, and keeping a furtive eye out, all the while, to see if
20186Becky Thatcher was noticing. But she seemed to be unconscious of it
20187all; she never looked. Could it be possible that she was not aware that
20188he was there? He carried his exploits to her immediate vicinity; came
20189war-whooping around, snatched a boy's cap, hurled it to the roof of the
20190schoolhouse, broke through a group of boys, tumbling them in every
20191direction, and fell sprawling, himself, under Becky's nose, almost
20192upsetting her--and she turned, with her nose in the air, and he heard
20193her say: "Mf! some people think they're mighty smart--always showing
20194off!"
20195
20196Tom's cheeks burned. He gathered himself up and sneaked off, crushed
20197and crestfallen.
20198
20199
20200
20201CHAPTER XIII
20202
20203TOM'S mind was made up now. He was gloomy and desperate. He was a
20204forsaken, friendless boy, he said; nobody loved him; when they found
20205out what they had driven him to, perhaps they would be sorry; he had
20206tried to do right and get along, but they would not let him; since
20207nothing would do them but to be rid of him, let it be so; and let them
20208blame HIM for the consequences--why shouldn't they? What right had the
20209friendless to complain? Yes, they had forced him to it at last: he
20210would lead a life of crime. There was no choice.
20211
20212By this time he was far down Meadow Lane, and the bell for school to
20213"take up" tinkled faintly upon his ear. He sobbed, now, to think he
20214should never, never hear that old familiar sound any more--it was very
20215hard, but it was forced on him; since he was driven out into the cold
20216world, he must submit--but he forgave them. Then the sobs came thick
20217and fast.
20218
20219Just at this point he met his soul's sworn comrade, Joe Harper
20220--hard-eyed, and with evidently a great and dismal purpose in his heart.
20221Plainly here were "two souls with but a single thought." Tom, wiping
20222his eyes with his sleeve, began to blubber out something about a
20223resolution to escape from hard usage and lack of sympathy at home by
20224roaming abroad into the great world never to return; and ended by
20225hoping that Joe would not forget him.
20226
20227But it transpired that this was a request which Joe had just been
20228going to make of Tom, and had come to hunt him up for that purpose. His
20229mother had whipped him for drinking some cream which he had never
20230tasted and knew nothing about; it was plain that she was tired of him
20231and wished him to go; if she felt that way, there was nothing for him
20232to do but succumb; he hoped she would be happy, and never regret having
20233driven her poor boy out into the unfeeling world to suffer and die.
20234
20235As the two boys walked sorrowing along, they made a new compact to
20236stand by each other and be brothers and never separate till death
20237relieved them of their troubles. Then they began to lay their plans.
20238Joe was for being a hermit, and living on crusts in a remote cave, and
20239dying, some time, of cold and want and grief; but after listening to
20240Tom, he conceded that there were some conspicuous advantages about a
20241life of crime, and so he consented to be a pirate.
20242
20243Three miles below St. Petersburg, at a point where the Mississippi
20244River was a trifle over a mile wide, there was a long, narrow, wooded
20245island, with a shallow bar at the head of it, and this offered well as
20246a rendezvous. It was not inhabited; it lay far over toward the further
20247shore, abreast a dense and almost wholly unpeopled forest. So Jackson's
20248Island was chosen. Who were to be the subjects of their piracies was a
20249matter that did not occur to them. Then they hunted up Huckleberry
20250Finn, and he joined them promptly, for all careers were one to him; he
20251was indifferent. They presently separated to meet at a lonely spot on
20252the river-bank two miles above the village at the favorite hour--which
20253was midnight. There was a small log raft there which they meant to
20254capture. Each would bring hooks and lines, and such provision as he
20255could steal in the most dark and mysterious way--as became outlaws. And
20256before the afternoon was done, they had all managed to enjoy the sweet
20257glory of spreading the fact that pretty soon the town would "hear
20258something." All who got this vague hint were cautioned to "be mum and
20259wait."
20260
20261About midnight Tom arrived with a boiled ham and a few trifles,
20262and stopped in a dense undergrowth on a small bluff overlooking the
20263meeting-place. It was starlight, and very still. The mighty river lay
20264like an ocean at rest. Tom listened a moment, but no sound disturbed the
20265quiet. Then he gave a low, distinct whistle. It was answered from under
20266the bluff. Tom whistled twice more; these signals were answered in the
20267same way. Then a guarded voice said:
20268
20269"Who goes there?"
20270
20271"Tom Sawyer, the Black Avenger of the Spanish Main. Name your names."
20272
20273"Huck Finn the Red-Handed, and Joe Harper the Terror of the Seas." Tom
20274had furnished these titles, from his favorite literature.
20275
20276"'Tis well. Give the countersign."
20277
20278Two hoarse whispers delivered the same awful word simultaneously to
20279the brooding night:
20280
20281"BLOOD!"
20282
20283Then Tom tumbled his ham over the bluff and let himself down after it,
20284tearing both skin and clothes to some extent in the effort. There was
20285an easy, comfortable path along the shore under the bluff, but it
20286lacked the advantages of difficulty and danger so valued by a pirate.
20287
20288The Terror of the Seas had brought a side of bacon, and had about worn
20289himself out with getting it there. Finn the Red-Handed had stolen a
20290skillet and a quantity of half-cured leaf tobacco, and had also brought
20291a few corn-cobs to make pipes with. But none of the pirates smoked or
20292"chewed" but himself. The Black Avenger of the Spanish Main said it
20293would never do to start without some fire. That was a wise thought;
20294matches were hardly known there in that day. They saw a fire
20295smouldering upon a great raft a hundred yards above, and they went
20296stealthily thither and helped themselves to a chunk. They made an
20297imposing adventure of it, saying, "Hist!" every now and then, and
20298suddenly halting with finger on lip; moving with hands on imaginary
20299dagger-hilts; and giving orders in dismal whispers that if "the foe"
20300stirred, to "let him have it to the hilt," because "dead men tell no
20301tales." They knew well enough that the raftsmen were all down at the
20302village laying in stores or having a spree, but still that was no
20303excuse for their conducting this thing in an unpiratical way.
20304
20305They shoved off, presently, Tom in command, Huck at the after oar and
20306Joe at the forward. Tom stood amidships, gloomy-browed, and with folded
20307arms, and gave his orders in a low, stern whisper:
20308
20309"Luff, and bring her to the wind!"
20310
20311"Aye-aye, sir!"
20312
20313"Steady, steady-y-y-y!"
20314
20315"Steady it is, sir!"
20316
20317"Let her go off a point!"
20318
20319"Point it is, sir!"
20320
20321As the boys steadily and monotonously drove the raft toward mid-stream
20322it was no doubt understood that these orders were given only for
20323"style," and were not intended to mean anything in particular.
20324
20325"What sail's she carrying?"
20326
20327"Courses, tops'ls, and flying-jib, sir."
20328
20329"Send the r'yals up! Lay out aloft, there, half a dozen of ye
20330--foretopmaststuns'l! Lively, now!"
20331
20332"Aye-aye, sir!"
20333
20334"Shake out that maintogalans'l! Sheets and braces! NOW my hearties!"
20335
20336"Aye-aye, sir!"
20337
20338"Hellum-a-lee--hard a port! Stand by to meet her when she comes! Port,
20339port! NOW, men! With a will! Stead-y-y-y!"
20340
20341"Steady it is, sir!"
20342
20343The raft drew beyond the middle of the river; the boys pointed her
20344head right, and then lay on their oars. The river was not high, so
20345there was not more than a two or three mile current. Hardly a word was
20346said during the next three-quarters of an hour. Now the raft was
20347passing before the distant town. Two or three glimmering lights showed
20348where it lay, peacefully sleeping, beyond the vague vast sweep of
20349star-gemmed water, unconscious of the tremendous event that was happening.
20350The Black Avenger stood still with folded arms, "looking his last" upon
20351the scene of his former joys and his later sufferings, and wishing
20352"she" could see him now, abroad on the wild sea, facing peril and death
20353with dauntless heart, going to his doom with a grim smile on his lips.
20354It was but a small strain on his imagination to remove Jackson's Island
20355beyond eyeshot of the village, and so he "looked his last" with a
20356broken and satisfied heart. The other pirates were looking their last,
20357too; and they all looked so long that they came near letting the
20358current drift them out of the range of the island. But they discovered
20359the danger in time, and made shift to avert it. About two o'clock in
20360the morning the raft grounded on the bar two hundred yards above the
20361head of the island, and they waded back and forth until they had landed
20362their freight. Part of the little raft's belongings consisted of an old
20363sail, and this they spread over a nook in the bushes for a tent to
20364shelter their provisions; but they themselves would sleep in the open
20365air in good weather, as became outlaws.
20366
20367They built a fire against the side of a great log twenty or thirty
20368steps within the sombre depths of the forest, and then cooked some
20369bacon in the frying-pan for supper, and used up half of the corn "pone"
20370stock they had brought. It seemed glorious sport to be feasting in that
20371wild, free way in the virgin forest of an unexplored and uninhabited
20372island, far from the haunts of men, and they said they never would
20373return to civilization. The climbing fire lit up their faces and threw
20374its ruddy glare upon the pillared tree-trunks of their forest temple,
20375and upon the varnished foliage and festooning vines.
20376
20377When the last crisp slice of bacon was gone, and the last allowance of
20378corn pone devoured, the boys stretched themselves out on the grass,
20379filled with contentment. They could have found a cooler place, but they
20380would not deny themselves such a romantic feature as the roasting
20381camp-fire.
20382
20383"AIN'T it gay?" said Joe.
20384
20385"It's NUTS!" said Tom. "What would the boys say if they could see us?"
20386
20387"Say? Well, they'd just die to be here--hey, Hucky!"
20388
20389"I reckon so," said Huckleberry; "anyways, I'm suited. I don't want
20390nothing better'n this. I don't ever get enough to eat, gen'ally--and
20391here they can't come and pick at a feller and bullyrag him so."
20392
20393"It's just the life for me," said Tom. "You don't have to get up,
20394mornings, and you don't have to go to school, and wash, and all that
20395blame foolishness. You see a pirate don't have to do ANYTHING, Joe,
20396when he's ashore, but a hermit HE has to be praying considerable, and
20397then he don't have any fun, anyway, all by himself that way."
20398
20399"Oh yes, that's so," said Joe, "but I hadn't thought much about it,
20400you know. I'd a good deal rather be a pirate, now that I've tried it."
20401
20402"You see," said Tom, "people don't go much on hermits, nowadays, like
20403they used to in old times, but a pirate's always respected. And a
20404hermit's got to sleep on the hardest place he can find, and put
20405sackcloth and ashes on his head, and stand out in the rain, and--"
20406
20407"What does he put sackcloth and ashes on his head for?" inquired Huck.
20408
20409"I dono. But they've GOT to do it. Hermits always do. You'd have to do
20410that if you was a hermit."
20411
20412"Dern'd if I would," said Huck.
20413
20414"Well, what would you do?"
20415
20416"I dono. But I wouldn't do that."
20417
20418"Why, Huck, you'd HAVE to. How'd you get around it?"
20419
20420"Why, I just wouldn't stand it. I'd run away."
20421
20422"Run away! Well, you WOULD be a nice old slouch of a hermit. You'd be
20423a disgrace."
20424
20425The Red-Handed made no response, being better employed. He had
20426finished gouging out a cob, and now he fitted a weed stem to it, loaded
20427it with tobacco, and was pressing a coal to the charge and blowing a
20428cloud of fragrant smoke--he was in the full bloom of luxurious
20429contentment. The other pirates envied him this majestic vice, and
20430secretly resolved to acquire it shortly. Presently Huck said:
20431
20432"What does pirates have to do?"
20433
20434Tom said:
20435
20436"Oh, they have just a bully time--take ships and burn them, and get
20437the money and bury it in awful places in their island where there's
20438ghosts and things to watch it, and kill everybody in the ships--make
20439'em walk a plank."
20440
20441"And they carry the women to the island," said Joe; "they don't kill
20442the women."
20443
20444"No," assented Tom, "they don't kill the women--they're too noble. And
20445the women's always beautiful, too.
20446
20447"And don't they wear the bulliest clothes! Oh no! All gold and silver
20448and di'monds," said Joe, with enthusiasm.
20449
20450"Who?" said Huck.
20451
20452"Why, the pirates."
20453
20454Huck scanned his own clothing forlornly.
20455
20456"I reckon I ain't dressed fitten for a pirate," said he, with a
20457regretful pathos in his voice; "but I ain't got none but these."
20458
20459But the other boys told him the fine clothes would come fast enough,
20460after they should have begun their adventures. They made him understand
20461that his poor rags would do to begin with, though it was customary for
20462wealthy pirates to start with a proper wardrobe.
20463
20464Gradually their talk died out and drowsiness began to steal upon the
20465eyelids of the little waifs. The pipe dropped from the fingers of the
20466Red-Handed, and he slept the sleep of the conscience-free and the
20467weary. The Terror of the Seas and the Black Avenger of the Spanish Main
20468had more difficulty in getting to sleep. They said their prayers
20469inwardly, and lying down, since there was nobody there with authority
20470to make them kneel and recite aloud; in truth, they had a mind not to
20471say them at all, but they were afraid to proceed to such lengths as
20472that, lest they might call down a sudden and special thunderbolt from
20473heaven. Then at once they reached and hovered upon the imminent verge
20474of sleep--but an intruder came, now, that would not "down." It was
20475conscience. They began to feel a vague fear that they had been doing
20476wrong to run away; and next they thought of the stolen meat, and then
20477the real torture came. They tried to argue it away by reminding
20478conscience that they had purloined sweetmeats and apples scores of
20479times; but conscience was not to be appeased by such thin
20480plausibilities; it seemed to them, in the end, that there was no
20481getting around the stubborn fact that taking sweetmeats was only
20482"hooking," while taking bacon and hams and such valuables was plain
20483simple stealing--and there was a command against that in the Bible. So
20484they inwardly resolved that so long as they remained in the business,
20485their piracies should not again be sullied with the crime of stealing.
20486Then conscience granted a truce, and these curiously inconsistent
20487pirates fell peacefully to sleep.
20488
20489
20490
20491CHAPTER XIV
20492
20493WHEN Tom awoke in the morning, he wondered where he was. He sat up and
20494rubbed his eyes and looked around. Then he comprehended. It was the
20495cool gray dawn, and there was a delicious sense of repose and peace in
20496the deep pervading calm and silence of the woods. Not a leaf stirred;
20497not a sound obtruded upon great Nature's meditation. Beaded dewdrops
20498stood upon the leaves and grasses. A white layer of ashes covered the
20499fire, and a thin blue breath of smoke rose straight into the air. Joe
20500and Huck still slept.
20501
20502Now, far away in the woods a bird called; another answered; presently
20503the hammering of a woodpecker was heard. Gradually the cool dim gray of
20504the morning whitened, and as gradually sounds multiplied and life
20505manifested itself. The marvel of Nature shaking off sleep and going to
20506work unfolded itself to the musing boy. A little green worm came
20507crawling over a dewy leaf, lifting two-thirds of his body into the air
20508from time to time and "sniffing around," then proceeding again--for he
20509was measuring, Tom said; and when the worm approached him, of its own
20510accord, he sat as still as a stone, with his hopes rising and falling,
20511by turns, as the creature still came toward him or seemed inclined to
20512go elsewhere; and when at last it considered a painful moment with its
20513curved body in the air and then came decisively down upon Tom's leg and
20514began a journey over him, his whole heart was glad--for that meant that
20515he was going to have a new suit of clothes--without the shadow of a
20516doubt a gaudy piratical uniform. Now a procession of ants appeared,
20517from nowhere in particular, and went about their labors; one struggled
20518manfully by with a dead spider five times as big as itself in its arms,
20519and lugged it straight up a tree-trunk. A brown spotted lady-bug
20520climbed the dizzy height of a grass blade, and Tom bent down close to
20521it and said, "Lady-bug, lady-bug, fly away home, your house is on fire,
20522your children's alone," and she took wing and went off to see about it
20523--which did not surprise the boy, for he knew of old that this insect was
20524credulous about conflagrations, and he had practised upon its
20525simplicity more than once. A tumblebug came next, heaving sturdily at
20526its ball, and Tom touched the creature, to see it shut its legs against
20527its body and pretend to be dead. The birds were fairly rioting by this
20528time. A catbird, the Northern mocker, lit in a tree over Tom's head,
20529and trilled out her imitations of her neighbors in a rapture of
20530enjoyment; then a shrill jay swept down, a flash of blue flame, and
20531stopped on a twig almost within the boy's reach, cocked his head to one
20532side and eyed the strangers with a consuming curiosity; a gray squirrel
20533and a big fellow of the "fox" kind came skurrying along, sitting up at
20534intervals to inspect and chatter at the boys, for the wild things had
20535probably never seen a human being before and scarcely knew whether to
20536be afraid or not. All Nature was wide awake and stirring, now; long
20537lances of sunlight pierced down through the dense foliage far and near,
20538and a few butterflies came fluttering upon the scene.
20539
20540Tom stirred up the other pirates and they all clattered away with a
20541shout, and in a minute or two were stripped and chasing after and
20542tumbling over each other in the shallow limpid water of the white
20543sandbar. They felt no longing for the little village sleeping in the
20544distance beyond the majestic waste of water. A vagrant current or a
20545slight rise in the river had carried off their raft, but this only
20546gratified them, since its going was something like burning the bridge
20547between them and civilization.
20548
20549They came back to camp wonderfully refreshed, glad-hearted, and
20550ravenous; and they soon had the camp-fire blazing up again. Huck found
20551a spring of clear cold water close by, and the boys made cups of broad
20552oak or hickory leaves, and felt that water, sweetened with such a
20553wildwood charm as that, would be a good enough substitute for coffee.
20554While Joe was slicing bacon for breakfast, Tom and Huck asked him to
20555hold on a minute; they stepped to a promising nook in the river-bank
20556and threw in their lines; almost immediately they had reward. Joe had
20557not had time to get impatient before they were back again with some
20558handsome bass, a couple of sun-perch and a small catfish--provisions
20559enough for quite a family. They fried the fish with the bacon, and were
20560astonished; for no fish had ever seemed so delicious before. They did
20561not know that the quicker a fresh-water fish is on the fire after he is
20562caught the better he is; and they reflected little upon what a sauce
20563open-air sleeping, open-air exercise, bathing, and a large ingredient
20564of hunger make, too.
20565
20566They lay around in the shade, after breakfast, while Huck had a smoke,
20567and then went off through the woods on an exploring expedition. They
20568tramped gayly along, over decaying logs, through tangled underbrush,
20569among solemn monarchs of the forest, hung from their crowns to the
20570ground with a drooping regalia of grape-vines. Now and then they came
20571upon snug nooks carpeted with grass and jeweled with flowers.
20572
20573They found plenty of things to be delighted with, but nothing to be
20574astonished at. They discovered that the island was about three miles
20575long and a quarter of a mile wide, and that the shore it lay closest to
20576was only separated from it by a narrow channel hardly two hundred yards
20577wide. They took a swim about every hour, so it was close upon the
20578middle of the afternoon when they got back to camp. They were too
20579hungry to stop to fish, but they fared sumptuously upon cold ham, and
20580then threw themselves down in the shade to talk. But the talk soon
20581began to drag, and then died. The stillness, the solemnity that brooded
20582in the woods, and the sense of loneliness, began to tell upon the
20583spirits of the boys. They fell to thinking. A sort of undefined longing
20584crept upon them. This took dim shape, presently--it was budding
20585homesickness. Even Finn the Red-Handed was dreaming of his doorsteps
20586and empty hogsheads. But they were all ashamed of their weakness, and
20587none was brave enough to speak his thought.
20588
20589For some time, now, the boys had been dully conscious of a peculiar
20590sound in the distance, just as one sometimes is of the ticking of a
20591clock which he takes no distinct note of. But now this mysterious sound
20592became more pronounced, and forced a recognition. The boys started,
20593glanced at each other, and then each assumed a listening attitude.
20594There was a long silence, profound and unbroken; then a deep, sullen
20595boom came floating down out of the distance.
20596
20597"What is it!" exclaimed Joe, under his breath.
20598
20599"I wonder," said Tom in a whisper.
20600
20601"'Tain't thunder," said Huckleberry, in an awed tone, "becuz thunder--"
20602
20603"Hark!" said Tom. "Listen--don't talk."
20604
20605They waited a time that seemed an age, and then the same muffled boom
20606troubled the solemn hush.
20607
20608"Let's go and see."
20609
20610They sprang to their feet and hurried to the shore toward the town.
20611They parted the bushes on the bank and peered out over the water. The
20612little steam ferryboat was about a mile below the village, drifting
20613with the current. Her broad deck seemed crowded with people. There were
20614a great many skiffs rowing about or floating with the stream in the
20615neighborhood of the ferryboat, but the boys could not determine what
20616the men in them were doing. Presently a great jet of white smoke burst
20617from the ferryboat's side, and as it expanded and rose in a lazy cloud,
20618that same dull throb of sound was borne to the listeners again.
20619
20620"I know now!" exclaimed Tom; "somebody's drownded!"
20621
20622"That's it!" said Huck; "they done that last summer, when Bill Turner
20623got drownded; they shoot a cannon over the water, and that makes him
20624come up to the top. Yes, and they take loaves of bread and put
20625quicksilver in 'em and set 'em afloat, and wherever there's anybody
20626that's drownded, they'll float right there and stop."
20627
20628"Yes, I've heard about that," said Joe. "I wonder what makes the bread
20629do that."
20630
20631"Oh, it ain't the bread, so much," said Tom; "I reckon it's mostly
20632what they SAY over it before they start it out."
20633
20634"But they don't say anything over it," said Huck. "I've seen 'em and
20635they don't."
20636
20637"Well, that's funny," said Tom. "But maybe they say it to themselves.
20638Of COURSE they do. Anybody might know that."
20639
20640The other boys agreed that there was reason in what Tom said, because
20641an ignorant lump of bread, uninstructed by an incantation, could not be
20642expected to act very intelligently when set upon an errand of such
20643gravity.
20644
20645"By jings, I wish I was over there, now," said Joe.
20646
20647"I do too" said Huck "I'd give heaps to know who it is."
20648
20649The boys still listened and watched. Presently a revealing thought
20650flashed through Tom's mind, and he exclaimed:
20651
20652"Boys, I know who's drownded--it's us!"
20653
20654They felt like heroes in an instant. Here was a gorgeous triumph; they
20655were missed; they were mourned; hearts were breaking on their account;
20656tears were being shed; accusing memories of unkindness to these poor
20657lost lads were rising up, and unavailing regrets and remorse were being
20658indulged; and best of all, the departed were the talk of the whole
20659town, and the envy of all the boys, as far as this dazzling notoriety
20660was concerned. This was fine. It was worth while to be a pirate, after
20661all.
20662
20663As twilight drew on, the ferryboat went back to her accustomed
20664business and the skiffs disappeared. The pirates returned to camp. They
20665were jubilant with vanity over their new grandeur and the illustrious
20666trouble they were making. They caught fish, cooked supper and ate it,
20667and then fell to guessing at what the village was thinking and saying
20668about them; and the pictures they drew of the public distress on their
20669account were gratifying to look upon--from their point of view. But
20670when the shadows of night closed them in, they gradually ceased to
20671talk, and sat gazing into the fire, with their minds evidently
20672wandering elsewhere. The excitement was gone, now, and Tom and Joe
20673could not keep back thoughts of certain persons at home who were not
20674enjoying this fine frolic as much as they were. Misgivings came; they
20675grew troubled and unhappy; a sigh or two escaped, unawares. By and by
20676Joe timidly ventured upon a roundabout "feeler" as to how the others
20677might look upon a return to civilization--not right now, but--
20678
20679Tom withered him with derision! Huck, being uncommitted as yet, joined
20680in with Tom, and the waverer quickly "explained," and was glad to get
20681out of the scrape with as little taint of chicken-hearted homesickness
20682clinging to his garments as he could. Mutiny was effectually laid to
20683rest for the moment.
20684
20685As the night deepened, Huck began to nod, and presently to snore. Joe
20686followed next. Tom lay upon his elbow motionless, for some time,
20687watching the two intently. At last he got up cautiously, on his knees,
20688and went searching among the grass and the flickering reflections flung
20689by the camp-fire. He picked up and inspected several large
20690semi-cylinders of the thin white bark of a sycamore, and finally chose
20691two which seemed to suit him. Then he knelt by the fire and painfully
20692wrote something upon each of these with his "red keel"; one he rolled up
20693and put in his jacket pocket, and the other he put in Joe's hat and
20694removed it to a little distance from the owner. And he also put into the
20695hat certain schoolboy treasures of almost inestimable value--among them
20696a lump of chalk, an India-rubber ball, three fishhooks, and one of that
20697kind of marbles known as a "sure 'nough crystal." Then he tiptoed his
20698way cautiously among the trees till he felt that he was out of hearing,
20699and straightway broke into a keen run in the direction of the sandbar.
20700
20701
20702
20703CHAPTER XV
20704
20705A FEW minutes later Tom was in the shoal water of the bar, wading
20706toward the Illinois shore. Before the depth reached his middle he was
20707half-way over; the current would permit no more wading, now, so he
20708struck out confidently to swim the remaining hundred yards. He swam
20709quartering upstream, but still was swept downward rather faster than he
20710had expected. However, he reached the shore finally, and drifted along
20711till he found a low place and drew himself out. He put his hand on his
20712jacket pocket, found his piece of bark safe, and then struck through
20713the woods, following the shore, with streaming garments. Shortly before
20714ten o'clock he came out into an open place opposite the village, and
20715saw the ferryboat lying in the shadow of the trees and the high bank.
20716Everything was quiet under the blinking stars. He crept down the bank,
20717watching with all his eyes, slipped into the water, swam three or four
20718strokes and climbed into the skiff that did "yawl" duty at the boat's
20719stern. He laid himself down under the thwarts and waited, panting.
20720
20721Presently the cracked bell tapped and a voice gave the order to "cast
20722off." A minute or two later the skiff's head was standing high up,
20723against the boat's swell, and the voyage was begun. Tom felt happy in
20724his success, for he knew it was the boat's last trip for the night. At
20725the end of a long twelve or fifteen minutes the wheels stopped, and Tom
20726slipped overboard and swam ashore in the dusk, landing fifty yards
20727downstream, out of danger of possible stragglers.
20728
20729He flew along unfrequented alleys, and shortly found himself at his
20730aunt's back fence. He climbed over, approached the "ell," and looked in
20731at the sitting-room window, for a light was burning there. There sat
20732Aunt Polly, Sid, Mary, and Joe Harper's mother, grouped together,
20733talking. They were by the bed, and the bed was between them and the
20734door. Tom went to the door and began to softly lift the latch; then he
20735pressed gently and the door yielded a crack; he continued pushing
20736cautiously, and quaking every time it creaked, till he judged he might
20737squeeze through on his knees; so he put his head through and began,
20738warily.
20739
20740"What makes the candle blow so?" said Aunt Polly. Tom hurried up.
20741"Why, that door's open, I believe. Why, of course it is. No end of
20742strange things now. Go 'long and shut it, Sid."
20743
20744Tom disappeared under the bed just in time. He lay and "breathed"
20745himself for a time, and then crept to where he could almost touch his
20746aunt's foot.
20747
20748"But as I was saying," said Aunt Polly, "he warn't BAD, so to say
20749--only mischEEvous. Only just giddy, and harum-scarum, you know. He
20750warn't any more responsible than a colt. HE never meant any harm, and
20751he was the best-hearted boy that ever was"--and she began to cry.
20752
20753"It was just so with my Joe--always full of his devilment, and up to
20754every kind of mischief, but he was just as unselfish and kind as he
20755could be--and laws bless me, to think I went and whipped him for taking
20756that cream, never once recollecting that I throwed it out myself
20757because it was sour, and I never to see him again in this world, never,
20758never, never, poor abused boy!" And Mrs. Harper sobbed as if her heart
20759would break.
20760
20761"I hope Tom's better off where he is," said Sid, "but if he'd been
20762better in some ways--"
20763
20764"SID!" Tom felt the glare of the old lady's eye, though he could not
20765see it. "Not a word against my Tom, now that he's gone! God'll take
20766care of HIM--never you trouble YOURself, sir! Oh, Mrs. Harper, I don't
20767know how to give him up! I don't know how to give him up! He was such a
20768comfort to me, although he tormented my old heart out of me, 'most."
20769
20770"The Lord giveth and the Lord hath taken away--Blessed be the name of
20771the Lord! But it's so hard--Oh, it's so hard! Only last Saturday my
20772Joe busted a firecracker right under my nose and I knocked him
20773sprawling. Little did I know then, how soon--Oh, if it was to do over
20774again I'd hug him and bless him for it."
20775
20776"Yes, yes, yes, I know just how you feel, Mrs. Harper, I know just
20777exactly how you feel. No longer ago than yesterday noon, my Tom took
20778and filled the cat full of Pain-killer, and I did think the cretur
20779would tear the house down. And God forgive me, I cracked Tom's head
20780with my thimble, poor boy, poor dead boy. But he's out of all his
20781troubles now. And the last words I ever heard him say was to reproach--"
20782
20783But this memory was too much for the old lady, and she broke entirely
20784down. Tom was snuffling, now, himself--and more in pity of himself than
20785anybody else. He could hear Mary crying, and putting in a kindly word
20786for him from time to time. He began to have a nobler opinion of himself
20787than ever before. Still, he was sufficiently touched by his aunt's
20788grief to long to rush out from under the bed and overwhelm her with
20789joy--and the theatrical gorgeousness of the thing appealed strongly to
20790his nature, too, but he resisted and lay still.
20791
20792He went on listening, and gathered by odds and ends that it was
20793conjectured at first that the boys had got drowned while taking a swim;
20794then the small raft had been missed; next, certain boys said the
20795missing lads had promised that the village should "hear something"
20796soon; the wise-heads had "put this and that together" and decided that
20797the lads had gone off on that raft and would turn up at the next town
20798below, presently; but toward noon the raft had been found, lodged
20799against the Missouri shore some five or six miles below the village
20800--and then hope perished; they must be drowned, else hunger would have
20801driven them home by nightfall if not sooner. It was believed that the
20802search for the bodies had been a fruitless effort merely because the
20803drowning must have occurred in mid-channel, since the boys, being good
20804swimmers, would otherwise have escaped to shore. This was Wednesday
20805night. If the bodies continued missing until Sunday, all hope would be
20806given over, and the funerals would be preached on that morning. Tom
20807shuddered.
20808
20809Mrs. Harper gave a sobbing good-night and turned to go. Then with a
20810mutual impulse the two bereaved women flung themselves into each
20811other's arms and had a good, consoling cry, and then parted. Aunt Polly
20812was tender far beyond her wont, in her good-night to Sid and Mary. Sid
20813snuffled a bit and Mary went off crying with all her heart.
20814
20815Aunt Polly knelt down and prayed for Tom so touchingly, so
20816appealingly, and with such measureless love in her words and her old
20817trembling voice, that he was weltering in tears again, long before she
20818was through.
20819
20820He had to keep still long after she went to bed, for she kept making
20821broken-hearted ejaculations from time to time, tossing unrestfully, and
20822turning over. But at last she was still, only moaning a little in her
20823sleep. Now the boy stole out, rose gradually by the bedside, shaded the
20824candle-light with his hand, and stood regarding her. His heart was full
20825of pity for her. He took out his sycamore scroll and placed it by the
20826candle. But something occurred to him, and he lingered considering. His
20827face lighted with a happy solution of his thought; he put the bark
20828hastily in his pocket. Then he bent over and kissed the faded lips, and
20829straightway made his stealthy exit, latching the door behind him.
20830
20831He threaded his way back to the ferry landing, found nobody at large
20832there, and walked boldly on board the boat, for he knew she was
20833tenantless except that there was a watchman, who always turned in and
20834slept like a graven image. He untied the skiff at the stern, slipped
20835into it, and was soon rowing cautiously upstream. When he had pulled a
20836mile above the village, he started quartering across and bent himself
20837stoutly to his work. He hit the landing on the other side neatly, for
20838this was a familiar bit of work to him. He was moved to capture the
20839skiff, arguing that it might be considered a ship and therefore
20840legitimate prey for a pirate, but he knew a thorough search would be
20841made for it and that might end in revelations. So he stepped ashore and
20842entered the woods.
20843
20844He sat down and took a long rest, torturing himself meanwhile to keep
20845awake, and then started warily down the home-stretch. The night was far
20846spent. It was broad daylight before he found himself fairly abreast the
20847island bar. He rested again until the sun was well up and gilding the
20848great river with its splendor, and then he plunged into the stream. A
20849little later he paused, dripping, upon the threshold of the camp, and
20850heard Joe say:
20851
20852"No, Tom's true-blue, Huck, and he'll come back. He won't desert. He
20853knows that would be a disgrace to a pirate, and Tom's too proud for
20854that sort of thing. He's up to something or other. Now I wonder what?"
20855
20856"Well, the things is ours, anyway, ain't they?"
20857
20858"Pretty near, but not yet, Huck. The writing says they are if he ain't
20859back here to breakfast."
20860
20861"Which he is!" exclaimed Tom, with fine dramatic effect, stepping
20862grandly into camp.
20863
20864A sumptuous breakfast of bacon and fish was shortly provided, and as
20865the boys set to work upon it, Tom recounted (and adorned) his
20866adventures. They were a vain and boastful company of heroes when the
20867tale was done. Then Tom hid himself away in a shady nook to sleep till
20868noon, and the other pirates got ready to fish and explore.
20869
20870
20871
20872CHAPTER XVI
20873
20874AFTER dinner all the gang turned out to hunt for turtle eggs on the
20875bar. They went about poking sticks into the sand, and when they found a
20876soft place they went down on their knees and dug with their hands.
20877Sometimes they would take fifty or sixty eggs out of one hole. They
20878were perfectly round white things a trifle smaller than an English
20879walnut. They had a famous fried-egg feast that night, and another on
20880Friday morning.
20881
20882After breakfast they went whooping and prancing out on the bar, and
20883chased each other round and round, shedding clothes as they went, until
20884they were naked, and then continued the frolic far away up the shoal
20885water of the bar, against the stiff current, which latter tripped their
20886legs from under them from time to time and greatly increased the fun.
20887And now and then they stooped in a group and splashed water in each
20888other's faces with their palms, gradually approaching each other, with
20889averted faces to avoid the strangling sprays, and finally gripping and
20890struggling till the best man ducked his neighbor, and then they all
20891went under in a tangle of white legs and arms and came up blowing,
20892sputtering, laughing, and gasping for breath at one and the same time.
20893
20894When they were well exhausted, they would run out and sprawl on the
20895dry, hot sand, and lie there and cover themselves up with it, and by
20896and by break for the water again and go through the original
20897performance once more. Finally it occurred to them that their naked
20898skin represented flesh-colored "tights" very fairly; so they drew a
20899ring in the sand and had a circus--with three clowns in it, for none
20900would yield this proudest post to his neighbor.
20901
20902Next they got their marbles and played "knucks" and "ring-taw" and
20903"keeps" till that amusement grew stale. Then Joe and Huck had another
20904swim, but Tom would not venture, because he found that in kicking off
20905his trousers he had kicked his string of rattlesnake rattles off his
20906ankle, and he wondered how he had escaped cramp so long without the
20907protection of this mysterious charm. He did not venture again until he
20908had found it, and by that time the other boys were tired and ready to
20909rest. They gradually wandered apart, dropped into the "dumps," and fell
20910to gazing longingly across the wide river to where the village lay
20911drowsing in the sun. Tom found himself writing "BECKY" in the sand with
20912his big toe; he scratched it out, and was angry with himself for his
20913weakness. But he wrote it again, nevertheless; he could not help it. He
20914erased it once more and then took himself out of temptation by driving
20915the other boys together and joining them.
20916
20917But Joe's spirits had gone down almost beyond resurrection. He was so
20918homesick that he could hardly endure the misery of it. The tears lay
20919very near the surface. Huck was melancholy, too. Tom was downhearted,
20920but tried hard not to show it. He had a secret which he was not ready
20921to tell, yet, but if this mutinous depression was not broken up soon,
20922he would have to bring it out. He said, with a great show of
20923cheerfulness:
20924
20925"I bet there's been pirates on this island before, boys. We'll explore
20926it again. They've hid treasures here somewhere. How'd you feel to light
20927on a rotten chest full of gold and silver--hey?"
20928
20929But it roused only faint enthusiasm, which faded out, with no reply.
20930Tom tried one or two other seductions; but they failed, too. It was
20931discouraging work. Joe sat poking up the sand with a stick and looking
20932very gloomy. Finally he said:
20933
20934"Oh, boys, let's give it up. I want to go home. It's so lonesome."
20935
20936"Oh no, Joe, you'll feel better by and by," said Tom. "Just think of
20937the fishing that's here."
20938
20939"I don't care for fishing. I want to go home."
20940
20941"But, Joe, there ain't such another swimming-place anywhere."
20942
20943"Swimming's no good. I don't seem to care for it, somehow, when there
20944ain't anybody to say I sha'n't go in. I mean to go home."
20945
20946"Oh, shucks! Baby! You want to see your mother, I reckon."
20947
20948"Yes, I DO want to see my mother--and you would, too, if you had one.
20949I ain't any more baby than you are." And Joe snuffled a little.
20950
20951"Well, we'll let the cry-baby go home to his mother, won't we, Huck?
20952Poor thing--does it want to see its mother? And so it shall. You like
20953it here, don't you, Huck? We'll stay, won't we?"
20954
20955Huck said, "Y-e-s"--without any heart in it.
20956
20957"I'll never speak to you again as long as I live," said Joe, rising.
20958"There now!" And he moved moodily away and began to dress himself.
20959
20960"Who cares!" said Tom. "Nobody wants you to. Go 'long home and get
20961laughed at. Oh, you're a nice pirate. Huck and me ain't cry-babies.
20962We'll stay, won't we, Huck? Let him go if he wants to. I reckon we can
20963get along without him, per'aps."
20964
20965But Tom was uneasy, nevertheless, and was alarmed to see Joe go
20966sullenly on with his dressing. And then it was discomforting to see
20967Huck eying Joe's preparations so wistfully, and keeping up such an
20968ominous silence. Presently, without a parting word, Joe began to wade
20969off toward the Illinois shore. Tom's heart began to sink. He glanced at
20970Huck. Huck could not bear the look, and dropped his eyes. Then he said:
20971
20972"I want to go, too, Tom. It was getting so lonesome anyway, and now
20973it'll be worse. Let's us go, too, Tom."
20974
20975"I won't! You can all go, if you want to. I mean to stay."
20976
20977"Tom, I better go."
20978
20979"Well, go 'long--who's hendering you."
20980
20981Huck began to pick up his scattered clothes. He said:
20982
20983"Tom, I wisht you'd come, too. Now you think it over. We'll wait for
20984you when we get to shore."
20985
20986"Well, you'll wait a blame long time, that's all."
20987
20988Huck started sorrowfully away, and Tom stood looking after him, with a
20989strong desire tugging at his heart to yield his pride and go along too.
20990He hoped the boys would stop, but they still waded slowly on. It
20991suddenly dawned on Tom that it was become very lonely and still. He
20992made one final struggle with his pride, and then darted after his
20993comrades, yelling:
20994
20995"Wait! Wait! I want to tell you something!"
20996
20997They presently stopped and turned around. When he got to where they
20998were, he began unfolding his secret, and they listened moodily till at
20999last they saw the "point" he was driving at, and then they set up a
21000war-whoop of applause and said it was "splendid!" and said if he had
21001told them at first, they wouldn't have started away. He made a plausible
21002excuse; but his real reason had been the fear that not even the secret
21003would keep them with him any very great length of time, and so he had
21004meant to hold it in reserve as a last seduction.
21005
21006The lads came gayly back and went at their sports again with a will,
21007chattering all the time about Tom's stupendous plan and admiring the
21008genius of it. After a dainty egg and fish dinner, Tom said he wanted to
21009learn to smoke, now. Joe caught at the idea and said he would like to
21010try, too. So Huck made pipes and filled them. These novices had never
21011smoked anything before but cigars made of grape-vine, and they "bit"
21012the tongue, and were not considered manly anyway.
21013
21014Now they stretched themselves out on their elbows and began to puff,
21015charily, and with slender confidence. The smoke had an unpleasant
21016taste, and they gagged a little, but Tom said:
21017
21018"Why, it's just as easy! If I'd a knowed this was all, I'd a learnt
21019long ago."
21020
21021"So would I," said Joe. "It's just nothing."
21022
21023"Why, many a time I've looked at people smoking, and thought well I
21024wish I could do that; but I never thought I could," said Tom.
21025
21026"That's just the way with me, hain't it, Huck? You've heard me talk
21027just that way--haven't you, Huck? I'll leave it to Huck if I haven't."
21028
21029"Yes--heaps of times," said Huck.
21030
21031"Well, I have too," said Tom; "oh, hundreds of times. Once down by the
21032slaughter-house. Don't you remember, Huck? Bob Tanner was there, and
21033Johnny Miller, and Jeff Thatcher, when I said it. Don't you remember,
21034Huck, 'bout me saying that?"
21035
21036"Yes, that's so," said Huck. "That was the day after I lost a white
21037alley. No, 'twas the day before."
21038
21039"There--I told you so," said Tom. "Huck recollects it."
21040
21041"I bleeve I could smoke this pipe all day," said Joe. "I don't feel
21042sick."
21043
21044"Neither do I," said Tom. "I could smoke it all day. But I bet you
21045Jeff Thatcher couldn't."
21046
21047"Jeff Thatcher! Why, he'd keel over just with two draws. Just let him
21048try it once. HE'D see!"
21049
21050"I bet he would. And Johnny Miller--I wish could see Johnny Miller
21051tackle it once."
21052
21053"Oh, don't I!" said Joe. "Why, I bet you Johnny Miller couldn't any
21054more do this than nothing. Just one little snifter would fetch HIM."
21055
21056"'Deed it would, Joe. Say--I wish the boys could see us now."
21057
21058"So do I."
21059
21060"Say--boys, don't say anything about it, and some time when they're
21061around, I'll come up to you and say, 'Joe, got a pipe? I want a smoke.'
21062And you'll say, kind of careless like, as if it warn't anything, you'll
21063say, 'Yes, I got my OLD pipe, and another one, but my tobacker ain't
21064very good.' And I'll say, 'Oh, that's all right, if it's STRONG
21065enough.' And then you'll out with the pipes, and we'll light up just as
21066ca'm, and then just see 'em look!"
21067
21068"By jings, that'll be gay, Tom! I wish it was NOW!"
21069
21070"So do I! And when we tell 'em we learned when we was off pirating,
21071won't they wish they'd been along?"
21072
21073"Oh, I reckon not! I'll just BET they will!"
21074
21075So the talk ran on. But presently it began to flag a trifle, and grow
21076disjointed. The silences widened; the expectoration marvellously
21077increased. Every pore inside the boys' cheeks became a spouting
21078fountain; they could scarcely bail out the cellars under their tongues
21079fast enough to prevent an inundation; little overflowings down their
21080throats occurred in spite of all they could do, and sudden retchings
21081followed every time. Both boys were looking very pale and miserable,
21082now. Joe's pipe dropped from his nerveless fingers. Tom's followed.
21083Both fountains were going furiously and both pumps bailing with might
21084and main. Joe said feebly:
21085
21086"I've lost my knife. I reckon I better go and find it."
21087
21088Tom said, with quivering lips and halting utterance:
21089
21090"I'll help you. You go over that way and I'll hunt around by the
21091spring. No, you needn't come, Huck--we can find it."
21092
21093So Huck sat down again, and waited an hour. Then he found it lonesome,
21094and went to find his comrades. They were wide apart in the woods, both
21095very pale, both fast asleep. But something informed him that if they
21096had had any trouble they had got rid of it.
21097
21098They were not talkative at supper that night. They had a humble look,
21099and when Huck prepared his pipe after the meal and was going to prepare
21100theirs, they said no, they were not feeling very well--something they
21101ate at dinner had disagreed with them.
21102
21103About midnight Joe awoke, and called the boys. There was a brooding
21104oppressiveness in the air that seemed to bode something. The boys
21105huddled themselves together and sought the friendly companionship of
21106the fire, though the dull dead heat of the breathless atmosphere was
21107stifling. They sat still, intent and waiting. The solemn hush
21108continued. Beyond the light of the fire everything was swallowed up in
21109the blackness of darkness. Presently there came a quivering glow that
21110vaguely revealed the foliage for a moment and then vanished. By and by
21111another came, a little stronger. Then another. Then a faint moan came
21112sighing through the branches of the forest and the boys felt a fleeting
21113breath upon their cheeks, and shuddered with the fancy that the Spirit
21114of the Night had gone by. There was a pause. Now a weird flash turned
21115night into day and showed every little grass-blade, separate and
21116distinct, that grew about their feet. And it showed three white,
21117startled faces, too. A deep peal of thunder went rolling and tumbling
21118down the heavens and lost itself in sullen rumblings in the distance. A
21119sweep of chilly air passed by, rustling all the leaves and snowing the
21120flaky ashes broadcast about the fire. Another fierce glare lit up the
21121forest and an instant crash followed that seemed to rend the tree-tops
21122right over the boys' heads. They clung together in terror, in the thick
21123gloom that followed. A few big rain-drops fell pattering upon the
21124leaves.
21125
21126"Quick! boys, go for the tent!" exclaimed Tom.
21127
21128They sprang away, stumbling over roots and among vines in the dark, no
21129two plunging in the same direction. A furious blast roared through the
21130trees, making everything sing as it went. One blinding flash after
21131another came, and peal on peal of deafening thunder. And now a
21132drenching rain poured down and the rising hurricane drove it in sheets
21133along the ground. The boys cried out to each other, but the roaring
21134wind and the booming thunder-blasts drowned their voices utterly.
21135However, one by one they straggled in at last and took shelter under
21136the tent, cold, scared, and streaming with water; but to have company
21137in misery seemed something to be grateful for. They could not talk, the
21138old sail flapped so furiously, even if the other noises would have
21139allowed them. The tempest rose higher and higher, and presently the
21140sail tore loose from its fastenings and went winging away on the blast.
21141The boys seized each others' hands and fled, with many tumblings and
21142bruises, to the shelter of a great oak that stood upon the river-bank.
21143Now the battle was at its highest. Under the ceaseless conflagration of
21144lightning that flamed in the skies, everything below stood out in
21145clean-cut and shadowless distinctness: the bending trees, the billowy
21146river, white with foam, the driving spray of spume-flakes, the dim
21147outlines of the high bluffs on the other side, glimpsed through the
21148drifting cloud-rack and the slanting veil of rain. Every little while
21149some giant tree yielded the fight and fell crashing through the younger
21150growth; and the unflagging thunder-peals came now in ear-splitting
21151explosive bursts, keen and sharp, and unspeakably appalling. The storm
21152culminated in one matchless effort that seemed likely to tear the island
21153to pieces, burn it up, drown it to the tree-tops, blow it away, and
21154deafen every creature in it, all at one and the same moment. It was a
21155wild night for homeless young heads to be out in.
21156
21157But at last the battle was done, and the forces retired with weaker
21158and weaker threatenings and grumblings, and peace resumed her sway. The
21159boys went back to camp, a good deal awed; but they found there was
21160still something to be thankful for, because the great sycamore, the
21161shelter of their beds, was a ruin, now, blasted by the lightnings, and
21162they were not under it when the catastrophe happened.
21163
21164Everything in camp was drenched, the camp-fire as well; for they were
21165but heedless lads, like their generation, and had made no provision
21166against rain. Here was matter for dismay, for they were soaked through
21167and chilled. They were eloquent in their distress; but they presently
21168discovered that the fire had eaten so far up under the great log it had
21169been built against (where it curved upward and separated itself from
21170the ground), that a handbreadth or so of it had escaped wetting; so
21171they patiently wrought until, with shreds and bark gathered from the
21172under sides of sheltered logs, they coaxed the fire to burn again. Then
21173they piled on great dead boughs till they had a roaring furnace, and
21174were glad-hearted once more. They dried their boiled ham and had a
21175feast, and after that they sat by the fire and expanded and glorified
21176their midnight adventure until morning, for there was not a dry spot to
21177sleep on, anywhere around.
21178
21179As the sun began to steal in upon the boys, drowsiness came over them,
21180and they went out on the sandbar and lay down to sleep. They got
21181scorched out by and by, and drearily set about getting breakfast. After
21182the meal they felt rusty, and stiff-jointed, and a little homesick once
21183more. Tom saw the signs, and fell to cheering up the pirates as well as
21184he could. But they cared nothing for marbles, or circus, or swimming,
21185or anything. He reminded them of the imposing secret, and raised a ray
21186of cheer. While it lasted, he got them interested in a new device. This
21187was to knock off being pirates, for a while, and be Indians for a
21188change. They were attracted by this idea; so it was not long before
21189they were stripped, and striped from head to heel with black mud, like
21190so many zebras--all of them chiefs, of course--and then they went
21191tearing through the woods to attack an English settlement.
21192
21193By and by they separated into three hostile tribes, and darted upon
21194each other from ambush with dreadful war-whoops, and killed and scalped
21195each other by thousands. It was a gory day. Consequently it was an
21196extremely satisfactory one.
21197
21198They assembled in camp toward supper-time, hungry and happy; but now a
21199difficulty arose--hostile Indians could not break the bread of
21200hospitality together without first making peace, and this was a simple
21201impossibility without smoking a pipe of peace. There was no other
21202process that ever they had heard of. Two of the savages almost wished
21203they had remained pirates. However, there was no other way; so with
21204such show of cheerfulness as they could muster they called for the pipe
21205and took their whiff as it passed, in due form.
21206
21207And behold, they were glad they had gone into savagery, for they had
21208gained something; they found that they could now smoke a little without
21209having to go and hunt for a lost knife; they did not get sick enough to
21210be seriously uncomfortable. They were not likely to fool away this high
21211promise for lack of effort. No, they practised cautiously, after
21212supper, with right fair success, and so they spent a jubilant evening.
21213They were prouder and happier in their new acquirement than they would
21214have been in the scalping and skinning of the Six Nations. We will
21215leave them to smoke and chatter and brag, since we have no further use
21216for them at present.
21217
21218
21219
21220CHAPTER XVII
21221
21222BUT there was no hilarity in the little town that same tranquil
21223Saturday afternoon. The Harpers, and Aunt Polly's family, were being
21224put into mourning, with great grief and many tears. An unusual quiet
21225possessed the village, although it was ordinarily quiet enough, in all
21226conscience. The villagers conducted their concerns with an absent air,
21227and talked little; but they sighed often. The Saturday holiday seemed a
21228burden to the children. They had no heart in their sports, and
21229gradually gave them up.
21230
21231In the afternoon Becky Thatcher found herself moping about the
21232deserted schoolhouse yard, and feeling very melancholy. But she found
21233nothing there to comfort her. She soliloquized:
21234
21235"Oh, if I only had a brass andiron-knob again! But I haven't got
21236anything now to remember him by." And she choked back a little sob.
21237
21238Presently she stopped, and said to herself:
21239
21240"It was right here. Oh, if it was to do over again, I wouldn't say
21241that--I wouldn't say it for the whole world. But he's gone now; I'll
21242never, never, never see him any more."
21243
21244This thought broke her down, and she wandered away, with tears rolling
21245down her cheeks. Then quite a group of boys and girls--playmates of
21246Tom's and Joe's--came by, and stood looking over the paling fence and
21247talking in reverent tones of how Tom did so-and-so the last time they
21248saw him, and how Joe said this and that small trifle (pregnant with
21249awful prophecy, as they could easily see now!)--and each speaker
21250pointed out the exact spot where the lost lads stood at the time, and
21251then added something like "and I was a-standing just so--just as I am
21252now, and as if you was him--I was as close as that--and he smiled, just
21253this way--and then something seemed to go all over me, like--awful, you
21254know--and I never thought what it meant, of course, but I can see now!"
21255
21256Then there was a dispute about who saw the dead boys last in life, and
21257many claimed that dismal distinction, and offered evidences, more or
21258less tampered with by the witness; and when it was ultimately decided
21259who DID see the departed last, and exchanged the last words with them,
21260the lucky parties took upon themselves a sort of sacred importance, and
21261were gaped at and envied by all the rest. One poor chap, who had no
21262other grandeur to offer, said with tolerably manifest pride in the
21263remembrance:
21264
21265"Well, Tom Sawyer he licked me once."
21266
21267But that bid for glory was a failure. Most of the boys could say that,
21268and so that cheapened the distinction too much. The group loitered
21269away, still recalling memories of the lost heroes, in awed voices.
21270
21271When the Sunday-school hour was finished, the next morning, the bell
21272began to toll, instead of ringing in the usual way. It was a very still
21273Sabbath, and the mournful sound seemed in keeping with the musing hush
21274that lay upon nature. The villagers began to gather, loitering a moment
21275in the vestibule to converse in whispers about the sad event. But there
21276was no whispering in the house; only the funereal rustling of dresses
21277as the women gathered to their seats disturbed the silence there. None
21278could remember when the little church had been so full before. There
21279was finally a waiting pause, an expectant dumbness, and then Aunt Polly
21280entered, followed by Sid and Mary, and they by the Harper family, all
21281in deep black, and the whole congregation, the old minister as well,
21282rose reverently and stood until the mourners were seated in the front
21283pew. There was another communing silence, broken at intervals by
21284muffled sobs, and then the minister spread his hands abroad and prayed.
21285A moving hymn was sung, and the text followed: "I am the Resurrection
21286and the Life."
21287
21288As the service proceeded, the clergyman drew such pictures of the
21289graces, the winning ways, and the rare promise of the lost lads that
21290every soul there, thinking he recognized these pictures, felt a pang in
21291remembering that he had persistently blinded himself to them always
21292before, and had as persistently seen only faults and flaws in the poor
21293boys. The minister related many a touching incident in the lives of the
21294departed, too, which illustrated their sweet, generous natures, and the
21295people could easily see, now, how noble and beautiful those episodes
21296were, and remembered with grief that at the time they occurred they had
21297seemed rank rascalities, well deserving of the cowhide. The
21298congregation became more and more moved, as the pathetic tale went on,
21299till at last the whole company broke down and joined the weeping
21300mourners in a chorus of anguished sobs, the preacher himself giving way
21301to his feelings, and crying in the pulpit.
21302
21303There was a rustle in the gallery, which nobody noticed; a moment
21304later the church door creaked; the minister raised his streaming eyes
21305above his handkerchief, and stood transfixed! First one and then
21306another pair of eyes followed the minister's, and then almost with one
21307impulse the congregation rose and stared while the three dead boys came
21308marching up the aisle, Tom in the lead, Joe next, and Huck, a ruin of
21309drooping rags, sneaking sheepishly in the rear! They had been hid in
21310the unused gallery listening to their own funeral sermon!
21311
21312Aunt Polly, Mary, and the Harpers threw themselves upon their restored
21313ones, smothered them with kisses and poured out thanksgivings, while
21314poor Huck stood abashed and uncomfortable, not knowing exactly what to
21315do or where to hide from so many unwelcoming eyes. He wavered, and
21316started to slink away, but Tom seized him and said:
21317
21318"Aunt Polly, it ain't fair. Somebody's got to be glad to see Huck."
21319
21320"And so they shall. I'm glad to see him, poor motherless thing!" And
21321the loving attentions Aunt Polly lavished upon him were the one thing
21322capable of making him more uncomfortable than he was before.
21323
21324Suddenly the minister shouted at the top of his voice: "Praise God
21325from whom all blessings flow--SING!--and put your hearts in it!"
21326
21327And they did. Old Hundred swelled up with a triumphant burst, and
21328while it shook the rafters Tom Sawyer the Pirate looked around upon the
21329envying juveniles about him and confessed in his heart that this was
21330the proudest moment of his life.
21331
21332As the "sold" congregation trooped out they said they would almost be
21333willing to be made ridiculous again to hear Old Hundred sung like that
21334once more.
21335
21336Tom got more cuffs and kisses that day--according to Aunt Polly's
21337varying moods--than he had earned before in a year; and he hardly knew
21338which expressed the most gratefulness to God and affection for himself.
21339
21340
21341
21342CHAPTER XVIII
21343
21344THAT was Tom's great secret--the scheme to return home with his
21345brother pirates and attend their own funerals. They had paddled over to
21346the Missouri shore on a log, at dusk on Saturday, landing five or six
21347miles below the village; they had slept in the woods at the edge of the
21348town till nearly daylight, and had then crept through back lanes and
21349alleys and finished their sleep in the gallery of the church among a
21350chaos of invalided benches.
21351
21352At breakfast, Monday morning, Aunt Polly and Mary were very loving to
21353Tom, and very attentive to his wants. There was an unusual amount of
21354talk. In the course of it Aunt Polly said:
21355
21356"Well, I don't say it wasn't a fine joke, Tom, to keep everybody
21357suffering 'most a week so you boys had a good time, but it is a pity
21358you could be so hard-hearted as to let me suffer so. If you could come
21359over on a log to go to your funeral, you could have come over and give
21360me a hint some way that you warn't dead, but only run off."
21361
21362"Yes, you could have done that, Tom," said Mary; "and I believe you
21363would if you had thought of it."
21364
21365"Would you, Tom?" said Aunt Polly, her face lighting wistfully. "Say,
21366now, would you, if you'd thought of it?"
21367
21368"I--well, I don't know. 'Twould 'a' spoiled everything."
21369
21370"Tom, I hoped you loved me that much," said Aunt Polly, with a grieved
21371tone that discomforted the boy. "It would have been something if you'd
21372cared enough to THINK of it, even if you didn't DO it."
21373
21374"Now, auntie, that ain't any harm," pleaded Mary; "it's only Tom's
21375giddy way--he is always in such a rush that he never thinks of
21376anything."
21377
21378"More's the pity. Sid would have thought. And Sid would have come and
21379DONE it, too. Tom, you'll look back, some day, when it's too late, and
21380wish you'd cared a little more for me when it would have cost you so
21381little."
21382
21383"Now, auntie, you know I do care for you," said Tom.
21384
21385"I'd know it better if you acted more like it."
21386
21387"I wish now I'd thought," said Tom, with a repentant tone; "but I
21388dreamt about you, anyway. That's something, ain't it?"
21389
21390"It ain't much--a cat does that much--but it's better than nothing.
21391What did you dream?"
21392
21393"Why, Wednesday night I dreamt that you was sitting over there by the
21394bed, and Sid was sitting by the woodbox, and Mary next to him."
21395
21396"Well, so we did. So we always do. I'm glad your dreams could take
21397even that much trouble about us."
21398
21399"And I dreamt that Joe Harper's mother was here."
21400
21401"Why, she was here! Did you dream any more?"
21402
21403"Oh, lots. But it's so dim, now."
21404
21405"Well, try to recollect--can't you?"
21406
21407"Somehow it seems to me that the wind--the wind blowed the--the--"
21408
21409"Try harder, Tom! The wind did blow something. Come!"
21410
21411Tom pressed his fingers on his forehead an anxious minute, and then
21412said:
21413
21414"I've got it now! I've got it now! It blowed the candle!"
21415
21416"Mercy on us! Go on, Tom--go on!"
21417
21418"And it seems to me that you said, 'Why, I believe that that door--'"
21419
21420"Go ON, Tom!"
21421
21422"Just let me study a moment--just a moment. Oh, yes--you said you
21423believed the door was open."
21424
21425"As I'm sitting here, I did! Didn't I, Mary! Go on!"
21426
21427"And then--and then--well I won't be certain, but it seems like as if
21428you made Sid go and--and--"
21429
21430"Well? Well? What did I make him do, Tom? What did I make him do?"
21431
21432"You made him--you--Oh, you made him shut it."
21433
21434"Well, for the land's sake! I never heard the beat of that in all my
21435days! Don't tell ME there ain't anything in dreams, any more. Sereny
21436Harper shall know of this before I'm an hour older. I'd like to see her
21437get around THIS with her rubbage 'bout superstition. Go on, Tom!"
21438
21439"Oh, it's all getting just as bright as day, now. Next you said I
21440warn't BAD, only mischeevous and harum-scarum, and not any more
21441responsible than--than--I think it was a colt, or something."
21442
21443"And so it was! Well, goodness gracious! Go on, Tom!"
21444
21445"And then you began to cry."
21446
21447"So I did. So I did. Not the first time, neither. And then--"
21448
21449"Then Mrs. Harper she began to cry, and said Joe was just the same,
21450and she wished she hadn't whipped him for taking cream when she'd
21451throwed it out her own self--"
21452
21453"Tom! The sperrit was upon you! You was a prophesying--that's what you
21454was doing! Land alive, go on, Tom!"
21455
21456"Then Sid he said--he said--"
21457
21458"I don't think I said anything," said Sid.
21459
21460"Yes you did, Sid," said Mary.
21461
21462"Shut your heads and let Tom go on! What did he say, Tom?"
21463
21464"He said--I THINK he said he hoped I was better off where I was gone
21465to, but if I'd been better sometimes--"
21466
21467"THERE, d'you hear that! It was his very words!"
21468
21469"And you shut him up sharp."
21470
21471"I lay I did! There must 'a' been an angel there. There WAS an angel
21472there, somewheres!"
21473
21474"And Mrs. Harper told about Joe scaring her with a firecracker, and
21475you told about Peter and the Painkiller--"
21476
21477"Just as true as I live!"
21478
21479"And then there was a whole lot of talk 'bout dragging the river for
21480us, and 'bout having the funeral Sunday, and then you and old Miss
21481Harper hugged and cried, and she went."
21482
21483"It happened just so! It happened just so, as sure as I'm a-sitting in
21484these very tracks. Tom, you couldn't told it more like if you'd 'a'
21485seen it! And then what? Go on, Tom!"
21486
21487"Then I thought you prayed for me--and I could see you and hear every
21488word you said. And you went to bed, and I was so sorry that I took and
21489wrote on a piece of sycamore bark, 'We ain't dead--we are only off
21490being pirates,' and put it on the table by the candle; and then you
21491looked so good, laying there asleep, that I thought I went and leaned
21492over and kissed you on the lips."
21493
21494"Did you, Tom, DID you! I just forgive you everything for that!" And
21495she seized the boy in a crushing embrace that made him feel like the
21496guiltiest of villains.
21497
21498"It was very kind, even though it was only a--dream," Sid soliloquized
21499just audibly.
21500
21501"Shut up, Sid! A body does just the same in a dream as he'd do if he
21502was awake. Here's a big Milum apple I've been saving for you, Tom, if
21503you was ever found again--now go 'long to school. I'm thankful to the
21504good God and Father of us all I've got you back, that's long-suffering
21505and merciful to them that believe on Him and keep His word, though
21506goodness knows I'm unworthy of it, but if only the worthy ones got His
21507blessings and had His hand to help them over the rough places, there's
21508few enough would smile here or ever enter into His rest when the long
21509night comes. Go 'long Sid, Mary, Tom--take yourselves off--you've
21510hendered me long enough."
21511
21512The children left for school, and the old lady to call on Mrs. Harper
21513and vanquish her realism with Tom's marvellous dream. Sid had better
21514judgment than to utter the thought that was in his mind as he left the
21515house. It was this: "Pretty thin--as long a dream as that, without any
21516mistakes in it!"
21517
21518What a hero Tom was become, now! He did not go skipping and prancing,
21519but moved with a dignified swagger as became a pirate who felt that the
21520public eye was on him. And indeed it was; he tried not to seem to see
21521the looks or hear the remarks as he passed along, but they were food
21522and drink to him. Smaller boys than himself flocked at his heels, as
21523proud to be seen with him, and tolerated by him, as if he had been the
21524drummer at the head of a procession or the elephant leading a menagerie
21525into town. Boys of his own size pretended not to know he had been away
21526at all; but they were consuming with envy, nevertheless. They would
21527have given anything to have that swarthy suntanned skin of his, and his
21528glittering notoriety; and Tom would not have parted with either for a
21529circus.
21530
21531At school the children made so much of him and of Joe, and delivered
21532such eloquent admiration from their eyes, that the two heroes were not
21533long in becoming insufferably "stuck-up." They began to tell their
21534adventures to hungry listeners--but they only began; it was not a thing
21535likely to have an end, with imaginations like theirs to furnish
21536material. And finally, when they got out their pipes and went serenely
21537puffing around, the very summit of glory was reached.
21538
21539Tom decided that he could be independent of Becky Thatcher now. Glory
21540was sufficient. He would live for glory. Now that he was distinguished,
21541maybe she would be wanting to "make up." Well, let her--she should see
21542that he could be as indifferent as some other people. Presently she
21543arrived. Tom pretended not to see her. He moved away and joined a group
21544of boys and girls and began to talk. Soon he observed that she was
21545tripping gayly back and forth with flushed face and dancing eyes,
21546pretending to be busy chasing schoolmates, and screaming with laughter
21547when she made a capture; but he noticed that she always made her
21548captures in his vicinity, and that she seemed to cast a conscious eye
21549in his direction at such times, too. It gratified all the vicious
21550vanity that was in him; and so, instead of winning him, it only "set
21551him up" the more and made him the more diligent to avoid betraying that
21552he knew she was about. Presently she gave over skylarking, and moved
21553irresolutely about, sighing once or twice and glancing furtively and
21554wistfully toward Tom. Then she observed that now Tom was talking more
21555particularly to Amy Lawrence than to any one else. She felt a sharp
21556pang and grew disturbed and uneasy at once. She tried to go away, but
21557her feet were treacherous, and carried her to the group instead. She
21558said to a girl almost at Tom's elbow--with sham vivacity:
21559
21560"Why, Mary Austin! you bad girl, why didn't you come to Sunday-school?"
21561
21562"I did come--didn't you see me?"
21563
21564"Why, no! Did you? Where did you sit?"
21565
21566"I was in Miss Peters' class, where I always go. I saw YOU."
21567
21568"Did you? Why, it's funny I didn't see you. I wanted to tell you about
21569the picnic."
21570
21571"Oh, that's jolly. Who's going to give it?"
21572
21573"My ma's going to let me have one."
21574
21575"Oh, goody; I hope she'll let ME come."
21576
21577"Well, she will. The picnic's for me. She'll let anybody come that I
21578want, and I want you."
21579
21580"That's ever so nice. When is it going to be?"
21581
21582"By and by. Maybe about vacation."
21583
21584"Oh, won't it be fun! You going to have all the girls and boys?"
21585
21586"Yes, every one that's friends to me--or wants to be"; and she glanced
21587ever so furtively at Tom, but he talked right along to Amy Lawrence
21588about the terrible storm on the island, and how the lightning tore the
21589great sycamore tree "all to flinders" while he was "standing within
21590three feet of it."
21591
21592"Oh, may I come?" said Grace Miller.
21593
21594"Yes."
21595
21596"And me?" said Sally Rogers.
21597
21598"Yes."
21599
21600"And me, too?" said Susy Harper. "And Joe?"
21601
21602"Yes."
21603
21604And so on, with clapping of joyful hands till all the group had begged
21605for invitations but Tom and Amy. Then Tom turned coolly away, still
21606talking, and took Amy with him. Becky's lips trembled and the tears
21607came to her eyes; she hid these signs with a forced gayety and went on
21608chattering, but the life had gone out of the picnic, now, and out of
21609everything else; she got away as soon as she could and hid herself and
21610had what her sex call "a good cry." Then she sat moody, with wounded
21611pride, till the bell rang. She roused up, now, with a vindictive cast
21612in her eye, and gave her plaited tails a shake and said she knew what
21613SHE'D do.
21614
21615At recess Tom continued his flirtation with Amy with jubilant
21616self-satisfaction. And he kept drifting about to find Becky and lacerate
21617her with the performance. At last he spied her, but there was a sudden
21618falling of his mercury. She was sitting cosily on a little bench behind
21619the schoolhouse looking at a picture-book with Alfred Temple--and so
21620absorbed were they, and their heads so close together over the book,
21621that they did not seem to be conscious of anything in the world besides.
21622Jealousy ran red-hot through Tom's veins. He began to hate himself for
21623throwing away the chance Becky had offered for a reconciliation. He
21624called himself a fool, and all the hard names he could think of. He
21625wanted to cry with vexation. Amy chatted happily along, as they walked,
21626for her heart was singing, but Tom's tongue had lost its function. He
21627did not hear what Amy was saying, and whenever she paused expectantly he
21628could only stammer an awkward assent, which was as often misplaced as
21629otherwise. He kept drifting to the rear of the schoolhouse, again and
21630again, to sear his eyeballs with the hateful spectacle there. He could
21631not help it. And it maddened him to see, as he thought he saw, that
21632Becky Thatcher never once suspected that he was even in the land of the
21633living. But she did see, nevertheless; and she knew she was winning her
21634fight, too, and was glad to see him suffer as she had suffered.
21635
21636Amy's happy prattle became intolerable. Tom hinted at things he had to
21637attend to; things that must be done; and time was fleeting. But in
21638vain--the girl chirped on. Tom thought, "Oh, hang her, ain't I ever
21639going to get rid of her?" At last he must be attending to those
21640things--and she said artlessly that she would be "around" when school
21641let out. And he hastened away, hating her for it.
21642
21643"Any other boy!" Tom thought, grating his teeth. "Any boy in the whole
21644town but that Saint Louis smarty that thinks he dresses so fine and is
21645aristocracy! Oh, all right, I licked you the first day you ever saw
21646this town, mister, and I'll lick you again! You just wait till I catch
21647you out! I'll just take and--"
21648
21649And he went through the motions of thrashing an imaginary boy
21650--pummelling the air, and kicking and gouging. "Oh, you do, do you? You
21651holler 'nough, do you? Now, then, let that learn you!" And so the
21652imaginary flogging was finished to his satisfaction.
21653
21654Tom fled home at noon. His conscience could not endure any more of
21655Amy's grateful happiness, and his jealousy could bear no more of the
21656other distress. Becky resumed her picture inspections with Alfred, but
21657as the minutes dragged along and no Tom came to suffer, her triumph
21658began to cloud and she lost interest; gravity and absent-mindedness
21659followed, and then melancholy; two or three times she pricked up her
21660ear at a footstep, but it was a false hope; no Tom came. At last she
21661grew entirely miserable and wished she hadn't carried it so far. When
21662poor Alfred, seeing that he was losing her, he did not know how, kept
21663exclaiming: "Oh, here's a jolly one! look at this!" she lost patience
21664at last, and said, "Oh, don't bother me! I don't care for them!" and
21665burst into tears, and got up and walked away.
21666
21667Alfred dropped alongside and was going to try to comfort her, but she
21668said:
21669
21670"Go away and leave me alone, can't you! I hate you!"
21671
21672So the boy halted, wondering what he could have done--for she had said
21673she would look at pictures all through the nooning--and she walked on,
21674crying. Then Alfred went musing into the deserted schoolhouse. He was
21675humiliated and angry. He easily guessed his way to the truth--the girl
21676had simply made a convenience of him to vent her spite upon Tom Sawyer.
21677He was far from hating Tom the less when this thought occurred to him.
21678He wished there was some way to get that boy into trouble without much
21679risk to himself. Tom's spelling-book fell under his eye. Here was his
21680opportunity. He gratefully opened to the lesson for the afternoon and
21681poured ink upon the page.
21682
21683Becky, glancing in at a window behind him at the moment, saw the act,
21684and moved on, without discovering herself. She started homeward, now,
21685intending to find Tom and tell him; Tom would be thankful and their
21686troubles would be healed. Before she was half way home, however, she
21687had changed her mind. The thought of Tom's treatment of her when she
21688was talking about her picnic came scorching back and filled her with
21689shame. She resolved to let him get whipped on the damaged
21690spelling-book's account, and to hate him forever, into the bargain.
21691
21692
21693
21694CHAPTER XIX
21695
21696TOM arrived at home in a dreary mood, and the first thing his aunt
21697said to him showed him that he had brought his sorrows to an
21698unpromising market:
21699
21700"Tom, I've a notion to skin you alive!"
21701
21702"Auntie, what have I done?"
21703
21704"Well, you've done enough. Here I go over to Sereny Harper, like an
21705old softy, expecting I'm going to make her believe all that rubbage
21706about that dream, when lo and behold you she'd found out from Joe that
21707you was over here and heard all the talk we had that night. Tom, I
21708don't know what is to become of a boy that will act like that. It makes
21709me feel so bad to think you could let me go to Sereny Harper and make
21710such a fool of myself and never say a word."
21711
21712This was a new aspect of the thing. His smartness of the morning had
21713seemed to Tom a good joke before, and very ingenious. It merely looked
21714mean and shabby now. He hung his head and could not think of anything
21715to say for a moment. Then he said:
21716
21717"Auntie, I wish I hadn't done it--but I didn't think."
21718
21719"Oh, child, you never think. You never think of anything but your own
21720selfishness. You could think to come all the way over here from
21721Jackson's Island in the night to laugh at our troubles, and you could
21722think to fool me with a lie about a dream; but you couldn't ever think
21723to pity us and save us from sorrow."
21724
21725"Auntie, I know now it was mean, but I didn't mean to be mean. I
21726didn't, honest. And besides, I didn't come over here to laugh at you
21727that night."
21728
21729"What did you come for, then?"
21730
21731"It was to tell you not to be uneasy about us, because we hadn't got
21732drownded."
21733
21734"Tom, Tom, I would be the thankfullest soul in this world if I could
21735believe you ever had as good a thought as that, but you know you never
21736did--and I know it, Tom."
21737
21738"Indeed and 'deed I did, auntie--I wish I may never stir if I didn't."
21739
21740"Oh, Tom, don't lie--don't do it. It only makes things a hundred times
21741worse."
21742
21743"It ain't a lie, auntie; it's the truth. I wanted to keep you from
21744grieving--that was all that made me come."
21745
21746"I'd give the whole world to believe that--it would cover up a power
21747of sins, Tom. I'd 'most be glad you'd run off and acted so bad. But it
21748ain't reasonable; because, why didn't you tell me, child?"
21749
21750"Why, you see, when you got to talking about the funeral, I just got
21751all full of the idea of our coming and hiding in the church, and I
21752couldn't somehow bear to spoil it. So I just put the bark back in my
21753pocket and kept mum."
21754
21755"What bark?"
21756
21757"The bark I had wrote on to tell you we'd gone pirating. I wish, now,
21758you'd waked up when I kissed you--I do, honest."
21759
21760The hard lines in his aunt's face relaxed and a sudden tenderness
21761dawned in her eyes.
21762
21763"DID you kiss me, Tom?"
21764
21765"Why, yes, I did."
21766
21767"Are you sure you did, Tom?"
21768
21769"Why, yes, I did, auntie--certain sure."
21770
21771"What did you kiss me for, Tom?"
21772
21773"Because I loved you so, and you laid there moaning and I was so sorry."
21774
21775The words sounded like truth. The old lady could not hide a tremor in
21776her voice when she said:
21777
21778"Kiss me again, Tom!--and be off with you to school, now, and don't
21779bother me any more."
21780
21781The moment he was gone, she ran to a closet and got out the ruin of a
21782jacket which Tom had gone pirating in. Then she stopped, with it in her
21783hand, and said to herself:
21784
21785"No, I don't dare. Poor boy, I reckon he's lied about it--but it's a
21786blessed, blessed lie, there's such a comfort come from it. I hope the
21787Lord--I KNOW the Lord will forgive him, because it was such
21788goodheartedness in him to tell it. But I don't want to find out it's a
21789lie. I won't look."
21790
21791She put the jacket away, and stood by musing a minute. Twice she put
21792out her hand to take the garment again, and twice she refrained. Once
21793more she ventured, and this time she fortified herself with the
21794thought: "It's a good lie--it's a good lie--I won't let it grieve me."
21795So she sought the jacket pocket. A moment later she was reading Tom's
21796piece of bark through flowing tears and saying: "I could forgive the
21797boy, now, if he'd committed a million sins!"
21798
21799
21800
21801CHAPTER XX
21802
21803THERE was something about Aunt Polly's manner, when she kissed Tom,
21804that swept away his low spirits and made him lighthearted and happy
21805again. He started to school and had the luck of coming upon Becky
21806Thatcher at the head of Meadow Lane. His mood always determined his
21807manner. Without a moment's hesitation he ran to her and said:
21808
21809"I acted mighty mean to-day, Becky, and I'm so sorry. I won't ever,
21810ever do that way again, as long as ever I live--please make up, won't
21811you?"
21812
21813The girl stopped and looked him scornfully in the face:
21814
21815"I'll thank you to keep yourself TO yourself, Mr. Thomas Sawyer. I'll
21816never speak to you again."
21817
21818She tossed her head and passed on. Tom was so stunned that he had not
21819even presence of mind enough to say "Who cares, Miss Smarty?" until the
21820right time to say it had gone by. So he said nothing. But he was in a
21821fine rage, nevertheless. He moped into the schoolyard wishing she were
21822a boy, and imagining how he would trounce her if she were. He presently
21823encountered her and delivered a stinging remark as he passed. She
21824hurled one in return, and the angry breach was complete. It seemed to
21825Becky, in her hot resentment, that she could hardly wait for school to
21826"take in," she was so impatient to see Tom flogged for the injured
21827spelling-book. If she had had any lingering notion of exposing Alfred
21828Temple, Tom's offensive fling had driven it entirely away.
21829
21830Poor girl, she did not know how fast she was nearing trouble herself.
21831The master, Mr. Dobbins, had reached middle age with an unsatisfied
21832ambition. The darling of his desires was, to be a doctor, but poverty
21833had decreed that he should be nothing higher than a village
21834schoolmaster. Every day he took a mysterious book out of his desk and
21835absorbed himself in it at times when no classes were reciting. He kept
21836that book under lock and key. There was not an urchin in school but was
21837perishing to have a glimpse of it, but the chance never came. Every boy
21838and girl had a theory about the nature of that book; but no two
21839theories were alike, and there was no way of getting at the facts in
21840the case. Now, as Becky was passing by the desk, which stood near the
21841door, she noticed that the key was in the lock! It was a precious
21842moment. She glanced around; found herself alone, and the next instant
21843she had the book in her hands. The title-page--Professor Somebody's
21844ANATOMY--carried no information to her mind; so she began to turn the
21845leaves. She came at once upon a handsomely engraved and colored
21846frontispiece--a human figure, stark naked. At that moment a shadow fell
21847on the page and Tom Sawyer stepped in at the door and caught a glimpse
21848of the picture. Becky snatched at the book to close it, and had the
21849hard luck to tear the pictured page half down the middle. She thrust
21850the volume into the desk, turned the key, and burst out crying with
21851shame and vexation.
21852
21853"Tom Sawyer, you are just as mean as you can be, to sneak up on a
21854person and look at what they're looking at."
21855
21856"How could I know you was looking at anything?"
21857
21858"You ought to be ashamed of yourself, Tom Sawyer; you know you're
21859going to tell on me, and oh, what shall I do, what shall I do! I'll be
21860whipped, and I never was whipped in school."
21861
21862Then she stamped her little foot and said:
21863
21864"BE so mean if you want to! I know something that's going to happen.
21865You just wait and you'll see! Hateful, hateful, hateful!"--and she
21866flung out of the house with a new explosion of crying.
21867
21868Tom stood still, rather flustered by this onslaught. Presently he said
21869to himself:
21870
21871"What a curious kind of a fool a girl is! Never been licked in school!
21872Shucks! What's a licking! That's just like a girl--they're so
21873thin-skinned and chicken-hearted. Well, of course I ain't going to tell
21874old Dobbins on this little fool, because there's other ways of getting
21875even on her, that ain't so mean; but what of it? Old Dobbins will ask
21876who it was tore his book. Nobody'll answer. Then he'll do just the way
21877he always does--ask first one and then t'other, and when he comes to the
21878right girl he'll know it, without any telling. Girls' faces always tell
21879on them. They ain't got any backbone. She'll get licked. Well, it's a
21880kind of a tight place for Becky Thatcher, because there ain't any way
21881out of it." Tom conned the thing a moment longer, and then added: "All
21882right, though; she'd like to see me in just such a fix--let her sweat it
21883out!"
21884
21885Tom joined the mob of skylarking scholars outside. In a few moments
21886the master arrived and school "took in." Tom did not feel a strong
21887interest in his studies. Every time he stole a glance at the girls'
21888side of the room Becky's face troubled him. Considering all things, he
21889did not want to pity her, and yet it was all he could do to help it. He
21890could get up no exultation that was really worthy the name. Presently
21891the spelling-book discovery was made, and Tom's mind was entirely full
21892of his own matters for a while after that. Becky roused up from her
21893lethargy of distress and showed good interest in the proceedings. She
21894did not expect that Tom could get out of his trouble by denying that he
21895spilt the ink on the book himself; and she was right. The denial only
21896seemed to make the thing worse for Tom. Becky supposed she would be
21897glad of that, and she tried to believe she was glad of it, but she
21898found she was not certain. When the worst came to the worst, she had an
21899impulse to get up and tell on Alfred Temple, but she made an effort and
21900forced herself to keep still--because, said she to herself, "he'll tell
21901about me tearing the picture sure. I wouldn't say a word, not to save
21902his life!"
21903
21904Tom took his whipping and went back to his seat not at all
21905broken-hearted, for he thought it was possible that he had unknowingly
21906upset the ink on the spelling-book himself, in some skylarking bout--he
21907had denied it for form's sake and because it was custom, and had stuck
21908to the denial from principle.
21909
21910A whole hour drifted by, the master sat nodding in his throne, the air
21911was drowsy with the hum of study. By and by, Mr. Dobbins straightened
21912himself up, yawned, then unlocked his desk, and reached for his book,
21913but seemed undecided whether to take it out or leave it. Most of the
21914pupils glanced up languidly, but there were two among them that watched
21915his movements with intent eyes. Mr. Dobbins fingered his book absently
21916for a while, then took it out and settled himself in his chair to read!
21917Tom shot a glance at Becky. He had seen a hunted and helpless rabbit
21918look as she did, with a gun levelled at its head. Instantly he forgot
21919his quarrel with her. Quick--something must be done! done in a flash,
21920too! But the very imminence of the emergency paralyzed his invention.
21921Good!--he had an inspiration! He would run and snatch the book, spring
21922through the door and fly. But his resolution shook for one little
21923instant, and the chance was lost--the master opened the volume. If Tom
21924only had the wasted opportunity back again! Too late. There was no help
21925for Becky now, he said. The next moment the master faced the school.
21926Every eye sank under his gaze. There was that in it which smote even
21927the innocent with fear. There was silence while one might count ten
21928--the master was gathering his wrath. Then he spoke: "Who tore this book?"
21929
21930There was not a sound. One could have heard a pin drop. The stillness
21931continued; the master searched face after face for signs of guilt.
21932
21933"Benjamin Rogers, did you tear this book?"
21934
21935A denial. Another pause.
21936
21937"Joseph Harper, did you?"
21938
21939Another denial. Tom's uneasiness grew more and more intense under the
21940slow torture of these proceedings. The master scanned the ranks of
21941boys--considered a while, then turned to the girls:
21942
21943"Amy Lawrence?"
21944
21945A shake of the head.
21946
21947"Gracie Miller?"
21948
21949The same sign.
21950
21951"Susan Harper, did you do this?"
21952
21953Another negative. The next girl was Becky Thatcher. Tom was trembling
21954from head to foot with excitement and a sense of the hopelessness of
21955the situation.
21956
21957"Rebecca Thatcher" [Tom glanced at her face--it was white with terror]
21958--"did you tear--no, look me in the face" [her hands rose in appeal]
21959--"did you tear this book?"
21960
21961A thought shot like lightning through Tom's brain. He sprang to his
21962feet and shouted--"I done it!"
21963
21964The school stared in perplexity at this incredible folly. Tom stood a
21965moment, to gather his dismembered faculties; and when he stepped
21966forward to go to his punishment the surprise, the gratitude, the
21967adoration that shone upon him out of poor Becky's eyes seemed pay
21968enough for a hundred floggings. Inspired by the splendor of his own
21969act, he took without an outcry the most merciless flaying that even Mr.
21970Dobbins had ever administered; and also received with indifference the
21971added cruelty of a command to remain two hours after school should be
21972dismissed--for he knew who would wait for him outside till his
21973captivity was done, and not count the tedious time as loss, either.
21974
21975Tom went to bed that night planning vengeance against Alfred Temple;
21976for with shame and repentance Becky had told him all, not forgetting
21977her own treachery; but even the longing for vengeance had to give way,
21978soon, to pleasanter musings, and he fell asleep at last with Becky's
21979latest words lingering dreamily in his ear--
21980
21981"Tom, how COULD you be so noble!"
21982
21983
21984
21985CHAPTER XXI
21986
21987VACATION was approaching. The schoolmaster, always severe, grew
21988severer and more exacting than ever, for he wanted the school to make a
21989good showing on "Examination" day. His rod and his ferule were seldom
21990idle now--at least among the smaller pupils. Only the biggest boys, and
21991young ladies of eighteen and twenty, escaped lashing. Mr. Dobbins'
21992lashings were very vigorous ones, too; for although he carried, under
21993his wig, a perfectly bald and shiny head, he had only reached middle
21994age, and there was no sign of feebleness in his muscle. As the great
21995day approached, all the tyranny that was in him came to the surface; he
21996seemed to take a vindictive pleasure in punishing the least
21997shortcomings. The consequence was, that the smaller boys spent their
21998days in terror and suffering and their nights in plotting revenge. They
21999threw away no opportunity to do the master a mischief. But he kept
22000ahead all the time. The retribution that followed every vengeful
22001success was so sweeping and majestic that the boys always retired from
22002the field badly worsted. At last they conspired together and hit upon a
22003plan that promised a dazzling victory. They swore in the sign-painter's
22004boy, told him the scheme, and asked his help. He had his own reasons
22005for being delighted, for the master boarded in his father's family and
22006had given the boy ample cause to hate him. The master's wife would go
22007on a visit to the country in a few days, and there would be nothing to
22008interfere with the plan; the master always prepared himself for great
22009occasions by getting pretty well fuddled, and the sign-painter's boy
22010said that when the dominie had reached the proper condition on
22011Examination Evening he would "manage the thing" while he napped in his
22012chair; then he would have him awakened at the right time and hurried
22013away to school.
22014
22015In the fulness of time the interesting occasion arrived. At eight in
22016the evening the schoolhouse was brilliantly lighted, and adorned with
22017wreaths and festoons of foliage and flowers. The master sat throned in
22018his great chair upon a raised platform, with his blackboard behind him.
22019He was looking tolerably mellow. Three rows of benches on each side and
22020six rows in front of him were occupied by the dignitaries of the town
22021and by the parents of the pupils. To his left, back of the rows of
22022citizens, was a spacious temporary platform upon which were seated the
22023scholars who were to take part in the exercises of the evening; rows of
22024small boys, washed and dressed to an intolerable state of discomfort;
22025rows of gawky big boys; snowbanks of girls and young ladies clad in
22026lawn and muslin and conspicuously conscious of their bare arms, their
22027grandmothers' ancient trinkets, their bits of pink and blue ribbon and
22028the flowers in their hair. All the rest of the house was filled with
22029non-participating scholars.
22030
22031The exercises began. A very little boy stood up and sheepishly
22032recited, "You'd scarce expect one of my age to speak in public on the
22033stage," etc.--accompanying himself with the painfully exact and
22034spasmodic gestures which a machine might have used--supposing the
22035machine to be a trifle out of order. But he got through safely, though
22036cruelly scared, and got a fine round of applause when he made his
22037manufactured bow and retired.
22038
22039A little shamefaced girl lisped, "Mary had a little lamb," etc.,
22040performed a compassion-inspiring curtsy, got her meed of applause, and
22041sat down flushed and happy.
22042
22043Tom Sawyer stepped forward with conceited confidence and soared into
22044the unquenchable and indestructible "Give me liberty or give me death"
22045speech, with fine fury and frantic gesticulation, and broke down in the
22046middle of it. A ghastly stage-fright seized him, his legs quaked under
22047him and he was like to choke. True, he had the manifest sympathy of the
22048house but he had the house's silence, too, which was even worse than
22049its sympathy. The master frowned, and this completed the disaster. Tom
22050struggled awhile and then retired, utterly defeated. There was a weak
22051attempt at applause, but it died early.
22052
22053"The Boy Stood on the Burning Deck" followed; also "The Assyrian Came
22054Down," and other declamatory gems. Then there were reading exercises,
22055and a spelling fight. The meagre Latin class recited with honor. The
22056prime feature of the evening was in order, now--original "compositions"
22057by the young ladies. Each in her turn stepped forward to the edge of
22058the platform, cleared her throat, held up her manuscript (tied with
22059dainty ribbon), and proceeded to read, with labored attention to
22060"expression" and punctuation. The themes were the same that had been
22061illuminated upon similar occasions by their mothers before them, their
22062grandmothers, and doubtless all their ancestors in the female line
22063clear back to the Crusades. "Friendship" was one; "Memories of Other
22064Days"; "Religion in History"; "Dream Land"; "The Advantages of
22065Culture"; "Forms of Political Government Compared and Contrasted";
22066"Melancholy"; "Filial Love"; "Heart Longings," etc., etc.
22067
22068A prevalent feature in these compositions was a nursed and petted
22069melancholy; another was a wasteful and opulent gush of "fine language";
22070another was a tendency to lug in by the ears particularly prized words
22071and phrases until they were worn entirely out; and a peculiarity that
22072conspicuously marked and marred them was the inveterate and intolerable
22073sermon that wagged its crippled tail at the end of each and every one
22074of them. No matter what the subject might be, a brain-racking effort
22075was made to squirm it into some aspect or other that the moral and
22076religious mind could contemplate with edification. The glaring
22077insincerity of these sermons was not sufficient to compass the
22078banishment of the fashion from the schools, and it is not sufficient
22079to-day; it never will be sufficient while the world stands, perhaps.
22080There is no school in all our land where the young ladies do not feel
22081obliged to close their compositions with a sermon; and you will find
22082that the sermon of the most frivolous and the least religious girl in
22083the school is always the longest and the most relentlessly pious. But
22084enough of this. Homely truth is unpalatable.
22085
22086Let us return to the "Examination." The first composition that was
22087read was one entitled "Is this, then, Life?" Perhaps the reader can
22088endure an extract from it:
22089
22090  "In the common walks of life, with what delightful
22091   emotions does the youthful mind look forward to some
22092   anticipated scene of festivity! Imagination is busy
22093   sketching rose-tinted pictures of joy. In fancy, the
22094   voluptuous votary of fashion sees herself amid the
22095   festive throng, 'the observed of all observers.' Her
22096   graceful form, arrayed in snowy robes, is whirling
22097   through the mazes of the joyous dance; her eye is
22098   brightest, her step is lightest in the gay assembly.
22099
22100  "In such delicious fancies time quickly glides by,
22101   and the welcome hour arrives for her entrance into
22102   the Elysian world, of which she has had such bright
22103   dreams. How fairy-like does everything appear to
22104   her enchanted vision! Each new scene is more charming
22105   than the last. But after a while she finds that
22106   beneath this goodly exterior, all is vanity, the
22107   flattery which once charmed her soul, now grates
22108   harshly upon her ear; the ball-room has lost its
22109   charms; and with wasted health and imbittered heart,
22110   she turns away with the conviction that earthly
22111   pleasures cannot satisfy the longings of the soul!"
22112
22113And so forth and so on. There was a buzz of gratification from time to
22114time during the reading, accompanied by whispered ejaculations of "How
22115sweet!" "How eloquent!" "So true!" etc., and after the thing had closed
22116with a peculiarly afflicting sermon the applause was enthusiastic.
22117
22118Then arose a slim, melancholy girl, whose face had the "interesting"
22119paleness that comes of pills and indigestion, and read a "poem." Two
22120stanzas of it will do:
22121
22122   "A MISSOURI MAIDEN'S FAREWELL TO ALABAMA
22123
22124   "Alabama, good-bye! I love thee well!
22125      But yet for a while do I leave thee now!
22126    Sad, yes, sad thoughts of thee my heart doth swell,
22127      And burning recollections throng my brow!
22128    For I have wandered through thy flowery woods;
22129      Have roamed and read near Tallapoosa's stream;
22130    Have listened to Tallassee's warring floods,
22131      And wooed on Coosa's side Aurora's beam.
22132
22133   "Yet shame I not to bear an o'er-full heart,
22134      Nor blush to turn behind my tearful eyes;
22135    'Tis from no stranger land I now must part,
22136      'Tis to no strangers left I yield these sighs.
22137    Welcome and home were mine within this State,
22138      Whose vales I leave--whose spires fade fast from me
22139    And cold must be mine eyes, and heart, and tete,
22140      When, dear Alabama! they turn cold on thee!"
22141
22142There were very few there who knew what "tete" meant, but the poem was
22143very satisfactory, nevertheless.
22144
22145Next appeared a dark-complexioned, black-eyed, black-haired young
22146lady, who paused an impressive moment, assumed a tragic expression, and
22147began to read in a measured, solemn tone:
22148
22149  "A VISION
22150
22151   "Dark and tempestuous was night. Around the
22152   throne on high not a single star quivered; but
22153   the deep intonations of the heavy thunder
22154   constantly vibrated upon the ear; whilst the
22155   terrific lightning revelled in angry mood
22156   through the cloudy chambers of heaven, seeming
22157   to scorn the power exerted over its terror by
22158   the illustrious Franklin! Even the boisterous
22159   winds unanimously came forth from their mystic
22160   homes, and blustered about as if to enhance by
22161   their aid the wildness of the scene.
22162
22163   "At such a time, so dark, so dreary, for human
22164   sympathy my very spirit sighed; but instead thereof,
22165
22166   "'My dearest friend, my counsellor, my comforter
22167   and guide--My joy in grief, my second bliss
22168   in joy,' came to my side. She moved like one of
22169   those bright beings pictured in the sunny walks
22170   of fancy's Eden by the romantic and young, a
22171   queen of beauty unadorned save by her own
22172   transcendent loveliness. So soft was her step, it
22173   failed to make even a sound, and but for the
22174   magical thrill imparted by her genial touch, as
22175   other unobtrusive beauties, she would have glided
22176   away un-perceived--unsought. A strange sadness
22177   rested upon her features, like icy tears upon
22178   the robe of December, as she pointed to the
22179   contending elements without, and bade me contemplate
22180   the two beings presented."
22181
22182This nightmare occupied some ten pages of manuscript and wound up with
22183a sermon so destructive of all hope to non-Presbyterians that it took
22184the first prize. This composition was considered to be the very finest
22185effort of the evening. The mayor of the village, in delivering the
22186prize to the author of it, made a warm speech in which he said that it
22187was by far the most "eloquent" thing he had ever listened to, and that
22188Daniel Webster himself might well be proud of it.
22189
22190It may be remarked, in passing, that the number of compositions in
22191which the word "beauteous" was over-fondled, and human experience
22192referred to as "life's page," was up to the usual average.
22193
22194Now the master, mellow almost to the verge of geniality, put his chair
22195aside, turned his back to the audience, and began to draw a map of
22196America on the blackboard, to exercise the geography class upon. But he
22197made a sad business of it with his unsteady hand, and a smothered
22198titter rippled over the house. He knew what the matter was, and set
22199himself to right it. He sponged out lines and remade them; but he only
22200distorted them more than ever, and the tittering was more pronounced.
22201He threw his entire attention upon his work, now, as if determined not
22202to be put down by the mirth. He felt that all eyes were fastened upon
22203him; he imagined he was succeeding, and yet the tittering continued; it
22204even manifestly increased. And well it might. There was a garret above,
22205pierced with a scuttle over his head; and down through this scuttle
22206came a cat, suspended around the haunches by a string; she had a rag
22207tied about her head and jaws to keep her from mewing; as she slowly
22208descended she curved upward and clawed at the string, she swung
22209downward and clawed at the intangible air. The tittering rose higher
22210and higher--the cat was within six inches of the absorbed teacher's
22211head--down, down, a little lower, and she grabbed his wig with her
22212desperate claws, clung to it, and was snatched up into the garret in an
22213instant with her trophy still in her possession! And how the light did
22214blaze abroad from the master's bald pate--for the sign-painter's boy
22215had GILDED it!
22216
22217That broke up the meeting. The boys were avenged. Vacation had come.
22218
22219   NOTE:--The pretended "compositions" quoted in
22220   this chapter are taken without alteration from a
22221   volume entitled "Prose and Poetry, by a Western
22222   Lady"--but they are exactly and precisely after
22223   the schoolgirl pattern, and hence are much
22224   happier than any mere imitations could be.
22225
22226
22227
22228CHAPTER XXII
22229
22230TOM joined the new order of Cadets of Temperance, being attracted by
22231the showy character of their "regalia." He promised to abstain from
22232smoking, chewing, and profanity as long as he remained a member. Now he
22233found out a new thing--namely, that to promise not to do a thing is the
22234surest way in the world to make a body want to go and do that very
22235thing. Tom soon found himself tormented with a desire to drink and
22236swear; the desire grew to be so intense that nothing but the hope of a
22237chance to display himself in his red sash kept him from withdrawing
22238from the order. Fourth of July was coming; but he soon gave that up
22239--gave it up before he had worn his shackles over forty-eight hours--and
22240fixed his hopes upon old Judge Frazer, justice of the peace, who was
22241apparently on his deathbed and would have a big public funeral, since
22242he was so high an official. During three days Tom was deeply concerned
22243about the Judge's condition and hungry for news of it. Sometimes his
22244hopes ran high--so high that he would venture to get out his regalia
22245and practise before the looking-glass. But the Judge had a most
22246discouraging way of fluctuating. At last he was pronounced upon the
22247mend--and then convalescent. Tom was disgusted; and felt a sense of
22248injury, too. He handed in his resignation at once--and that night the
22249Judge suffered a relapse and died. Tom resolved that he would never
22250trust a man like that again.
22251
22252The funeral was a fine thing. The Cadets paraded in a style calculated
22253to kill the late member with envy. Tom was a free boy again, however
22254--there was something in that. He could drink and swear, now--but found
22255to his surprise that he did not want to. The simple fact that he could,
22256took the desire away, and the charm of it.
22257
22258Tom presently wondered to find that his coveted vacation was beginning
22259to hang a little heavily on his hands.
22260
22261He attempted a diary--but nothing happened during three days, and so
22262he abandoned it.
22263
22264The first of all the negro minstrel shows came to town, and made a
22265sensation. Tom and Joe Harper got up a band of performers and were
22266happy for two days.
22267
22268Even the Glorious Fourth was in some sense a failure, for it rained
22269hard, there was no procession in consequence, and the greatest man in
22270the world (as Tom supposed), Mr. Benton, an actual United States
22271Senator, proved an overwhelming disappointment--for he was not
22272twenty-five feet high, nor even anywhere in the neighborhood of it.
22273
22274A circus came. The boys played circus for three days afterward in
22275tents made of rag carpeting--admission, three pins for boys, two for
22276girls--and then circusing was abandoned.
22277
22278A phrenologist and a mesmerizer came--and went again and left the
22279village duller and drearier than ever.
22280
22281There were some boys-and-girls' parties, but they were so few and so
22282delightful that they only made the aching voids between ache the harder.
22283
22284Becky Thatcher was gone to her Constantinople home to stay with her
22285parents during vacation--so there was no bright side to life anywhere.
22286
22287The dreadful secret of the murder was a chronic misery. It was a very
22288cancer for permanency and pain.
22289
22290Then came the measles.
22291
22292During two long weeks Tom lay a prisoner, dead to the world and its
22293happenings. He was very ill, he was interested in nothing. When he got
22294upon his feet at last and moved feebly down-town, a melancholy change
22295had come over everything and every creature. There had been a
22296"revival," and everybody had "got religion," not only the adults, but
22297even the boys and girls. Tom went about, hoping against hope for the
22298sight of one blessed sinful face, but disappointment crossed him
22299everywhere. He found Joe Harper studying a Testament, and turned sadly
22300away from the depressing spectacle. He sought Ben Rogers, and found him
22301visiting the poor with a basket of tracts. He hunted up Jim Hollis, who
22302called his attention to the precious blessing of his late measles as a
22303warning. Every boy he encountered added another ton to his depression;
22304and when, in desperation, he flew for refuge at last to the bosom of
22305Huckleberry Finn and was received with a Scriptural quotation, his
22306heart broke and he crept home and to bed realizing that he alone of all
22307the town was lost, forever and forever.
22308
22309And that night there came on a terrific storm, with driving rain,
22310awful claps of thunder and blinding sheets of lightning. He covered his
22311head with the bedclothes and waited in a horror of suspense for his
22312doom; for he had not the shadow of a doubt that all this hubbub was
22313about him. He believed he had taxed the forbearance of the powers above
22314to the extremity of endurance and that this was the result. It might
22315have seemed to him a waste of pomp and ammunition to kill a bug with a
22316battery of artillery, but there seemed nothing incongruous about the
22317getting up such an expensive thunderstorm as this to knock the turf
22318from under an insect like himself.
22319
22320By and by the tempest spent itself and died without accomplishing its
22321object. The boy's first impulse was to be grateful, and reform. His
22322second was to wait--for there might not be any more storms.
22323
22324The next day the doctors were back; Tom had relapsed. The three weeks
22325he spent on his back this time seemed an entire age. When he got abroad
22326at last he was hardly grateful that he had been spared, remembering how
22327lonely was his estate, how companionless and forlorn he was. He drifted
22328listlessly down the street and found Jim Hollis acting as judge in a
22329juvenile court that was trying a cat for murder, in the presence of her
22330victim, a bird. He found Joe Harper and Huck Finn up an alley eating a
22331stolen melon. Poor lads! they--like Tom--had suffered a relapse.
22332
22333
22334
22335CHAPTER XXIII
22336
22337AT last the sleepy atmosphere was stirred--and vigorously: the murder
22338trial came on in the court. It became the absorbing topic of village
22339talk immediately. Tom could not get away from it. Every reference to
22340the murder sent a shudder to his heart, for his troubled conscience and
22341fears almost persuaded him that these remarks were put forth in his
22342hearing as "feelers"; he did not see how he could be suspected of
22343knowing anything about the murder, but still he could not be
22344comfortable in the midst of this gossip. It kept him in a cold shiver
22345all the time. He took Huck to a lonely place to have a talk with him.
22346It would be some relief to unseal his tongue for a little while; to
22347divide his burden of distress with another sufferer. Moreover, he
22348wanted to assure himself that Huck had remained discreet.
22349
22350"Huck, have you ever told anybody about--that?"
22351
22352"'Bout what?"
22353
22354"You know what."
22355
22356"Oh--'course I haven't."
22357
22358"Never a word?"
22359
22360"Never a solitary word, so help me. What makes you ask?"
22361
22362"Well, I was afeard."
22363
22364"Why, Tom Sawyer, we wouldn't be alive two days if that got found out.
22365YOU know that."
22366
22367Tom felt more comfortable. After a pause:
22368
22369"Huck, they couldn't anybody get you to tell, could they?"
22370
22371"Get me to tell? Why, if I wanted that half-breed devil to drownd me
22372they could get me to tell. They ain't no different way."
22373
22374"Well, that's all right, then. I reckon we're safe as long as we keep
22375mum. But let's swear again, anyway. It's more surer."
22376
22377"I'm agreed."
22378
22379So they swore again with dread solemnities.
22380
22381"What is the talk around, Huck? I've heard a power of it."
22382
22383"Talk? Well, it's just Muff Potter, Muff Potter, Muff Potter all the
22384time. It keeps me in a sweat, constant, so's I want to hide som'ers."
22385
22386"That's just the same way they go on round me. I reckon he's a goner.
22387Don't you feel sorry for him, sometimes?"
22388
22389"Most always--most always. He ain't no account; but then he hain't
22390ever done anything to hurt anybody. Just fishes a little, to get money
22391to get drunk on--and loafs around considerable; but lord, we all do
22392that--leastways most of us--preachers and such like. But he's kind of
22393good--he give me half a fish, once, when there warn't enough for two;
22394and lots of times he's kind of stood by me when I was out of luck."
22395
22396"Well, he's mended kites for me, Huck, and knitted hooks on to my
22397line. I wish we could get him out of there."
22398
22399"My! we couldn't get him out, Tom. And besides, 'twouldn't do any
22400good; they'd ketch him again."
22401
22402"Yes--so they would. But I hate to hear 'em abuse him so like the
22403dickens when he never done--that."
22404
22405"I do too, Tom. Lord, I hear 'em say he's the bloodiest looking
22406villain in this country, and they wonder he wasn't ever hung before."
22407
22408"Yes, they talk like that, all the time. I've heard 'em say that if he
22409was to get free they'd lynch him."
22410
22411"And they'd do it, too."
22412
22413The boys had a long talk, but it brought them little comfort. As the
22414twilight drew on, they found themselves hanging about the neighborhood
22415of the little isolated jail, perhaps with an undefined hope that
22416something would happen that might clear away their difficulties. But
22417nothing happened; there seemed to be no angels or fairies interested in
22418this luckless captive.
22419
22420The boys did as they had often done before--went to the cell grating
22421and gave Potter some tobacco and matches. He was on the ground floor
22422and there were no guards.
22423
22424His gratitude for their gifts had always smote their consciences
22425before--it cut deeper than ever, this time. They felt cowardly and
22426treacherous to the last degree when Potter said:
22427
22428"You've been mighty good to me, boys--better'n anybody else in this
22429town. And I don't forget it, I don't. Often I says to myself, says I,
22430'I used to mend all the boys' kites and things, and show 'em where the
22431good fishin' places was, and befriend 'em what I could, and now they've
22432all forgot old Muff when he's in trouble; but Tom don't, and Huck
22433don't--THEY don't forget him, says I, 'and I don't forget them.' Well,
22434boys, I done an awful thing--drunk and crazy at the time--that's the
22435only way I account for it--and now I got to swing for it, and it's
22436right. Right, and BEST, too, I reckon--hope so, anyway. Well, we won't
22437talk about that. I don't want to make YOU feel bad; you've befriended
22438me. But what I want to say, is, don't YOU ever get drunk--then you won't
22439ever get here. Stand a litter furder west--so--that's it; it's a prime
22440comfort to see faces that's friendly when a body's in such a muck of
22441trouble, and there don't none come here but yourn. Good friendly
22442faces--good friendly faces. Git up on one another's backs and let me
22443touch 'em. That's it. Shake hands--yourn'll come through the bars, but
22444mine's too big. Little hands, and weak--but they've helped Muff Potter
22445a power, and they'd help him more if they could."
22446
22447Tom went home miserable, and his dreams that night were full of
22448horrors. The next day and the day after, he hung about the court-room,
22449drawn by an almost irresistible impulse to go in, but forcing himself
22450to stay out. Huck was having the same experience. They studiously
22451avoided each other. Each wandered away, from time to time, but the same
22452dismal fascination always brought them back presently. Tom kept his
22453ears open when idlers sauntered out of the court-room, but invariably
22454heard distressing news--the toils were closing more and more
22455relentlessly around poor Potter. At the end of the second day the
22456village talk was to the effect that Injun Joe's evidence stood firm and
22457unshaken, and that there was not the slightest question as to what the
22458jury's verdict would be.
22459
22460Tom was out late, that night, and came to bed through the window. He
22461was in a tremendous state of excitement. It was hours before he got to
22462sleep. All the village flocked to the court-house the next morning, for
22463this was to be the great day. Both sexes were about equally represented
22464in the packed audience. After a long wait the jury filed in and took
22465their places; shortly afterward, Potter, pale and haggard, timid and
22466hopeless, was brought in, with chains upon him, and seated where all
22467the curious eyes could stare at him; no less conspicuous was Injun Joe,
22468stolid as ever. There was another pause, and then the judge arrived and
22469the sheriff proclaimed the opening of the court. The usual whisperings
22470among the lawyers and gathering together of papers followed. These
22471details and accompanying delays worked up an atmosphere of preparation
22472that was as impressive as it was fascinating.
22473
22474Now a witness was called who testified that he found Muff Potter
22475washing in the brook, at an early hour of the morning that the murder
22476was discovered, and that he immediately sneaked away. After some
22477further questioning, counsel for the prosecution said:
22478
22479"Take the witness."
22480
22481The prisoner raised his eyes for a moment, but dropped them again when
22482his own counsel said:
22483
22484"I have no questions to ask him."
22485
22486The next witness proved the finding of the knife near the corpse.
22487Counsel for the prosecution said:
22488
22489"Take the witness."
22490
22491"I have no questions to ask him," Potter's lawyer replied.
22492
22493A third witness swore he had often seen the knife in Potter's
22494possession.
22495
22496"Take the witness."
22497
22498Counsel for Potter declined to question him. The faces of the audience
22499began to betray annoyance. Did this attorney mean to throw away his
22500client's life without an effort?
22501
22502Several witnesses deposed concerning Potter's guilty behavior when
22503brought to the scene of the murder. They were allowed to leave the
22504stand without being cross-questioned.
22505
22506Every detail of the damaging circumstances that occurred in the
22507graveyard upon that morning which all present remembered so well was
22508brought out by credible witnesses, but none of them were cross-examined
22509by Potter's lawyer. The perplexity and dissatisfaction of the house
22510expressed itself in murmurs and provoked a reproof from the bench.
22511Counsel for the prosecution now said:
22512
22513"By the oaths of citizens whose simple word is above suspicion, we
22514have fastened this awful crime, beyond all possibility of question,
22515upon the unhappy prisoner at the bar. We rest our case here."
22516
22517A groan escaped from poor Potter, and he put his face in his hands and
22518rocked his body softly to and fro, while a painful silence reigned in
22519the court-room. Many men were moved, and many women's compassion
22520testified itself in tears. Counsel for the defence rose and said:
22521
22522"Your honor, in our remarks at the opening of this trial, we
22523foreshadowed our purpose to prove that our client did this fearful deed
22524while under the influence of a blind and irresponsible delirium
22525produced by drink. We have changed our mind. We shall not offer that
22526plea." [Then to the clerk:] "Call Thomas Sawyer!"
22527
22528A puzzled amazement awoke in every face in the house, not even
22529excepting Potter's. Every eye fastened itself with wondering interest
22530upon Tom as he rose and took his place upon the stand. The boy looked
22531wild enough, for he was badly scared. The oath was administered.
22532
22533"Thomas Sawyer, where were you on the seventeenth of June, about the
22534hour of midnight?"
22535
22536Tom glanced at Injun Joe's iron face and his tongue failed him. The
22537audience listened breathless, but the words refused to come. After a
22538few moments, however, the boy got a little of his strength back, and
22539managed to put enough of it into his voice to make part of the house
22540hear:
22541
22542"In the graveyard!"
22543
22544"A little bit louder, please. Don't be afraid. You were--"
22545
22546"In the graveyard."
22547
22548A contemptuous smile flitted across Injun Joe's face.
22549
22550"Were you anywhere near Horse Williams' grave?"
22551
22552"Yes, sir."
22553
22554"Speak up--just a trifle louder. How near were you?"
22555
22556"Near as I am to you."
22557
22558"Were you hidden, or not?"
22559
22560"I was hid."
22561
22562"Where?"
22563
22564"Behind the elms that's on the edge of the grave."
22565
22566Injun Joe gave a barely perceptible start.
22567
22568"Any one with you?"
22569
22570"Yes, sir. I went there with--"
22571
22572"Wait--wait a moment. Never mind mentioning your companion's name. We
22573will produce him at the proper time. Did you carry anything there with
22574you."
22575
22576Tom hesitated and looked confused.
22577
22578"Speak out, my boy--don't be diffident. The truth is always
22579respectable. What did you take there?"
22580
22581"Only a--a--dead cat."
22582
22583There was a ripple of mirth, which the court checked.
22584
22585"We will produce the skeleton of that cat. Now, my boy, tell us
22586everything that occurred--tell it in your own way--don't skip anything,
22587and don't be afraid."
22588
22589Tom began--hesitatingly at first, but as he warmed to his subject his
22590words flowed more and more easily; in a little while every sound ceased
22591but his own voice; every eye fixed itself upon him; with parted lips
22592and bated breath the audience hung upon his words, taking no note of
22593time, rapt in the ghastly fascinations of the tale. The strain upon
22594pent emotion reached its climax when the boy said:
22595
22596"--and as the doctor fetched the board around and Muff Potter fell,
22597Injun Joe jumped with the knife and--"
22598
22599Crash! Quick as lightning the half-breed sprang for a window, tore his
22600way through all opposers, and was gone!
22601
22602
22603
22604CHAPTER XXIV
22605
22606TOM was a glittering hero once more--the pet of the old, the envy of
22607the young. His name even went into immortal print, for the village
22608paper magnified him. There were some that believed he would be
22609President, yet, if he escaped hanging.
22610
22611As usual, the fickle, unreasoning world took Muff Potter to its bosom
22612and fondled him as lavishly as it had abused him before. But that sort
22613of conduct is to the world's credit; therefore it is not well to find
22614fault with it.
22615
22616Tom's days were days of splendor and exultation to him, but his nights
22617were seasons of horror. Injun Joe infested all his dreams, and always
22618with doom in his eye. Hardly any temptation could persuade the boy to
22619stir abroad after nightfall. Poor Huck was in the same state of
22620wretchedness and terror, for Tom had told the whole story to the lawyer
22621the night before the great day of the trial, and Huck was sore afraid
22622that his share in the business might leak out, yet, notwithstanding
22623Injun Joe's flight had saved him the suffering of testifying in court.
22624The poor fellow had got the attorney to promise secrecy, but what of
22625that? Since Tom's harassed conscience had managed to drive him to the
22626lawyer's house by night and wring a dread tale from lips that had been
22627sealed with the dismalest and most formidable of oaths, Huck's
22628confidence in the human race was well-nigh obliterated.
22629
22630Daily Muff Potter's gratitude made Tom glad he had spoken; but nightly
22631he wished he had sealed up his tongue.
22632
22633Half the time Tom was afraid Injun Joe would never be captured; the
22634other half he was afraid he would be. He felt sure he never could draw
22635a safe breath again until that man was dead and he had seen the corpse.
22636
22637Rewards had been offered, the country had been scoured, but no Injun
22638Joe was found. One of those omniscient and awe-inspiring marvels, a
22639detective, came up from St. Louis, moused around, shook his head,
22640looked wise, and made that sort of astounding success which members of
22641that craft usually achieve. That is to say, he "found a clew." But you
22642can't hang a "clew" for murder, and so after that detective had got
22643through and gone home, Tom felt just as insecure as he was before.
22644
22645The slow days drifted on, and each left behind it a slightly lightened
22646weight of apprehension.
22647
22648
22649
22650CHAPTER XXV
22651
22652THERE comes a time in every rightly-constructed boy's life when he has
22653a raging desire to go somewhere and dig for hidden treasure. This
22654desire suddenly came upon Tom one day. He sallied out to find Joe
22655Harper, but failed of success. Next he sought Ben Rogers; he had gone
22656fishing. Presently he stumbled upon Huck Finn the Red-Handed. Huck
22657would answer. Tom took him to a private place and opened the matter to
22658him confidentially. Huck was willing. Huck was always willing to take a
22659hand in any enterprise that offered entertainment and required no
22660capital, for he had a troublesome superabundance of that sort of time
22661which is not money. "Where'll we dig?" said Huck.
22662
22663"Oh, most anywhere."
22664
22665"Why, is it hid all around?"
22666
22667"No, indeed it ain't. It's hid in mighty particular places, Huck
22668--sometimes on islands, sometimes in rotten chests under the end of a
22669limb of an old dead tree, just where the shadow falls at midnight; but
22670mostly under the floor in ha'nted houses."
22671
22672"Who hides it?"
22673
22674"Why, robbers, of course--who'd you reckon? Sunday-school
22675sup'rintendents?"
22676
22677"I don't know. If 'twas mine I wouldn't hide it; I'd spend it and have
22678a good time."
22679
22680"So would I. But robbers don't do that way. They always hide it and
22681leave it there."
22682
22683"Don't they come after it any more?"
22684
22685"No, they think they will, but they generally forget the marks, or
22686else they die. Anyway, it lays there a long time and gets rusty; and by
22687and by somebody finds an old yellow paper that tells how to find the
22688marks--a paper that's got to be ciphered over about a week because it's
22689mostly signs and hy'roglyphics."
22690
22691"Hyro--which?"
22692
22693"Hy'roglyphics--pictures and things, you know, that don't seem to mean
22694anything."
22695
22696"Have you got one of them papers, Tom?"
22697
22698"No."
22699
22700"Well then, how you going to find the marks?"
22701
22702"I don't want any marks. They always bury it under a ha'nted house or
22703on an island, or under a dead tree that's got one limb sticking out.
22704Well, we've tried Jackson's Island a little, and we can try it again
22705some time; and there's the old ha'nted house up the Still-House branch,
22706and there's lots of dead-limb trees--dead loads of 'em."
22707
22708"Is it under all of them?"
22709
22710"How you talk! No!"
22711
22712"Then how you going to know which one to go for?"
22713
22714"Go for all of 'em!"
22715
22716"Why, Tom, it'll take all summer."
22717
22718"Well, what of that? Suppose you find a brass pot with a hundred
22719dollars in it, all rusty and gray, or rotten chest full of di'monds.
22720How's that?"
22721
22722Huck's eyes glowed.
22723
22724"That's bully. Plenty bully enough for me. Just you gimme the hundred
22725dollars and I don't want no di'monds."
22726
22727"All right. But I bet you I ain't going to throw off on di'monds. Some
22728of 'em's worth twenty dollars apiece--there ain't any, hardly, but's
22729worth six bits or a dollar."
22730
22731"No! Is that so?"
22732
22733"Cert'nly--anybody'll tell you so. Hain't you ever seen one, Huck?"
22734
22735"Not as I remember."
22736
22737"Oh, kings have slathers of them."
22738
22739"Well, I don' know no kings, Tom."
22740
22741"I reckon you don't. But if you was to go to Europe you'd see a raft
22742of 'em hopping around."
22743
22744"Do they hop?"
22745
22746"Hop?--your granny! No!"
22747
22748"Well, what did you say they did, for?"
22749
22750"Shucks, I only meant you'd SEE 'em--not hopping, of course--what do
22751they want to hop for?--but I mean you'd just see 'em--scattered around,
22752you know, in a kind of a general way. Like that old humpbacked Richard."
22753
22754"Richard? What's his other name?"
22755
22756"He didn't have any other name. Kings don't have any but a given name."
22757
22758"No?"
22759
22760"But they don't."
22761
22762"Well, if they like it, Tom, all right; but I don't want to be a king
22763and have only just a given name, like a nigger. But say--where you
22764going to dig first?"
22765
22766"Well, I don't know. S'pose we tackle that old dead-limb tree on the
22767hill t'other side of Still-House branch?"
22768
22769"I'm agreed."
22770
22771So they got a crippled pick and a shovel, and set out on their
22772three-mile tramp. They arrived hot and panting, and threw themselves
22773down in the shade of a neighboring elm to rest and have a smoke.
22774
22775"I like this," said Tom.
22776
22777"So do I."
22778
22779"Say, Huck, if we find a treasure here, what you going to do with your
22780share?"
22781
22782"Well, I'll have pie and a glass of soda every day, and I'll go to
22783every circus that comes along. I bet I'll have a gay time."
22784
22785"Well, ain't you going to save any of it?"
22786
22787"Save it? What for?"
22788
22789"Why, so as to have something to live on, by and by."
22790
22791"Oh, that ain't any use. Pap would come back to thish-yer town some
22792day and get his claws on it if I didn't hurry up, and I tell you he'd
22793clean it out pretty quick. What you going to do with yourn, Tom?"
22794
22795"I'm going to buy a new drum, and a sure-'nough sword, and a red
22796necktie and a bull pup, and get married."
22797
22798"Married!"
22799
22800"That's it."
22801
22802"Tom, you--why, you ain't in your right mind."
22803
22804"Wait--you'll see."
22805
22806"Well, that's the foolishest thing you could do. Look at pap and my
22807mother. Fight! Why, they used to fight all the time. I remember, mighty
22808well."
22809
22810"That ain't anything. The girl I'm going to marry won't fight."
22811
22812"Tom, I reckon they're all alike. They'll all comb a body. Now you
22813better think 'bout this awhile. I tell you you better. What's the name
22814of the gal?"
22815
22816"It ain't a gal at all--it's a girl."
22817
22818"It's all the same, I reckon; some says gal, some says girl--both's
22819right, like enough. Anyway, what's her name, Tom?"
22820
22821"I'll tell you some time--not now."
22822
22823"All right--that'll do. Only if you get married I'll be more lonesomer
22824than ever."
22825
22826"No you won't. You'll come and live with me. Now stir out of this and
22827we'll go to digging."
22828
22829They worked and sweated for half an hour. No result. They toiled
22830another half-hour. Still no result. Huck said:
22831
22832"Do they always bury it as deep as this?"
22833
22834"Sometimes--not always. Not generally. I reckon we haven't got the
22835right place."
22836
22837So they chose a new spot and began again. The labor dragged a little,
22838but still they made progress. They pegged away in silence for some
22839time. Finally Huck leaned on his shovel, swabbed the beaded drops from
22840his brow with his sleeve, and said:
22841
22842"Where you going to dig next, after we get this one?"
22843
22844"I reckon maybe we'll tackle the old tree that's over yonder on
22845Cardiff Hill back of the widow's."
22846
22847"I reckon that'll be a good one. But won't the widow take it away from
22848us, Tom? It's on her land."
22849
22850"SHE take it away! Maybe she'd like to try it once. Whoever finds one
22851of these hid treasures, it belongs to him. It don't make any difference
22852whose land it's on."
22853
22854That was satisfactory. The work went on. By and by Huck said:
22855
22856"Blame it, we must be in the wrong place again. What do you think?"
22857
22858"It is mighty curious, Huck. I don't understand it. Sometimes witches
22859interfere. I reckon maybe that's what's the trouble now."
22860
22861"Shucks! Witches ain't got no power in the daytime."
22862
22863"Well, that's so. I didn't think of that. Oh, I know what the matter
22864is! What a blamed lot of fools we are! You got to find out where the
22865shadow of the limb falls at midnight, and that's where you dig!"
22866
22867"Then consound it, we've fooled away all this work for nothing. Now
22868hang it all, we got to come back in the night. It's an awful long way.
22869Can you get out?"
22870
22871"I bet I will. We've got to do it to-night, too, because if somebody
22872sees t